This is a modern-English version of The Son of Tarzan, originally written by Burroughs, Edgar Rice.
It has been thoroughly updated, including changes to sentence structure, words, spelling,
and grammar—to ensure clarity for contemporary readers, while preserving the original spirit and nuance. If
you click on a paragraph, you will see the original text that we modified, and you can toggle between the two versions.
Scroll to the bottom of this page and you will find a free ePUB download link for this book.
![[Illustration]](images/cover.jpg)
The Son Of Tarzan
by Edgar Rice Burroughs
To Hulbert Burroughs
To Hulbert Burroughs
Contents
I. |
II. |
III. |
IV. |
V. |
VI. |
VII. |
VIII. |
IX. |
X. |
XI. |
XII. |
XIII. |
XIV. |
XV. |
XVI. |
XVII. |
XVIII. |
XIX. |
XX. |
XXI. |
XXII. |
XXIII. |
XXIV. |
XXV. |
XXVI. |
XXVII. |
I.
The long boat of the Marjorie W. was floating down the broad Ugambi with ebb tide and current. Her crew were lazily enjoying this respite from the arduous labor of rowing up stream. Three miles below them lay the Marjorie W. herself, quite ready to sail so soon as they should have clambered aboard and swung the long boat to its davits. Presently the attention of every man was drawn from his dreaming or his gossiping to the northern bank of the river. There, screaming at them in a cracked falsetto and with skinny arms outstretched, stood a strange apparition of a man.
The long boat of the Marjorie W. was drifting down the wide Ugambi with the outgoing tide and current. Her crew was lazily enjoying this break from the hard work of rowing upstream. Three miles below them was the Marjorie W. itself, ready to set sail as soon as they climbed aboard and lifted the long boat to its davits. Soon, every man’s attention shifted from his daydreaming or chatting to the northern bank of the river. There, shouting at them in a high-pitched voice and with skinny arms stretched out, stood a strange-looking man.
“Wot the ’ell?” ejaculated one of the crew.
“What's going on?” shouted one of the crew.
“A white man!” muttered the mate, and then: “Man the oars, boys, and we’ll just pull over an’ see what he wants.”
“A white guy!” the mate muttered, then added, “Get the oars, guys, and let’s paddle over and check out what he wants.”
When they came close to the shore they saw an emaciated creature with scant white locks tangled and matted. The thin, bent body was naked but for a loin cloth. Tears were rolling down the sunken pock-marked cheeks. The man jabbered at them in a strange tongue.
When they got near the shore, they saw a skinny creature with sparse white hair that was tangled and messy. Its thin, hunched body was only covered by a loincloth. Tears were streaming down its sunken, pockmarked cheeks. The man was babbling at them in an unfamiliar language.
“Rooshun,” hazarded the mate. “Savvy English?” he called to the man.
“Rooshun,” the mate guessed. “Do you understand English?” he called to the man.
He did, and in that tongue, brokenly and haltingly, as though it had been many years since he had used it, he begged them to take him with them away from this awful country. Once on board the Marjorie W. the stranger told his rescuers a pitiful tale of privation, hardships, and torture, extending over a period of ten years. How he happened to have come to Africa he did not tell them, leaving them to assume he had forgotten the incidents of his life prior to the frightful ordeals that had wrecked him mentally and physically. He did not even tell them his true name, and so they knew him only as Michael Sabrov, nor was there any resemblance between this sorry wreck and the virile, though unprincipled, Alexis Paulvitch of old.
He did, and in that language, awkwardly and hesitantly, as if it had been many years since he last spoke it, he pleaded with them to take him away from this terrible country. Once on board the Marjorie W., the stranger shared a heartbreaking story of deprivation, struggles, and torture that spanned over a decade. He didn't explain how he ended up in Africa, leaving them to think he had forgotten the events of his life before the horrifying experiences that had shattered him mentally and physically. He didn’t even reveal his real name, so they knew him only as Michael Sabrov, and there was no resemblance between this pitiful soul and the strong, albeit unscrupulous, Alexis Paulvitch from before.
It had been ten years since the Russian had escaped the fate of his friend, the arch-fiend Rokoff, and not once, but many times during those ten years had Paulvitch cursed the fate that had given to Nicholas Rokoff death and immunity from suffering while it had meted to him the hideous terrors of an existence infinitely worse than the death that persistently refused to claim him.
It had been ten years since the Russian had avoided the fate of his friend, the arch-villain Rokoff, and not just once but many times during those ten years, Paulvitch had cursed the fate that had given Nicholas Rokoff death and freedom from suffering while it had sentenced him to the horrifying nightmares of a life infinitely worse than the death that constantly refused to take him.
Paulvitch had taken to the jungle when he had seen the beasts of Tarzan and their savage lord swarm the deck of the Kincaid, and in his terror lest Tarzan pursue and capture him he had stumbled on deep into the jungle, only to fall at last into the hands of one of the savage cannibal tribes that had felt the weight of Rokoff’s evil temper and cruel brutality. Some strange whim of the chief of this tribe saved Paulvitch from death only to plunge him into a life of misery and torture. For ten years he had been the butt of the village, beaten and stoned by the women and children, cut and slashed and disfigured by the warriors; a victim of often recurring fevers of the most malignant variety. Yet he did not die. Smallpox laid its hideous clutches upon him; leaving him unspeakably branded with its repulsive marks. Between it and the attentions of the tribe the countenance of Alexis Paulvitch was so altered that his own mother could not have recognized in the pitiful mask he called his face a single familiar feature. A few scraggly, yellow-white locks had supplanted the thick, dark hair that had covered his head. His limbs were bent and twisted, he walked with a shuffling, unsteady gait, his body doubled forward. His teeth were gone—knocked out by his savage masters. Even his mentality was but a sorry mockery of what it once had been.
Paulvitch had fled into the jungle when he saw the beasts of Tarzan and their savage leader swarm the deck of the Kincaid. Terrified that Tarzan would chase and catch him, he stumbled deeper into the jungle, only to end up in the hands of a brutal cannibal tribe that had already felt the wrath of Rokoff’s cruelty. For some strange reason, the chief of this tribe spared Paulvitch from death, but condemned him to a life of misery and torture. For ten years, he became the target of the village—beaten and stoned by women and children, cut and slashed by the warriors; suffering from frequent, severe fevers. Yet he didn’t die. Smallpox took hold of him, leaving him horrifically marked. Between that and the tribe’s treatment, Alexis Paulvitch’s appearance changed so much that not even his mother would recognize him in the pitiful mask he now called his face. A few scraggly, yellow-white strands of hair had replaced the thick, dark locks that once covered his head. His limbs were bent and twisted, he walked with a shuffling, unsteady gait, and his body was hunched over. His teeth were gone—knocked out by his savage captors. Even his mind was just a sad shadow of what it once was.
They took him aboard the Marjorie W., and there they fed and nursed him. He gained a little in strength; but his appearance never altered for the better—a human derelict, battered and wrecked, they had found him; a human derelict, battered and wrecked, he would remain until death claimed him. Though still in his thirties, Alexis Paulvitch could easily have passed for eighty. Inscrutable Nature had demanded of the accomplice a greater penalty than his principal had paid.
They took him aboard the Marjorie W., where they fed and cared for him. He gained a little strength, but his appearance never improved—a human wreck, battered and broken, that’s how they found him; a human wreck, battered and broken, that’s how he would stay until death took him. Although he was still in his thirties, Alexis Paulvitch could easily have been mistaken for eighty. Unfathomable Nature demanded a heavier toll from the accomplice than it had from the principal.
In the mind of Alexis Paulvitch there lingered no thoughts of revenge—only a dull hatred of the man whom he and Rokoff had tried to break, and failed. There was hatred, too, of the memory of Rokoff, for Rokoff had led him into the horrors he had undergone. There was hatred of the police of a score of cities from which he had had to flee. There was hatred of law, hatred of order, hatred of everything. Every moment of the man’s waking life was filled with morbid thought of hatred—he had become mentally as he was physically in outward appearance, the personification of the blighting emotion of Hate. He had little or nothing to do with the men who had rescued him. He was too weak to work and too morose for company, and so they quickly left him alone to his own devices.
In Alexis Paulvitch's mind, there were no thoughts of revenge—just a dull hatred for the man he and Rokoff had tried to break, but failed. He also hated the memory of Rokoff, who had led him into the terrible experiences he had gone through. He felt hatred for the police in several cities he had to escape from. He hated the law, hated order, hated everything. Every moment of his waking life was consumed by dark thoughts of hatred—he had become a mental reflection of what he looked like on the outside, the embodiment of the destructive emotion of Hate. He had little to do with the men who had rescued him. He was too weak to work and too gloomy for company, so they quickly left him alone to fend for himself.
The Marjorie W. had been chartered by a syndicate of wealthy manufacturers, equipped with a laboratory and a staff of scientists, and sent out to search for some natural product which the manufacturers who footed the bills had been importing from South America at an enormous cost. What the product was none on board the Marjorie W. knew except the scientists, nor is it of any moment to us, other than that it led the ship to a certain island off the coast of Africa after Alexis Paulvitch had been taken aboard.
The Marjorie W. had been chartered by a group of wealthy manufacturers, outfitted with a lab and a team of scientists, and sent out to find a natural product that the manufacturers, who were covering the expenses, had been importing from South America at a huge cost. No one on board the Marjorie W. knew what the product was except for the scientists, and it doesn’t really matter to us, other than the fact that it brought the ship to a specific island off the coast of Africa after Alexis Paulvitch was taken on board.
The ship lay at anchor off the coast for several weeks. The monotony of life aboard her became trying for the crew. They went often ashore, and finally Paulvitch asked to accompany them—he too was tiring of the blighting sameness of existence upon the ship.
The ship was anchored off the coast for several weeks. The boredom of life on board started to weigh on the crew. They often went ashore, and eventually, Paulvitch asked to join them—he was also getting fed up with the dull routine of life on the ship.
The island was heavily timbered. Dense jungle ran down almost to the beach. The scientists were far inland, prosecuting their search for the valuable commodity that native rumor upon the mainland had led them to believe might be found here in marketable quantity. The ship’s company fished, hunted, and explored. Paulvitch shuffled up and down the beach, or lay in the shade of the great trees that skirted it. One day, as the men were gathered at a little distance inspecting the body of a panther that had fallen to the gun of one of them who had been hunting inland, Paulvitch lay sleeping beneath his tree. He was awakened by the touch of a hand upon his shoulder. With a start he sat up to see a huge, anthropoid ape squatting at his side, inspecting him intently. The Russian was thoroughly frightened. He glanced toward the sailors—they were a couple of hundred yards away. Again the ape plucked at his shoulder, jabbering plaintively. Paulvitch saw no menace in the inquiring gaze, or in the attitude of the beast. He got slowly to his feet. The ape rose at his side.
The island was thick with trees. A dense jungle stretched almost down to the beach. The scientists were deep in the island, searching for the valuable resource that local rumors back on the mainland had led them to believe could be found here in significant amounts. The crew was fishing, hunting, and exploring. Paulvitch walked back and forth along the beach or rested in the shade of the large trees lining it. One day, while the men were gathered a little distance away examining the body of a panther that one of them had shot while hunting inland, Paulvitch was napping under his tree. He was startled awake by a hand on his shoulder. Sitting up abruptly, he saw a huge, ape-like creature squatting beside him, watching him closely. The Russian was completely terrified. He glanced over at the sailors—they were a couple of hundred yards away. The ape tugged at his shoulder again, making plaintive sounds. Paulvitch didn’t see any threat in the curious look or the behavior of the creature. He slowly got to his feet, and the ape rose beside him.
Half doubled, the man shuffled cautiously away toward the sailors. The ape moved with him, taking one of his arms. They had come almost to the little knot of men before they were seen, and by this time Paulvitch had become assured that the beast meant no harm. The animal evidently was accustomed to the association of human beings. It occurred to the Russian that the ape represented a certain considerable money value, and before they reached the sailors he had decided he should be the one to profit by it.
Half hunched over, the man carefully shuffled toward the sailors. The ape moved alongside him, grabbing one of his arms. They had almost reached the small group of men before anyone spotted them, and by this point, Paulvitch was confident that the creature meant no harm. The animal clearly seemed used to being around humans. It crossed the Russian's mind that the ape held significant monetary value, and before they reached the sailors, he had resolved to be the one to benefit from it.
When the men looked up and saw the oddly paired couple shuffling toward them they were filled with amazement, and started on a run toward the two. The ape showed no sign of fear. Instead he grasped each sailor by the shoulder and peered long and earnestly into his face. Having inspected them all he returned to Paulvitch’s side, disappointment written strongly upon his countenance and in his carriage.
When the men looked up and saw the strange couple shuffling toward them, they were amazed and started running toward the two. The ape showed no sign of fear. Instead, he grabbed each sailor by the shoulder and looked deeply and seriously into their faces. After checking them all out, he went back to Paulvitch's side, disappointment clearly visible on his face and in his posture.
The men were delighted with him. They gathered about, asking Paulvitch many questions, and examining his companion. The Russian told them that the ape was his—nothing further would he offer—but kept harping continually upon the same theme, “The ape is mine. The ape is mine.” Tiring of Paulvitch, one of the men essayed a pleasantry. Circling about behind the ape he prodded the anthropoid in the back with a pin. Like a flash the beast wheeled upon its tormentor, and, in the briefest instant of turning, the placid, friendly animal was metamorphosed to a frenzied demon of rage. The broad grin that had sat upon the sailor’s face as he perpetrated his little joke froze to an expression of terror. He attempted to dodge the long arms that reached for him; but, failing, drew a long knife that hung at his belt. With a single wrench the ape tore the weapon from the man’s grasp and flung it to one side, then his yellow fangs were buried in the sailor’s shoulder.
The men were excited to see him. They gathered around, asking Paulvitch a lot of questions and checking out his companion. The Russian said that the ape was his—he wouldn’t say anything more—but kept repeating, “The ape is mine. The ape is mine.” Bored with Paulvitch, one of the men tried to make a joke. He moved behind the ape and poked it in the back with a pin. In an instant, the animal spun around on its tormentor, and in that brief moment, the calm, friendly creature turned into a raging demon. The broad grin on the sailor’s face as he played his little prank froze into a look of terror. He tried to dodge the long arms reaching for him; but failing that, he pulled out a long knife that hung at his belt. With a quick move, the ape yanked the weapon from the man’s hand and tossed it aside, then its yellow fangs sank into the sailor’s shoulder.
With sticks and knives the man’s companions fell upon the beast, while Paulvitch danced around the cursing, snarling pack mumbling and screaming pleas and threats. He saw his visions of wealth rapidly dissipating before the weapons of the sailors.
With sticks and knives, the man's friends attacked the beast, while Paulvitch moved around the yelling, snarling group, mumbling and screaming both pleas and threats. He watched his dreams of wealth quickly fade away in front of the sailors' weapons.
The ape, however, proved no easy victim to the superior numbers that seemed fated to overwhelm him. Rising from the sailor who had precipitated the battle he shook his giant shoulders, freeing himself from two of the men that were clinging to his back, and with mighty blows of his open palms felled one after another of his attackers, leaping hither and thither with the agility of a small monkey.
The ape, however, was not an easy target for the larger group that seemed destined to overpower him. Rising up from the sailor who had started the fight, he shook his massive shoulders, throwing off two of the men clinging to his back, and with powerful swings of his hands knocked down one attacker after another, leaping around with the agility of a small monkey.
The fight had been witnessed by the captain and mate who were just landing from the Marjorie W., and Paulvitch saw these two now running forward with drawn revolvers while the two sailors who had brought them ashore trailed at their heels. The ape stood looking about him at the havoc he had wrought, but whether he was awaiting a renewal of the attack or was deliberating which of his foes he should exterminate first Paulvitch could not guess. What he could guess, however, was that the moment the two officers came within firing distance of the beast they would put an end to him in short order unless something were done and done quickly to prevent. The ape had made no move to attack the Russian but even so the man was none too sure of what might happen were he to interfere with the savage beast, now thoroughly aroused to bestial rage, and with the smell of new spilled blood fresh in its nostrils. For an instant he hesitated, and then again there rose before him the dreams of affluence which this great anthropoid would doubtless turn to realities once Paulvitch had landed him safely in some great metropolis like London.
The fight had been seen by the captain and the mate who were just getting off the Marjorie W., and Paulvitch saw the two of them running forward with their guns drawn while the two sailors who had brought them ashore followed closely behind. The ape was looking around at the destruction he had caused, but Paulvitch couldn’t tell if he was waiting for the fight to start again or figuring out which of his enemies to take out first. What he did know was that the moment the two officers got within shooting range of the beast, they would kill him quickly unless something was done and done fast to stop it. The ape hadn’t made any moves to attack the Russian, but still, the man wasn’t too sure what might happen if he interfered with the furious animal, now fully stirred up to primal rage, with the scent of fresh blood in the air. For a moment he hesitated, and then the visions of wealth came back to him, dreams that this massive primate would surely help turn into reality once Paulvitch got him safely to a big city like London.
The captain was shouting to him now to stand aside that he might have a shot at the animal; but instead Paulvitch shuffled to the ape’s side, and though the man’s hair quivered at its roots he mastered his fear and laid hold of the ape’s arm.
The captain was yelling at him to move out of the way so he could take a shot at the animal; but instead, Paulvitch shuffled over to the ape's side, and even though the man's hair bristled with fear, he controlled it and grabbed the ape's arm.
“Come!” he commanded, and tugged to pull the beast from among the sailors, many of whom were now sitting up in wide eyed fright or crawling away from their conqueror upon hands and knees.
“Come!” he ordered, yanking to pull the creature away from the sailors, many of whom were now sitting up in wide-eyed fear or crawling away from their conqueror on hands and knees.
Slowly the ape permitted itself to be led to one side, nor did it show the slightest indication of a desire to harm the Russian. The captain came to a halt a few paces from the odd pair.
Slowly, the ape allowed itself to be led to one side, and it didn’t show any sign of wanting to harm the Russian. The captain stopped a few steps away from the strange duo.
“Get aside, Sabrov!” he commanded. “I’ll put that brute where he won’t chew up any more able seamen.”
“Get out of the way, Sabrov!” he ordered. “I’ll take care of that monster so he won’t hurt any more capable sailors.”
“It wasn’t his fault, captain,” pleaded Paulvitch. “Please don’t shoot him. The men started it—they attacked him first. You see, he’s perfectly gentle—and he’s mine—he’s mine—he’s mine! I won’t let you kill him,” he concluded, as his half-wrecked mentality pictured anew the pleasure that money would buy in London—money that he could not hope to possess without some such windfall as the ape represented.
“It wasn’t his fault, captain,” Paulvitch begged. “Please don’t shoot him. The guys started it—they attacked him first. You see, he’s perfectly gentle—and he’s mine—he’s mine—he’s mine! I won’t let you kill him,” he finished, as his barely intact mindset pictured again the pleasure that money would buy in London—money he couldn’t hope to have without some lucky break like the ape represented.
The captain lowered his weapon. “The men started it, did they?” he repeated. “How about that?” and he turned toward the sailors who had by this time picked themselves from the ground, none of them much the worse for his experience except the fellow who had been the cause of it, and who would doubtless nurse a sore shoulder for a week or so.
The captain lowered his weapon. “So the guys started it, did they?” he repeated. “Isn’t that something?” He turned to the sailors who had by then picked themselves up off the ground, none of them significantly worse for the experience except for the guy who had caused it, and who would likely be nursing a sore shoulder for about a week.
“Simpson done it,” said one of the men. “He stuck a pin into the monk from behind, and the monk got him—which served him bloomin’ well right—an’ he got the rest of us, too, for which I can’t blame him, since we all jumped him to once.”
“Simpson did it,” one of the men said. “He stuck a pin into the monk from behind, and the monk got him—which he totally deserved—then he got the rest of us too, and I can't blame him for that since we all attacked him at once.”
The captain looked at Simpson, who sheepishly admitted the truth of the allegation, then he stepped over to the ape as though to discover for himself the sort of temper the beast possessed, but it was noticeable that he kept his revolver cocked and leveled as he did so. However, he spoke soothingly to the animal who squatted at the Russian’s side looking first at one and then another of the sailors. As the captain approached him the ape half rose and waddled forward to meet him. Upon his countenance was the same strange, searching expression that had marked his scrutiny of each of the sailors he had first encountered. He came quite close to the officer and laid a paw upon one of the man’s shoulders, studying his face intently for a long moment, then came the expression of disappointment accompanied by what was almost a human sigh, as he turned away to peer in the same curious fashion into the faces of the mate and the two sailors who had arrived with the officers. In each instance he sighed and passed on, returning at length to Paulvitch’s side, where he squatted down once more; thereafter evincing little or no interest in any of the other men, and apparently forgetful of his recent battle with them.
The captain looked at Simpson, who nervously confessed the truth of the accusation. Then he stepped over to the ape, as if to figure out what kind of temper the creature had, but it was clear he kept his revolver cocked and aimed while doing so. Nevertheless, he spoke gently to the animal, which was squatting next to the Russian, glancing first at one sailor and then another. As the captain got closer, the ape half-stood and waddled forward to greet him. On his face was the same strange, probing look that he had shown when examining each of the sailors he had first met. He came right up to the officer and placed a paw on his shoulder, studying his face intently for a long moment. Then, a look of disappointment crossed his features, accompanied by what almost sounded like a human sigh, as he turned away to give the same curious look to the mate and the two sailors who had come with the officers. In every case, he sighed and moved on, finally returning to Paulvitch's side, where he squatted down again, showing little to no interest in the other men and seemingly forgetting his recent conflict with them.
When the party returned aboard the Marjorie W., Paulvitch was accompanied by the ape, who seemed anxious to follow him. The captain interposed no obstacles to the arrangement, and so the great anthropoid was tacitly admitted to membership in the ship’s company. Once aboard he examined each new face minutely, evincing the same disappointment in each instance that had marked his scrutiny of the others. The officers and scientists aboard often discussed the beast, but they were unable to account satisfactorily for the strange ceremony with which he greeted each new face. Had he been discovered upon the mainland, or any other place than the almost unknown island that had been his home, they would have concluded that he had formerly been a pet of man; but that theory was not tenable in the face of the isolation of his uninhabited island. He seemed continually to be searching for someone, and during the first days of the return voyage from the island he was often discovered nosing about in various parts of the ship; but after he had seen and examined each face of the ship’s company, and explored every corner of the vessel he lapsed into utter indifference of all about him. Even the Russian elicited only casual interest when he brought him food. At other times the ape appeared merely to tolerate him. He never showed affection for him, or for anyone else upon the Marjorie W., nor did he at any time evince any indication of the savage temper that had marked his resentment of the attack of the sailors upon him at the time that he had come among them.
When the party returned aboard the Marjorie W., Paulvitch had the ape with him, who seemed eager to follow him. The captain didn’t object to this arrangement, so the large primate was quietly accepted as part of the crew. Once on board, he closely inspected each new face, showing the same disappointment in every case that he had displayed with others. The officers and scientists on the ship often talked about the creature, but they couldn't figure out why he greeted each new face with such a peculiar ceremony. If he had been found on the mainland or anywhere other than the almost unknown island he called home, they might have thought he had once been a pet of a human; but that theory didn't hold up given the isolation of his uninhabited island. He seemed to be constantly searching for someone, and in the first few days of the return trip from the island, he was frequently found sniffing around different areas of the ship. However, after he had seen and examined each crew member and explored every corner of the vessel, he became completely indifferent to everything around him. Even when the Russian brought him food, he only showed a casual interest. At other times, the ape seemed to merely tolerate him. He never expressed any affection for him or for anyone else on the Marjorie W., nor did he ever show any sign of the savage temper he had displayed when the sailors first attacked him.
Most of his time was spent in the eye of the ship scanning the horizon ahead, as though he were endowed with sufficient reason to know that the vessel was bound for some port where there would be other human beings to undergo his searching scrutiny. All in all, Ajax, as he had been dubbed, was considered the most remarkable and intelligent ape that any one aboard the Marjorie W. ever had seen. Nor was his intelligence the only remarkable attribute he owned. His stature and physique were, for an ape, awe inspiring. That he was old was quite evident, but if his age had impaired his physical or mental powers in the slightest it was not apparent.
Most of his time was spent at the front of the ship looking out at the horizon, as if he had enough insight to know that they were headed to a place with other people who would be subjected to his intense scrutiny. Overall, Ajax, as he was called, was regarded as the most remarkable and intelligent ape anyone aboard the Marjorie W. had ever seen. His intelligence wasn’t the only impressive trait he had. His height and build were, for an ape, truly awe-inspiring. It was clear he was old, but if his age had affected his physical or mental abilities in any way, it certainly wasn’t obvious.
And so at length the Marjorie W. came to England, and there the officers and the scientists, filled with compassion for the pitiful wreck of a man they had rescued from the jungles, furnished Paulvitch with funds and bid him and his Ajax Godspeed.
And so eventually the Marjorie W. arrived in England, where the officers and scientists, feeling sorry for the poor broken man they had rescued from the jungles, gave Paulvitch some money and wished him and his Ajax good luck.
Upon the dock and all through the journey to London the Russian had his hands full with Ajax. Each new face of the thousands that came within the anthropoid’s ken must be carefully scrutinized, much to the horror of many of his victims; but at last, failing, apparently, to discover whom he sought, the great ape relapsed into morbid indifference, only occasionally evincing interest in a passing face.
Upon the dock and throughout the journey to London, the Russian was preoccupied with Ajax. Each new face among the thousands that came within the ape's view had to be examined closely, much to the dismay of many of his victims; but eventually, seeming to give up on finding who he was looking for, the great ape fell into a state of gloomy indifference, only occasionally showing interest in a fleeting face.
In London, Paulvitch went directly with his prize to a certain famous animal trainer. This man was much impressed with Ajax with the result that he agreed to train him for a lion’s share of the profits of exhibiting him, and in the meantime to provide for the keep of both the ape and his owner.
In London, Paulvitch took his prize straight to a well-known animal trainer. The trainer was very impressed with Ajax, leading him to agree to train him for a large portion of the profits from showcasing him, while also taking care of both the ape and his owner in the meantime.
And so came Ajax to London, and there was forged another link in the chain of strange circumstances that were to affect the lives of many people.
And so Ajax arrived in London, creating another link in the chain of unusual events that would impact the lives of many people.
II.
Mr. Harold Moore was a bilious-countenanced, studious young man. He took himself very seriously, and life, and his work, which latter was the tutoring of the young son of a British nobleman. He felt that his charge was not making the progress that his parents had a right to expect, and he was now conscientiously explaining this fact to the boy’s mother.
Mr. Harold Moore was a sickly-looking, serious young man. He took himself, life, and his job very seriously, which involved tutoring the young son of a British nobleman. He believed that the boy wasn’t making the progress that his parents deserved, and he was now diligently explaining this to the boy’s mother.
“It’s not that he isn’t bright,” he was saying; “if that were true I should have hopes of succeeding, for then I might bring to bear all my energies in overcoming his obtuseness; but the trouble is that he is exceptionally intelligent, and learns so quickly that I can find no fault in the matter of the preparation of his lessons. What concerns me, however, is the fact that he evidently takes no interest whatever in the subjects we are studying. He merely accomplishes each lesson as a task to be rid of as quickly as possible and I am sure that no lesson ever again enters his mind until the hours of study and recitation once more arrive. His sole interests seem to be feats of physical prowess and the reading of everything that he can get hold of relative to savage beasts and the lives and customs of uncivilized peoples; but particularly do stories of animals appeal to him. He will sit for hours together poring over the work of some African explorer, and upon two occasions I have found him setting up in bed at night reading Carl Hagenbeck’s book on men and beasts.”
“It’s not that he isn’t smart,” he was saying; “if that were the case, I would have hopes of succeeding, because then I could focus all my efforts on overcoming his stubbornness; but the problem is that he is exceptionally intelligent and learns so quickly that I can’t find any fault with how he prepares his lessons. What worries me, though, is that he clearly shows no interest at all in the subjects we’re studying. He just gets through each lesson as a task to finish as quickly as possible, and I’m sure that no lesson ever crosses his mind again until it’s time to study and recite once more. His only interests seem to be physical activities and reading everything he can find about wild animals and the lives and customs of uncivilized people; but he’s especially drawn to animal stories. He can sit for hours engrossed in the work of some African explorer, and on two occasions, I’ve caught him sitting up in bed at night reading Carl Hagenbeck’s book on men and beasts.”
The boy’s mother tapped her foot nervously upon the hearth rug.
The boy's mom tapped her foot anxiously on the rug by the fireplace.
“You discourage this, of course?” she ventured.
“You discourage this, right?” she asked.
Mr. Moore shuffled embarrassedly.
Mr. Moore shuffled awkwardly.
“I—ah—essayed to take the book from him,” he replied, a slight flush mounting his sallow cheek; “but—ah—your son is quite muscular for one so young.”
“I—uh—tried to take the book from him,” he replied, a slight flush rising on his pale cheek; “but—uh—your son is pretty strong for someone so young.”
“He wouldn’t let you take it?” asked the mother.
"He wouldn't let you take it?" the mother asked.
“He would not,” confessed the tutor. “He was perfectly good natured about it; but he insisted upon pretending that he was a gorilla and that I was a chimpanzee attempting to steal food from him. He leaped upon me with the most savage growls I ever heard, lifted me completely above his head, hurled me upon his bed, and after going through a pantomime indicative of choking me to death he stood upon my prostrate form and gave voice to a most fearsome shriek, which he explained was the victory cry of a bull ape. Then he carried me to the door, shoved me out into the hall and locked me from his room.”
“He wouldn’t,” the tutor admitted. “He was totally good-natured about it; but he insisted on pretending he was a gorilla and that I was a chimpanzee trying to steal food from him. He jumped on me with the most savage growls I’d ever heard, lifted me completely above his head, threw me onto his bed, and after putting on a show like he was choking me to death, he stood on my defeated form and let out a really terrifying scream, which he claimed was the victory cry of a bull ape. Then he dragged me to the door, pushed me out into the hallway, and locked me out of his room.”
For several minutes neither spoke again. It was the boy’s mother who finally broke the silence.
For several minutes, neither of them said anything. It was the boy's mom who finally broke the silence.
“It is very necessary, Mr. Moore,” she said, “that you do everything in your power to discourage this tendency in Jack, he—”; but she got no further. A loud “Whoop!” from the direction of the window brought them both to their feet. The room was upon the second floor of the house, and opposite the window to which their attention had been attracted was a large tree, a branch of which spread to within a few feet of the sill. Upon this branch now they both discovered the subject of their recent conversation, a tall, well-built boy, balancing with ease upon the bending limb and uttering loud shouts of glee as he noted the terrified expressions upon the faces of his audience.
“It’s really important, Mr. Moore,” she said, “that you do everything you can to discourage this behavior in Jack, he—”; but she didn’t get any further. A loud “Whoop!” from the window made them both jump to their feet. The room was on the second floor of the house, and across from the window they were looking at was a large tree, with a branch reaching just a few feet from the sill. On that branch, they both spotted the topic of their earlier conversation: a tall, strong boy, effortlessly balancing on the swaying limb and shouting with delight as he saw the scared expressions on the faces of his audience.
The mother and tutor both rushed toward the window but before they had crossed half the room the boy had leaped nimbly to the sill and entered the apartment with them.
The mother and tutor both hurried to the window, but before they could make it halfway across the room, the boy had quickly jumped onto the sill and joined them in the apartment.
“‘The wild man from Borneo has just come to town,’” he sang, dancing a species of war dance about his terrified mother and scandalized tutor, and ending up by throwing his arms about the former’s neck and kissing her upon either cheek.
“‘The wild man from Borneo has just come to town,’” he sang, performing a kind of war dance around his scared mother and shocked tutor, and finishing by wrapping his arms around his mother’s neck and kissing her on both cheeks.
“Oh, Mother,” he cried, “there’s a wonderful, educated ape being shown at one of the music halls. Willie Grimsby saw it last night. He says it can do everything but talk. It rides a bicycle, eats with knife and fork, counts up to ten, and ever so many other wonderful things, and can I go and see it too? Oh, please, Mother—please let me.”
“Oh, Mom,” he exclaimed, “there’s an amazing, smart ape being showcased at one of the theaters. Willie Grimsby saw it last night. He says it can do everything except talk. It rides a bike, eats with a knife and fork, counts up to ten, and so many other incredible things. Can I go see it too? Oh, please, Mom—please let me.”
Patting the boy’s cheek affectionately, the mother shook her head negatively. “No, Jack,” she said; “you know I do not approve of such exhibitions.”
Patting the boy’s cheek fondly, the mother shook her head. “No, Jack,” she said, “you know I don’t approve of that kind of thing.”
“I don’t see why not, Mother,” replied the boy. “All the other fellows go and they go to the Zoo, too, and you’ll never let me do even that. Anybody’d think I was a girl—or a mollycoddle. Oh, Father,” he exclaimed, as the door opened to admit a tall gray-eyed man. “Oh, Father, can’t I go?”
“I don’t see why not, Mom,” replied the boy. “All the other guys go, and they even go to the Zoo, and you won’t let me do that either. You’d think I was a girl—or a softie. Oh, Dad,” he exclaimed, as the door opened to let in a tall man with gray eyes. “Oh, Dad, can’t I go?”
“Go where, my son?” asked the newcomer.
“Where are you going, my son?” asked the newcomer.
“He wants to go to a music hall to see a trained ape,” said the mother, looking warningly at her husband.
“He wants to go to a music hall to see a trained ape,” said the mother, glancing anxiously at her husband.
“Who, Ajax?” questioned the man.
“Who, Ajax?” asked the man.
The boy nodded.
The kid nodded.
“Well, I don’t know that I blame you, my son,” said the father, “I wouldn’t mind seeing him myself. They say he is very wonderful, and that for an anthropoid he is unusually large. Let’s all go, Jane—what do you say?” And he turned toward his wife, but that lady only shook her head in a most positive manner, and turning to Mr. Moore asked him if it was not time that he and Jack were in the study for the morning recitations. When the two had left she turned toward her husband.
“Well, I can’t really blame you, son,” said the father. “I’d like to see him too. They say he’s amazing, and unusually large for an anthropoid. Let’s all go, Jane—what do you think?” He turned to his wife, but she just shook her head firmly and asked Mr. Moore if it was time for him and Jack to head to the study for their morning lessons. Once the two left, she turned to her husband.
“John,” she said, “something must be done to discourage Jack’s tendency toward anything that may excite the cravings for the savage life which I fear he has inherited from you. You know from your own experience how strong is the call of the wild at times. You know that often it has necessitated a stern struggle on your part to resist the almost insane desire which occasionally overwhelms you to plunge once again into the jungle life that claimed you for so many years, and at the same time you know, better than any other, how frightful a fate it would be for Jack, were the trail to the savage jungle made either alluring or easy to him.”
“John,” she said, “we need to do something to discourage Jack’s tendency towards anything that might trigger his cravings for the wild life, which I worry he has inherited from you. You know from your own experience how powerful the call of the wild can be at times. You know that it has often taken a tough struggle on your part to resist the almost crazy urge that sometimes overwhelms you to dive back into the jungle life that claimed you for so many years, and at the same time, you know better than anyone else how terrible it would be for Jack if the path to the wild jungle became appealing or easy for him.”
“I doubt if there is any danger of his inheriting a taste for jungle life from me,” replied the man, “for I cannot conceive that such a thing may be transmitted from father to son. And sometimes, Jane, I think that in your solicitude for his future you go a bit too far in your restrictive measures. His love for animals—his desire, for example, to see this trained ape—is only natural in a healthy, normal boy of his age. Just because he wants to see Ajax is no indication that he would wish to marry an ape, and even should he, far be it from you Jane to have the right to cry ‘shame!’” and John Clayton, Lord Greystoke, put an arm about his wife, laughing good-naturedly down into her upturned face before he bent his head and kissed her. Then, more seriously, he continued: “You have never told Jack anything concerning my early life, nor have you permitted me to, and in this I think that you have made a mistake. Had I been able to tell him of the experiences of Tarzan of the Apes I could doubtless have taken much of the glamour and romance from jungle life that naturally surrounds it in the minds of those who have had no experience of it. He might then have profited by my experience, but now, should the jungle lust ever claim him, he will have nothing to guide him but his own impulses, and I know how powerful these may be in the wrong direction at times.”
“I doubt there’s any risk of him picking up a taste for jungle life from me,” the man replied. “I just can’t believe that something like that can be passed down from father to son. And sometimes, Jane, I think you go a bit too far in trying to protect his future. His love for animals—like wanting to see this trained ape—is completely normal for a healthy, typical boy his age. Just because he wants to see Ajax doesn’t mean he’d want to marry an ape, and even if he did, it’s not really your place, Jane, to say ‘shame!’” John Clayton, Lord Greystoke, wrapped an arm around his wife and laughed good-naturedly down into her upturned face before bending his head to kiss her. Then, more seriously, he added: “You’ve never told Jack anything about my early life, nor have you allowed me to, and I think that’s a mistake. If I could have shared my experiences as Tarzan of the Apes with him, I could have taken a lot of the glamor and romance out of jungle life that usually surrounds it in the minds of those who haven’t experienced it. He might have gained something from my experiences, but now, if the jungle’s call ever reaches him, he’ll have nothing to guide him but his own impulses, and I know how strong those can be in the wrong direction at times.”
But Lady Greystoke only shook her head as she had a hundred other times when the subject had claimed her attention in the past.
But Lady Greystoke just shook her head like she had a hundred times before whenever the subject came up.
“No, John,” she insisted, “I shall never give my consent to the implanting in Jack’s mind of any suggestion of the savage life which we both wish to preserve him from.”
“No, John,” she insisted, “I will never agree to implant any suggestion of a savage life in Jack’s mind, which we both want to protect him from.”
It was evening before the subject was again referred to and then it was raised by Jack himself. He had been sitting, curled in a large chair, reading, when he suddenly looked up and addressed his father.
It was evening before the topic came up again, and it was Jack who brought it up himself. He had been sitting, curled up in a big chair, reading, when he suddenly looked up and spoke to his father.
“Why,” he asked, coming directly to the point, “can’t I go and see Ajax?”
“Why,” he asked, getting straight to the point, “can’t I go see Ajax?”
“Your mother does not approve,” replied his father.
“Your mom doesn't approve,” replied his dad.
“Do you?”
"Do you?"
“That is not the question,” evaded Lord Greystoke. “It is enough that your mother objects.”
"That's not the issue," Lord Greystoke dodged. "It's enough that your mother disapproves."
“I am going to see him,” announced the boy, after a few moments of thoughtful silence. “I am not different from Willie Grimsby, or any other of the fellows who have been to see him. It did not harm them and it will not harm me. I could go without telling you; but I would not do that. So I tell you now, beforehand, that I am going to see Ajax.”
“I’m going to see him,” the boy declared after a moment of thoughtful silence. “I’m not any different from Willie Grimsby or any of the other guys who have gone to see him. It didn’t hurt them, and it won’t hurt me. I could go without telling you, but I won’t do that. So I’m letting you know now that I’m going to see Ajax.”
There was nothing disrespectful or defiant in the boy’s tone or manner. His was merely a dispassionate statement of facts. His father could scarce repress either a smile or a show of the admiration he felt for the manly course his son had pursued.
There was nothing disrespectful or defiant in the boy’s tone or manner. His was merely a neutral statement of facts. His father could hardly suppress either a smile or the admiration he felt for the brave way his son had acted.
“I admire your candor, Jack,” he said. “Permit me to be candid, as well. If you go to see Ajax without permission, I shall punish you. I have never inflicted corporal punishment upon you, but I warn you that should you disobey your mother’s wishes in this instance, I shall.”
“I appreciate your honesty, Jack,” he said. “Let me be honest too. If you go to see Ajax without permission, I’m going to punish you. I’ve never physically punished you before, but I want you to know that if you ignore your mother’s wishes this time, I will.”
“Yes, sir,” replied the boy; and then: “I shall tell you, sir, when I have been to see Ajax.”
“Yes, sir,” replied the boy; and then: “I’ll let you know, sir, when I’ve gone to see Ajax.”
Mr. Moore’s room was next to that of his youthful charge, and it was the tutor’s custom to have a look into the boy’s each evening as the former was about to retire. This evening he was particularly careful not to neglect his duty, for he had just come from a conference with the boy’s father and mother in which it had been impressed upon him that he must exercise the greatest care to prevent Jack visiting the music hall where Ajax was being shown. So, when he opened the boy’s door at about half after nine, he was greatly excited, though not entirely surprised to find the future Lord Greystoke fully dressed for the street and about to crawl from his open bed room window.
Mr. Moore’s room was next to his young student’s, and it was the tutor’s routine to check in on the boy each evening as he was getting ready for bed. Tonight, he was especially careful not to skip this duty since he had just come from a meeting with the boy’s parents, where they emphasized the need for him to be extremely cautious in keeping Jack from going to the music hall where Ajax was showing. So, when he opened the boy’s door around 9:30, he was very excited, though not entirely surprised, to find the future Lord Greystoke fully dressed for the street and about to climb out of his open bedroom window.
Mr. Moore made a rapid spring across the apartment; but the waste of energy was unnecessary, for when the boy heard him within the chamber and realized that he had been discovered he turned back as though to relinquish his planned adventure.
Mr. Moore quickly jumped across the apartment, but it was a waste of energy because when the boy heard him in the room and realized he had been caught, he turned back as if to give up his planned adventure.
“Where were you going?” panted the excited Mr. Moore.
“Where were you headed?” gasped the thrilled Mr. Moore.
“I am going to see Ajax,” replied the boy, quietly.
“I’m going to see Ajax,” the boy replied softly.
“I am astonished,” cried Mr. Moore; but a moment later he was infinitely more astonished, for the boy, approaching close to him, suddenly seized him about the waist, lifted him from his feet and threw him face downward upon the bed, shoving his face deep into a soft pillow.
“I can’t believe this,” shouted Mr. Moore; but a moment later he was even more shocked, as the boy came up to him, suddenly wrapped his arms around his waist, lifted him off the ground, and tossed him face down onto the bed, burying his face deep into a soft pillow.
“Be quiet,” admonished the victor, “or I’ll choke you.”
"Be quiet," warned the winner, "or I'll choke you."
Mr. Moore struggled; but his efforts were in vain. Whatever else Tarzan of the Apes may or may not have handed down to his son he had at least bequeathed him almost as marvelous a physique as he himself had possessed at the same age. The tutor was as putty in the boy’s hands. Kneeling upon him, Jack tore strips from a sheet and bound the man’s hands behind his back. Then he rolled him over and stuffed a gag of the same material between his teeth, securing it with a strip wound about the back of his victim’s head. All the while he talked in a low, conversational tone.
Mr. Moore struggled, but his efforts were pointless. Whatever else Tarzan of the Apes may or may not have passed down to his son, he definitely gave him almost as impressive a physique as he had at the same age. The tutor was like putty in the boy's hands. Kneeling on him, Jack ripped strips from a sheet and tied the man’s hands behind his back. Then he rolled him over and stuffed a gag made of the same material between his teeth, securing it with a strip wrapped around the back of his victim's head. All the while, he spoke in a low, conversational tone.
“I am Waja, chief of the Waji,” he explained, “and you are Mohammed Dubn, the Arab sheik, who would murder my people and steal my ivory,” and he dexterously trussed Mr. Moore’s hobbled ankles up behind to meet his hobbled wrists. “Ah—ha! Villain! I have you in me power at last. I go; but I shall return!” And the son of Tarzan skipped across the room, slipped through the open window, and slid to liberty by way of the down spout from an eaves trough.
“I’m Waja, the chief of the Waji,” he said, “and you’re Mohammed Dubn, the Arab sheik, who wants to kill my people and steal my ivory.” He skillfully tied Mr. Moore’s hobbled ankles behind his wrists. “Ah-ha! Got you now, villain! I’m leaving, but I’ll be back!” Then, the son of Tarzan jumped across the room, slipped through the open window, and escaped down the downspout from the eaves.
Mr. Moore wriggled and struggled about the bed. He was sure that he should suffocate unless aid came quickly. In his frenzy of terror he managed to roll off the bed. The pain and shock of the fall jolted him back to something like sane consideration of his plight. Where before he had been unable to think intelligently because of the hysterical fear that had claimed him he now lay quietly searching for some means of escape from his dilemma. It finally occurred to him that the room in which Lord and Lady Greystoke had been sitting when he left them was directly beneath that in which he lay upon the floor. He knew that some time had elapsed since he had come up stairs and that they might be gone by this time, for it seemed to him that he had struggled about the bed, in his efforts to free himself, for an eternity. But the best that he could do was to attempt to attract attention from below, and so, after many failures, he managed to work himself into a position in which he could tap the toe of his boot against the floor. This he proceeded to do at short intervals, until, after what seemed a very long time, he was rewarded by hearing footsteps ascending the stairs, and presently a knock upon the door. Mr. Moore tapped vigorously with his toe—he could not reply in any other way. The knock was repeated after a moment’s silence. Again Mr. Moore tapped. Would they never open the door! Laboriously he rolled in the direction of succor. If he could get his back against the door he could then tap upon its base, when surely he must be heard. The knocking was repeated a little louder, and finally a voice called: “Mr. Jack!”
Mr. Moore squirmed and struggled on the bed. He was convinced he would suffocate unless help arrived quickly. In his panic, he managed to roll off the bed. The pain and shock of the fall snapped him back to a more rational assessment of his situation. Where he had been unable to think clearly due to the overwhelming fear that had taken hold of him, he now lay still, searching for a way out of his predicament. It finally dawned on him that the room where Lord and Lady Greystoke had been sitting when he had left them was directly below where he lay on the floor. He realized that some time had passed since he had come upstairs and that they might have left by now, as it felt like he had been struggling around the bed for ages. But the best he could do was try to get someone’s attention from below, so after several failed attempts, he managed to get into a position where he could tap the toe of his boot against the floor. He did this at short intervals, until, after what felt like a very long time, he heard footsteps coming up the stairs, and soon there was a knock on the door. Mr. Moore tapped vigorously with his toe—he couldn't respond any other way. The knock was repeated after a moment's silence. Again, Mr. Moore tapped. Would they never open the door? He slowly rolled toward where help would come from. If he could get his back against the door, he could then tap on its bottom, and surely someone would hear him. The knocking was repeated, a bit louder, and finally, a voice called out, “Mr. Jack!”
It was one of the house men—Mr. Moore recognized the fellow’s voice. He came near to bursting a blood vessel in an endeavor to scream “come in” through the stifling gag. After a moment the man knocked again, quite loudly and again called the boy’s name. Receiving no reply he turned the knob, and at the same instant a sudden recollection filled the tutor anew with numbing terror—he had, himself, locked the door behind him when he had entered the room.
It was one of the staff—Mr. Moore recognized the guy's voice. He nearly strained himself trying to scream “come in” through the tight gag. After a moment, the man knocked again, much louder, and called the boy's name once more. When he got no response, he turned the knob, and at that instant, a sudden memory hit the tutor with paralyzing fear—he had locked the door behind him when he entered the room.
He heard the servant try the door several times and then depart. Upon which Mr. Moore swooned.
He heard the servant try the door several times and then leave. After that, Mr. Moore fainted.
In the meantime Jack was enjoying to the full the stolen pleasures of the music hall. He had reached the temple of mirth just as Ajax’s act was commencing, and having purchased a box seat was now leaning breathlessly over the rail watching every move of the great ape, his eyes wide in wonder. The trainer was not slow to note the boy’s handsome, eager face, and as one of Ajax’s biggest hits consisted in an entry to one or more boxes during his performance, ostensibly in search of a long-lost relative, as the trainer explained, the man realized the effectiveness of sending him into the box with the handsome boy, who, doubtless, would be terror stricken by proximity to the shaggy, powerful beast.
In the meantime, Jack was fully enjoying the forbidden excitement of the music hall. He arrived just as Ajax's act was starting and, after buying a box seat, he was now leaning eagerly over the railing, watching every move of the great ape, his eyes wide with amazement. The trainer quickly noticed the boy’s good looks and eager expression, and since one of Ajax's big highlights involved him entering one or more boxes during the performance, supposedly in search of a long-lost relative, the trainer realized it would be effective to send Ajax into the box with the handsome boy, who would likely be terrified by the presence of the shaggy, powerful creature.
When the time came, therefore, for the ape to return from the wings in reply to an encore the trainer directed its attention to the boy who chanced to be the sole occupant of the box in which he sat. With a spring the huge anthropoid leaped from the stage to the boy’s side; but if the trainer had looked for a laughable scene of fright he was mistaken. A broad smile lighted the boy’s features as he laid his hand upon the shaggy arm of his visitor. The ape, grasping the boy by either shoulder, peered long and earnestly into his face, while the latter stroked his head and talked to him in a low voice.
When it was time for the ape to come back on stage for an encore, the trainer directed its attention to the boy who happened to be the only one in the box. With a leap, the huge ape jumped from the stage to the boy’s side; but if the trainer was expecting a funny scene of fright, he was wrong. A big smile spread across the boy’s face as he placed his hand on the furry arm of his visitor. The ape, holding the boy by both shoulders, looked long and intently into his face, while the boy stroked its head and spoke to it softly.
Never had Ajax devoted so long a time to an examination of another as he did in this instance. He seemed troubled and not a little excited, jabbering and mumbling to the boy, and now caressing him, as the trainer had never seen him caress a human being before. Presently he clambered over into the box with him and snuggled down close to the boy’s side. The audience was delighted; but they were still more delighted when the trainer, the period of his act having elapsed, attempted to persuade Ajax to leave the box. The ape would not budge. The manager, becoming excited at the delay, urged the trainer to greater haste, but when the latter entered the box to drag away the reluctant Ajax he was met by bared fangs and menacing growls.
Never had Ajax spent so much time examining someone else as he did this time. He seemed troubled and a bit excited, chattering and mumbling to the boy, and now gently touching him, which the trainer had never seen him do with a human before. Soon, he climbed into the box with him and settled down close to the boy’s side. The audience loved it; but they were even more thrilled when the trainer, after his act had ended, tried to get Ajax to leave the box. The ape refused to move. The manager, getting anxious about the delay, urged the trainer to hurry, but when the trainer went into the box to pull away the unwilling Ajax, he was met with bared teeth and threatening growls.
The audience was delirious with joy. They cheered the ape. They cheered the boy, and they hooted and jeered at the trainer and the manager, which luckless individual had inadvertently shown himself and attempted to assist the trainer.
The audience was overjoyed. They cheered for the ape. They cheered for the boy, and they booed and mocked the trainer and the manager, who unfortunately had shown up and tried to help the trainer.
Finally, reduced to desperation and realizing that this show of mutiny upon the part of his valuable possession might render the animal worthless for exhibition purposes in the future if not immediately subdued, the trainer had hastened to his dressing room and procured a heavy whip. With this he now returned to the box; but when he had threatened Ajax with it but once he found himself facing two infuriated enemies instead of one, for the boy had leaped to his feet, and seizing a chair was standing ready at the ape’s side to defend his new found friend. There was no longer a smile upon his handsome face. In his gray eyes was an expression which gave the trainer pause, and beside him stood the giant anthropoid growling and ready.
Finally, in a state of desperation and realizing that this display of rebellion from his prized possession could make the animal useless for future performances if not quickly under control, the trainer rushed to his dressing room to grab a heavy whip. Armed with it, he returned to the box; but when he threatened Ajax just once, he found himself facing two furious opponents instead of one. The boy had jumped to his feet and grabbed a chair, positioning himself to defend his new friend. The smile had vanished from his attractive face. In his gray eyes was a look that made the trainer hesitate, and beside him stood the massive ape, growling and ready.
What might have happened, but for a timely interruption, may only be surmised; but that the trainer would have received a severe mauling, if nothing more, was clearly indicated by the attitudes of the two who faced him.
What could have happened, except for a timely interruption, can only be guessed; but it was clear from the expressions of the two people facing the trainer that he would have been severely attacked, if nothing else.
It was a pale-faced man who rushed into the Greystoke library to announce that he had found Jack’s door locked and had been able to obtain no response to his repeated knocking and calling other than a strange tapping and the sound of what might have been a body moving about upon the floor.
It was a pale-faced man who rushed into the Greystoke library to announce that he had found Jack’s door locked and had gotten no response to his repeated knocking and calling other than a strange tapping and the sound of what might have been a body moving around on the floor.
Four steps at a time John Clayton took the stairs that led to the floor above. His wife and the servant hurried after him. Once he called his son’s name in a loud voice; but receiving no reply he launched his great weight, backed by all the undiminished power of his giant muscles, against the heavy door. With a snapping of iron butts and a splintering of wood the obstacle burst inward.
John Clayton took the stairs to the floor above four steps at a time. His wife and the servant rushed after him. He called out his son’s name loudly, but when there was no answer, he threw his weight, bolstered by the strength of his massive muscles, against the heavy door. With a snap of the iron hinges and a splintering of wood, the door burst open.
At its foot lay the body of the unconscious Mr. Moore, across whom it fell with a resounding thud. Through the opening leaped Tarzan, and a moment later the room was flooded with light from a dozen electric bulbs.
At the foot lay the unconscious Mr. Moore, who was struck by it with a loud thud. Tarzan jumped through the opening, and moments later, the room was filled with light from a dozen electric bulbs.
It was several minutes before the tutor was discovered, so completely had the door covered him; but finally he was dragged forth, his gag and bonds cut away, and a liberal application of cold water had hastened returning consciousness.
It took several minutes to find the tutor, as the door had completely hidden him; but eventually he was pulled out, his gag and ties removed, and a good splash of cold water helped him regain consciousness faster.
“Where is Jack?” was John Clayton’s first question, and then; “Who did this?” as the memory of Rokoff and the fear of a second abduction seized him.
“Where’s Jack?” was John Clayton’s first question, and then; “Who did this?” as the memory of Rokoff and the fear of a second abduction took hold of him.
Slowly Mr. Moore staggered to his feet. His gaze wandered about the room. Gradually he collected his scattered wits. The details of his recent harrowing experience returned to him.
Slowly, Mr. Moore got to his feet. His eyes scanned the room. Gradually, he regained his composure. The details of his recent traumatic experience came back to him.
“I tender my resignation, sir, to take effect at once,” were his first words. “You do not need a tutor for your son—what he needs is a wild animal trainer.”
“I’m resigning, sir, effective immediately,” were his first words. “You don’t need a tutor for your son—what he really needs is a wild animal trainer.”
“But where is he?” cried Lady Greystoke.
“But where is he?” cried Lady Greystoke.
“He has gone to see Ajax.”
“He's gone to see Ajax.”
It was with difficulty that Tarzan restrained a smile, and after satisfying himself that the tutor was more scared than injured, he ordered his closed car around and departed in the direction of a certain well-known music hall.
It was hard for Tarzan to hold back a smile, and after making sure that the tutor was more frightened than hurt, he had his car brought around and drove off towards a famous music hall.
III.
As the trainer, with raised lash, hesitated an instant at the entrance to the box where the boy and the ape confronted him, a tall broad-shouldered man pushed past him and entered. As his eyes fell upon the newcomer a slight flush mounted the boy’s cheeks.
As the trainer, with a raised whip, paused for a moment at the entrance to the box where the boy and the ape faced him, a tall, broad-shouldered man pushed past and walked in. When the boy's eyes landed on the newcomer, a slight blush appeared on his cheeks.
“Father!” he exclaimed.
"Dad!" he exclaimed.
The ape gave one look at the English lord, and then leaped toward him, calling out in excited jabbering. The man, his eyes going wide in astonishment, stopped as though turned to stone.
The ape glanced at the English lord and then jumped toward him, chattering excitedly. The man, his eyes widening in shock, froze as if he had turned to stone.
“Akut!” he cried.
"Help!" he cried.
The boy looked, bewildered, from the ape to his father, and from his father to the ape. The trainer’s jaw dropped as he listened to what followed, for from the lips of the Englishman flowed the gutturals of an ape that were answered in kind by the huge anthropoid that now clung to him.
The boy stared, confused, from the ape to his father and back again. The trainer was shocked as he heard what happened next, because the Englishman started making ape-like sounds that were matched by the giant ape now hanging onto him.
And from the wings a hideously bent and disfigured old man watched the tableau in the box, his pock-marked features working spasmodically in varying expressions that might have marked every sensation in the gamut from pleasure to terror.
And from the side, a grotesquely twisted and deformed old man watched the scene in the box, his pockmarked face twitching with different expressions that seemed to capture every feeling from pleasure to fear.
“Long have I looked for you, Tarzan,” said Akut. “Now that I have found you I shall come to your jungle and live there always.”
“I've been searching for you for a long time, Tarzan,” said Akut. “Now that I've found you, I'm going to come to your jungle and live there forever.”
The man stroked the beast’s head. Through his mind there was running rapidly a train of recollection that carried him far into the depths of the primeval African forest where this huge, man-like beast had fought shoulder to shoulder with him years before. He saw the black Mugambi wielding his deadly knob-stick, and beside them, with bared fangs and bristling whiskers, Sheeta the terrible; and pressing close behind the savage and the savage panther, the hideous apes of Akut. The man sighed. Strong within him surged the jungle lust that he had thought dead. Ah! if he could go back even for a brief month of it, to feel again the brush of leafy branches against his naked hide; to smell the musty rot of dead vegetation—frankincense and myrrh to the jungle born; to sense the noiseless coming of the great carnivora upon his trail; to hunt and to be hunted; to kill! The picture was alluring. And then came another picture—a sweet-faced woman, still young and beautiful; friends; a home; a son. He shrugged his giant shoulders.
The man gently petted the beast's head. A rapid stream of memories rushed through his mind, taking him deep into the heart of the ancient African jungle where this massive, human-like creature had fought alongside him years ago. He saw the dark-skinned Mugambi wielding his lethal stick, and nearby, with sharp fangs and bristling whiskers, was Sheeta the fierce; pressing in close behind the wild man and the ferocious panther were the ugly apes of Akut. The man let out a sigh. Strong within him was the jungle thrill he thought was long gone. Ah! If only he could go back, even for a short month, to feel the leafy branches brush against his bare skin; to smell the musty decay of fallen plants—frankincense and myrrh to someone born in the jungle; to sense the silent approach of the great carnivores tracking him; to hunt and to be hunted; to kill! The image was enticing. And then another image appeared—a sweet-faced woman, still young and beautiful; friends; a home; a son. He shrugged his broad shoulders.
“It cannot be, Akut,” he said; “but if you would return, I shall see that it is done. You could not be happy here—I may not be happy there.”
“It can’t be, Akut,” he said; “but if you want to come back, I’ll make sure it happens. You wouldn’t be happy here—I might not be happy there.”
The trainer stepped forward. The ape bared his fangs, growling.
The trainer stepped forward. The ape showed its teeth and growled.
“Go with him, Akut,” said Tarzan of the Apes. “I will come and see you tomorrow.”
“Go with him, Akut,” said Tarzan of the Apes. “I’ll come and see you tomorrow.”
The beast moved sullenly to the trainer’s side. The latter, at John Clayton’s request, told where they might be found. Tarzan turned toward his son.
The beast moved gloomily to the trainer’s side. The trainer, at John Clayton’s request, shared where they could be found. Tarzan turned to his son.
“Come!” he said, and the two left the theater. Neither spoke for several minutes after they had entered the limousine. It was the boy who broke the silence.
“Come on!” he said, and the two left the theater. Neither of them spoke for several minutes after they got into the limousine. It was the boy who finally broke the silence.
“The ape knew you,” he said, “and you spoke together in the ape’s tongue. How did the ape know you, and how did you learn his language?”
“The ape knew you,” he said, “and you talked together in the ape’s language. How did the ape recognize you, and how did you learn to speak his language?”
And then, briefly and for the first time, Tarzan of the Apes told his son of his early life—of the birth in the jungle, of the death of his parents, and of how Kala, the great she ape had suckled and raised him from infancy almost to manhood. He told him, too, of the dangers and the horrors of the jungle; of the great beasts that stalked one by day and by night; of the periods of drought, and of the cataclysmic rains; of hunger; of cold; of intense heat; of nakedness and fear and suffering. He told him of all those things that seem most horrible to the creature of civilization in the hope that the knowledge of them might expunge from the lad’s mind any inherent desire for the jungle. Yet they were the very things that made the memory of the jungle what it was to Tarzan—that made up the composite jungle life he loved. And in the telling he forgot one thing—the principal thing—that the boy at his side, listening with eager ears, was the son of Tarzan of the Apes.
And then, for the first time and briefly, Tarzan of the Apes shared his early life with his son—his birth in the jungle, the death of his parents, and how Kala, the great she-ape, had nurtured and raised him from infancy to almost manhood. He talked about the dangers and horrors of the jungle; the great beasts that hunted day and night; the dry seasons and the torrential rains; the hunger; the cold; the extreme heat; the vulnerability and fear and suffering. He shared all those things that seem most terrifying to someone from civilization, hoping that knowing them would erase any natural desire the boy had for the jungle. Yet those were the very things that made Tarzan's memories of the jungle so special—that defined the jungle life he adored. In sharing his story, he overlooked one crucial detail—the boy listening with eager ears was the son of Tarzan of the Apes.
After the boy had been tucked away in bed—and without the threatened punishment—John Clayton told his wife of the events of the evening, and that he had at last acquainted the boy with the facts of his jungle life. The mother, who had long foreseen that her son must some time know of those frightful years during which his father had roamed the jungle, a naked, savage beast of prey, only shook her head, hoping against hope that the lure she knew was still strong in the father’s breast had not been transmitted to his son.
After the boy was settled into bed—and without the looming punishment—John Clayton shared with his wife what happened that evening and revealed that he had finally told the boy about his life in the jungle. The mother, who had always known her son would eventually learn about those terrifying years when his father wandered the jungle as a naked, savage predator, simply shook her head, hoping against hope that the temptation she knew still resided in the father's heart had not been passed down to their son.
Tarzan visited Akut the following day, but though Jack begged to be allowed to accompany him he was refused. This time Tarzan saw the pock-marked old owner of the ape, whom he did not recognize as the wily Paulvitch of former days. Tarzan, influenced by Akut’s pleadings, broached the question of the ape’s purchase; but Paulvitch would not name any price, saying that he would consider the matter.
Tarzan went to see Akut the next day, but even though Jack asked to join him, he was turned down. This time, Tarzan met the pock-marked old owner of the ape, not realizing he was the cunning Paulvitch from before. Influenced by Akut's pleas, Tarzan brought up the topic of buying the ape, but Paulvitch wouldn't give any price, saying he needed to think about it.
When Tarzan returned home Jack was all excitement to hear the details of his visit, and finally suggested that his father buy the ape and bring it home. Lady Greystoke was horrified at the suggestion. The boy was insistent. Tarzan explained that he had wished to purchase Akut and return him to his jungle home, and to this the mother assented. Jack asked to be allowed to visit the ape, but again he was met with flat refusal. He had the address, however, which the trainer had given his father, and two days later he found the opportunity to elude his new tutor—who had replaced the terrified Mr. Moore—and after a considerable search through a section of London which he had never before visited, he found the smelly little quarters of the pock-marked old man. The old fellow himself replied to his knocking, and when he stated that he had come to see Ajax, opened the door and admitted him to the little room which he and the great ape occupied. In former years Paulvitch had been a fastidious scoundrel; but ten years of hideous life among the cannibals of Africa had eradicated the last vestige of niceness from his habits. His apparel was wrinkled and soiled. His hands were unwashed, his few straggling locks uncombed. His room was a jumble of filthy disorder. As the boy entered he saw the great ape squatting upon the bed, the coverlets of which were a tangled wad of filthy blankets and ill-smelling quilts. At sight of the youth the ape leaped to the floor and shuffled forward. The man, not recognizing his visitor and fearing that the ape meant mischief, stepped between them, ordering the ape back to the bed.
When Tarzan got back home, Jack was super excited to hear all the details of his trip and finally suggested that his dad buy the ape and bring it home. Lady Greystoke was shocked by the idea. The boy wouldn’t back down. Tarzan explained that he wanted to buy Akut and return him to his jungle home, and his mother agreed. Jack asked if he could visit the ape, but once again he was met with a flat refusal. However, he had the address that the trainer had given his dad, and two days later, he found a chance to slip away from his new tutor—who had replaced the scared Mr. Moore—and after a long search through a part of London he had never been to before, he found the cramped little quarters of the pock-marked old man. The old man answered the door when he knocked, and when Jack said he had come to see Ajax, he opened the door and let him into the small room where he and the big ape stayed. In the past, Paulvitch had been a fussy scoundrel, but ten years of horrible life among the cannibals of Africa had stripped away any last bit of niceness from his habits. His clothes were wrinkled and dirty, his hands unwashed, and his few messy strands of hair uncombed. His room was a chaotic mess of filth. As Jack walked in, he saw the big ape sitting on the bed, which was tangled with filthy blankets and smelly quilts. When the ape saw the boy, it jumped down and shuffled forward. The man, not recognizing his visitor and worried that the ape would cause trouble, stepped between them, ordering the ape back to the bed.
“He will not hurt me,” cried the boy. “We are friends, and before, he was my father’s friend. They knew one another in the jungle. My father is Lord Greystoke. He does not know that I have come here. My mother forbid my coming; but I wished to see Ajax, and I will pay you if you will let me come here often and see him.”
“He won’t hurt me,” the boy exclaimed. “We’re friends, and before, he was my father’s friend. They knew each other in the jungle. My father is Lord Greystoke. He doesn’t know I’ve come here. My mother forbade me from coming; but I wanted to see Ajax, and I’ll pay you if you let me come here often to see him.”
At the mention of the boy’s identity Paulvitch’s eyes narrowed. Since he had first seen Tarzan again from the wings of the theater there had been forming in his deadened brain the beginnings of a desire for revenge. It is a characteristic of the weak and criminal to attribute to others the misfortunes that are the result of their own wickedness, and so now it was that Alexis Paulvitch was slowly recalling the events of his past life and as he did so laying at the door of the man whom he and Rokoff had so assiduously attempted to ruin and murder all the misfortunes that had befallen him in the failure of their various schemes against their intended victim.
At the mention of the boy’s identity, Paulvitch narrowed his eyes. Since he had first seen Tarzan again from the wings of the theater, a desire for revenge had been forming in his numb mind. It’s a common trait among the weak and criminal to blame others for the misfortunes that come from their own wrongdoing, and now Alexis Paulvitch was slowly recalling the events of his past and, as he did, he was placing all the blame for his failures on the man whom he and Rokoff had so diligently tried to ruin and kill, attributing all the bad luck they had faced in their failed schemes to him.
He saw at first no way in which he could, with safety to himself, wreak vengeance upon Tarzan through the medium of Tarzan’s son; but that great possibilities for revenge lay in the boy was apparent to him, and so he determined to cultivate the lad in the hope that fate would play into his hands in some way in the future. He told the boy all that he knew of his father’s past life in the jungle and when he found that the boy had been kept in ignorance of all these things for so many years, and that he had been forbidden visiting the zoological gardens; that he had had to bind and gag his tutor to find an opportunity to come to the music hall and see Ajax, he guessed immediately the nature of the great fear that lay in the hearts of the boy’s parents—that he might crave the jungle as his father had craved it.
He initially saw no way to safely get revenge on Tarzan through Tarzan’s son, but it was clear to him that the boy held great potential for revenge. So, he decided to nurture the kid, hoping that fate would eventually work in his favor. He shared everything he knew about the father’s past life in the jungle and realized that the boy had been kept in the dark about all these things for so many years. He learned that the boy wasn't allowed to visit the zoo and that he had to tie up his tutor to sneak out and watch Ajax at the music hall. This led him to quickly understand the deep-seated fear that existed in the boy’s parents’ hearts—that he might desire the jungle just like his father had.
And so Paulvitch encouraged the boy to come and see him often, and always he played upon the lad’s craving for tales of the savage world with which Paulvitch was all too familiar. He left him alone with Akut much, and it was not long until he was surprised to learn that the boy could make the great beast understand him—that he had actually learned many of the words of the primitive language of the anthropoids.
And so Paulvitch encouraged the boy to visit him often, and he always played into the boy’s desire for stories about the wild world that Paulvitch knew all too well. He often left him alone with Akut, and it wasn’t long before he was surprised to discover that the boy was able to communicate with the huge beast—that he had actually learned many of the words in the primitive language of the ape-like creatures.
During this period Tarzan came several times to visit Paulvitch. He seemed anxious to purchase Ajax, and at last he told the man frankly that he was prompted not only by a desire upon his part to return the beast to the liberty of his native jungle; but also because his wife feared that in some way her son might learn the whereabouts of the ape and through his attachment for the beast become imbued with the roving instinct which, as Tarzan explained to Paulvitch, had so influenced his own life.
During this time, Tarzan visited Paulvitch several times. He appeared eager to buy Ajax and eventually told Paulvitch directly that he was motivated not just by a desire to return the creature to the freedom of its native jungle, but also because his wife was concerned that their son might somehow discover where the ape was and, due to his bond with it, develop the wandering instinct that, as Tarzan explained to Paulvitch, had significantly shaped his own life.
The Russian could scarce repress a smile as he listened to Lord Greystoke’s words, since scarce a half hour had passed since the time the future Lord Greystoke had been sitting upon the disordered bed jabbering away to Ajax with all the fluency of a born ape.
The Russian could hardly suppress a smile as he listened to Lord Greystoke’s words, since barely half an hour had passed since the time the future Lord Greystoke had been sitting on the messy bed chatting away to Ajax with all the fluency of a natural-born ape.
It was during this interview that a plan occurred to Paulvitch, and as a result of it he agreed to accept a certain fabulous sum for the ape, and upon receipt of the money to deliver the beast to a vessel that was sailing south from Dover for Africa two days later. He had a double purpose in accepting Clayton’s offer. Primarily, the money consideration influenced him strongly, as the ape was no longer a source of revenue to him, having consistently refused to perform upon the stage after having discovered Tarzan. It was as though the beast had suffered himself to be brought from his jungle home and exhibited before thousands of curious spectators for the sole purpose of searching out his long lost friend and master, and, having found him, considered further mingling with the common herd of humans unnecessary. However that may be, the fact remained that no amount of persuasion could influence him even to show himself upon the music hall stage, and upon the single occasion that the trainer attempted force the results were such that the unfortunate man considered himself lucky to have escaped with his life. All that saved him was the accidental presence of Jack Clayton, who had been permitted to visit the animal in the dressing room reserved for him at the music hall, and had immediately interfered when he saw that the savage beast meant serious mischief.
It was during this interview that a plan came to Paulvitch, and as a result, he agreed to accept a substantial sum for the ape, promising to deliver the animal to a ship sailing south from Dover to Africa two days later. He had a dual reason for accepting Clayton’s offer. First, the money was a major influence, as the ape had stopped being a source of income for him, having consistently refused to perform on stage after finding Tarzan. It was as if the creature had allowed itself to be taken from its jungle home and displayed before thousands of curious spectators only to search for its long-lost friend and master, and once it found him, it deemed further interaction with ordinary humans unnecessary. Regardless, the reality was that no amount of convincing could get him to show himself on the music hall stage, and on the one occasion that the trainer tried to force the issue, the outcome was such that the poor man considered himself lucky to have escaped with his life. The only thing that saved him was the unexpected presence of Jack Clayton, who had been allowed to visit the animal in its dressing room at the music hall and immediately stepped in when he saw that the fierce beast intended to cause serious harm.
And after the money consideration, strong in the heart of the Russian was the desire for revenge, which had been growing with constant brooding over the failures and miseries of his life, which he attributed to Tarzan; the latest, and by no means the least, of which was Ajax’s refusal to longer earn money for him. The ape’s refusal he traced directly to Tarzan, finally convincing himself that the ape man had instructed the great anthropoid to refuse to go upon the stage.
And after thinking about the money, what was really driving the Russian was a strong desire for revenge, which had been building up as he constantly dwelled on his failures and the hardships in his life that he blamed on Tarzan. The most recent and significant of these issues was Ajax’s decision to stop earning money for him. He directly linked the ape’s refusal to Tarzan, eventually convincing himself that the ape man had told the great creature to refuse to perform.
Paulvitch’s naturally malign disposition was aggravated by the weakening and warping of his mental and physical faculties through torture and privation. From cold, calculating, highly intelligent perversity it had deteriorated into the indiscriminating, dangerous menace of the mentally defective. His plan, however, was sufficiently cunning to at least cast a doubt upon the assertion that his mentality was wandering. It assured him first of the competence which Lord Greystoke had promised to pay him for the deportation of the ape, and then of revenge upon his benefactor through the son he idolized. That part of his scheme was crude and brutal—it lacked the refinement of torture that had marked the master strokes of the Paulvitch of old, when he had worked with that virtuoso of villainy, Nikolas Rokoff—but it at least assured Paulvitch of immunity from responsibility, placing that upon the ape, who would thus also be punished for his refusal longer to support the Russian.
Paulvitch’s naturally malicious nature was made worse by the decline and distortion of his mental and physical abilities due to torture and deprivation. What started as cold, calculating, highly intelligent wickedness had turned into the indiscriminate, dangerous threat of someone mentally unstable. However, his plan was clever enough to create doubt about whether his mind was really failing. It first guaranteed him the payment Lord Greystoke had promised for the removal of the ape, and then it set him up for revenge against the man he admired through the son he idolized. That part of his plot was rough and brutal—it lacked the sophisticated torture that had characterized the old Paulvitch, who had worked alongside the master of villainy, Nikolas Rokoff—but it at least ensured Paulvitch wouldn’t be held responsible, placing the blame on the ape, who would also be punished for no longer supporting the Russian.
Everything played with fiendish unanimity into Paulvitch’s hands. As chance would have it, Tarzan’s son overheard his father relating to the boy’s mother the steps he was taking to return Akut safely to his jungle home, and having overheard he begged them to bring the ape home that he might have him for a play-fellow. Tarzan would not have been averse to this plan; but Lady Greystoke was horrified at the very thought of it. Jack pleaded with his mother; but all unavailingly. She was obdurate, and at last the lad appeared to acquiesce in his mother’s decision that the ape must be returned to Africa and the boy to school, from which he had been absent on vacation.
Everything worked perfectly for Paulvitch. As luck would have it, Tarzan's son overheard his father telling the boy's mother about the steps he was taking to safely return Akut to his jungle home, and after hearing this, he begged them to bring the ape back so he could have him as a playmate. Tarzan was somewhat open to this idea, but Lady Greystoke was appalled by it. Jack pleaded with his mother, but to no avail. She was stubborn, and eventually, the boy seemed to accept his mother’s decision that the ape had to go back to Africa and he had to return to school, from which he had been away on vacation.
He did not attempt to visit Paulvitch’s room again that day, but instead busied himself in other ways. He had always been well supplied with money, so that when necessity demanded he had no difficulty in collecting several hundred pounds. Some of this money he invested in various strange purchases which he managed to smuggle into the house, undetected, when he returned late in the afternoon.
He didn't try to visit Paulvitch's room again that day; instead, he occupied himself with other things. He had always had plenty of money, so when he needed it, he could easily gather several hundred pounds. He spent some of that money on various unusual items, which he managed to sneak into the house unnoticed when he got back late in the afternoon.
The next morning, after giving his father time to precede him and conclude his business with Paulvitch, the lad hastened to the Russian’s room. Knowing nothing of the man’s true character the boy dared not take him fully into his confidence for fear that the old fellow would not only refuse to aid him, but would report the whole affair to his father. Instead, he simply asked permission to take Ajax to Dover. He explained that it would relieve the old man of a tiresome journey, as well as placing a number of pounds in his pocket, for the lad purposed paying the Russian well.
The next morning, after giving his father time to meet with Paulvitch, the boy rushed to the Russian's room. Not knowing the man's true character, he hesitated to share everything with him, worried that the old man might not only refuse to help but also tell his father about it. Instead, he just asked for permission to take Ajax to Dover. He explained that it would spare the old man from a tiring trip and could also put some money in his pocket, since the boy planned to pay the Russian generously.
“You see,” he went on, “there will be no danger of detection since I am supposed to be leaving on an afternoon train for school. Instead I will come here after they have left me on board the train. Then I can take Ajax to Dover, you see, and arrive at school only a day late. No one will be the wiser, no harm will be done, and I shall have had an extra day with Ajax before I lose him forever.”
“You see,” he continued, “there’s no risk of getting caught since everyone thinks I’m leaving on an afternoon train to school. Instead, I’ll come here after they drop me off at the train. Then I can take Ajax to Dover, you know, and get to school just a day late. No one will know, nothing bad will happen, and I’ll have had an extra day with Ajax before I lose him forever.”
The plan fitted perfectly with that which Paulvitch had in mind. Had he known what further the boy contemplated he would doubtless have entirely abandoned his own scheme of revenge and aided the boy whole heartedly in the consummation of the lad’s, which would have been better for Paulvitch, could he have but read the future but a few short hours ahead.
The plan aligned perfectly with what Paulvitch had in mind. If he had known what the boy was planning, he would surely have completely given up his own revenge scheme and fully supported the boy in achieving his goals, which would have been better for Paulvitch if he could have seen just a few hours into the future.
That afternoon Lord and Lady Greystoke bid their son good-bye and saw him safely settled in a first-class compartment of the railway carriage that would set him down at school in a few hours. No sooner had they left him, however, than he gathered his bags together, descended from the compartment and sought a cab stand outside the station. Here he engaged a cabby to take him to the Russian’s address. It was dusk when he arrived. He found Paulvitch awaiting him. The man was pacing the floor nervously. The ape was tied with a stout cord to the bed. It was the first time that Jack had ever seen Ajax thus secured. He looked questioningly at Paulvitch. The man, mumbling, explained that he believed the animal had guessed that he was to be sent away and he feared he would attempt to escape.
That afternoon, Lord and Lady Greystoke said goodbye to their son and made sure he was comfortably settled in a first-class train compartment that would take him to school in a few hours. As soon as they left him, though, he gathered his bags, got off the train, and looked for a taxi outside the station. There, he hired a cab driver to take him to the Russian’s address. It was dusk when he arrived. He found Paulvitch waiting for him, nervously pacing the floor. The ape was tied with a thick cord to the bed. It was the first time Jack had seen Ajax secured like this. He looked at Paulvitch with a question in his eyes. The man mumbled an explanation that he thought the animal had figured out he was going to be sent away, and he was afraid it would try to escape.
Paulvitch carried another piece of cord in his hand. There was a noose in one end of it which he was continually playing with. He walked back and forth, up and down the room. His pock-marked features were working horribly as he talked silent to himself. The boy had never seen him thus—it made him uneasy. At last Paulvitch stopped on the opposite side of the room, far from the ape.
Paulvitch held another piece of rope in his hand. There was a noose at one end that he kept fiddling with. He paced back and forth, up and down the room. His pockmarked face twisted in a disturbing way as he silently talked to himself. The boy had never seen him like this—it made him anxious. Finally, Paulvitch stopped on the other side of the room, far from the ape.
“Come here,” he said to the lad. “I will show you how to secure the ape should he show signs of rebellion during the trip.”
“Come here,” he said to the boy. “I’ll show you how to secure the ape if he shows any signs of rebellion during the trip.”
The lad laughed. “It will not be necessary,” he replied. “Ajax will do whatever I tell him to do.”
The guy laughed. “That won’t be needed,” he replied. “Ajax will do whatever I say.”
The old man stamped his foot angrily. “Come here, as I tell you,” he repeated. “If you do not do as I say you shall not accompany the ape to Dover—I will take no chances upon his escaping.”
The old man stomped his foot in frustration. “Come here, like I said,” he repeated. “If you don’t do what I say, you won’t be going with the ape to Dover—I’m not taking any chances on him escaping.”
Still smiling, the lad crossed the room and stood before the Russ.
Still smiling, the kid crossed the room and stood in front of the Russ.
“Turn around, with your back toward me,” directed the latter, “that I may show you how to bind him quickly.”
“Turn around, facing away from me,” the latter instructed, “so I can show you how to tie him up quickly.”
The boy did as he was bid, placing his hands behind him when Paulvitch told him to do so. Instantly the old man slipped the running noose over one of the lad’s wrists, took a couple of half hitches about his other wrist, and knotted the cord.
The boy did what he was told, putting his hands behind him when Paulvitch instructed him. Right away, the old man slipped the running noose over one of the boy’s wrists, wrapped it with a couple of half hitches around his other wrist, and tied the cord in a knot.
The moment that the boy was secured the attitude of the man changed. With an angry oath he wheeled his prisoner about, tripped him and hurled him violently to the floor, leaping upon his breast as he fell. From the bed the ape growled and struggled with his bonds. The boy did not cry out—a trait inherited from his savage sire whom long years in the jungle following the death of his foster mother, Kala the great ape, had taught that there was none to come to the succor of the fallen.
The moment the boy was captured, the man’s demeanor shifted. With an angry curse, he spun his prisoner around, tripped him, and threw him hard to the floor, jumping on his chest as he fell. From the bed, the ape growled and fought against his restraints. The boy didn’t scream—a trait he got from his savage father, who had spent many years in the jungle after the death of his adoptive mother, Kala the great ape, and learned that there was no one to help the fallen.
Paulvitch’s fingers sought the lad’s throat. He grinned down horribly into the face of his victim.
Paulvitch’s fingers reached for the boy’s throat. He grinned eerily down into the face of his victim.
“Your father ruined me,” he mumbled. “This will pay him. He will think that the ape did it. I will tell him that the ape did it. That I left him alone for a few minutes, and that you sneaked in and the ape killed you. I will throw your body upon the bed after I have choked the life from you, and when I bring your father he will see the ape squatting over it,” and the twisted fiend cackled in gloating laughter. His fingers closed upon the boy’s throat.
“Your dad destroyed me,” he muttered. “This will get back at him. He’ll believe the ape did it. I’ll tell him the ape did it. That I left him alone for a few minutes, and that you snuck in and the ape killed you. I’ll toss your body on the bed after I’ve choked the life out of you, and when I bring your dad in, he’ll see the ape sitting over it,” and the twisted man cackled with malicious glee. His fingers tightened around the boy’s throat.
Behind them the growling of the maddened beast reverberated against the walls of the little room. The boy paled, but no other sign of fear or panic showed upon his countenance. He was the son of Tarzan. The fingers tightened their grip upon his throat. It was with difficulty that he breathed, gaspingly. The ape lunged against the stout cord that held him. Turning, he wrapped the cord about his hands, as a man might have done, and surged heavily backward. The great muscles stood out beneath his shaggy hide. There was a rending as of splintered wood—the cord held, but a portion of the footboard of the bed came away.
Behind them, the growling of the furious beast echoed off the walls of the small room. The boy's face went pale, but he didn't show any other signs of fear or panic. He was Tarzan's son. The fingers tightened their grip around his throat, making it hard for him to breathe, gasping for air. The ape lunged against the strong cord that restrained him. Turning, he wrapped the cord around his hands, like a man would, and pushed back with all his strength. His powerful muscles bulged beneath his shaggy fur. There was a loud crack, like splintering wood—the cord held, but part of the bed's footboard broke away.
At the sound Paulvitch looked up. His hideous face went white with terror—the ape was free.
At the sound, Paulvitch looked up. His ugly face went pale with fear—the ape was loose.
With a single bound the creature was upon him. The man shrieked. The brute wrenched him from the body of the boy. Great fingers sunk into the man’s flesh. Yellow fangs gaped close to his throat—he struggled, futilely—and when they closed, the soul of Alexis Paulvitch passed into the keeping of the demons who had long been awaiting it.
With a single leap, the creature was on him. The man screamed. The beast pulled him away from the boy. Its large fingers dug into the man’s flesh. Yellow fangs hovered near his throat—he struggled, helplessly—and when they finally closed, the soul of Alexis Paulvitch was claimed by the demons who had been waiting for it.
The boy struggled to his feet, assisted by Akut. For two hours under the instructions of the former the ape worked upon the knots that secured his friend’s wrists. Finally they gave up their secret, and the boy was free. Then he opened one of his bags and drew forth some garments. His plans had been well made. He did not consult the beast, which did all that he directed. Together they slunk from the house, but no casual observer might have noted that one of them was an ape.
The boy got to his feet with Akut's help. For two hours, under Akut's guidance, the ape worked on the knots that bound his friend's wrists. At last, the knots loosened, and the boy was free. He opened one of his bags and pulled out some clothes. His plans were well thought out. He didn’t check with the ape, who followed his every instruction. They quietly slipped out of the house, and anyone watching would never have guessed that one of them was an ape.
IV.
The killing of the friendless old Russian, Michael Sabrov, by his great trained ape, was a matter for newspaper comment for a few days. Lord Greystoke read of it, and while taking special precautions not to permit his name to become connected with the affair, kept himself well posted as to the police search for the anthropoid.
The murder of the lonely old Russian, Michael Sabrov, by his trained ape made headlines for a few days. Lord Greystoke read about it and, while taking care to keep his name out of it, made sure to stay updated on the police search for the ape.
As was true of the general public, his chief interest in the matter centered about the mysterious disappearance of the slayer. Or at least this was true until he learned, several days subsequent to the tragedy, that his son Jack had not reported at the public school en route for which they had seen him safely ensconced in a railway carriage. Even then the father did not connect the disappearance of his son with the mystery surrounding the whereabouts of the ape. Nor was it until a month later that careful investigation revealed the fact that the boy had left the train before it pulled out of the station at London, and the cab driver had been found who had driven him to the address of the old Russian, that Tarzan of the Apes realized that Akut had in some way been connected with the disappearance of the boy.
Like the general public, he was primarily interested in the mysterious disappearance of the killer. That was the case until he discovered, several days after the tragedy, that his son Jack had not shown up at the public school, despite having seen him safely settled in a train carriage. Even then, the father didn't link his son's disappearance to the mystery of the ape. It wasn't until a month later, after a thorough investigation, that it became clear the boy had left the train before it departed from the London station, and the cab driver who had taken him to the old Russian's address was found. Only then did Tarzan of the Apes realize that Akut was somehow connected to the boy's disappearance.
Beyond the moment that the cab driver had deposited his fare beside the curb in front of the house in which the Russian had been quartered there was no clue. No one had seen either the boy or the ape from that instant—at least no one who still lived. The proprietor of the house identified the picture of the lad as that of one who had been a frequent visitor in the room of the old man. Aside from this he knew nothing. And there, at the door of a grimy, old building in the slums of London, the searchers came to a blank wall—baffled.
Beyond the moment when the cab driver dropped off his passenger at the curb in front of the house where the Russian had been staying, there was no evidence. No one had seen either the boy or the ape since then—at least, no one who was still alive. The owner of the house recognized the picture of the kid as someone who often visited the old man's room. Besides that, he had no other information. And there, at the entrance of a dirty, old building in London's slums, the searchers hit a dead end—confused.
The day following the death of Alexis Paulvitch a youth accompanying his invalid grandmother, boarded a steamer at Dover. The old lady was heavily veiled, and so weakened by age and sickness that she had to be wheeled aboard the vessel in an invalid chair.
The day after Alexis Paulvitch died, a young man traveling with his disabled grandmother got on a steamer at Dover. The elderly woman was heavily veiled and so frail from age and illness that she had to be pushed onto the ship in a wheelchair.
The boy would permit none but himself to wheel her, and with his own hands assisted her from the chair to the interior of their stateroom—and that was the last that was seen of the old lady by the ship’s company until the pair disembarked. The boy even insisted upon doing the work of their cabin steward, since, as he explained, his grandmother was suffering from a nervous disposition that made the presence of strangers extremely distasteful to her.
The boy allowed no one but himself to push her wheelchair, and he personally helped her from the chair to their stateroom—and that was the last anyone on the ship saw of the old lady until they got off. The boy even insisted on doing the work of their cabin steward because, as he explained, his grandmother had a nervous condition that made being around strangers very uncomfortable for her.
Outside the cabin—and none there was aboard who knew what he did in the cabin—the lad was just as any other healthy, normal English boy might have been. He mingled with his fellow passengers, became a prime favorite with the officers, and struck up numerous friendships among the common sailors. He was generous and unaffected, yet carried an air of dignity and strength of character that inspired his many new friends with admiration as well as affection for him.
Outside the cabin—and no one on board knew what he was doing in there—the boy was just like any other healthy, normal English kid. He socialized with his fellow passengers, quickly became a favorite among the officers, and made plenty of friends with the ordinary sailors. He was kind and down-to-earth, but he also had a presence of dignity and inner strength that made his new friends admire and care for him.
Among the passengers there was an American named Condon, a noted blackleg and crook who was “wanted” in a half dozen of the larger cities of the United States. He had paid little attention to the boy until on one occasion he had seen him accidentally display a roll of bank notes. From then on Condon cultivated the youthful Briton. He learned, easily, that the boy was traveling alone with his invalid grandmother, and that their destination was a small port on the west coast of Africa, a little below the equator; that their name was Billings, and that they had no friends in the little settlement for which they were bound. Upon the point of their purpose in visiting the place Condon found the boy reticent, and so he did not push the matter—he had learned all that he cared to know as it was.
Among the passengers was an American named Condon, a notorious scammer and criminal who was wanted in several major cities in the United States. He hadn't paid much attention to the boy until one time he saw him accidentally show a roll of banknotes. From then on, Condon took an interest in the young Brit. He quickly discovered that the boy was traveling alone with his sick grandmother, and that they were headed to a small port on the west coast of Africa, just south of the equator; their last name was Billings, and they had no connections in the small settlement they were going to. When it came to the reason for their visit, the boy was tight-lipped, so Condon didn’t press the issue—he’d learned all he needed to know as it was.
Several times Condon attempted to draw the lad into a card game; but his victim was not interested, and the black looks of several of the other men passengers decided the American to find other means of transferring the boy’s bank roll to his own pocket.
Several times, Condon tried to get the kid to play cards, but the boy wasn't interested, and the hostile glares from some of the other passengers made the American decide to find other ways to move the boy’s money into his own pocket.
At last came the day that the steamer dropped anchor in the lee of a wooded promontory where a score or more of sheet-iron shacks making an unsightly blot upon the fair face of nature proclaimed the fact that civilization had set its heel. Straggling upon the outskirts were the thatched huts of natives, picturesque in their primeval savagery, harmonizing with the background of tropical jungle and accentuating the squalid hideousness of the white man’s pioneer architecture.
At last, the day arrived when the steamer dropped anchor in the shelter of a wooded headland where a number of metal shacks created an unsightly mark on the beautiful landscape, showing that civilization had made its presence known. On the outskirts were the thatched huts of the locals, charming in their primitive rawness, blending in with the tropical jungle and highlighting the grim ugliness of the white man’s early buildings.
The boy, leaning over the rail, was looking far beyond the man-made town deep into the God-made jungle. A little shiver of anticipation tingled his spine, and then, quite without volition, he found himself gazing into the loving eyes of his mother and the strong face of the father which mirrored, beneath its masculine strength, a love no less than the mother’s eyes proclaimed. He felt himself weakening in his resolve. Nearby one of the ship’s officers was shouting orders to a flotilla of native boats that was approaching to lighter the consignment of the steamer’s cargo destined for this tiny post.
The boy leaned over the railing, gazing far past the man-made town into the natural jungle. A slight shiver of excitement ran down his spine, and then, almost without realizing it, he found himself looking into his mother's loving eyes and his father's strong face, which, despite its masculine strength, reflected a love just as deep as what his mother’s eyes showed. He felt his determination fading. Close by, one of the ship's officers was shouting orders to a group of native boats coming to unload the steamer's cargo meant for this small station.
“When does the next steamer for England touch here?” the boy asked.
“When does the next steamship for England arrive here?” the boy asked.
“The Emanuel ought to be along most any time now,” replied the officer. “I figgered we’d find her here,” and he went on with his bellowing remarks to the dusty horde drawing close to the steamer’s side.
“The Emanuel should be here any minute,” the officer said. “I figured we’d find her here,” and he continued with his loud comments to the dusty crowd gathering near the steamer’s side.
The task of lowering the boy’s grandmother over the side to a waiting canoe was rather difficult. The lad insisted on being always at her side, and when at last she was safely ensconced in the bottom of the craft that was to bear them shoreward her grandson dropped catlike after her. So interested was he in seeing her comfortably disposed that he failed to notice the little package that had worked from his pocket as he assisted in lowering the sling that contained the old woman over the steamer’s side, nor did he notice it even as it slipped out entirely and dropped into the sea.
Lowering the boy’s grandmother over the side into a waiting canoe was pretty challenging. The boy insisted on staying right next to her, and when she was finally settled safely in the bottom of the boat that would take them to shore, her grandson dropped down after her like a cat. He was so focused on making sure she was comfortable that he didn’t notice the small package that had slipped out of his pocket while he was helping lower the sling containing the old woman over the side of the steamer. He didn't even see it fall completely out and splash into the sea.
Scarcely had the boat containing the boy and the old woman started for the shore than Condon hailed a canoe upon the other side of the ship, and after bargaining with its owner finally lowered his baggage and himself aboard. Once ashore he kept out of sight of the two-story atrocity that bore the legend “Hotel” to lure unsuspecting wayfarers to its multitudinous discomforts. It was quite dark before he ventured to enter and arrange for accommodations.
As soon as the boat with the boy and the old woman set off for shore, Condon called over a canoe on the other side of the ship and, after negotiating with the owner, finally loaded his bags and himself onto it. Once he reached the shore, he stayed away from the two-story monstrosity that had the sign “Hotel,” trying to trick unwary travelers into experiencing its many discomforts. It was pretty dark before he dared to go inside and sort out a place to stay.
In a back room upon the second floor the lad was explaining, not without considerable difficulty, to his grandmother that he had decided to return to England upon the next steamer. He was endeavoring to make it plain to the old lady that she might remain in Africa if she wished but that for his part his conscience demanded that he return to his father and mother, who doubtless were even now suffering untold sorrow because of his absence; from which it may be assumed that his parents had not been acquainted with the plans that he and the old lady had made for their adventure into African wilds.
In a back room on the second floor, the young man was trying, with considerable difficulty, to explain to his grandmother that he had decided to go back to England on the next steamer. He was trying to make it clear to her that she could stay in Africa if she wanted, but for him, his conscience was telling him to return to his parents, who were probably suffering a lot because he was away. This suggests that his parents had no idea about the plans he and his grandmother had made for their adventure in the African wilderness.
Having come to a decision the lad felt a sense of relief from the worry that had haunted him for many sleepless nights. When he closed his eyes in sleep it was to dream of a happy reunion with those at home. And as he dreamed, Fate, cruel and inexorable, crept stealthily upon him through the dark corridor of the squalid building in which he slept—Fate in the form of the American crook, Condon.
Having made a decision, the young man felt a wave of relief wash over him, easing the anxiety that had kept him awake for countless nights. When he closed his eyes to sleep, he dreamed of a joyful reunion with his loved ones back home. Meanwhile, as he dreamed, Fate, harsh and unavoidable, quietly approached him through the dark hallways of the rundown building where he was sleeping—Fate in the shape of the American criminal, Condon.
Cautiously the man approached the door of the lad’s room. There he crouched listening until assured by the regular breathing of those within that both slept. Quietly he inserted a slim, skeleton key in the lock of the door. With deft fingers, long accustomed to the silent manipulation of the bars and bolts that guarded other men’s property, Condon turned the key and the knob simultaneously. Gentle pressure upon the door swung it slowly inward upon its hinges. The man entered the room, closing the door behind him. The moon was temporarily overcast by heavy clouds. The interior of the apartment was shrouded in gloom. Condon groped his way toward the bed. In the far corner of the room something moved—moved with a silent stealthiness which transcended even the trained silence of the burglar. Condon heard nothing. His attention was riveted upon the bed in which he thought to find a young boy and his helpless, invalid grandmother.
Cautiously, the man approached the door of the boy's room. He crouched down to listen until he was assured by the steady breathing of those inside that they were both asleep. Quietly, he slid a slim skeleton key into the lock. With skilled fingers, used to silently handling the locks and bolts that protected other people’s belongings, Condon turned the key and the doorknob at the same time. A gentle push on the door swung it slowly open on its hinges. The man stepped into the room, closing the door behind him. The moon was briefly covered by thick clouds. The apartment's interior was cloaked in darkness. Condon felt his way toward the bed. In the far corner of the room, something moved—silently, in a way that was even more stealthy than a seasoned burglar. Condon didn't hear anything. His focus was locked on the bed, where he expected to find a young boy and his frail, invalid grandmother.
The American sought only the bank roll. If he could possess himself of this without detection, well and good; but were he to meet resistance he was prepared for that too. The lad’s clothes lay across a chair beside the bed. The American’s fingers felt swiftly through them—the pockets contained no roll of crisp, new notes. Doubtless they were beneath the pillows of the bed. He stepped closer toward the sleeper; his hand was already half way beneath the pillow when the thick cloud that had obscured the moon rolled aside and the room was flooded with light. At the same instant the boy opened his eyes and looked straight into those of Condon. The man was suddenly conscious that the boy was alone in the bed. Then he clutched for his victim’s throat. As the lad rose to meet him Condon heard a low growl at his back, then he felt his wrists seized by the boy, and realized that beneath those tapering, white fingers played muscles of steel.
The American was only after the money. If he could get it without being noticed, great; but if he faced any resistance, he was ready for that too. The boy’s clothes were draped over a chair next to the bed. The American quickly searched through them—the pockets were empty of any crisp, new bills. They were probably hidden under the pillows. He stepped closer to the sleeping boy; his hand was halfway under the pillow when the thick cloud covering the moon moved aside and flooded the room with light. At the same moment, the boy opened his eyes and looked directly at Condon. The man suddenly realized that the boy was alone in the bed. He then lunged for the boy’s throat. As the boy rose to confront him, Condon heard a low growl behind him, then felt the boy's grip on his wrists and realized those slender, white fingers concealed muscles of steel.
He felt other hands at his throat, rough hairy hands that reached over his shoulders from behind. He cast a terrified glance backward, and the hairs of his head stiffened at the sight his eyes revealed, for grasping him from the rear was a huge, man-like ape. The bared fighting fangs of the anthropoid were close to his throat. The lad pinioned his wrists. Neither uttered a sound. Where was the grandmother? Condon’s eyes swept the room in a single all-inclusive glance. His eyes bulged in horror at the realization of the truth which that glance revealed. In the power of what creatures of hideous mystery had he placed himself! Frantically he fought to beat off the lad that he might turn upon the fearsome thing at his back. Freeing one hand he struck a savage blow at the lad’s face. His act seemed to unloose a thousand devils in the hairy creature clinging to his throat. Condon heard a low and savage snarl. It was the last thing that the American ever heard in this life. Then he was dragged backward upon the floor, a heavy body fell upon him, powerful teeth fastened themselves in his jugular, his head whirled in the sudden blackness which rims eternity—a moment later the ape rose from his prostrate form; but Condon did not know—he was quite dead.
He felt other hands around his throat, rough, hairy hands reaching over his shoulders from behind. He shot a terrified glance backward, and his hair stood on end at what he saw—grabbing him from behind was a huge, man-like ape. The sharp fighting teeth of the beast were close to his throat. The boy held his wrists tightly. Neither of them made a sound. Where was the grandmother? Condon's eyes scanned the room in one sweeping glance. His eyes widened in horror as he realized the truth that glance revealed. In the grasp of what horrifying creatures had he put himself! Desperately, he fought to push off the boy so he could turn and confront the terrifying thing behind him. Freeing one hand, he struck a brutal blow to the boy’s face. His action seemed to unleash a thousand devils in the hairy creature clinging to his throat. Condon heard a low and savage snarl. It was the last thing he ever heard. Then he was dragged backward onto the floor, a heavy body fell on him, powerful teeth sank into his neck, his head spun in the sudden darkness that bordered on eternity—a moment later, the ape stood over his lifeless form; but Condon didn’t know—he was completely dead.
The lad, horrified, sprang from the bed to lean over the body of the man. He knew that Akut had killed in his defense, as he had killed Michael Sabrov; but here, in savage Africa, far from home and friends what would they do to him and his faithful ape? The lad knew that the penalty of murder was death. He even knew that an accomplice might suffer the death penalty with the principal. Who was there who would plead for them? All would be against them. It was little more than a half-civilized community, and the chances were that they would drag Akut and him forth in the morning and hang them both to the nearest tree—he had read of such things being done in America, and Africa was worse even and wilder than the great West of his mother’s native land. Yes, they would both be hanged in the morning!
The young man, terrified, jumped out of bed to lean over the man's body. He understood that Akut had killed in self-defense, just like he had killed Michael Sabrov; but here, in wild Africa, far from home and friends, what would happen to him and his loyal ape? He knew the punishment for murder was death. He also realized that an accomplice could face the same death sentence as the main culprit. Who would stand up for them? Everyone would be against them. It was barely more than a half-civilized community, and chances are they would drag Akut and him out in the morning and hang them from the nearest tree—he had read about such things happening in America, and Africa was even worse and wilder than the great West of his mother’s homeland. Yes, they would both be hanged in the morning!
Was there no escape? He thought in silence for a few moments, and then, with an exclamation of relief, he struck his palms together and turned toward his clothing upon the chair. Money would do anything! Money would save him and Akut! He felt for the bank roll in the pocket in which he had been accustomed to carry it. It was not there! Slowly at first and at last frantically he searched through the remaining pockets of his clothing. Then he dropped upon his hands and knees and examined the floor. Lighting the lamp he moved the bed to one side and, inch by inch, he felt over the entire floor. Beside the body of Condon he hesitated, but at last he nerved himself to touch it. Rolling it over he sought beneath it for the money. Nor was it there. He guessed that Condon had entered their room to rob; but he did not believe that the man had had time to possess himself of the money; however, as it was nowhere else, it must be upon the body of the dead man. Again and again he went over the room, only to return each time to the corpse; but no where could he find the money.
Was there no way out? He thought in silence for a few moments, and then, with a sigh of relief, he clapped his hands together and turned toward his clothes on the chair. Money could solve everything! Money would save him and Akut! He reached for the roll of cash in the pocket where he usually kept it. It wasn’t there! At first slowly, then frantically, he searched through the other pockets of his clothes. Then he dropped down on his hands and knees and looked at the floor. After lighting the lamp, he moved the bed to the side and felt along the entire floor, inch by inch. Next to Condon’s body, he hesitated, but finally, he steeled himself to touch it. Rolling it over, he looked underneath for the money. It wasn’t there either. He suspected that Condon had entered their room to steal, but he didn’t think the man had had time to take the money; however, since it was nowhere else, it had to be on the body of the dead man. Over and over, he searched the room, only to return to the corpse each time; but he couldn’t find the money anywhere.
He was half-frantic with despair. What were they to do? In the morning they would be discovered and killed. For all his inherited size and strength he was, after all, only a little boy—a frightened, homesick little boy—reasoning faultily from the meager experience of childhood. He could think of but a single glaring fact—they had killed a fellow man, and they were among savage strangers, thirsting for the blood of the first victim whom fate cast into their clutches. This much he had gleaned from penny-dreadfuls.
He was almost crazy with despair. What were they going to do? In the morning, they would be found and killed. Despite his size and strength from heredity, he was still just a little boy—a scared, homesick little boy—reasoning poorly from his limited childhood experiences. He could only focus on one clear fact—they had killed another man, and they were surrounded by savage strangers, eager for the blood of the first victim that fate brought their way. This much he had gathered from cheap horror stories.
And they must have money!
And they need money!
Again he approached the corpse. This time resolutely. The ape squatted in a corner watching his young companion. The youth commenced to remove the American’s clothing piece by piece, and, piece by piece, he examined each garment minutely. Even to the shoes he searched with painstaking care, and when the last article had been removed and scrutinized he dropped back upon the bed with dilated eyes that saw nothing in the present—only a grim tableau of the future in which two forms swung silently from the limb of a great tree.
Again, he approached the body. This time, he was determined. The ape crouched in a corner, watching his young friend. The youth began to take off the American’s clothes, one piece at a time, carefully examining each item. He even searched the shoes with meticulous attention, and when the last piece was removed and inspected, he fell back onto the bed with wide eyes that saw nothing of the present—only a chilling scene of the future where two figures hung silently from the branch of a large tree.
How long he sat thus he did not know; but finally he was aroused by a noise coming from the floor below. Springing quickly to his feet he blew out the lamp, and crossing the floor silently locked the door. Then he turned toward the ape, his mind made up.
How long he sat there, he didn't know; but eventually, he was startled by a noise from the floor below. He quickly jumped to his feet, blew out the lamp, and quietly crossed the room to lock the door. Then he turned to face the ape, his mind settled.
Last evening he had been determined to start for home at the first opportunity, to beg the forgiveness of his parents for this mad adventure. Now he knew that he might never return to them. The blood of a fellow man was upon his hands—in his morbid reflections he had long since ceased to attribute the death of Condon to the ape. The hysteria of panic had fastened the guilt upon himself. With money he might have bought justice; but penniless!—ah, what hope could there be for strangers without money here?
Last night, he had been set on heading home at the first chance he got, to ask his parents for forgiveness for this crazy adventure. Now, he realized that he might never see them again. He felt the weight of having a man's blood on his hands—in his dark thoughts, he had long stopped blaming the ape for Condon's death. The panic had driven the guilt onto him. With money, he might have been able to secure justice; but being broke!—what hope could there be for strangers without any cash here?
But what had become of the money? He tried to recall when last he had seen it. He could not, nor, could he, would he have been able to account for its disappearance, for he had been entirely unconscious of the falling of the little package from his pocket into the sea as he clambered over the ship’s side into the waiting canoe that bore him to shore.
But what happened to the money? He tried to remember the last time he had seen it. He couldn't, and even if he could, he wouldn't have been able to explain how it disappeared because he had been completely unaware of the little package falling from his pocket into the sea as he climbed over the ship's side into the waiting canoe that took him to shore.
Now he turned toward Akut. “Come!” he said, in the language of the great apes.
Now he turned to Akut. “Come!” he said, in the language of the great apes.
Forgetful of the fact that he wore only a thin pajama suit he led the way to the open window. Thrusting his head out he listened attentively. A single tree grew a few feet from the window. Nimbly the lad sprang to its bole, clinging cat-like for an instant before he clambered quietly to the ground below. Close behind him came the great ape. Two hundred yards away a spur of the jungle ran close to the straggling town. Toward this the lad led the way. None saw them, and a moment later the jungle swallowed them, and John Clayton, future Lord Greystoke, passed from the eyes and the knowledge of men.
Forgetting that he was just in a thin pajama set, he headed to the open window. Leaning out, he listened intently. A single tree stood a few feet from the window. Quickly, the boy leaped to its trunk, hanging on like a cat for a moment before quietly climbing down to the ground. Right behind him came the huge ape. Two hundred yards away, a part of the jungle extended close to the scattered town. The boy led the way toward it. No one saw them, and moments later the jungle consumed them, and John Clayton, the future Lord Greystoke, vanished from the sight and knowledge of people.
It was late the following morning that a native houseman knocked upon the door of the room that had been assigned to Mrs. Billings and her grandson. Receiving no response he inserted his pass key in the lock, only to discover that another key was already there, but from the inside. He reported the fact to Herr Skopf, the proprietor, who at once made his way to the second floor where he, too, pounded vigorously upon the door. Receiving no reply he bent to the key hole in an attempt to look through into the room beyond. In so doing, being portly, he lost his balance, which necessitated putting a palm to the floor to maintain his equilibrium. As he did so he felt something soft and thick and wet beneath his fingers. He raised his open palm before his eyes in the dim light of the corridor and peered at it. Then he gave a little shudder, for even in the semi-darkness he saw a dark red stain upon his hand. Leaping to his feet he hurled his shoulder against the door. Herr Skopf is a heavy man—or at least he was then—I have not seen him for several years. The frail door collapsed beneath his weight, and Herr Skopf stumbled precipitately into the room beyond.
It was late the next morning when a local housekeeper knocked on the door of the room assigned to Mrs. Billings and her grandson. Not getting a response, he used his pass key to unlock it, only to find another key already in the lock from the inside. He reported this to Herr Skopf, the owner, who immediately went up to the second floor and pounded on the door as well. When there was still no answer, he crouched down to peek through the keyhole. Being a bit overweight, he lost his balance and had to put a hand on the floor to steady himself. As he did, he felt something soft, thick, and wet beneath his fingers. He lifted his hand in the dim light of the hallway and looked at it. Then he shuddered, as even in the dimness, he noticed a dark red stain on his palm. Jumping to his feet, he slammed his shoulder against the door. Herr Skopf is a heavy man—or at least he was at that time; I haven't seen him in several years. The flimsy door gave way under his weight, and he tumbled into the room beyond.
Before him lay the greatest mystery of his life. Upon the floor at his feet was the dead body of a strange man. The neck was broken and the jugular severed as by the fangs of a wild beast. The body was entirely naked, the clothing being strewn about the corpse. The old lady and her grandson were gone. The window was open. They must have disappeared through the window for the door had been locked from the inside.
Before him lay the biggest mystery of his life. At his feet was the dead body of a stranger. The neck was broken and the jugular cut as if by the fangs of a wild animal. The body was completely naked, with clothes scattered around it. The old woman and her grandson were gone. The window was open. They must have slipped out through the window because the door had been locked from the inside.
But how could the boy have carried his invalid grandmother from a second story window to the ground? It was preposterous. Again Herr Skopf searched the small room. He noticed that the bed was pulled well away from the wall—why? He looked beneath it again for the third or fourth time. The two were gone, and yet his judgment told him that the old lady could not have gone without porters to carry her down as they had carried her up the previous day.
But how could the boy have carried his sick grandmother from a second-story window to the ground? It was absurd. Again, Herr Skopf searched the small room. He noticed that the bed was moved far away from the wall—why? He looked underneath it again for the third or fourth time. The two were gone, but his instincts told him that the old lady couldn't have left without someone to help carry her down, just like they had when they brought her up the day before.
Further search deepened the mystery. All the clothing of the two was still in the room—if they had gone then they must have gone naked or in their night clothes. Herr Skopf shook his head; then he scratched it. He was baffled. He had never heard of Sherlock Holmes or he would have lost no time in invoking the aid of that celebrated sleuth, for here was a real mystery: An old woman—an invalid who had to be carried from the ship to her room in the hotel—and a handsome lad, her grandson, had entered a room on the second floor of his hostelry the day before. They had had their evening meal served in their room—that was the last that had been seen of them. At nine the following morning the corpse of a strange man had been the sole occupant of that room. No boat had left the harbor in the meantime—there was not a railroad within hundreds of miles—there was no other white settlement that the two could reach under several days of arduous marching accompanied by a well-equipped safari. They had simply vanished into thin air, for the native he had sent to inspect the ground beneath the open window had just returned to report that there was no sign of a footstep there, and what sort of creatures were they who could have dropped that distance to the soft turf without leaving spoor? Herr Skopf shuddered. Yes, it was a great mystery—there was something uncanny about the whole thing—he hated to think about it, and he dreaded the coming of night.
Further investigation deepened the mystery. All the clothing belonging to the two was still in the room—if they had left, they must have done so naked or in their night clothes. Herr Skopf shook his head and scratched it. He was confused. He had never heard of Sherlock Holmes, or else he would have quickly sought the help of that famous detective, because this was a real mystery: An old woman—an invalid who needed to be carried from the ship to her hotel room—and a handsome young man, her grandson, had entered a room on the second floor of his hotel the day before. They had ordered their evening meal to be served in their room—that was the last anyone had seen of them. By nine the next morning, the corpse of a strange man was the only occupant of that room. No boat had left the harbor in the meantime—there wasn't a railroad within hundreds of miles—there was no other white settlement that the two could reach after several days of difficult walking with a well-equipped safari. They had simply vanished into thin air, as the native he had sent to check the ground beneath the open window had just returned to report that there were no signs of a footprint there. What kind of creatures could have fallen that distance onto the soft grass without leaving any trace? Herr Skopf shuddered. Yes, it was a great mystery—there was something eerie about the whole situation—he hated to think about it, and he dreaded the coming of night.
It was a great mystery to Herr Skopf—and, doubtless, still is.
It was a big mystery to Mr. Skopf—and, undoubtedly, still is.
V.
Captain Armand Jacot of the Foreign Legion sat upon an outspread saddle blanket at the foot of a stunted palm tree. His broad shoulders and his close-cropped head rested in luxurious ease against the rough bole of the palm. His long legs were stretched straight before him overlapping the meager blanket, his spurs buried in the sandy soil of the little desert oasis. The captain was taking his ease after a long day of weary riding across the shifting sands of the desert.
Captain Armand Jacot of the Foreign Legion sat on a spread-out saddle blanket at the base of a small palm tree. His broad shoulders and closely cropped hair rested comfortably against the rough trunk of the palm. His long legs were stretched out in front of him, overlapping the thin blanket, with his spurs dug into the sandy ground of the small desert oasis. The captain was relaxing after a long day of tiring riding across the shifting desert sands.
Lazily he puffed upon his cigarette and watched his orderly who was preparing his evening meal. Captain Armand Jacot was well satisfied with himself and the world. A little to his right rose the noisy activity of his troop of sun-tanned veterans, released for the time from the irksome trammels of discipline, relaxing tired muscles, laughing, joking, and smoking as they, too, prepared to eat after a twelve-hour fast. Among them, silent and taciturn, squatted five white-robed Arabs, securely bound and under heavy guard.
Lazily, he puffed on his cigarette and watched his orderly prepare his evening meal. Captain Armand Jacot felt good about himself and the world. Just to his right, his troop of sun-tanned veterans was bustling with noisy activity, enjoying a break from the annoying constraints of discipline, relaxing their tired muscles, laughing, joking, and smoking as they got ready to eat after a twelve-hour fast. Among them, silent and reserved, sat five white-robed Arabs, securely tied up and heavily guarded.
It was the sight of these that filled Captain Armand Jacot with the pleasurable satisfaction of a duty well-performed. For a long, hot, gaunt month he and his little troop had scoured the places of the desert waste in search of a band of marauders to the sin-stained account of which were charged innumerable thefts of camels, horses, and goats, as well as murders enough to have sent the whole unsavory gang to the guillotine several times over.
It was the sight of these that made Captain Armand Jacot feel a pleasing sense of fulfillment from a job well done. For a long, hot, exhausting month, he and his small team had searched the barren stretches of the desert for a group of bandits responsible for countless thefts of camels, horses, and goats, along with enough murders to have sent the entire unsavory gang to the guillotine several times over.
A week before, he had come upon them. In the ensuing battle he had lost two of his own men, but the punishment inflicted upon the marauders had been severe almost to extinction. A half dozen, perhaps, had escaped; but the balance, with the exception of the five prisoners, had expiated their crimes before the nickel jacketed bullets of the legionaries. And, best of all, the ring leader, Achmet ben Houdin, was among the prisoners.
A week earlier, he had encountered them. In the battle that followed, he lost two of his men, but the punishment dealt to the marauders was almost complete annihilation. Possibly half a dozen managed to escape; however, the rest, except for the five prisoners, paid for their crimes with their lives at the hands of the legionaries' nickel-jacketed bullets. And the best part was that the ringleader, Achmet ben Houdin, was among the prisoners.
From the prisoners Captain Jacot permitted his mind to traverse the remaining miles of sand to the little garrison post where, upon the morrow, he should find awaiting him with eager welcome his wife and little daughter. His eyes softened to the memory of them, as they always did. Even now he could see the beauty of the mother reflected in the childish lines of little Jeanne’s face, and both those faces would be smiling up into his as he swung from his tired mount late the following afternoon. Already he could feel a soft cheek pressed close to each of his—velvet against leather.
From the prisoners, Captain Jacot allowed his mind to wander the last few miles of sand to the small garrison post where, the next day, he would be eagerly welcomed by his wife and young daughter. His eyes softened at the thought of them, as they always did. Even now, he could see the mother’s beauty reflected in the childlike features of little Jeanne’s face, and both of those faces would be smiling up at him as he dismounted from his tired horse late the following afternoon. He could already feel a soft cheek pressed against each of his—velvet against leather.
His reverie was broken in upon by the voice of a sentry summoning a non-commissioned officer. Captain Jacot raised his eyes. The sun had not yet set; but the shadows of the few trees huddled about the water hole and of his men and their horses stretched far away into the east across the now golden sand. The sentry was pointing in this direction, and the corporal, through narrowed lids, was searching the distance. Captain Jacot rose to his feet. He was not a man content to see through the eyes of others. He must see for himself. Usually he saw things long before others were aware that there was anything to see—a trait that had won for him the sobriquet of Hawk. Now he saw, just beyond the long shadows, a dozen specks rising and falling among the sands. They disappeared and reappeared, but always they grew larger. Jacot recognized them immediately. They were horsemen—horsemen of the desert. Already a sergeant was running toward him. The entire camp was straining its eyes into the distance. Jacot gave a few terse orders to the sergeant who saluted, turned upon his heel and returned to the men. Here he gathered a dozen who saddled their horses, mounted and rode out to meet the strangers. The remaining men disposed themselves in readiness for instant action. It was not entirely beyond the range of possibilities that the horsemen riding thus swiftly toward the camp might be friends of the prisoners bent upon the release of their kinsmen by a sudden attack. Jacot doubted this, however, since the strangers were evidently making no attempt to conceal their presence. They were galloping rapidly toward the camp in plain view of all. There might be treachery lurking beneath their fair appearance; but none who knew The Hawk would be so gullible as to hope to trap him thus.
His daydream was interrupted by the sound of a guard calling for a non-commissioned officer. Captain Jacot looked up. The sun wasn’t down yet; but the shadows of the few trees around the water hole, along with his men and their horses, stretched far into the east across the now golden sand. The guard was pointing in that direction, and the corporal, squinting, was scanning the distance. Captain Jacot got to his feet. He wasn’t the type to rely on others to see things. He needed to see for himself. Generally, he noticed things long before anyone else even realized there was something to notice—a quality that earned him the nickname Hawk. Now, he spotted, just beyond the long shadows, a dozen tiny figures bobbing up and down in the sand. They vanished and reappeared, but they kept getting closer. Jacot recognized them immediately. They were horsemen—desert riders. A sergeant was already running toward him. The entire camp was straining to see into the distance. Jacot gave a few quick orders to the sergeant, who saluted, turned on his heel, and returned to the men. He gathered a dozen, who saddled their horses, mounted up, and rode out to meet the newcomers. The rest of the men got ready for immediate action. It wasn’t entirely out of the question that the horsemen racing toward the camp could be friends of the prisoners, planning a surprise rescue. However, Jacot doubted this, as the strangers were clearly making no effort to hide their presence. They were galloping straight toward the camp, visible to everyone. There could be deceit hidden behind their friendly appearance, but anyone who knew The Hawk wouldn’t be naive enough to think they could trick him like that.
The sergeant with his detail met the Arabs two hundred yards from the camp. Jacot could see him in conversation with a tall, white-robed figure—evidently the leader of the band. Presently the sergeant and this Arab rode side by side toward camp. Jacot awaited them. The two reined in and dismounted before him.
The sergeant and his team encountered the Arabs two hundred yards from the camp. Jacot could see him talking to a tall figure in a white robe—clearly the leader of the group. Soon, the sergeant and this Arab rode side by side back to camp. Jacot waited for them. The two pulled back their reins and got off their horses in front of him.
“Sheik Amor ben Khatour,” announced the sergeant by way of introduction.
“Sheik Amor ben Khatour,” the sergeant announced for the introduction.
Captain Jacot eyed the newcomer. He was acquainted with nearly every principal Arab within a radius of several hundred miles. This man he never had seen. He was a tall, weather beaten, sour looking man of sixty or more. His eyes were narrow and evil. Captain Jacot did not relish his appearance.
Captain Jacot looked at the newcomer. He knew almost every main Arab within a few hundred miles. This man was someone he had never seen before. He was a tall, weathered, grumpy-looking guy, probably in his sixties. His eyes were narrow and menacing. Captain Jacot didn't like his vibe.
“Well?” he asked, tentatively.
“Well?” he asked, nervously.
The Arab came directly to the point.
The Arab got straight to the point.
“Achmet ben Houdin is my sister’s son,” he said. “If you will give him into my keeping I will see that he sins no more against the laws of the French.”
“Achmet ben Houdin is my sister’s son,” he said. “If you give him to me, I’ll make sure he doesn’t break the laws of the French anymore.”
Jacot shook his head. “That cannot be,” he replied. “I must take him back with me. He will be properly and fairly tried by a civil court. If he is innocent he will be released.”
Jacot shook his head. “That can't happen,” he said. “I have to take him back with me. He will be properly and fairly tried in a civil court. If he's innocent, he will be released.”
“And if he is not innocent?” asked the Arab.
“And what if he’s not innocent?” asked the Arab.
“He is charged with many murders. For any one of these, if he is proved guilty, he will have to die.”
“He is charged with several murders. For any one of them, if he is found guilty, he will have to face the death penalty.”
The Arab’s left hand was hidden beneath his burnous. Now he withdrew it disclosing a large goatskin purse, bulging and heavy with coins. He opened the mouth of the purse and let a handful of the contents trickle into the palm of his right hand—all were pieces of good French gold. From the size of the purse and its bulging proportions Captain Jacot concluded that it must contain a small fortune. Sheik Amor ben Khatour dropped the spilled gold pieces one by one back into the purse. Jacot was eyeing him narrowly. They were alone. The sergeant, having introduced the visitor, had withdrawn to some little distance—his back was toward them. Now the sheik, having returned all the gold pieces, held the bulging purse outward upon his open palm toward Captain Jacot.
The Arab's left hand was hidden under his cloak. Now he pulled it out, revealing a large goatskin purse, full and heavy with coins. He opened the purse and let a handful of coins fall into his right palm—all were pieces of high-quality French gold. By the size and fullness of the purse, Captain Jacot figured it must hold a small fortune. Sheik Amor ben Khatour dropped the spilled gold coins back into the purse one by one. Jacot was watching him closely. They were alone. The sergeant, having introduced the visitor, had stepped back a bit—his back was turned to them. Now the sheik, having returned all the gold coins, held the bulging purse out on his open palm towards Captain Jacot.
“Achmet ben Houdin, my sister’s son, MIGHT escape tonight,” he said. “Eh?”
“Achmet ben Houdin, my sister’s son, might escape tonight,” he said. “Huh?”
Captain Armand Jacot flushed to the roots of his close-cropped hair. Then he went very white and took a half-step toward the Arab. His fists were clenched. Suddenly he thought better of whatever impulse was moving him.
Captain Armand Jacot turned bright red from the roots of his closely cropped hair. Then he paled significantly and took a half-step toward the Arab. His fists were tight. Suddenly, he reconsidered whatever impulse had been driving him.
“Sergeant!” he called. The non-commissioned officer hurried toward him, saluting as his heels clicked together before his superior.
“Sergeant!” he called. The non-commissioned officer rushed toward him, saluting as his heels clicked together in front of his superior.
“Take this black dog back to his people,” he ordered. “See that they leave at once. Shoot the first man who comes within range of camp tonight.”
“Take this black dog back to his people,” he commanded. “Make sure they leave immediately. Shoot the first man who comes within range of the camp tonight.”
Sheik Amor ben Khatour drew himself up to his full height. His evil eyes narrowed. He raised the bag of gold level with the eyes of the French officer.
Sheik Amor ben Khatour stood tall. His sinister eyes narrowed. He held the bag of gold at eye level with the French officer.
“You will pay more than this for the life of Achmet ben Houdin, my sister’s son,” he said. “And as much again for the name that you have called me and a hundred fold in sorrow in the bargain.”
“You will pay more than this for the life of Achmet ben Houdin, my sister’s son,” he said. “And just as much again for the name you called me, along with a hundred times that in sorrow on top of it.”
“Get out of here!” growled Captain Armand Jacot, “before I kick you out.”
“Get out of here!” snarled Captain Armand Jacot, “before I throw you out.”
All of this happened some three years before the opening of this tale. The trail of Achmet ben Houdin and his accomplices is a matter of record—you may verify it if you care to. He met the death he deserved, and he met it with the stoicism of the Arab.
All of this happened about three years before this story begins. The trail of Achmet ben Houdin and his partners is well-documented—you can check it if you're interested. He met the end he deserved, facing it with the stoicism of an Arab.
A month later little Jeanne Jacot, the seven-year-old daughter of Captain Armand Jacot, mysteriously disappeared. Neither the wealth of her father and mother, or all the powerful resources of the great republic were able to wrest the secret of her whereabouts from the inscrutable desert that had swallowed her and her abductor.
A month later, little Jeanne Jacot, the seven-year-old daughter of Captain Armand Jacot, mysteriously vanished. Neither her parents' wealth nor all the resources of the great republic could uncover the mystery of her whereabouts from the impenetrable desert that had taken her and her kidnapper.
A reward of such enormous proportions was offered that many adventurers were attracted to the hunt. This was no case for the modern detective of civilization, yet several of these threw themselves into the search—the bones of some are already bleaching beneath the African sun upon the silent sands of the Sahara.
A reward of such a huge amount was offered that many adventurers were drawn to the hunt. This wasn't a job for the modern detective of civilization, yet several of them jumped into the search—the remains of some are already bleaching under the African sun on the silent sands of the Sahara.
Two Swedes, Carl Jenssen and Sven Malbihn, after three years of following false leads at last gave up the search far to the south of the Sahara to turn their attention to the more profitable business of ivory poaching. In a great district they were already known for their relentless cruelty and their greed for ivory. The natives feared and hated them. The European governments in whose possessions they worked had long sought them; but, working their way slowly out of the north they had learned many things in the no-man’s-land south of the Sahara which gave them immunity from capture through easy avenues of escape that were unknown to those who pursued them. Their raids were sudden and swift. They seized ivory and retreated into the trackless wastes of the north before the guardians of the territory they raped could be made aware of their presence. Relentlessly they slaughtered elephants themselves as well as stealing ivory from the natives. Their following consisted of a hundred or more renegade Arabs and Negro slaves—a fierce, relentless band of cut-throats. Remember them—Carl Jenssen and Sven Malbihn, yellow-bearded, Swedish giants—for you will meet them later.
Two Swedes, Carl Jenssen and Sven Malbihn, after three years of chasing false leads, finally gave up their search far south of the Sahara and switched to the more lucrative business of ivory poaching. In a vast area, they had already gained a reputation for their relentless cruelty and greed for ivory. The locals feared and hated them. The European governments that owned the territories they operated in had been after them for a long time; however, as they made their way slowly out of the north, they learned many survival tricks in the no-man’s-land south of the Sahara that kept them from being caught, using escape routes unknown to their pursuers. Their attacks were sudden and swift. They grabbed ivory and disappeared into the desolate northern landscape before the guardians of the lands they plundered could even realize they were there. They relentlessly killed elephants themselves and stole ivory from the locals. Their group consisted of over a hundred renegade Arabs and Black slaves—a fierce, merciless band of cutthroats. Remember them—Carl Jenssen and Sven Malbihn, yellow-bearded Swedish giants—because you will encounter them later.
In the heart of the jungle, hidden away upon the banks of a small unexplored tributary of a large river that empties into the Atlantic not so far from the equator, lay a small, heavily palisaded village. Twenty palm-thatched, beehive huts sheltered its black population, while a half-dozen goat skin tents in the center of the clearing housed the score of Arabs who found shelter here while, by trading and raiding, they collected the cargoes which their ships of the desert bore northward twice each year to the market of Timbuktu.
In the middle of the jungle, tucked away along the banks of a small, untouched tributary of a big river that flows into the Atlantic not far from the equator, was a small, heavily fortified village. Twenty huts with palm-thatched roofs, shaped like beehives, provided shelter for its Black inhabitants, while a half-dozen goat skin tents in the center of the clearing housed the group of Arabs who sought refuge here as they traded and raided, gathering the goods that their desert ships carried north twice a year to the market in Timbuktu.
Playing before one of the Arab tents was a little girl of ten—a black-haired, black-eyed little girl who, with her nut-brown skin and graceful carriage looked every inch a daughter of the desert. Her little fingers were busily engaged in fashioning a skirt of grasses for a much-disheveled doll which a kindly disposed slave had made for her a year or two before. The head of the doll was rudely chipped from ivory, while the body was a rat skin stuffed with grass. The arms and legs were bits of wood, perforated at one end and sewn to the rat skin torso. The doll was quite hideous and altogether disreputable and soiled, but Meriem thought it the most beautiful and adorable thing in the whole world, which is not so strange in view of the fact that it was the only object within that world upon which she might bestow her confidence and her love.
Playing in front of one of the Arab tents was a ten-year-old girl—a little girl with black hair and black eyes who, with her tan skin and graceful posture, looked every bit like a daughter of the desert. Her tiny fingers were busy making a grass skirt for a very messy doll that a kind slave had made for her a year or two earlier. The doll's head was crudely carved from ivory, while its body was a rat's skin stuffed with grass. The arms and legs were pieces of wood, poked through at one end and sewn to the rat skin body. The doll was quite ugly and completely unkempt and dirty, but Meriem thought it was the most beautiful and lovable thing in the whole world, which isn’t surprising considering it was the only thing in that world she could trust and love.
Everyone else with whom Meriem came in contact was, almost without exception, either indifferent to her or cruel. There was, for example, the old black hag who looked after her, Mabunu—toothless, filthy and ill tempered. She lost no opportunity to cuff the little girl, or even inflict minor tortures upon her, such as pinching, or, as she had twice done, searing the tender flesh with hot coals. And there was The Sheik, her father. She feared him more than she did Mabunu. He often scolded her for nothing, quite habitually terminating his tirades by cruelly beating her, until her little body was black and blue.
Everyone Meriem came into contact with was almost always either indifferent to her or outright cruel. For instance, there was the old black hag who looked after her, Mabunu—she was toothless, dirty, and bad-tempered. She took every chance to slap the little girl or even inflict minor torments on her, like pinching or, as she had done twice, burning her delicate skin with hot coals. Then there was The Sheik, her father. She was more afraid of him than of Mabunu. He often scolded her for no reason and habitually ended his rants by brutally beating her until her small body was covered in bruises.
But when she was alone she was happy, playing with Geeka, or decking her hair with wild flowers, or making ropes of grasses. She was always busy and always singing—when they left her alone. No amount of cruelty appeared sufficient to crush the innate happiness and sweetness from her full little heart. Only when The Sheik was near was she quiet and subdued. Him she feared with a fear that was at times almost hysterical terror. She feared the gloomy jungle too—the cruel jungle that surrounded the little village with chattering monkeys and screaming birds by day and the roaring and coughing and moaning of the carnivora by night. Yes, she feared the jungle; but so much more did she fear The Sheik that many times it was in her childish head to run away, out into the terrible jungle forever rather than longer to face the ever present terror of her father.
But when she was alone, she felt happy, playing with Geeka, putting wildflowers in her hair, or making ropes out of grass. She was always busy and always singing—when they left her alone. No amount of cruelty seemed enough to take away the natural happiness and sweetness from her full little heart. Only when The Sheik was nearby did she go quiet and subdued. She feared him with a fear that sometimes felt almost like hysterical terror. She was also afraid of the gloomy jungle—the harsh jungle that surrounded the little village with chattering monkeys and screaming birds during the day, and the roaring, coughing, and moaning of predators at night. Yes, she feared the jungle; but she feared The Sheik even more. Many times, in her childish mind, she considered running away into the terrifying jungle forever rather than continue facing the constant fear of her father.
As she sat there this day before The Sheik’s goatskin tent, fashioning a skirt of grasses for Geeka, The Sheik appeared suddenly approaching. Instantly the look of happiness faded from the child’s face. She shrunk aside in an attempt to scramble from the path of the leathern-faced old Arab; but she was not quick enough. With a brutal kick the man sent her sprawling upon her face, where she lay quite still, tearless but trembling. Then, with an oath at her, the man passed into the tent. The old, black hag shook with appreciative laughter, disclosing an occasional and lonesome yellow fang.
As she sat there today in front of The Sheik’s goatskin tent, making a grass skirt for Geeka, The Sheik suddenly appeared. Instantly, the look of happiness vanished from the child’s face. She tried to move away and get out of the way of the rough-looking old Arab, but she wasn’t quick enough. With a brutal kick, he knocked her down onto her face, where she lay completely still, tearless but shaking. Then, cursing at her, he went into the tent. The old, black woman shook with amused laughter, revealing a lonely yellow fang.
When she was sure The Sheik had gone, the little girl crawled to the shady side of the tent, where she lay quite still, hugging Geeka close to her breast, her little form racked at long intervals with choking sobs. She dared not cry aloud, since that would have brought The Sheik upon her again. The anguish in her little heart was not alone the anguish of physical pain; but that infinitely more pathetic anguish—of love denied a childish heart that yearns for love.
When she was sure The Sheik had left, the little girl crawled to the shady side of the tent, where she lay still, hugging Geeka tightly to her chest, her small body shaking with quiet sobs. She couldn’t cry out, as that would have brought The Sheik back to her. The pain in her little heart wasn’t just from physical hurt; it was that much deeper pain—of love not received from a child’s heart that longs for affection.
Little Meriem could scarce recall any other existence than that of the stern cruelty of The Sheik and Mabunu. Dimly, in the back of her childish memory there lurked a blurred recollection of a gentle mother; but Meriem was not sure but that even this was but a dream picture induced by her own desire for the caresses she never received, but which she lavished upon the much loved Geeka. Never was such a spoiled child as Geeka. Its little mother, far from fashioning her own conduct after the example set her by her father and nurse, went to the extreme of indulgence. Geeka was kissed a thousand times a day. There was play in which Geeka was naughty; but the little mother never punished. Instead, she caressed and fondled; her attitude influenced solely by her own pathetic desire for love.
Little Meriem could hardly remember any other life besides the harsh cruelty of The Sheik and Mabunu. Faintly, in the back of her young mind, there was a blurred image of a kind mother; but Meriem wasn't sure if that was just a fantasy created by her longing for affection she never received but lavished on her beloved Geeka. There had never been a more spoiled child than Geeka. Her little mother, rather than following the example set by her father and nurse, went to the extreme of indulgence. Geeka was kissed a thousand times a day. There were times when Geeka was mischievous, but the little mother never punished her. Instead, she showered her with affection; her behavior driven solely by her own desperate need for love.
Now, as she pressed Geeka close to her, her sobs lessened gradually, until she was able to control her voice, and pour out her misery into the ivory ear of her only confidante.
Now, as she held Geeka close to her, her sobs gradually grew quieter, until she could regain control of her voice and share her sorrow into the ivory ear of her one confidante.
“Geeka loves Meriem,” she whispered. “Why does The Sheik, my father, not love me, too? Am I so naughty? I try to be good; but I never know why he strikes me, so I cannot tell what I have done which displeases him. Just now he kicked me and hurt me so, Geeka; but I was only sitting before the tent making a skirt for you. That must be wicked, or he would not have kicked me for it. But why is it wicked, Geeka? Oh dear! I do not know, I do not know. I wish, Geeka, that I were dead. Yesterday the hunters brought in the body of El Adrea. El Adrea was quite dead. No more will he slink silently upon his unsuspecting prey. No more will his great head and his maned shoulders strike terror to the hearts of the grass eaters at the drinking ford by night. No more will his thundering roar shake the ground. El Adrea is dead. They beat his body terribly when it was brought into the village; but El Adrea did not mind. He did not feel the blows, for he was dead. When I am dead, Geeka, neither shall I feel the blows of Mabunu, or the kicks of The Sheik, my father. Then shall I be happy. Oh, Geeka, how I wish that I were dead!”
“Geeka loves Meriem,” she whispered. “Why doesn’t The Sheik, my dad, love me too? Am I really that bad? I try to be good, but I never understand why he punishes me, so I can’t figure out what I did to upset him. Just now he kicked me and hurt me so much, Geeka; but I was just sitting in front of the tent making a skirt for you. That must be wrong, or he wouldn’t have kicked me for it. But why is it wrong, Geeka? Oh dear! I don’t know, I don’t know. I wish, Geeka, that I were dead. Yesterday, the hunters brought in the body of El Adrea. El Adrea was completely dead. He will no longer sneak silently up on his unsuspecting prey. No more will his huge head and muscular shoulders instill fear in the hearts of the grass eaters at the drinking ford at night. No more will his thunderous roar shake the ground. El Adrea is dead. They beat his body badly when it was brought into the village, but El Adrea didn’t care. He didn’t feel the blows because he was dead. When I’m dead, Geeka, I won’t feel the hits from Mabunu or the kicks from The Sheik, my dad. Then I’ll be happy. Oh, Geeka, how I wish that I were dead!”
If Geeka contemplated a remonstrance it was cut short by sounds of altercation beyond the village gates. Meriem listened. With the curiosity of childhood she would have liked to have run down there and learn what it was that caused the men to talk so loudly. Others of the village were already trooping in the direction of the noise. But Meriem did not dare. The Sheik would be there, doubtless, and if he saw her it would be but another opportunity to abuse her, so Meriem lay still and listened.
If Geeka thought about speaking up, it was interrupted by the sounds of a fight outside the village gates. Meriem listened. With the curiosity of youth, she wanted to run down there and find out what had the men shouting so much. Others from the village were already heading toward the noise. But Meriem didn't dare to go. The Sheik would definitely be there, and if he saw her, it would just be another chance for him to mistreat her, so Meriem stayed still and listened.
Presently she heard the crowd moving up the street toward The Sheik’s tent. Cautiously she stuck her little head around the edge of the tent. She could not resist the temptation, for the sameness of the village life was monotonous, and she craved diversion. What she saw was two strangers—white men. They were alone, but as they approached she learned from the talk of the natives that surrounded them that they possessed a considerable following that was camped outside the village. They were coming to palaver with The Sheik.
Right now, she heard the crowd moving up the street towards The Sheik’s tent. Carefully, she peeked her little head around the edge of the tent. She couldn't resist the temptation; the routine of village life was dull, and she wanted some excitement. What she saw were two strangers—white men. They were alone, but as they got closer, she overheard the locals surrounding them say that they had a significant following camped outside the village. They were coming to talk to The Sheik.
The old Arab met them at the entrance to his tent. His eyes narrowed wickedly when they had appraised the newcomers. They stopped before him, exchanging greetings. They had come to trade for ivory they said. The Sheik grunted. He had no ivory. Meriem gasped. She knew that in a near-by hut the great tusks were piled almost to the roof. She poked her little head further forward to get a better view of the strangers. How white their skins! How yellow their great beards!
The old Arab greeted them at the entrance to his tent. His eyes narrowed mischievously as he assessed the newcomers. They paused before him, exchanging pleasantries. They had come to trade for ivory, they said. The Sheik grunted. He had no ivory. Meriem gasped. She knew that in a nearby hut, the massive tusks were stacked almost to the ceiling. She leaned her little head forward to get a better look at the strangers. How pale their skin was! How yellow their big beards!
Suddenly one of them turned his eyes in her direction. She tried to dodge back out of sight, for she feared all men; but he saw her. Meriem noticed the look of almost shocked surprise that crossed his face. The Sheik saw it too, and guessed the cause of it.
Suddenly, one of them looked over at her. She tried to duck back out of sight because she was scared of all men, but he noticed her. Meriem saw the look of almost shocked surprise on his face. The Sheik noticed it too and figured out why he was surprised.
“I have no ivory,” he repeated. “I do not wish to trade. Go away. Go now.”
“I don’t have any ivory,” he said again. “I don’t want to trade. Leave. Go now.”
He stepped from his tent and almost pushed the strangers about in the direction of the gates. They demurred, and then The Sheik threatened. It would have been suicide to have disobeyed, so the two men turned and left the village, making their way immediately to their own camp.
He stepped out of his tent and nearly shoved the strangers toward the gates. They hesitated, and then The Sheik made a threat. It would have been foolish to disobey, so the two men turned and left the village, heading straight to their own camp.
The Sheik returned to his tent; but he did not enter it. Instead he walked to the side where little Meriem lay close to the goat skin wall, very frightened. The Sheik stooped and clutched her by the arm. Viciously he jerked her to her feet, dragged her to the entrance of the tent, and shoved her viciously within. Following her he again seized her, beating her ruthlessly.
The Sheik went back to his tent, but he didn’t go inside. Instead, he walked over to where little Meriem was huddled next to the goat skin wall, looking very scared. The Sheik bent down and grabbed her by the arm. He roughly pulled her to her feet, dragged her to the entrance of the tent, and shoved her inside. After following her, he grabbed her again and beat her mercilessly.
“Stay within!” he growled. “Never let the strangers see thy face. Next time you show yourself to strangers I shall kill you!”
“Stay inside!” he growled. “Never let strangers see your face. If you show yourself to strangers again, I will kill you!”
With a final vicious cuff he knocked the child into a far corner of the tent, where she lay stifling her moans, while The Sheik paced to and fro muttering to himself. At the entrance sat Mabunu, muttering and chuckling.
With one last brutal hit, he sent the child crashing into a distant corner of the tent, where she lay trying to hold back her cries, while The Sheik walked back and forth, mumbling to himself. At the entrance sat Mabunu, muttering and laughing to himself.
In the camp of the strangers one was speaking rapidly to the other.
In the camp of the strangers, one person was talking quickly to the other.
“There is no doubt of it, Malbihn,” he was saying. “Not the slightest; but why the old scoundrel hasn’t claimed the reward long since is what puzzles me.”
“There’s no doubt about it, Malbihn,” he was saying. “Not the slightest; but what puzzles me is why that old scoundrel hasn’t claimed the reward long ago.”
“There are some things dearer to an Arab, Jenssen, than money,” returned the first speaker—“revenge is one of them.”
“There are some things that matter more to an Arab, Jenssen, than money,” replied the first speaker—“revenge is one of them.”
“Anyhow it will not harm to try the power of gold,” replied Jenssen.
"Anyway, it won't hurt to test the power of gold," replied Jenssen.
Malbihn shrugged.
Malbihn shrugged.
“Not on The Sheik,” he said. “We might try it on one of his people; but The Sheik will not part with his revenge for gold. To offer it to him would only confirm his suspicions that we must have awakened when we were talking to him before his tent. If we got away with our lives, then, we should be fortunate.”
“Not on The Sheik,” he said. “We could try it on one of his people; but The Sheik won’t trade his revenge for money. To offer it to him would just make him think we must have awakened something while we were talking to him in front of his tent. If we get away with our lives, then we should consider ourselves lucky.”
“Well, try bribery, then,” assented Jenssen.
"Well, give bribery a shot, then," Jenssen agreed.
But bribery failed—grewsomely. The tool they selected after a stay of several days in their camp outside the village was a tall, old headman of The Sheik’s native contingent. He fell to the lure of the shining metal, for he had lived upon the coast and knew the power of gold. He promised to bring them what they craved, late that night.
But bribery backfired—horribly. The person they chose after spending several days in their camp outside the village was a tall, old leader of The Sheik’s local group. He couldn't resist the temptation of the shiny metal, as he had lived on the coast and understood the influence of gold. He promised to deliver what they wanted later that night.
Immediately after dark the two white men commenced to make arrangements to break camp. By midnight all was prepared. The porters lay beside their loads, ready to swing them aloft at a moment’s notice. The armed askaris loitered between the balance of the safari and the Arab village, ready to form a rear guard for the retreat that was to begin the moment that the head man brought that which the white masters awaited.
Immediately after dark, the two white men started getting ready to break camp. By midnight, everything was set. The porters lay next to their loads, ready to pick them up at a moment’s notice. The armed askaris hung out between the rest of the safari and the Arab village, prepared to serve as a rear guard for the retreat that would start as soon as the head man brought back what the white masters were waiting for.
Presently there came the sound of footsteps along the path from the village. Instantly the askaris and the whites were on the alert. More than a single man was approaching. Jenssen stepped forward and challenged the newcomers in a low whisper.
Presently, the sound of footsteps echoed along the path from the village. Immediately, the askaris and the white people were on high alert. More than one person was approaching. Jenssen stepped forward and quietly challenged the newcomers.
“Who comes?” he queried.
“Who’s there?” he asked.
“Mbeeda,” came the reply.
“Mbeeda,” was the response.
Mbeeda was the name of the traitorous head man. Jenssen was satisfied, though he wondered why Mbeeda had brought others with him. Presently he understood. The thing they fetched lay upon a litter borne by two men. Jenssen cursed beneath his breath. Could the fool be bringing them a corpse? They had paid for a living prize!
Mbeeda was the name of the treacherous leader. Jenssen felt satisfied, but he couldn't figure out why Mbeeda had brought others along. Soon, he realized. The thing they carried was on a litter held by two men. Jenssen cursed quietly to himself. Could the idiot be bringing them a corpse? They had paid for a living prize!
The bearers came to a halt before the white men.
The bearers stopped in front of the white men.
“This has your gold purchased,” said one of the two. They set the litter down, turned and vanished into the darkness toward the village. Malbihn looked at Jenssen, a crooked smile twisting his lips. The thing upon the litter was covered with a piece of cloth.
“This has your gold bought,” said one of the two. They set the litter down, turned, and disappeared into the darkness towards the village. Malbihn looked at Jenssen, a crooked smile twisting his lips. The thing on the litter was covered with a piece of cloth.
“Well?” queried the latter. “Raise the covering and see what you have bought. Much money shall we realize on a corpse—especially after the six months beneath the burning sun that will be consumed in carrying it to its destination!”
“Well?” asked the other. “Lift the covering and see what you’ve bought. We’ll make a lot of money on a corpse—especially after six months under the burning sun that will be spent transporting it to its destination!”
“The fool should have known that we desired her alive,” grumbled Malbihn, grasping a corner of the cloth and jerking the cover from the thing that lay upon the litter.
“The fool should have known that we wanted her alive,” grumbled Malbihn, grabbing a corner of the cloth and yanking the cover off the thing that lay on the litter.
At sight of what lay beneath both men stepped back—involuntary oaths upon their lips—for there before them lay the dead body of Mbeeda, the faithless head man.
At the sight of what was underneath, both men stepped back, instinctively swearing under their breath—laying before them was the dead body of Mbeeda, the untrustworthy chief.
Five minutes later the safari of Jenssen and Malbihn was forcing its way rapidly toward the west, nervous askaris guarding the rear from the attack they momentarily expected.
Five minutes later, the safari of Jenssen and Malbihn was pushing quickly toward the west, while anxious askaris kept watch at the back, anticipating an imminent attack.
VI.
His first night in the jungle was one which the son of Tarzan held longest in his memory. No savage carnivora menaced him. There was never a sign of hideous barbarian. Or, if there were, the boy’s troubled mind took no cognizance of them. His conscience was harassed by the thought of his mother’s suffering. Self-blame plunged him into the depths of misery. The killing of the American caused him little or no remorse. The fellow had earned his fate. Jack’s regret on this score was due mainly to the effect which the death of Condon had had upon his own plans. Now he could not return directly to his parents as he had planned. Fear of the primitive, borderland law, of which he had read highly colored, imaginary tales, had thrust him into the jungle a fugitive. He dared not return to the coast at this point—not that he was so greatly influenced through personal fear as from a desire to shield his father and mother from further sorrow and from the shame of having their honored name dragged through the sordid degradation of a murder trial.
His first night in the jungle was the one that stuck with the son of Tarzan the most. No wild predators threatened him. There was no sign of any horrifying savages. Or, if there were, the boy's troubled mind didn’t notice them. He was consumed with thoughts of his mother's suffering. He blamed himself and plunged into deep misery. The killing of the American didn’t trouble him much; the guy had brought it on himself. Jack's regret about this was mostly because Condon’s death messed up his plans. Now he couldn't go back to his parents as he had intended. Fear of the primitive laws he had read exaggerated stories about drove him into the jungle as a fugitive. He couldn't risk returning to the coast at this point—not because of personal fear, but to protect his father and mother from more pain and the shame of having their good name dragged through the ugliness of a murder trial.
With returning day the boy’s spirits rose. With the rising sun rose new hope within his breast. He would return to civilization by another way. None would guess that he had been connected with the killing of the stranger in the little out-of-the-way trading post upon a remote shore.
With the return of daylight, the boy’s spirits lifted. As the sun came up, so did new hope in his heart. He planned to get back to civilization via a different route. No one would suspect that he had been involved in the death of the stranger at the small, secluded trading post on the distant shore.
Crouched close to the great ape in the crotch of a tree the boy had shivered through an almost sleepless night. His light pajamas had been but little protection from the chill dampness of the jungle, and only that side of him which was pressed against the warm body of his shaggy companion approximated to comfort. And so he welcomed the rising sun with its promise of warmth as well as light—the blessed sun, dispeller of physical and mental ills.
Crouched close to the great ape in the fork of a tree, the boy had shivered through an almost sleepless night. His lightweight pajamas offered little protection against the chilly dampness of the jungle, and only the side pressed against the warm body of his shaggy companion provided any comfort. So he welcomed the rising sun with its promise of warmth and light—the blessed sun, which dispels both physical and mental troubles.
He shook Akut into wakefulness.
He shook Akut awake.
“Come,” he said. “I am cold and hungry. We will search for food, out there in the sunlight,” and he pointed to an open plain, dotted with stunted trees and strewn with jagged rock.
“Come,” he said. “I’m cold and hungry. Let’s look for food out there in the sunlight,” and he pointed to an open plain, scattered with short trees and covered in sharp rocks.
The boy slid to the ground as he spoke, but the ape first looked carefully about, sniffing the morning air. Then, satisfied that no danger lurked near, he descended slowly to the ground beside the boy.
The boy dropped to the ground as he talked, but the ape first scanned the area, sniffing the morning air. Once he was sure there was no danger nearby, he slowly came down to the ground next to the boy.
“Numa, and Sabor his mate, feast upon those who descend first and look afterward, while those who look first and descend afterward live to feast themselves.” Thus the old ape imparted to the son of Tarzan the boy’s first lesson in jungle lore. Side by side they set off across the rough plain, for the boy wished first to be warm. The ape showed him the best places to dig for rodents and worms; but the lad only gagged at the thought of devouring the repulsive things. Some eggs they found, and these he sucked raw, as also he ate roots and tubers which Akut unearthed. Beyond the plain and across a low bluff they came upon water—brackish, ill-smelling stuff in a shallow water hole, the sides and bottom of which were trampled by the feet of many beasts. A herd of zebra galloped away as they approached.
“Numa and his companion Sabor feast on those who go down first and only look afterward, while those who check first and go down later enjoy their own feast.” This was the first lesson in jungle survival that the old ape taught the son of Tarzan. They started off together across the rough plain because the boy wanted to feel warm first. The ape showed him the best spots to dig for rodents and worms, but the boy could only gag at the thought of eating those disgusting things. They found some eggs, which he sucked raw, and he also ate roots and tubers that Akut dug up. Beyond the plain, they reached a low bluff and came across some water—brackish and smelly in a shallow puddle, with the sides and bottom trampled by many animals. A herd of zebras galloped away as they got closer.
The lad was too thirsty by now to cavil at anything even remotely resembling water, so he drank his fill while Akut stood with raised head, alert for any danger. Before the ape drank he cautioned the boy to be watchful; but as he drank he raised his head from time to time to cast a quick glance toward a clump of bushes a hundred yards away upon the opposite side of the water hole. When he had done he rose and spoke to the boy, in the language that was their common heritage—the tongue of the great apes.
The boy was too thirsty by now to complain about anything that even slightly resembled water, so he drank as much as he wanted while Akut stood with his head raised, ready for any danger. Before the ape drank, he warned the boy to stay alert; but while he drank, he lifted his head occasionally to quickly check a group of bushes a hundred yards away on the other side of the water hole. Once he finished, he stood up and spoke to the boy in the language they both shared—the tongue of the great apes.
“There is no danger near?” he asked.
“There’s no danger around?” he asked.
“None,” replied the boy. “I saw nothing move while you drank.”
“None,” replied the boy. “I didn’t see anything move while you drank.”
“Your eyes will help you but little in the jungle,” said the ape.
“Your eyes won't help you much in the jungle,” said the ape.
“Here, if you would live, you must depend upon your ears and your nose but most upon your nose. When we came down to drink I knew that no danger lurked near upon this side of the water hole, for else the zebras would have discovered it and fled before we came; but upon the other side toward which the wind blows danger might lie concealed. We could not smell it for its scent is being blown in the other direction, and so I bent my ears and eyes down wind where my nose cannot travel.”
“Here, if you want to survive, you have to rely on your ears and your sense of smell, but mostly on your nose. When we came down to drink, I knew there was no danger nearby on this side of the watering hole, because if there had been, the zebras would have picked up on it and run away before we arrived; however, on the other side, where the wind is blowing, danger could be hiding. We couldn't smell it since the scent is being carried away from us, so I focused my ears and eyes downwind where my nose can't reach.”
“And you found—nothing?” asked the lad, with a laugh.
“And you found—nothing?” the young man asked, laughing.
“I found Numa crouching in that clump of bushes where the tall grasses grow,” and Akut pointed.
“I found Numa crouching in that patch of bushes where the tall grasses grow,” Akut pointed out.
“A lion?” exclaimed the boy. “How do you know? I can see nothing.”
“A lion?” the boy exclaimed. “How do you know? I can’t see anything.”
“Numa is there, though,” replied the great ape. “First I heard him sigh. To you the sigh of Numa may sound no different from the other noises which the wind makes among the grasses and the trees; but later you must learn to know the sigh of Numa. Then I watched and at last I saw the tall grasses moving at one point to a force other than the force of the wind. See, they are spread there upon either side of Numa’s great body, and as he breathes—you see? You see the little motion at either side that is not caused by the wind—the motion that none of the other grasses have?”
“Numa is there, though,” said the great ape. “First, I heard him sigh. To you, Numa's sigh might sound just like the other noises the wind makes among the grasses and the trees; but later you’ll need to recognize Numa’s sigh. Then I watched, and finally I saw the tall grasses moving at one spot due to a force other than the wind. Look, they’re bending to either side of Numa’s huge body, and as he breathes—you see? You notice the little movement on either side that isn’t caused by the wind—the movement that none of the other grasses have?”
The boy strained his eyes—better eyes than the ordinary boy inherits—and at last he gave a little exclamation of discovery.
The boy strained his eyes—better eyes than what an ordinary boy gets—and finally, he let out a small sound of realization.
“Yes,” he said, “I see. He lies there,” and he pointed. “His head is toward us. Is he watching us?”
“Yes,” he said, “I see. He's lying there,” and he pointed. “His head is facing us. Is he watching us?”
“Numa is watching us,” replied Akut, “but we are in little danger, unless we approach too close, for he is lying upon his kill. His belly is almost full, or we should hear him crunching the bones. He is watching us in silence merely from curiosity. Presently he will resume his feeding or he will rise and come down to the water for a drink. As he neither fears or desires us he will not try to hide his presence from us; but now is an excellent time to learn to know Numa, for you must learn to know him well if you would live long in the jungle. Where the great apes are many Numa leaves us alone. Our fangs are long and strong, and we can fight; but when we are alone and he is hungry we are no match for him. Come, we will circle him and catch his scent. The sooner you learn to know it the better; but keep close to the trees, as we go around him, for Numa often does that which he is least expected to do. And keep your ears and your eyes and your nose open. Remember always that there may be an enemy behind every bush, in every tree and amongst every clump of jungle grass. While you are avoiding Numa do not run into the jaws of Sabor, his mate. Follow me,” and Akut set off in a wide circle about the water hole and the crouching lion.
“Numa is watching us,” Akut replied, “but we’re not in much danger unless we get too close because he’s lying on his kill. His belly is almost full, or we’d hear him crunching the bones. He’s just watching us out of curiosity. Soon, he’ll either go back to eating or get up to drink some water. Since he doesn’t fear us or want anything from us, he won’t try to hide from us; but now is a great time to learn about Numa, because you need to know him well if you want to survive in the jungle. Where there are many great apes, Numa leaves us alone. Our fangs are long and strong, and we can fight; but when we’re alone and he’s hungry, we’re no match for him. Come, we’ll circle around him and catch his scent. The sooner you recognize it, the better; but stay close to the trees as we go around him, because Numa often does the unexpected. And keep your ears, eyes, and nose open. Always remember that there could be an enemy behind every bush, in every tree, and among every clump of jungle grass. While you’re avoiding Numa, don’t run into the jaws of Sabor, his mate. Follow me,” and Akut started off in a wide circle around the water hole and the crouching lion.
The boy followed close upon his heels, his every sense upon the alert, his nerves keyed to the highest pitch of excitement. This was life! For the instant he forgot his resolutions of a few minutes past to hasten to the coast at some other point than that at which he had landed and make his way immediately back to London. He thought now only of the savage joy of living, and of pitting one’s wits and prowess against the wiles and might of the savage jungle brood which haunted the broad plains and the gloomy forest aisles of the great, untamed continent. He knew no fear. His father had had none to transmit to him; but honor and conscience he did have and these were to trouble him many times as they battled with his inherent love of freedom for possession of his soul.
The boy followed closely behind, every sense alert, his nerves buzzing with excitement. This was life! For a moment, he forgot his earlier decision to head to the coast at a different spot than where he had landed and to make his way back to London right away. He now thought only of the wild joy of living and of testing his skills and courage against the tricks and strength of the untamed jungle creatures that roamed the vast plains and the dark forest paths of the great, wild continent. He felt no fear. His father hadn’t passed any on to him; but he did carry honor and conscience within him, and those would challenge him many times as they wrestled with his deep-seated love of freedom for control of his soul.
They had passed but a short distance to the rear of Numa when the boy caught the unpleasant odor of the carnivore. His face lighted with a smile. Something told him that he would have known that scent among a myriad of others even if Akut had not told him that a lion lay near. There was a strange familiarity—a weird familiarity in it that made the short hairs rise at the nape of his neck, and brought his upper lip into an involuntary snarl that bared his fighting fangs. There was a sense of stretching of the skin about his ears, for all the world as though those members were flattening back against his skull in preparation for deadly combat. His skin tingled. He was aglow with a pleasurable sensation that he never before had known. He was, upon the instant, another creature—wary, alert, ready. Thus did the scent of Numa, the lion, transform the boy into a beast.
They had only just moved a short distance behind Numa when the boy picked up the unpleasant smell of the predator. His face lit up with a smile. Something told him that he would recognize that scent among a thousand others, even if Akut hadn’t mentioned that a lion was nearby. There was a strange familiarity to it that made the hair on the back of his neck stand up, and an involuntary snarl pulled back his upper lip, exposing his sharp teeth. He felt the skin around his ears tighten, as if they were flattening against his head in preparation for a fierce fight. His skin buzzed with excitement. He was filled with a thrilling sensation he had never felt before. In that moment, he became a different creature—cautious, alert, and prepared. So the scent of Numa, the lion, transformed the boy into a predator.
He had never seen a lion—his mother had gone to great pains to prevent it. But he had devoured countless pictures of them, and now he was ravenous to feast his eyes upon the king of beasts in the flesh. As he trailed Akut he kept an eye cocked over one shoulder, rearward, in the hope that Numa might rise from his kill and reveal himself. Thus it happened that he dropped some little way behind Akut, and the next he knew he was recalled suddenly to a contemplation of other matters than the hidden Numa by a shrill scream of warning from the Ape. Turning his eyes quickly in the direction of his companion, the boy saw that, standing in the path directly before him, which sent tremors of excitement racing along every nerve of his body. With body half-merging from a clump of bushes in which she must have lain hidden stood a sleek and beautiful lioness. Her yellow-green eyes were round and staring, boring straight into the eyes of the boy. Not ten paces separated them. Twenty paces behind the lioness stood the great ape, bellowing instructions to the boy and hurling taunts at the lioness in an evident effort to attract her attention from the lad while he gained the shelter of a near-by tree.
He had never seen a lion—his mother had worked hard to prevent it. But he had devoured countless pictures of them, and now he was eager to see the king of beasts in person. As he followed Akut, he kept glancing over his shoulder, hoping that Numa might come out from his kill and show himself. This distracted him enough that he began to fall behind Akut, and he was suddenly jolted back to reality by a sharp warning scream from the Ape. Quickly turning to look at his companion, the boy saw, standing directly in his path, a thrilling sight that sent excitement racing through every nerve of his body. Half-hidden in a clump of bushes, where she must have been lying in wait, stood a sleek and beautiful lioness. Her yellow-green eyes were wide and staring, locking onto the boy’s gaze. They were no more than ten paces apart. Twenty paces behind her stood the great ape, bellowing instructions to the boy and throwing taunts at the lioness in a clear attempt to draw her attention away from the boy while he made for the safety of a nearby tree.
But Sabor was not to be diverted. She had her eyes upon the lad. He stood between her and her mate, between her and the kill. It was suspicious. Probably he had ulterior designs upon her lord and master or upon the fruits of their hunting. A lioness is short tempered. Akut’s bellowing annoyed her. She uttered a little rumbling growl, taking a step toward the boy.
But Sabor wasn’t going to be distracted. She focused on the boy. He was standing between her and her mate, between her and the kill. That was suspicious. He probably had some hidden agenda regarding her lord and master or the spoils of their hunt. A lioness has a short fuse. Akut’s loud noises irritated her. She let out a low growl and took a step toward the boy.
“The tree!” screamed Akut.
“The tree!” yelled Akut.
The boy turned and fled, and at the same instant the lioness charged. The tree was but a few paces away. A limb hung ten feet from the ground, and as the boy leaped for it the lioness leaped for him. Like a monkey he pulled himself up and to one side. A great forepaw caught him a glancing blow at the hips—just grazing him. One curved talon hooked itself into the waist band of his pajama trousers, ripping them from him as the lioness sped by. Half-naked the lad drew himself to safety as the beast turned and leaped for him once more.
The boy turned and ran, and at the same moment, the lioness charged. The tree was only a few steps away. A branch hung ten feet off the ground, and as the boy jumped for it, the lioness jumped for him. Like a monkey, he pulled himself up and to the side. A huge paw grazed his hips—just barely missing him. One curved claw snagged the waistband of his pajama pants, tearing them off as the lioness ran past. Half-naked, the boy pulled himself to safety as the beast turned and lunged for him again.
Akut, from a near-by tree, jabbered and scolded, calling the lioness all manner of foul names. The boy, patterning his conduct after that of his preceptor, unstoppered the vials of his invective upon the head of the enemy, until in realization of the futility of words as weapons he bethought himself of something heavier to hurl. There was nothing but dead twigs and branches at hand, but these he flung at the upturned, snarling face of Sabor just as his father had before him twenty years ago, when as a boy he too had taunted and tantalized the great cats of the jungle.
Akut, from a nearby tree, chattered and scolded, throwing all kinds of insults at the lioness. The boy, mimicking his mentor's behavior, unleashed a stream of insults at the enemy until he realized that words weren't effective weapons. So he thought of something heavier to throw. There were only dead twigs and branches nearby, but he tossed them at Sabor's snarling face, just like his father had done twenty years earlier when he was a boy, teasing and provoking the great cats of the jungle.
The lioness fretted about the bole of the tree for a short time; but finally, either realizing the uselessness of her vigil, or prompted by the pangs of hunger, she stalked majestically away and disappeared in the brush that hid her lord, who had not once shown himself during the altercation.
The lioness paced around the base of the tree for a little while; but eventually, either understanding that her watch was pointless or driven by hunger, she walked away gracefully and vanished into the thicket that concealed her mate, who hadn’t shown himself even once during the confrontation.
Freed from their retreats Akut and the boy came to the ground, to take up their interrupted journey once more. The old ape scolded the lad for his carelessness.
Freed from their hiding spots, Akut and the boy returned to the ground to continue their interrupted journey. The old ape scolded the boy for his carelessness.
“Had you not been so intent upon the lion behind you you might have discovered the lioness much sooner than you did.”
“ If you hadn’t been so focused on the lion behind you, you might have noticed the lioness way sooner.”
“But you passed right by her without seeing her,” retorted the boy.
“But you walked right past her and didn’t even notice,” the boy replied.
Akut was chagrined.
Akut was embarrassed.
“It is thus,” he said, “that jungle folk die. We go cautiously for a lifetime, and then, just for an instant, we forget, and—” he ground his teeth in mimicry of the crunching of great jaws in flesh. “It is a lesson,” he resumed. “You have learned that you may not for too long keep your eyes and your ears and your nose all bent in the same direction.”
“It’s like this,” he said, “that’s how people in the jungle die. We stay careful our whole lives, and then, just for a moment, we forget, and—” he clenched his teeth, imitating the sound of big jaws crushing flesh. “It’s a lesson,” he continued. “You’ve learned that you can’t keep your eyes, ears, and nose all focused in the same direction for too long.”
That night the son of Tarzan was colder than he ever had been in all his life. The pajama trousers had not been heavy; but they had been much heavier than nothing. And the next day he roasted in the hot sun, for again their way led much across wide and treeless plains.
That night, Tarzan's son felt colder than he ever had in his life. The pajama pants weren’t heavy, but they were definitely heavier than nothing. The next day, he baked in the scorching sun, as their path once again took them across vast, treeless plains.
It was still in the boy’s mind to travel to the south, and circle back to the coast in search of another outpost of civilization. He had said nothing of this plan to Akut, for he knew that the old ape would look with displeasure upon any suggestion that savored of separation.
It was still on the boy’s mind to head south and come back to the coast looking for another settlement. He hadn’t mentioned this plan to Akut, knowing that the old ape would disapprove of anything that hinted at being apart.
For a month the two wandered on, the boy learning rapidly the laws of the jungle; his muscles adapting themselves to the new mode of life that had been thrust upon them. The thews of the sire had been transmitted to the son—it needed only the hardening of use to develop them. The lad found that it came quite naturally to him to swing through the trees. Even at great heights he never felt the slightest dizziness, and when he had caught the knack of the swing and the release, he could hurl himself through space from branch to branch with even greater agility than the heavier Akut.
For a month, the two wandered on, with the boy quickly learning the rules of the jungle; his muscles adapting to the new way of life that had been forced upon them. The strength of the father had been passed down to the son—it just needed to be toughened up through use to fully develop. The boy discovered that swinging through the trees came naturally to him. Even at great heights, he never felt the slightest dizziness, and once he mastered the swing and the release, he could launch himself from branch to branch with even more agility than the heavier Akut.
And with exposure came a toughening and hardening of his smooth, white skin, browning now beneath the sun and wind. He had removed his pajama jacket one day to bathe in a little stream that was too small to harbor crocodiles, and while he and Akut had been disporting themselves in the cool waters a monkey had dropped down from the over hanging trees, snatched up the boy’s single remaining article of civilized garmenture, and scampered away with it.
And with exposure came a toughening and hardening of his smooth, white skin, now browning under the sun and wind. One day, he took off his pajama jacket to swim in a small stream that was too tiny for crocodiles, and while he and Akut were playing in the cool water, a monkey dropped down from the overhanging trees, grabbed the boy’s only remaining piece of civilized clothing, and ran off with it.
For a time Jack was angry; but when he had been without the jacket for a short while he began to realize that being half-clothed is infinitely more uncomfortable than being entirely naked. Soon he did not miss his clothing in the least, and from that he came to revel in the freedom of his unhampered state. Occasionally a smile would cross his face as he tried to imagine the surprise of his schoolmates could they but see him now. They would envy him. Yes, how they would envy him. He felt sorry for them at such times, and again as he thought of them amid luxuries and comforts of their English homes, happy with their fathers and mothers, a most uncomfortable lump would arise into the boy’s throat, and he would see a vision of his mother’s face through a blur of mist that came unbidden to his eyes. Then it was that he urged Akut onward, for now they were headed westward toward the coast. The old ape thought that they were searching for a tribe of his own kind, nor did the boy disabuse his mind of this belief. It would do to tell Akut of his real plans when they had come within sight of civilization.
For a while, Jack was angry; but after being without the jacket for a short time, he realized that being half-clothed is way more uncomfortable than being completely naked. Soon he didn’t miss his clothes at all, and he began to enjoy the freedom of being unrestricted. Sometimes a smile would appear on his face as he imagined how surprised his classmates would be if they could see him now. They would envy him. Yes, they would envy him. He felt bad for them during those moments, and when he thought of them surrounded by the comforts of their English homes, happy with their parents, a heavy lump would rise in the boy’s throat, and he would catch a glimpse of his mother’s face through the tears that came uninvited to his eyes. It was then that he urged Akut to move on, for now they were heading west toward the coast. The old ape thought they were looking for a tribe of his own kind, and the boy didn’t correct him. He would share his real plans with Akut when they got closer to civilization.
One day as they were moving slowly along beside a river they came unexpectedly upon a native village. Some children were playing beside the water. The boy’s heart leaped within his breast at sight of them—for over a month he had seen no human being. What if these were naked savages? What if their skins were black? Were they not creatures fashioned in the mold of their Maker, as was he? They were his brothers and sisters! He started toward them. With a low warning Akut laid a hand upon his arm to hold him back. The boy shook himself free, and with a shout of greeting ran forward toward the ebon players.
One day, as they were walking slowly by a river, they unexpectedly stumbled upon a native village. Some kids were playing by the water. The boy's heart raced at the sight of them—he hadn’t seen another human in over a month. What if they were naked savages? What if their skin was dark? Weren't they created in the image of their Maker, just like him? They were his brothers and sisters! He started moving toward them. With a low warning, Akut put a hand on his arm to stop him. The boy shook him off and, with a shout of greeting, ran toward the dark-skinned players.
The sound of his voice brought every head erect. Wide eyes viewed him for an instant, and then, with screams of terror, the children turned and fled toward the village. At their heels ran their mothers, and from the village gate, in response to the alarm, came a score of warriors, hastily snatched spears and shields ready in their hands.
The sound of his voice made everyone stand up straight. Eyes widened as they looked at him for a moment, and then, with screams of fear, the children turned and raced toward the village. Their mothers followed closely behind, and from the village gate, in response to the alarm, came a group of warriors, quickly grabbing their spears and shields.
At sight of the consternation he had wrought the boy halted. The glad smile faded from his face as with wild shouts and menacing gestures the warriors ran toward him. Akut was calling to him from behind to turn and flee, telling him that the blacks would kill him. For a moment he stood watching them coming, then he raised his hand with the palm toward them in signal for them to halt, calling out at the same time that he came as a friend—that he had only wanted to play with their children. Of course they did not understand a word that he addressed to them, and their answer was what any naked creature who had run suddenly out of the jungle upon their women and children might have expected—a shower of spears. The missiles struck all about the boy, but none touched him. Again his spine tingled and the short hairs lifted at the nape of his neck and along the top of his scalp. His eyes narrowed. Sudden hatred flared in them to wither the expression of glad friendliness that had lighted them but an instant before. With a low snarl, quite similar to that of a baffled beast, he turned and ran into the jungle. There was Akut awaiting him in a tree. The ape urged him to hasten in flight, for the wise old anthropoid knew that they two, naked and unarmed, were no match for the sinewy black warriors who would doubtless make some sort of search for them through the jungle.
At the sight of the chaos he had caused, the boy stopped. The happy smile vanished from his face as warriors ran toward him, shouting and waving threateningly. Akut was calling from behind, telling him to turn and run, warning that the black warriors would kill him. For a moment, he watched them approach, then he raised his hand with the palm facing them, signaling them to stop, while shouting that he came as a friend—he had only wanted to play with their children. Of course, they didn't understand a word he said, and their response was what any naked person might expect when suddenly confronted by a stranger who had burst out of the jungle near their women and children—a barrage of spears. The projectiles landed all around him, but none hit him. Again, his spine tingled, and the short hairs on the back of his neck and along the top of his head stood up. His eyes narrowed. Sudden hatred sparked in them, quickly replacing the joyful friendliness that had just been there. With a low snarl, similar to that of a cornered animal, he turned and ran into the jungle. Akut was waiting for him in a tree. The ape urged him to hurry and escape, for the wise old animal knew that they, unarmed and vulnerable, stood no chance against the strong black warriors who would likely search for them in the jungle.
But a new power moved the son of Tarzan. He had come with a boy’s glad and open heart to offer his friendship to these people who were human beings like himself. He had been met with suspicion and spears. They had not even listened to him. Rage and hatred consumed him. When Akut urged speed he held back. He wanted to fight, yet his reason made it all too plain that it would be but a foolish sacrifice of his life to meet these armed men with his naked hands and his teeth—already the boy thought of his teeth, of his fighting fangs, when possibility of combat loomed close.
But a new force drove the son of Tarzan. He had come with the joy and openness of a boy to offer his friendship to these people who were just like him. Instead, he was met with suspicion and weapons. They hadn’t even listened to him. Rage and hatred consumed him. When Akut urged him to hurry, he held back. He wanted to fight, but his reason made it clear that facing these armed men with just his bare hands and teeth would be a foolish sacrifice. The boy was already thinking about his teeth, his fighting fangs, as the chance of battle approached.
Moving slowly through the trees he kept his eyes over his shoulder, though he no longer neglected the possibilities of other dangers which might lurk on either hand or ahead—his experience with the lioness did not need a repetition to insure the permanency of the lesson it had taught. Behind he could hear the savages advancing with shouts and cries. He lagged further behind until the pursuers were in sight. They did not see him, for they were not looking among the branches of the trees for human quarry. The lad kept just ahead of them. For a mile perhaps they continued the search, and then they turned back toward the village. Here was the boy’s opportunity, that for which he had been waiting, while the hot blood of revenge coursed through his veins until he saw his pursuers through a scarlet haze.
Moving slowly through the trees, he kept glancing over his shoulder, but he was also aware of other potential dangers that might be lurking on either side or ahead—his encounter with the lioness didn’t need a repeat to reinforce the lesson it had taught him. Behind him, he could hear the savages coming closer with shouts and cries. He fell further behind until the pursuers came into view. They didn’t see him, as they weren’t looking among the branches for human prey. The boy stayed just ahead of them. For about a mile, they continued searching, then they turned back toward the village. This was the boy’s chance, the moment he had been waiting for, while the hot blood of revenge surged through his veins until he saw his pursuers through a red haze.
When they turned back he turned and followed them. Akut was no longer in sight. Thinking that the boy followed he had gone on further ahead. He had no wish to tempt fate within range of those deadly spears. Slinking silently from tree to tree the boy dogged the footsteps of the returning warriors. At last one dropped behind his fellows as they followed a narrow path toward the village. A grim smile lit the lad’s face. Swiftly he hurried forward until he moved almost above the unconscious black—stalking him as Sheeta, the panther, stalked his prey, as the boy had seen Sheeta do on many occasions.
When they turned around, he turned and followed them. Akut was no longer in sight. Thinking the boy was behind him, he moved further ahead. He didn’t want to tempt fate within reach of those deadly spears. Sneaking silently from tree to tree, the boy trailed the footsteps of the returning warriors. Finally, one fell behind his companions as they followed a narrow path toward the village. A grim smile spread across the boy’s face. Quickly, he hurried forward until he moved almost right above the unaware black man—stalking him like Sheeta, the panther, stalked its prey, just as the boy had seen Sheeta do many times before.
Suddenly and silently he leaped forward and downward upon the broad shoulders of his prey. In the instant of contact his fingers sought and found the man’s throat. The weight of the boy’s body hurled the black heavily to the ground, the knees in his back knocking the breath from him as he struck. Then a set of strong, white teeth fastened themselves in his neck, and muscular fingers closed tighter upon his wind-pipe. For a time the warrior struggled frantically, throwing himself about in an effort to dislodge his antagonist; but all the while he was weakening and all the while the grim and silent thing he could not see clung tenaciously to him, and dragged him slowly into the bush to one side of the trail.
Suddenly and silently, he jumped forward and down onto the broad shoulders of his target. The moment they made contact, his fingers reached for and gripped the man's throat. The boy's weight slammed the man to the ground, his knees hitting the man's back and knocking the breath out of him as he fell. Then, a set of strong, white teeth sank into his neck, and muscular fingers tightened around his windpipe. For a while, the warrior struggled desperately, tossing himself around to shake off his attacker; but as he did, he grew weaker, and all the while the grim, silent force he couldn’t see held on tightly, dragging him slowly into the bushes beside the trail.
Hidden there at last, safe from the prying eyes of searchers, should they miss their fellow and return for him, the lad choked the life from the body of his victim. At last he knew by the sudden struggle, followed by limp relaxation, that the warrior was dead. Then a strange desire seized him. His whole being quivered and thrilled. Involuntarily he leaped to his feet and placed one foot upon the body of his kill. His chest expanded. He raised his face toward the heavens and opened his mouth to voice a strange, weird cry that seemed screaming within him for outward expression, but no sound passed his lips—he just stood there for a full minute, his face turned toward the sky, his breast heaving to the pent emotion, like an animate statue of vengeance.
Hidden there at last, safe from the prying eyes of searchers who might miss their companion and come back for him, the young man choked the life out of his victim. He finally realized, from the sudden struggle followed by a limp relaxation, that the warrior was dead. Then a strange yearning took hold of him. His entire being quivered and thrilled. Without thinking, he jumped to his feet and placed one foot upon the body of his kill. His chest expanded. He lifted his face toward the heavens and opened his mouth to let out a strange, eerie cry that seemed to scream inside him for release, but no sound came from his lips—he just stood there for a full minute, his face turned toward the sky, his breath heavy with pent-up emotion, like a living statue of vengeance.
The silence which marked the first great kill of the son of Tarzan was to typify all his future kills, just as the hideous victory cry of the bull ape had marked the kills of his mighty sire.
The silence that surrounded the first major kill of Tarzan's son would define all his future kills, just as the terrifying victory roar of the bull ape had defined the kills of his powerful father.
VII.
Akut, discovering that the boy was not close behind him, turned back to search for him. He had gone but a short distance in return when he was brought to a sudden and startled halt by sight of a strange figure moving through the trees toward him. It was the boy, yet could it be? In his hand was a long spear, down his back hung an oblong shield such as the black warriors who had attacked them had worn, and upon ankle and arm were bands of iron and brass, while a loin cloth was twisted about the youth’s middle. A knife was thrust through its folds.
Akut, realizing the boy was no longer close behind him, turned around to look for him. He hadn't gone far when he abruptly stopped, startled by the sight of a strange figure moving through the trees toward him. It was the boy, but could it really be? In his hand was a long spear, an oblong shield hung down his back like the ones the black warriors who had attacked them wore, and he had bands of iron and brass on his ankles and arms, with a loincloth twisted around his waist. A knife was tucked into its folds.
When the boy saw the ape he hastened forward to exhibit his trophies. Proudly he called attention to each of his newly won possessions. Boastfully he recounted the details of his exploit.
When the boy saw the ape, he rushed over to show off his trophies. Proudly, he pointed out each of his new possessions. Bragging, he recounted the details of his adventure.
“With my bare hands and my teeth I killed him,” he said. “I would have made friends with them but they chose to be my enemies. And now that I have a spear I shall show Numa, too, what it means to have me for a foe. Only the white men and the great apes, Akut, are our friends. Them we shall seek, all others must we avoid or kill. This have I learned of the jungle.”
“With my bare hands and my teeth, I killed him,” he said. “I would have made friends with them, but they chose to be my enemies. And now that I have a spear, I’ll show Numa what it means to have me as an enemy. Only the white men and the great apes, Akut, are our friends. We’ll seek them out; all others we must avoid or kill. This is what I’ve learned from the jungle.”
They made a detour about the hostile village, and resumed their journey toward the coast. The boy took much pride in his new weapons and ornaments. He practiced continually with the spear, throwing it at some object ahead hour by hour as they traveled their loitering way, until he gained a proficiency such as only youthful muscles may attain to speedily. All the while his training went on under the guidance of Akut. No longer was there a single jungle spoor but was an open book to the keen eyes of the lad, and those other indefinite spoor that elude the senses of civilized man and are only partially appreciable to his savage cousin came to be familiar friends of the eager boy. He could differentiate the innumerable species of the herbivora by scent, and he could tell, too, whether an animal was approaching or departing merely by the waxing or waning strength of its effluvium. Nor did he need the evidence of his eyes to tell him whether there were two lions or four up wind,—a hundred yards away or half a mile.
They took a detour around the hostile village and continued their journey toward the coast. The boy was really proud of his new weapons and ornaments. He practiced constantly with the spear, throwing it at a target ahead of him hour after hour as they moved at a leisurely pace, until he became skilled in a way that only youthful muscles can quickly achieve. All the while, his training was guided by Akut. There was no trace of the jungle that was beyond the understanding of the lad; every sign became like an open book to his sharp eyes. Even those subtle signs that escape the senses of civilized people, which are only partially noticeable to their primitive counterparts, became familiar to the eager boy. He could identify countless species of herbivores by their scent, and he could also tell whether an animal was coming closer or moving away just by the strength of its smell. He didn’t even need to see to know whether there were two lions or four upwind—whether they were a hundred yards away or half a mile.
Much of this had Akut taught him, but far more was instinctive knowledge—a species of strange intuition inherited from his father. He had come to love the jungle life. The constant battle of wits and senses against the many deadly foes that lurked by day and by night along the pathway of the wary and the unwary appealed to the spirit of adventure which breathes strong in the heart of every red-blooded son of primordial Adam. Yet, though he loved it, he had not let his selfish desires outweigh the sense of duty that had brought him to a realization of the moral wrong which lay beneath the adventurous escapade that had brought him to Africa. His love of father and mother was strong within him, too strong to permit unalloyed happiness which was undoubtedly causing them days of sorrow. And so he held tight to his determination to find a port upon the coast where he might communicate with them and receive funds for his return to London. There he felt sure that he could now persuade his parents to let him spend at least a portion of his time upon those African estates which from little careless remarks dropped at home he knew his father possessed. That would be something, better at least than a lifetime of the cramped and cloying restrictions of civilization.
Much of this was taught to him by Akut, but even more was instinctive knowledge—a kind of strange intuition inherited from his father. He had grown to love life in the jungle. The ongoing battle of wits and senses against the many deadly threats that lurked both day and night along the paths of the cautious and the careless appealed to the adventurous spirit that exists in every red-blooded son of primal Adam. Yet, even though he loved it, he didn’t let his selfish desires overshadow the sense of duty that made him realize the moral wrong behind the adventurous escapade that brought him to Africa. His love for his parents was also strong, too strong to allow him to feel completely happy while he knew they were suffering. So, he remained determined to find a port along the coast where he could reach out to them and get funds to return to London. There, he was sure he could persuade his parents to let him spend at least some of his time on the African estates that he knew his father owned from little careless remarks made at home. That would be something—better at least than a lifetime of the cramped and suffocating restrictions of civilization.
And so he was rather contented than otherwise as he made his way in the direction of the coast, for while he enjoyed the liberty and the savage pleasures of the wild his conscience was at the same time clear, for he knew that he was doing all that lay in his power to return to his parents. He rather looked forward, too, to meeting white men again—creatures of his own kind—for there had been many occasions upon which he had longed for other companionship than that of the old ape. The affair with the blacks still rankled in his heart. He had approached them in such innocent good fellowship and with such childlike assurance of a hospitable welcome that the reception which had been accorded him had proved a shock to his boyish ideals. He no longer looked upon the black man as his brother; but rather as only another of the innumerable foes of the bloodthirsty jungle—a beast of prey which walked upon two feet instead of four.
And so he felt more content than not as he headed toward the coast, because while he enjoyed the freedom and wild thrills of nature, his conscience was clear since he knew he was doing everything he could to get back to his parents. He also looked forward to seeing white people again—his own kind—since there were many times he had wished for different company than the old ape. The incident with the black people still bothered him. He had approached them with innocent goodwill and a childlike confidence that he would be welcomed, so the way they treated him had crushed his youthful ideals. He no longer saw the black man as his brother but rather as just another of the countless enemies of the ruthless jungle—a predator that walked on two legs instead of four.
But if the blacks were his enemies there were those in the world who were not. There were those who always would welcome him with open arms; who would accept him as a friend and brother, and with whom he might find sanctuary from every enemy. Yes, there were always white men. Somewhere along the coast or even in the depths of the jungle itself there were white men. To them he would be a welcome visitor. They would befriend him. And there were also the great apes—the friends of his father and of Akut. How glad they would be to receive the son of Tarzan of the Apes! He hoped that he could come upon them before he found a trading post upon the coast. He wanted to be able to tell his father that he had known his old friends of the jungle, that he had hunted with them, that he had joined with them in their savage life, and their fierce, primeval ceremonies—the strange ceremonies of which Akut had tried to tell him. It cheered him immensely to dwell upon these happy meetings. Often he rehearsed the long speech which he would make to the apes, in which he would tell them of the life of their former king since he had left them.
But if the black people were his enemies, there were others in the world who were not. There were those who would always welcome him with open arms, who would accept him as a friend and brother, and with whom he could find refuge from every foe. Yes, there were always white men. Somewhere along the coast or even deep in the jungle, there were white men. To them, he would be a welcomed guest. They would befriend him. And there were also the great apes—the friends of his father and Akut. How happy they would be to receive the son of Tarzan of the Apes! He hoped to encounter them before finding a trading post along the coast. He wanted to tell his father that he had met his old jungle friends, that he had hunted with them, that he had joined in their wild lives and their fierce, primal ceremonies—the strange rituals Akut had tried to describe to him. It brought him immense joy to think about these joyful reunions. Often, he practiced the long speech he would give to the apes, in which he would tell them about the life of their former king since he had left them.
At other times he would play at meeting with white men. Then he would enjoy their consternation at sight of a naked white boy trapped in the war togs of a black warrior and roaming the jungle with only a great ape as his companion.
At times, he would pretend to encounter white men. He would take pleasure in their shock at seeing a naked white boy stuck in the battle gear of a black warrior, wandering through the jungle with just a large ape as his companion.
And so the days passed, and with the traveling and the hunting and the climbing the boy’s muscles developed and his agility increased until even phlegmatic Akut marvelled at the prowess of his pupil. And the boy, realizing his great strength and revelling in it, became careless. He strode through the jungle, his proud head erect, defying danger. Where Akut took to the trees at the first scent of Numa, the lad laughed in the face of the king of beasts and walked boldly past him. Good fortune was with him for a long time. The lions he met were well-fed, perhaps, or the very boldness of the strange creature which invaded their domain so filled them with surprise that thoughts of attack were banished from their minds as they stood, round-eyed, watching his approach and his departure. Whatever the cause, however, the fact remains that on many occasions the boy passed within a few paces of some great lion without arousing more than a warning growl.
And so the days went by, and with the traveling, hunting, and climbing, the boy's muscles grew stronger, and his agility improved until even calm Akut was amazed at his pupil's skills. The boy, realizing his newfound strength and enjoying it, became reckless. He walked through the jungle with his head held high, daring danger. While Akut would retreat to the trees at the first whiff of Numa, the boy laughed in the face of the king of beasts and boldly walked past him. Luck was on his side for a long time. The lions he encountered were likely well-fed, or perhaps the sheer boldness of the strange creature invading their territory left them so shocked that thoughts of attacking were pushed aside as they stood, wide-eyed, watching him approach and then leave. Whatever the reason, the fact is that on many occasions, the boy walked within a few yards of a great lion without provoking more than a warning growl.
But no two lions are necessarily alike in character or temper. They differ as greatly as do individuals of the human family. Because ten lions act similarly under similar conditions one cannot say that the eleventh lion will do likewise—the chances are that he will not. The lion is a creature of high nervous development. He thinks, therefore he reasons. Having a nervous system and brains he is the possessor of temperament, which is affected variously by extraneous causes. One day the boy met the eleventh lion. The former was walking across a small plain upon which grew little clumps of bushes. Akut was a few yards to the left of the lad who was the first to discover the presence of Numa.
But no two lions are necessarily the same in personality or temperament. They vary just as much as people do. Even if ten lions behave similarly in the same situation, you can't assume that the eleventh lion will react the same way—the odds are he won’t. The lion is a highly sensitive creature. He thinks, which means he reasons. With a nervous system and a brain, he has temperament that can be influenced by outside factors. One day, the boy encountered the eleventh lion. He was walking across a small plain dotted with little groups of bushes. Akut was a few yards to the left of the boy, who was the first to spot Numa.
“Run, Akut,” called the boy, laughing. “Numa lies hid in the bushes to my right. Take to the trees. Akut! I, the son of Tarzan, will protect you,” and the boy, laughing, kept straight along his way which led close beside the brush in which Numa lay concealed.
“Run, Akut,” called the boy, laughing. “Numa is hiding in the bushes to my right. Get into the trees. Akut! I, the son of Tarzan, will protect you,” and the boy, still laughing, continued straight along his path that ran right next to the brush where Numa was hiding.
The ape shouted to him to come away, but the lad only flourished his spear and executed an improvised war dance to show his contempt for the king of beasts. Closer and closer to the dread destroyer he came, until, with a sudden, angry growl, the lion rose from his bed not ten paces from the youth. A huge fellow he was, this lord of the jungle and the desert. A shaggy mane clothed his shoulders. Cruel fangs armed his great jaws. His yellow-green eyes blazed with hatred and challenge.
The ape yelled at him to get away, but the boy just waved his spear and put on an impromptu war dance to show his disrespect for the king of beasts. He got closer and closer to the terrifying predator, until, with a sudden, fierce growl, the lion got up from his resting place just ten steps away from the young man. He was a massive creature, this ruler of the jungle and the desert. A thick mane covered his shoulders. Sharp fangs filled his powerful jaws. His yellow-green eyes burned with hatred and defiance.
The boy, with his pitifully inadequate spear ready in his hand, realized quickly that this lion was different from the others he had met; but he had gone too far now to retreat. The nearest tree lay several yards to his left—the lion could be upon him before he had covered half the distance, and that the beast intended to charge none could doubt who looked upon him now. Beyond the lion was a thorn tree—only a few feet beyond him. It was the nearest sanctuary but Numa stood between it and his prey.
The boy, with his painfully weak spear in hand, quickly understood that this lion was unlike any he had faced before; but he had gone too far to turn back now. The closest tree was several yards to his left—the lion could reach him before he had made it halfway there, and anyone watching could see that the beast was ready to charge. Just beyond the lion was a thorn tree—only a few feet away. It was his closest refuge, but Numa stood between him and safety.
The feel of the long spear shaft in his hand and the sight of the tree beyond the lion gave the lad an idea—a preposterous idea—a ridiculous, forlorn hope of an idea; but there was no time now to weigh chances—there was but a single chance, and that was the thorn tree. If the lion charged it would be too late—the lad must charge first, and to the astonishment of Akut and none the less of Numa, the boy leaped swiftly toward the beast. Just for a second was the lion motionless with surprise and in that second Jack Clayton put to the crucial test an accomplishment which he had practiced at school.
The feel of the long spear in his hand and the sight of the tree beyond the lion sparked an idea in the boy—an absurd idea, a ridiculous, desperate hope; but there was no time to consider the odds—there was only one chance, and that was the thorn tree. If the lion charged, it would be too late—the boy had to charge first, and to the surprise of Akut and even Numa, the boy dashed toward the beast. For just a second, the lion stood still in shock, and in that moment, Jack Clayton tested a skill he had practiced at school.
Straight for the savage brute he ran, his spear held butt foremost across his body. Akut shrieked in terror and amazement. The lion stood with wide, round eyes awaiting the attack, ready to rear upon his hind feet and receive this rash creature with blows that could crush the skull of a buffalo.
Straight for the savage beast he ran, holding his spear with the butt facing forward across his body. Akut screamed in fear and shock. The lion stood with wide, round eyes, waiting for the attack, ready to rise on its hind feet and meet this bold creature with blows that could crush a buffalo's skull.
Just in front of the lion the boy placed the butt of his spear upon the ground, gave a mighty spring, and, before the bewildered beast could guess the trick that had been played upon him, sailed over the lion’s head into the rending embrace of the thorn tree—safe but lacerated.
Just in front of the lion, the boy planted the butt of his spear on the ground, took a powerful jump, and before the confused beast could figure out what was happening, he leaped over the lion's head into the sharp branches of the thorn tree—safe but injured.
Akut had never before seen a pole-vault. Now he leaped up and down within the safety of his own tree, screaming taunts and boasts at the discomfited Numa, while the boy, torn and bleeding, sought some position in his thorny retreat in which he might find the least agony. He had saved his life; but at considerable cost in suffering. It seemed to him that the lion would never leave, and it was a full hour before the angry brute gave up his vigil and strode majestically away across the plain. When he was at a safe distance the boy extricated himself from the thorn tree; but not without inflicting new wounds upon his already tortured flesh.
Akut had never seen pole-vaulting before. Now he was jumping up and down in the safety of his tree, yelling insults and boasting at the injured Numa, who, torn and bleeding, was trying to find a position in his thorny hideout that caused the least pain. He had saved his life, but it came at a high cost of suffering. It felt like the lion would never leave, and it wasn’t until a full hour had passed that the angry beast finally gave up its watch and walked away with confidence across the plain. Once the lion was at a safe distance, the boy managed to free himself from the thorn tree, but not before causing new wounds to his already tortured skin.
It was many days before the outward evidence of the lesson he had learned had left him; while the impression upon his mind was one that was to remain with him for life. Never again did he uselessly tempt fate.
It took him many days to move past the visible signs of the lesson he had learned; however, the impact on his mind was something that would stay with him for life. He never again tempted fate without reason.
He took long chances often in his after life; but only when the taking of chances might further the attainment of some cherished end—and, always thereafter, he practiced pole-vaulting.
He often took big risks later in life, but only when those risks could help him achieve something important to him—and from then on, he practiced pole-vaulting.
For several days the boy and the ape lay up while the former recovered from the painful wounds inflicted by the sharp thorns. The great anthropoid licked the wounds of his human friend, nor, aside from this, did they receive other treatment, but they soon healed, for healthy flesh quickly replaces itself.
For several days, the boy and the ape rested while the boy healed from the painful wounds caused by the sharp thorns. The great ape licked his human friend's wounds, and aside from that, they didn’t receive any other treatment, but they soon healed because healthy flesh regenerates quickly.
When the lad felt fit again the two continued their journey toward the coast, and once more the boy’s mind was filled with pleasurable anticipation.
When the boy felt better again, the two continued their journey toward the coast, and once more the boy’s mind was filled with excitement and anticipation.
And at last the much dreamed of moment came. They were passing through a tangled forest when the boy’s sharp eyes discovered from the lower branches through which he was traveling an old but well-marked spoor—a spoor that set his heart to leaping—the spoor of man, of white men, for among the prints of naked feet were the well defined outlines of European made boots. The trail, which marked the passage of a good-sized company, pointed north at right angles to the course the boy and the ape were taking toward the coast.
And finally, the long-awaited moment arrived. They were walking through a dense forest when the boy's keen eyes spotted an old but clearly defined track—a track that made his heart race—the track of humans, specifically white people, because among the prints of bare feet were the distinct shapes of European-style boots. The trail, indicating the passage of a sizable group, headed north at a right angle to the direction the boy and the ape were traveling toward the coast.
Doubtless these white men knew the nearest coast settlement. They might even be headed for it now. At any rate it would be worth while overtaking them if even only for the pleasure of meeting again creatures of his own kind. The lad was all excitement; palpitant with eagerness to be off in pursuit. Akut demurred. He wanted nothing of men. To him the lad was a fellow ape, for he was the son of the king of apes. He tried to dissuade the boy, telling him that soon they should come upon a tribe of their own folk where some day when he was older the boy should be king as his father had before him. But Jack was obdurate. He insisted that he wanted to see white men again. He wanted to send a message to his parents. Akut listened and as he listened the intuition of the beast suggested the truth to him—the boy was planning to return to his own kind.
Clearly these white men knew the closest coastal settlement. They might even be heading there now. Either way, it would be worth catching up to them, even just for the pleasure of encountering others like him. The boy was filled with excitement, eager to set off in pursuit. Akut hesitated. He wanted nothing to do with humans. To him, the boy was just another ape, because he was the son of the ape king. He tried to convince the boy not to go, telling him that soon they would come across a tribe of their own kind where, one day when he was older, the boy would be king like his father had been. But Jack was stubborn. He insisted that he wanted to see white men again. He wanted to send a message to his parents. Akut listened, and as he did, his instincts told him the truth—the boy was planning to go back to his own kind.
The thought filled the old ape with sorrow. He loved the boy as he had loved the father, with the loyalty and faithfulness of a hound for its master. In his ape brain and his ape heart he had nursed the hope that he and the lad would never be separated. He saw all his fondly cherished plans fading away, and yet he remained loyal to the lad and to his wishes. Though disconsolate he gave in to the boy’s determination to pursue the safari of the white men, accompanying him upon what he believed would be their last journey together.
The thought filled the old ape with sadness. He loved the boy as he had loved the father, with the loyalty and devotion of a dog to its owner. In his ape mind and heart, he had held onto the hope that he and the kid would never be apart. He saw all his cherished plans slipping away, but he stayed true to the boy and his wishes. Though heartbroken, he accepted the boy’s determination to go on the safari with the white men, joining him on what he believed would be their final journey together.
The spoor was but a couple of days old when the two discovered it, which meant that the slow-moving caravan was but a few hours distant from them whose trained and agile muscles could carry their bodies swiftly through the branches above the tangled undergrowth which had impeded the progress of the laden carriers of the white men.
The tracks were only a couple of days old when they found them, which meant that the slow-moving caravan was just a few hours away from them. Their trained and agile bodies could move quickly through the branches above the tangled underbrush that had slowed down the burdened carriers of the white men.
The boy was in the lead, excitement and anticipation carrying him ahead of his companion to whom the attainment of their goal meant only sorrow. And it was the boy who first saw the rear guard of the caravan and the white men he had been so anxious to overtake.
The boy was in the lead, excitement and anticipation pushing him ahead of his companion, for achieving their goal only brought sadness to the other. It was the boy who spotted the back of the caravan first and the white men he had been so eager to catch up with.
Stumbling along the tangled trail of those ahead a dozen heavily laden blacks who, from fatigue or sickness, had dropped behind were being prodded by the black soldiers of the rear guard, kicked when they fell, and then roughly jerked to their feet and hustled onward. On either side walked a giant white man, heavy blonde beards almost obliterating their countenances. The boy’s lips formed a glad cry of salutation as his eyes first discovered the whites—a cry that was never uttered, for almost immediately he witnessed that which turned his happiness to anger as he saw that both the white men were wielding heavy whips brutally upon the naked backs of the poor devils staggering along beneath loads that would have overtaxed the strength and endurance of strong men at the beginning of a new day.
Stumbling along the twisted path, a dozen heavily burdened Black individuals who had fallen behind due to exhaustion or illness were being poked by the Black soldiers of the rear guard, kicked when they fell, and then roughly pulled to their feet and pushed onward. On either side walked two massive white men, their thick blonde beards almost hiding their faces. The boy's lips formed a joyful cry of greeting as he first spotted the white men—a cry that was never spoken, for he quickly saw something that turned his happiness into anger: both white men were cruelly whipping the bare backs of the poor souls struggling under loads that would have been too much for even strong men at the start of a new day.
Every now and then the rear guard and the white men cast apprehensive glances rearward as though momentarily expecting the materialization of some long expected danger from that quarter. The boy had paused after his first sight of the caravan, and now was following slowly in the wake of the sordid, brutal spectacle. Presently Akut came up with him. To the beast there was less of horror in the sight than to the lad, yet even the great ape growled beneath his breath at useless torture being inflicted upon the helpless slaves. He looked at the boy. Now that he had caught up with the creatures of his own kind, why was it that he did not rush forward and greet them? He put the question to his companion.
Every now and then, the rear guard and the white men glanced back anxiously, as if they were expecting some long-anticipated danger to emerge from behind. The boy had stopped after his first glimpse of the caravan and was now slowly following the grim and brutal scene. Soon, Akut caught up with him. The sight held less horror for the beast than for the boy, yet even the great ape growled quietly at the pointless suffering inflicted on the helpless slaves. He looked at the boy. Now that he was close to creatures like himself, why didn’t he rush forward to greet them? He asked his companion the question.
“They are fiends,” muttered the boy. “I would not travel with such as they, for if I did I should set upon them and kill them the first time they beat their people as they are beating them now; but,” he added, after a moment’s thought, “I can ask them the whereabouts of the nearest port, and then, Akut, we can leave them.”
“They're monsters,” the boy muttered. “I wouldn’t travel with people like them, because if I did, I’d attack them and kill them the first time they mistreat their own, just like they’re doing now; but,” he added after a brief pause, “I can ask them where the nearest port is, and then, Akut, we can leave them.”
The ape made no reply, and the boy swung to the ground and started at a brisk walk toward the safari. He was a hundred yards away, perhaps, when one of the whites caught sight of him. The man gave a shout of alarm, instantly levelling his rifle upon the boy and firing. The bullet struck just in front of its mark, scattering turf and fallen leaves against the lad’s legs. A second later the other white and the black soldiers of the rear guard were firing hysterically at the boy.
The ape didn't respond, and the boy jumped down to the ground and began walking quickly toward the safari. He was about a hundred yards away when one of the white men noticed him. The man shouted in alarm, quickly aimed his rifle at the boy, and fired. The bullet hit just short of its target, sending dirt and fallen leaves flying against the boy's legs. A moment later, the other white man and the black soldiers in the rear guard started firing wildly at the boy.
Jack leaped behind a tree, unhit. Days of panic ridden flight through the jungle had filled Carl Jenssen and Sven Malbihn with jangling nerves and their native boys with unreasoning terror. Every new note from behind sounded to their frightened ears the coming of The Sheik and his bloodthirsty entourage. They were in a blue funk, and the sight of the naked white warrior stepping silently out of the jungle through which they had just passed had been sufficient shock to let loose in action all the pent nerve energy of Malbihn, who had been the first to see the strange apparition. And Malbihn’s shout and shot had set the others going.
Jack jumped behind a tree, untouched. Days of panicked running through the jungle had left Carl Jenssen and Sven Malbihn on edge, while their native companions were filled with irrational fear. Every new sound from behind them seemed to signal the approach of The Sheik and his bloodthirsty gang. They were in a state of deep anxiety, and the sight of the naked white warrior stepping silently out of the jungle they had just crossed had been enough of a shock to unleash all of Malbihn's pent-up energy, as he was the first to notice the strange figure. Malbihn's shout and shot got everyone moving.
When their nervous energy had spent itself and they came to take stock of what they had been fighting it developed that Malbihn alone had seen anything clearly. Several of the blacks averred that they too had obtained a good view of the creature but their descriptions of it varied so greatly that Jenssen, who had seen nothing himself, was inclined to be a trifle skeptical. One of the blacks insisted that the thing had been eleven feet tall, with a man’s body and the head of an elephant. Another had seen THREE immense Arabs with huge, black beards; but when, after conquering their nervousness, the rear guard advanced upon the enemy’s position to investigate they found nothing, for Akut and the boy had retreated out of range of the unfriendly guns.
Once their nervous energy had faded and they began to assess what they had been fighting, it turned out that only Malbihn had seen anything clearly. Several of the Black men claimed they also got a good look at the creature, but their descriptions varied so much that Jenssen, who hadn’t seen anything himself, was a bit doubtful. One of the Black men insisted that the creature was eleven feet tall, with a human body and an elephant's head. Another claimed to have seen THREE enormous Arabs with big, black beards; however, when the rear guard finally mustered the courage to approach the enemy's position to investigate, they found nothing, as Akut and the boy had moved out of range of the hostile guns.
Jack was disheartened and sad. He had not entirely recovered from the depressing effect of the unfriendly reception he had received at the hands of the blacks, and now he had found an even more hostile one accorded him by men of his own color.
Jack was feeling down and sad. He hadn't fully gotten over the discouraging welcome he received from the black community, and now he faced an even harsher reception from men of his own race.
“The lesser beasts flee from me in terror,” he murmured, half to himself, “the greater beasts are ready to tear me to pieces at sight. Black men would kill me with their spears or arrows. And now white men, men of my own kind, have fired upon me and driven me away. Are all the creatures of the world my enemies? Has the son of Tarzan no friend other than Akut?”
“The smaller animals run from me in fear,” he said softly, mostly to himself, “while the larger ones are eager to rip me apart as soon as they see me. Black men would attack me with their spears or arrows. And now white men, my own people, have shot at me and forced me to flee. Are all the creatures in the world my enemies? Does the son of Tarzan have no friend besides Akut?”
The old ape drew closer to the boy.
The old ape moved closer to the boy.
“There are the great apes,” he said. “They only will be the friends of Akut’s friend. Only the great apes will welcome the son of Tarzan. You have seen that men want nothing of you. Let us go now and continue our search for the great apes—our people.”
“There are the great apes,” he said. “They will only be friends with Akut’s friend. Only the great apes will accept the son of Tarzan. You’ve seen that men want nothing to do with you. Let’s go now and keep searching for the great apes—our people.”
The language of the great apes is a combination of monosyllabic gutturals, amplified by gestures and signs. It may not be literally translated into human speech; but as near as may be this is what Akut said to the boy.
The language of the great apes consists of simple sounds, enhanced by gestures and signs. It might not translate directly into human speech, but as closely as possible, this is what Akut said to the boy.
The two proceeded in silence for some time after Akut had spoken. The boy was immersed in deep thought—bitter thoughts in which hatred and revenge predominated. Finally he spoke: “Very well, Akut,” he said, “we will find our friends, the great apes.”
The two walked in silence for a while after Akut had spoken. The boy was deep in thought—bitter thoughts filled with hatred and revenge. Finally, he said, “Alright, Akut, we will find our friends, the great apes.”
The anthropoid was overjoyed; but he gave no outward demonstration of his pleasure. A low grunt was his only response, and a moment later he had leaped nimbly upon a small and unwary rodent that had been surprised at a fatal distance from its burrow. Tearing the unhappy creature in two Akut handed the lion’s share to the lad.
The ape was thrilled; however, he didn't show it. He only let out a low grunt, and a moment later, he quickly leaped onto a small, unsuspecting rodent that had strayed too far from its burrow. Ripping the poor animal in half, Akut handed the larger portion to the boy.
VIII.
A year had passed since the two Swedes had been driven in terror from the savage country where The Sheik held sway. Little Meriem still played with Geeka, lavishing all her childish love upon the now almost hopeless ruin of what had never, even in its palmiest days, possessed even a slight degree of loveliness. But to Meriem, Geeka was all that was sweet and adorable. She carried to the deaf ears of the battered ivory head all her sorrows all her hopes and all her ambitions, for even in the face of hopelessness, in the clutches of the dread authority from which there was no escape, little Meriem yet cherished hopes and ambitions. It is true that her ambitions were rather nebulous in form, consisting chiefly of a desire to escape with Geeka to some remote and unknown spot where there were no Sheiks, no Mabunus—where El Adrea could find no entrance, and where she might play all day surrounded only by flowers and birds and the harmless little monkeys playing in the tree tops.
A year had passed since the two Swedes had been driven in fear from the wild land where The Sheik ruled. Little Meriem still played with Geeka, showering all her childish love on the now almost ruined relic of what had never, even at its best, been even slightly beautiful. But to Meriem, Geeka was everything sweet and lovable. She shared all her sorrows, hopes, and dreams with the deaf ears of the battered ivory head, for even in the face of despair, caught in the grip of the terrifying authority with no way out, little Meriem still held onto hopes and dreams. It’s true that her dreams were somewhat vague, mainly a desire to escape with Geeka to some far-off, unknown place where there were no Sheiks, no Mabunus—where El Adrea could not reach, and where she could play all day surrounded only by flowers, birds, and the harmless little monkeys playing in the treetops.
The Sheik had been away for a long time, conducting a caravan of ivory, skins, and rubber far into the north. The interim had been one of great peace for Meriem. It is true that Mabunu had still been with her, to pinch or beat her as the mood seized the villainous old hag; but Mabunu was only one. When The Sheik was there also there were two of them, and The Sheik was stronger and more brutal even than Mabunu. Little Meriem often wondered why the grim old man hated her so. It is true that he was cruel and unjust to all with whom he came in contact, but to Meriem he reserved his greatest cruelties, his most studied injustices.
The Sheik had been gone for a long time, leading a caravan of ivory, skins, and rubber far to the north. During his absence, Meriem experienced a time of great peace. It's true that Mabunu was still around, pinching or hitting her whenever the wicked old woman felt like it; but Mabunu was just one person. When The Sheik was there too, it was two of them, and The Sheik was even stronger and more brutal than Mabunu. Little Meriem often wondered why the grim old man hated her so much. While he was cruel and unfair to everyone he encountered, he reserved his worst treatment and most calculated injustices for Meriem.
Today Meriem was squatting at the foot of a large tree which grew inside the palisade close to the edge of the village. She was fashioning a tent of leaves for Geeka. Before the tent were some pieces of wood and small leaves and a few stones. These were the household utensils. Geeka was cooking dinner. As the little girl played she prattled continuously to her companion, propped in a sitting position with a couple of twigs. She was totally absorbed in the domestic duties of Geeka—so much so that she did not note the gentle swaying of the branches of the tree above her as they bent to the body of the creature that had entered them stealthily from the jungle.
Today, Meriem was crouched at the base of a large tree that grew inside the palisade near the edge of the village. She was making a tent of leaves for Geeka. In front of the tent were some pieces of wood, small leaves, and a few stones. These were the household items. Geeka was preparing dinner. As the little girl played, she chatted nonstop with her companion, propped up in a sitting position with a few twigs. She was completely focused on helping Geeka with her domestic tasks—so much so that she didn’t notice the gentle swaying of the branches above her as they bent toward the creature that had stealthily entered from the jungle.
In happy ignorance the little girl played on, while from above two steady eyes looked down upon her—unblinking, unwavering. There was none other than the little girl in this part of the village, which had been almost deserted since The Sheik had left long months before upon his journey toward the north.
In blissful ignorance, the little girl kept playing, while two steady eyes above watched her—unblinking, unwavering. She was the only child in this part of the village, which had been nearly deserted since The Sheik had left many months ago to head north.
And out in the jungle, an hour’s march from the village, The Sheik was leading his returning caravan homeward.
And out in the jungle, an hour's walk from the village, the Sheik was leading his caravan back home.
A year had passed since the white men had fired upon the lad and driven him back into the jungle to take up his search for the only remaining creatures to whom he might look for companionship—the great apes. For months the two had wandered eastward, deeper and deeper into the jungle. The year had done much for the boy—turning his already mighty muscles to thews of steel, developing his woodcraft to a point where it verged upon the uncanny, perfecting his arboreal instincts, and training him in the use of both natural and artificial weapons.
A year had gone by since the white men shot at the boy and forced him back into the jungle to continue his search for the only remaining companions he could find—the great apes. For months, the two had traveled eastward, going deeper and deeper into the jungle. The year had changed the boy significantly—strengthening his already powerful muscles to the max, honing his survival skills to an almost supernatural level, perfecting his instincts in the trees, and teaching him how to use both natural and man-made weapons.
He had become at last a creature of marvelous physical powers and mental cunning. He was still but a boy, yet so great was his strength that the powerful anthropoid with which he often engaged in mimic battle was no match for him. Akut had taught him to fight as the bull ape fights, nor ever was there a teacher better fitted to instruct in the savage warfare of primordial man, or a pupil better equipped to profit by the lessons of a master.
He had finally become a being of incredible physical strength and cleverness. He was still just a boy, but his strength was so immense that the powerful ape he often battled with in pretend fights couldn't compete with him. Akut had taught him to fight like a bull ape, and there was never a better teacher for the brutal combat of early humans, nor a better student to learn from such a master.
As the two searched for a band of the almost extinct species of ape to which Akut belonged they lived upon the best the jungle afforded. Antelope and zebra fell to the boy’s spear, or were dragged down by the two powerful beasts of prey who leaped upon them from some overhanging limb or from the ambush of the undergrowth beside the trail to the water hole or the ford.
As the two looked for a group of the nearly extinct ape species that Akut belonged to, they lived off the best that the jungle had to offer. Antelope and zebra were taken down by the boy's spear or were captured by the two strong predators that pounced on them from a tree branch or from hiding in the underbrush near the path to the water hole or the crossing.
The pelt of a leopard covered the nakedness of the youth; but the wearing of it had not been dictated by any prompting of modesty. With the rifle shots of the white men showering about him he had reverted to the savagery of the beast that is inherent in each of us, but that flamed more strongly in this boy whose father had been raised a beast of prey. He wore his leopard skin at first in response to a desire to parade a trophy of his prowess, for he had slain the leopard with his knife in a hand-to-hand combat. He saw that the skin was beautiful, which appealed to his barbaric sense of ornamentation, and when it stiffened and later commenced to decompose because of his having no knowledge of how to cure or tan it was with sorrow and regret that he discarded it. Later, when he chanced upon a lone, black warrior wearing the counterpart of it, soft and clinging and beautiful from proper curing, it required but an instant to leap from above upon the shoulders of the unsuspecting black, sink a keen blade into his heart and possess the rightly preserved hide.
The skin of a leopard covered the boy’s bare body; however, wearing it wasn't driven by any sense of modesty. With the rifle shots from the white men ringing around him, he had reverted to the primal instincts that lie within us all, instincts that flared up even more intensely in this boy whose father had been a fierce hunter. He initially wore the leopard skin to show off a trophy of his skill since he had killed the leopard in a knife fight. He recognized the skin as beautiful, which appealed to his primitive sense of decoration, and when it became stiff and later started to decay because he didn’t know how to cure or tan it, he felt sadness and regret as he discarded it. Later, when he encountered a solitary black warrior wearing a similar skin, soft, clingy, and beautiful from proper tanning, it took just a moment for him to jump onto the unsuspecting warrior’s back, stab him in the heart, and take the well-preserved hide.
There were no after-qualms of conscience. In the jungle might is right, nor does it take long to inculcate this axiom in the mind of a jungle dweller, regardless of what his past training may have been. That the black would have killed him had he had the chance the boy knew full well. Neither he nor the black were any more sacred than the lion, or the buffalo, the zebra or the deer, or any other of the countless creatures who roamed, or slunk, or flew, or wriggled through the dark mazes of the forest. Each had but a single life, which was sought by many. The greater number of enemies slain the better chance to prolong that life. So the boy smiled and donned the finery of the vanquished, and went his way with Akut, searching, always searching for the elusive anthropoids who were to welcome them with open arms. And at last they found them. Deep in the jungle, buried far from sight of man, they came upon such another little natural arena as had witnessed the wild ceremony of the Dum-Dum in which the boy’s father had taken part long years before.
There were no lingering doubts. In the jungle, strength is what matters, and it doesn’t take long for someone living there to understand this, no matter their background. The boy was fully aware that the black man would have killed him if given the chance. Neither he nor the black man held any more value than the lion, the buffalo, the zebra, or the deer, or any other creatures that roamed, slithered, flew, or wriggled through the dark paths of the forest. Each had only one life, which many sought to take. The more enemies taken down, the better the chance of surviving. So the boy smiled and wore the clothes of the defeated, continuing on his journey with Akut, always looking for the elusive anthropoids who would welcome them with open arms. Eventually, they found them. Deep in the jungle, hidden far from the sight of humans, they stumbled upon a small natural arena reminiscent of the wild ceremony of the Dum-Dum in which the boy’s father had participated many years earlier.
First, at a great distance, they heard the beating of the drum of the great apes. They were sleeping in the safety of a huge tree when the booming sound smote upon their ears. Both awoke at once. Akut was the first to interpret the strange cadence.
First, from far away, they heard the pounding of the drum of the great apes. They were dozing safely in a huge tree when the loud sound hit their ears. Both woke up at the same time. Akut was the first to make sense of the unusual rhythm.
“The great apes!” he growled. “They dance the Dum-Dum. Come, Korak, son of Tarzan, let us go to our people.”
“The great apes!” he growled. “They dance the Dum-Dum. Come on, Korak, son of Tarzan, let’s go to our people.”
Months before Akut had given the boy a name of his own choosing, since he could not master the man given name of Jack. Korak is as near as it may be interpreted into human speech. In the language of the apes it means Killer. Now the Killer rose upon the branch of the great tree where he had been sleeping with his back braced against the stem. He stretched his lithe young muscles, the moonlight filtering through the foliage from above dappling his brown skin with little patches of light.
Months before, Akut had given the boy a name of his choosing since he couldn't pronounce the man-given name of Jack. Korak is about as close as it gets when translated into human speech. In the language of the apes, it means Killer. Now, the Killer rose on the branch of the great tree where he had been sleeping with his back against the trunk. He stretched his young muscles, the moonlight filtering through the leaves above, dappling his brown skin with little spots of light.
The ape, too, stood up, half squatting after the manner of his kind. Low growls rumbled from the bottom of his deep chest—growls of excited anticipation. The boy growled in harmony with the ape. Then the anthropoid slid softly to the ground. Close by, in the direction of the booming drum, lay a clearing which they must cross. The moon flooded it with silvery light. Half-erect, the great ape shuffled into the full glare of the moon. At his side, swinging gracefully along in marked contrast to the awkwardness of his companion, strode the boy, the dark, shaggy coat of the one brushing against the smooth, clear hide of the other. The lad was humming now, a music hall air that had found its way to the forms of the great English public school that was to see him no more. He was happy and expectant. The moment he had looked forward to for so long was about to be realized. He was coming into his own. He was coming home. As the months had dragged or flown along, retarded or spurred on as privation or adventure predominated, thoughts of his own home, while oft recurring, had become less vivid. The old life had grown to seem more like a dream than a reality, and the balking of his determination to reach the coast and return to London had finally thrown the hope of realization so remotely into the future that it too now seemed little more than a pleasant but hopeless dream.
The ape also stood up, half-squatting like his kind. Low growls rumbled from the depths of his chest—growls of eager anticipation. The boy growled in sync with the ape. Then the anthropoid softly lowered himself to the ground. Nearby, towards the sound of the booming drum, was a clearing that they needed to cross. The moon bathed it in silvery light. Half-erect, the large ape shuffled into the bright moonlight. Next to him, the boy walked gracefully, contrasting sharply with his clumsy companion, the dark, shaggy coat of the ape brushing against the smooth, clear skin of the boy. The lad was humming now, a tune from a music hall that had found its way to the great English public school he would never see again. He was happy and filled with expectation. The moment he had long awaited was about to happen. He was coming into his own. He was coming home. As the months had either dragged or flown by, influenced by hardship or adventure, thoughts of his home, while often returning, had become less vivid. His old life seemed more like a dream than something real, and the delay of his determination to reach the coast and return to London had pushed the hope of realizing that dream so far into the future that it now seemed little more than a pleasant but impossible fantasy.
Now all thoughts of London and civilization were crowded so far into the background of his brain that they might as well have been non-existent. Except for form and mental development he was as much an ape as the great, fierce creature at his side.
Now all thoughts of London and civilization were pushed so far back in his mind that they might as well have not existed. Except for his shape and mental growth, he was just as much an ape as the large, fierce creature beside him.
In the exuberance of his joy he slapped his companion roughly on the side of the head. Half in anger, half in play the anthropoid turned upon him, his fangs bared and glistening. Long, hairy arms reached out to seize him, and, as they had done a thousand times before, the two clinched in mimic battle, rolling upon the sward, striking, growling and biting, though never closing their teeth in more than a rough pinch. It was wondrous practice for them both. The boy brought into play wrestling tricks that he had learned at school, and many of these Akut learned to use and to foil. And from the ape the boy learned the methods that had been handed down to Akut from some common ancestor of them both, who had roamed the teeming earth when ferns were trees and crocodiles were birds.
In his excitement, he playfully slapped his friend on the side of the head. Half annoyed, half joking, the anthropoid turned to him, showing off its sharp teeth. Its long, hairy arms reached out to grab him, and just like countless times before, they engaged in a mock battle, rolling on the grass, hitting, growling, and biting each other, but never really biting down hard. It was great practice for both of them. The boy used wrestling moves he had learned at school, and many of these Akut picked up and countered. From the ape, the boy learned techniques passed down to Akut from a shared ancestor who roamed the earth long ago when ferns were tall trees and crocodiles could fly.
But there was one art the boy possessed which Akut could not master, though he did achieve fair proficiency in it for an ape—boxing. To have his bull-like charges stopped and crumpled with a suddenly planted fist upon the end of his snout, or a painful jolt in the short ribs, always surprised Akut. It angered him too, and at such times his mighty jaws came nearer to closing in the soft flesh of his friend than at any other, for he was still an ape, with an ape’s short temper and brutal instincts; but the difficulty was in catching his tormentor while his rage lasted, for when he lost his head and rushed madly into close quarters with the boy he discovered that the stinging hail of blows released upon him always found their mark and effectually stopped him—effectually and painfully. Then he would withdraw growling viciously, backing away with grinning jaws distended, to sulk for an hour or so.
But there was one skill the boy had that Akut couldn't master, even though he did get pretty good at it for an ape—boxing. Having his bull-like charges halted and crumpled by a sudden fist to the end of his snout, or a painful jab to his ribs, always caught Akut off guard. It made him angry too, and during those times, his powerful jaws came closer to clamping down on his friend's soft flesh than ever, since he was still an ape, with an ape's short temper and brutal instincts. The challenge was catching his tormentor while his anger lasted, because when he lost control and charged wildly at the boy, he found that the barrage of punches aimed at him always landed and effectively stopped him—painfully so. Then he would retreat, growling angrily, backing away with his jaws grinning wide, sulking for an hour or so.
Tonight they did not box. Just for a moment or two they wrestled playfully, until the scent of Sheeta, the panther, brought them to their feet, alert and wary. The great cat was passing through the jungle in front of them. For a moment it paused, listening. The boy and the ape growled menacingly in chorus and the carnivore moved on.
Tonight they didn't box. For just a moment or two, they wrestled playfully until the scent of Sheeta, the panther, had them on their feet, alert and cautious. The big cat was moving through the jungle in front of them. It paused for a moment, listening. The boy and the ape growled threateningly in unison, and the carnivore continued on its way.
Then the two took up their journey toward the sound of the Dum-Dum. Louder and louder came the beating of the drum. Now, at last, they could hear the growling of the dancing apes, and strong to their nostrils came the scent of their kind. The lad trembled with excitement. The hair down Akut’s spine stiffened—the symptoms of happiness and anger are often similar.
Then the two continued their journey toward the sound of the Dum-Dum. The beating of the drum grew louder and louder. Finally, they could hear the growling of the dancing apes, and the smell of their kind filled the air. The boy shook with excitement. The hair along Akut’s spine stood on end—happiness and anger often show similar signs.
Silently they crept through the jungle as they neared the meeting place of the apes. Now they were in the trees, worming their way forward, alert for sentinels. Presently through a break in the foliage the scene burst upon the eager eyes of the boy. To Akut it was a familiar one; but to Korak it was all new. His nerves tingled at the savage sight. The great bulls were dancing in the moonlight, leaping in an irregular circle about the flat-topped earthen drum about which three old females sat beating its resounding top with sticks worn smooth by long years of use.
Silently, they moved through the jungle as they approached the meeting point of the apes. Now they were in the trees, carefully making their way forward, on the lookout for sentinels. Soon, through a gap in the leaves, the scene suddenly appeared before the eager eyes of the boy. For Akut, it was a familiar sight; but for Korak, it was all new. His nerves buzzed at the wild spectacle. The big bulls were dancing in the moonlight, jumping in an irregular circle around the flat-topped earth drum, where three older females sat, beating its resonant surface with sticks worn smooth from many years of use.
Akut, knowing the temper and customs of his kind, was too wise to make their presence known until the frenzy of the dance had passed. After the drum was quiet and the bellies of the tribe well-filled he would hail them. Then would come a parley, after which he and Korak would be accepted into membership by the community. There might be those who would object; but such could be overcome by brute force, of which he and the lad had an ample surplus. For weeks, possibly months, their presence might cause ever decreasing suspicion among others of the tribe; but eventually they would become as born brothers to these strange apes.
Akut, understanding the temperament and customs of his kind, was too savvy to reveal their presence until the excitement of the dance was over. After the drum had quieted down and the tribe was well-fed, he would let them know. Then would come discussions, after which he and Korak would be accepted as part of the community. There might be some who would object; but those individuals could be dealt with using the strength they both had in abundance. For weeks, maybe even months, their presence might raise less and less suspicion among the other tribe members; but eventually, they would become like brothers to these unusual apes.
He hoped that they had been among those who had known Tarzan, for that would help in the introduction of the lad and in the consummation of Akut’s dearest wish, that Korak should become king of the apes. It was with difficulty, however, that Akut kept the boy from rushing into the midst of the dancing anthropoids—an act that would have meant the instant extermination of them both, since the hysterical frenzy into which the great apes work themselves during the performance of their strange rites is of such a nature that even the most ferocious of the carnivora give them a wide berth at such times.
He hoped they had been among those who knew Tarzan, as that would help introduce the boy and fulfill Akut’s greatest wish: for Korak to become king of the apes. However, Akut struggled to keep the boy from rushing into the crowd of dancing apes—an act that would mean instant destruction for both of them, since the wild frenzy the great apes enter during their strange rituals is so intense that even the most vicious carnivores steer clear at those times.
As the moon declined slowly toward the lofty, foliaged horizon of the amphitheater the booming of the drum decreased and lessened were the exertions of the dancers, until, at last, the final note was struck and the huge beasts turned to fall upon the feast they had dragged hither for the orgy.
As the moon gradually dipped down toward the tall, leafy horizon of the amphitheater, the sound of the drum started to fade, and the dancers slowed their movements, until finally, the last beat was played and the massive creatures turned to dive into the feast they had brought here for the celebration.
From what he had seen and heard Akut was able to explain to Korak that the rites proclaimed the choosing of a new king, and he pointed out to the boy the massive figure of the shaggy monarch, come into his kingship, no doubt, as many human rulers have come into theirs—by the murder of his predecessor.
From what he had seen and heard, Akut explained to Korak that the rituals announced the selection of a new king. He pointed out to the boy the large figure of the hairy ruler, who had come into his kingship just like many human leaders—through the murder of his predecessor.
When the apes had filled their bellies and many of them had sought the bases of the trees to curl up in sleep Akut plucked Korak by the arm.
When the apes had satisfied their hunger and many of them had found the bases of the trees to curl up and sleep, Akut tugged on Korak's arm.
“Come,” he whispered. “Come slowly. Follow me. Do as Akut does.”
“Come,” he whispered. “Come slowly. Follow me. Do what Akut does.”
Then he advanced slowly through the trees until he stood upon a bough overhanging one side of the amphitheater. Here he stood in silence for a moment. Then he uttered a low growl. Instantly a score of apes leaped to their feet. Their savage little eyes sped quickly around the periphery of the clearing. The king ape was the first to see the two figures upon the branch. He gave voice to an ominous growl. Then he took a few lumbering steps in the direction of the intruders. His hair was bristling. His legs were stiff, imparting a halting, jerky motion to his gait. Behind him pressed a number of bulls.
Then he moved slowly through the trees until he stood on a branch that hung over one side of the amphitheater. He paused in silence for a moment. Then he let out a low growl. Instantly, a group of apes jumped to their feet. Their wild little eyes quickly scanned the edges of the clearing. The king ape was the first to spot the two figures on the branch. He let out a menacing growl. Then he took a few heavy steps toward the intruders. His fur was standing on end. His legs were stiff, giving his movements a clumsy, jerky quality. Behind him, a number of bulls followed closely.
He stopped just a little before he came beneath the two—just far enough to be beyond their spring. Wary king! Here he stood rocking himself to and fro upon his short legs, baring his fangs in hideous grinnings, rumbling out an ever increasing volume of growls, which were slowly but steadily increasing to the proportions of roars. Akut knew that he was planning an attack upon them. The old ape did not wish to fight. He had come with the boy to cast his lot with the tribe.
He stopped just a little before he reached the two—far enough to be out of their range. Cautious king! Here he stood, rocking back and forth on his short legs, showing his teeth with ugly grins, and growling louder and louder, gradually building up to roars. Akut knew he was getting ready to attack them. The old ape didn’t want to fight. He had come with the boy to join the tribe.
“I am Akut,” he said. “This is Korak. Korak is the son of Tarzan who was king of the apes. I, too, was king of the apes who dwelt in the midst of the great waters. We have come to hunt with you, to fight with you. We are great hunters. We are mighty fighters. Let us come in peace.”
“I am Akut,” he said. “This is Korak. Korak is the son of Tarzan, who was the king of the apes. I was also king of the apes that lived by the big waters. We’ve come to hunt with you, to fight with you. We are skilled hunters. We are powerful fighters. Let us come in peace.”
The king ceased his rocking. He eyed the pair from beneath his beetling brows. His bloodshot eyes were savage and crafty. His kingship was very new and he was jealous of it. He feared the encroachments of two strange apes. The sleek, brown, hairless body of the lad spelled “man,” and man he feared and hated.
The king stopped rocking. He glared at the two from underneath his heavy eyebrows. His bloodshot eyes were fierce and cunning. His kingship was still fresh, and he felt jealous of it. He feared the advances of two unfamiliar creatures. The smooth, brown, hairless body of the boy represented “man,” and he both feared and despised man.
“Go away!” he growled. “Go away, or I will kill you.”
“Get lost!” he growled. “Get lost, or I’ll kill you.”
The eager lad, standing behind the great Akut, had been pulsing with anticipation and happiness. He wanted to leap down among these hairy monsters and show them that he was their friend, that he was one of them. He had expected that they would receive him with open arms, and now the words of the king ape filled him with indignation and sorrow. The blacks had set upon him and driven him away. Then he had turned to the white men—to those of his own kind—only to hear the ping of bullets where he had expected words of cordial welcome. The great apes had remained his final hope. To them he looked for the companionship man had denied him. Suddenly rage overwhelmed him.
The eager boy, standing behind the great Akut, was buzzing with anticipation and joy. He wanted to jump down among these hairy creatures and prove he was their friend, that he belonged with them. He had thought they would welcome him with open arms, but now the words of the king ape filled him with anger and sadness. The black creatures had attacked him and forced him away. Then he had turned to the white men—his own kind—only to hear bullets instead of the friendly words he had expected. The great apes were his last hope. He looked to them for the companionship that humanity had denied him. Suddenly, fury took over him.
The king ape was almost directly beneath him. The others were formed in a half circle several yards behind the king. They were watching events interestedly. Before Akut could guess his intention, or prevent, the boy leaped to the ground directly in the path of the king, who had now succeeded in stimulating himself to a frenzy of fury.
The king ape was almost directly below him. The others were arranged in a half-circle several yards behind the king, watching the events with keen interest. Before Akut could figure out his intention or stop him, the boy jumped to the ground right in the king's path, who had now worked himself into a frenzy of rage.
“I am Korak!” shouted the boy. “I am the Killer. I came to live among you as a friend. You want to drive me away. Very well, then, I shall go; but before I go I shall show you that the son of Tarzan is your master, as his father was before him—that he is not afraid of your king or you.”
“I am Korak!” shouted the boy. “I am the Killer. I came to live among you as a friend. You want to drive me away. Fine, then, I’ll leave; but before I go, I’ll show you that the son of Tarzan is your master, just like his father was before him—that he isn’t afraid of your king or you.”
For an instant the king ape had stood motionless with surprise. He had expected no such rash action upon the part of either of the intruders. Akut was equally surprised. Now he shouted excitedly for Korak to come back, for he knew that in the sacred arena the other bulls might be expected to come to the assistance of their king against an outsider, though there was small likelihood that the king would need assistance. Once those mighty jaws closed upon the boy’s soft neck the end would come quickly. To leap to his rescue would mean death for Akut, too; but the brave old ape never hesitated. Bristling and growling, he dropped to the sward just as the king ape charged.
For a moment, the king ape stood frozen in shock. He hadn’t anticipated such a bold move from either of the intruders. Akut was just as taken aback. Now, he shouted urgently for Korak to come back because he realized that in the sacred arena, the other bulls might rush to help their king against an outsider, though it was unlikely the king would actually need help. Once those powerful jaws clamped down on the boy’s delicate neck, it would be over quickly. Jumping in to save him would mean death for Akut as well; but the brave old ape didn’t hesitate. Bristling and growling, he dropped to the ground just as the king ape charged.
The beast’s hands clutched for their hold as the animal sprang upon the lad. The fierce jaws were wide distended to bury the yellow fangs deeply in the brown hide. Korak, too, leaped forward to meet the attack; but leaped crouching, beneath the outstretched arms. At the instant of contact the lad pivoted on one foot, and with all the weight of his body and the strength of his trained muscles drove a clenched fist into the bull’s stomach. With a gasping shriek the king ape collapsed, clutching futilely for the agile, naked creature nimbly sidestepping from his grasp.
The beast's hands reached out as it lunged at the boy. Its fierce jaws opened wide, ready to sink its yellow fangs into the brown hide. Korak also jumped forward to counter the attack, but he crouched low beneath the animal's outstretched arms. At the moment of impact, the boy pivoted on one foot and, using all his body weight and the strength from his trained muscles, drove a clenched fist into the bull’s stomach. With a gasping shriek, the king ape fell, grasping helplessly as the quick, naked figure sidestepped out of its reach.
Howls of rage and dismay broke from the bull apes behind the fallen king, as with murder in their savage little hearts they rushed forward upon Korak and Akut; but the old ape was too wise to court any such unequal encounter. To have counseled the boy to retreat now would have been futile, and Akut knew it. To delay even a second in argument would have sealed the death warrants of them both. There was but a single hope and Akut seized it. Grasping the lad around the waist he lifted him bodily from the ground, and turning ran swiftly toward another tree which swung low branches above the arena. Close upon their heels swarmed the hideous mob; but Akut, old though he was and burdened by the weight of the struggling Korak, was still fleeter than his pursuers.
Howls of anger and distress erupted from the bull apes behind the fallen king as they charged at Korak and Akut, filled with murderous intent. But the old ape was too smart to engage in such an uneven fight. Advising the boy to back away now would have been pointless, and Akut understood that. Even a moment's delay in discussion would have guaranteed their doom. There was only one chance, and Akut took it. He wrapped his arms around the boy's waist, lifted him off the ground, and turned to sprint toward another tree that had low-hanging branches above the clearing. The terrifying mob was right on their heels, but Akut, despite his age and the weight of the struggling Korak, was still faster than his pursuers.
With a bound he grasped a low limb, and with the agility of a little monkey swung himself and the boy to temporary safety. Nor did he hesitate even here; but raced on through the jungle night, bearing his burden to safety. For a time the bulls pursued; but presently, as the swifter outdistanced the slower and found themselves separated from their fellows they abandoned the chase, standing roaring and screaming until the jungle reverberated to their hideous noises. Then they turned and retraced their way to the amphitheater.
With a leap, he grabbed a low branch, and with the speed of a small monkey, he swung himself and the boy to temporary safety. He didn't slow down there; instead, he dashed through the jungle night, carrying his burden to safety. For a while, the bulls chased them; but soon, as the faster ones pulled ahead of the slower ones and found themselves separated from the group, they gave up the pursuit, standing and roaring until the jungle echoed with their awful sounds. Then they turned around and headed back to the amphitheater.
When Akut felt assured that they were no longer pursued he stopped and released Korak. The boy was furious.
When Akut was sure they were no longer being chased, he stopped and let Korak go. The kid was really angry.
“Why did you drag me away?” he cried. “I would have taught them! I would have taught them all! Now they will think that I am afraid of them.”
“Why did you pull me away?” he shouted. “I could have taught them! I would have taught them all! Now they’ll think I’m scared of them.”
“What they think cannot harm you,” said Akut. “You are alive. If I had not brought you away you would be dead now and so would I. Do you not know that even Numa slinks from the path of the great apes when there are many of them and they are mad?”
“What they think can't hurt you,” said Akut. “You're alive. If I hadn't taken you away, you'd be dead now, and so would I. Don't you realize that even Numa stays away from the path of the great apes when there are a lot of them and they’re angry?”
IX.
It was an unhappy Korak who wandered aimlessly through the jungle the day following his inhospitable reception by the great apes. His heart was heavy from disappointment. Unsatisfied vengeance smoldered in his breast. He looked with hatred upon the denizens of his jungle world, baring his fighting fangs and growling at those that came within radius of his senses. The mark of his father’s early life was strong upon him and enhanced by months of association with beasts, from whom the imitative faculty of youth had absorbed a countless number of little mannerisms of the predatory creatures of the wild.
It was a miserable Korak who wandered aimlessly through the jungle the day after his unwelcoming reception by the great apes. His heart was heavy with disappointment. Unfulfilled revenge brewed inside him. He looked at the inhabitants of his jungle world with hatred, showing his teeth and growling at anyone who came close. The influence of his father's past life weighed heavily on him and was intensified by months spent around animals, from whom the mimicking nature of youth had picked up countless little habits of the wild's predatory creatures.
He bared his fangs now as naturally and upon as slight provocation as Sheeta, the panther, bared his. He growled as ferociously as Akut himself. When he came suddenly upon another beast his quick crouch bore a strange resemblance to the arching of a cat’s back. Korak, the killer, was looking for trouble. In his heart of hearts he hoped to meet the king ape who had driven him from the amphitheater. To this end he insisted upon remaining in the vicinity; but the exigencies of the perpetual search for food led them several miles further away during day.
He revealed his fangs now as effortlessly and with as little provocation as Sheeta, the panther, did. He growled as fiercely as Akut himself. When he unexpectedly encountered another beast, his quick crouch looked oddly similar to a cat arching its back. Korak, the killer, was looking for a fight. Deep down, he wanted to run into the king ape who had chased him away from the amphitheater. To achieve this, he insisted on staying close by; however, the constant need to find food led them several miles farther away during the day.
They were moving slowly down wind, and warily because the advantage was with whatever beast might chance to be hunting ahead of them, where their scent-spoor was being borne by the light breeze. Suddenly the two halted simultaneously. Two heads were cocked upon one side. Like creatures hewn from solid rock they stood immovable, listening. Not a muscle quivered. For several seconds they remained thus, then Korak advanced cautiously a few yards and leaped nimbly into a tree. Akut followed close upon his heels. Neither had made a noise that would have been appreciable to human ears at a dozen paces.
They were moving slowly downwind, being careful because any predator hunting ahead of them had the advantage, with their scent being carried by the light breeze. Suddenly, the two stopped at the same time. They tilted their heads to the side. Like statues carved from solid rock, they stood still, listening. Not a muscle twitched. They stayed that way for several seconds, then Korak moved cautiously a few yards and nimbly leaped into a tree. Akut followed right behind him. Neither had made a sound that would be noticeable to human ears from a dozen steps away.
Stopping often to listen they crept forward through the trees. That both were greatly puzzled was apparent from the questioning looks they cast at one another from time to time. Finally the lad caught a glimpse of a palisade a hundred yards ahead, and beyond it the tops of some goatskin tents and a number of thatched huts. His lip upcurled in a savage snarl. Blacks! How he hated them. He signed to Akut to remain where he was while he advanced to reconnoiter.
Stopping frequently to listen, they moved quietly through the trees. It was clear from the questioning glances they exchanged that both were very confused. Finally, the boy caught sight of a palisade about a hundred yards ahead, and beyond it, the tops of some goatskin tents and several thatched huts. His lip curled in a fierce snarl. Blacks! How he loathed them. He gestured for Akut to stay put while he moved forward to scout.
Woe betide the unfortunate villager whom The Killer came upon now. Slinking through the lower branches of the trees, leaping lightly from one jungle giant to its neighbor where the distance was not too great, or swinging from one hand hold to another Korak came silently toward the village. He heard a voice beyond the palisade and toward that he made his way. A great tree overhung the enclosure at the very point from which the voice came. Into this Korak crept. His spear was ready in his hand. His ears told him of the proximity of a human being. All that his eyes required was a single glance to show him his target. Then, lightning like, the missile would fly to its goal. With raised spear he crept among the branches of the tree glaring narrowly downward in search of the owner of the voice which rose to him from below.
Woe to the unfortunate villager who crossed paths with The Killer now. Sneaking through the lower branches of the trees, jumping effortlessly from one jungle giant to the next where the gap wasn’t too wide, or swinging from one handhold to another, Korak moved silently toward the village. He heard a voice beyond the palisade and headed in that direction. A big tree shaded the enclosure right where the voice was coming from. Korak crept into it. His spear was ready in his hand. His ears alerted him to the presence of a human nearby. All his eyes needed was a quick glance to find his target. Then, like lightning, the spear would fly to its mark. With his spear raised, he moved among the branches of the tree, staring intently downward in search of the voice that called to him from below.
At last he saw a human back. The spear hand flew to the limit of the throwing position to gather the force that would send the iron shod missile completely through the body of the unconscious victim. And then The Killer paused. He leaned forward a little to get a better view of the target. Was it to insure more perfect aim, or had there been that in the graceful lines and the childish curves of the little body below him that had held in check the spirit of murder running riot in his veins?
At last, he spotted a human back. His spear hand moved to the maximum throwing position to build up the force that would launch the iron-tipped missile straight through the body of the unconscious victim. And then, The Killer hesitated. He leaned forward slightly to get a better look at the target. Was it to ensure a more accurate aim, or was there something in the graceful lines and the innocent curves of the little body beneath him that had restrained the urge to kill surging through his veins?
He lowered his spear cautiously that it might make no noise by scraping against foliage or branches. Quietly he crouched in a comfortable position along a great limb and there he lay with wide eyes looking down in wonder upon the creature he had crept upon to kill—looking down upon a little girl, a little nut brown maiden. The snarl had gone from his lip. His only expression was one of interested attention—he was trying to discover what the girl was doing. Suddenly a broad grin overspread his face, for a turn of the girl’s body had revealed Geeka of the ivory head and the rat skin torso—Geeka of the splinter limbs and the disreputable appearance. The little girl raised the marred face to hers and rocking herself backward and forward crooned a plaintive Arab lullaby to the doll. A softer light entered the eyes of The Killer. For a long hour that passed very quickly to him Korak lay with gaze riveted upon the playing child. Not once had he had a view of the girl’s full face. For the most part he saw only a mass of wavy, black hair, one brown little shoulder exposed upon the side from where her single robe was caught beneath her arm, and a shapely knee protruding from beneath her garment as she sat cross legged upon the ground. A tilt of the head as she emphasized some maternal admonition to the passive Geeka revealed occasionally a rounded cheek or a piquant little chin. Now she was shaking a slim finger at Geeka, reprovingly, and again she crushed to her heart this only object upon which she might lavish the untold wealth of her childish affections.
He carefully lowered his spear, trying to avoid any noise from scraping against leaves or branches. Quietly, he crouched in a comfortable position on a thick branch, lying there with wide eyes, marveling at the creature he intended to kill—looking down at a little girl, a small nut-brown maiden. The snarl had disappeared from his lips, replaced by a look of keen interest—he was trying to see what the girl was up to. Suddenly, a broad grin spread across his face as a shift in the girl’s body revealed Geeka, the doll with the ivory head and rat skin torso—Geeka with the splintered limbs and shabby appearance. The little girl raised the damaged doll to her face and began rocking back and forth, softly singing a sad Arab lullaby to it. A softer light filled The Killer’s eyes. For what felt like a long hour, which passed quickly for him, Korak lay fixated on the playful child. He had never seen the girl’s full face. Most of the time, he could only make out a mass of wavy black hair, one little brown shoulder exposed from under her single robe caught beneath her arm, and a shapely knee sticking out from under her garment as she sat cross-legged on the ground. A tilt of her head as she emphasized some maternal scolding to the passive Geeka occasionally revealed a rounded cheek or a cute little chin. Now, she was shaking a slim finger at Geeka reproachfully, and again, she pressed the only object of her boundless childhood affection close to her heart.
Korak, momentarily forgetful of his bloody mission, permitted the fingers of his spear hand to relax a little their grasp upon the shaft of his formidable weapon. It slipped, almost falling; but the occurrence recalled The Killer to himself. It reminded him of his purpose in slinking stealthily upon the owner of the voice that had attracted his vengeful attention. He glanced at the spear, with its well-worn grip and cruel, barbed head. Then he let his eyes wander again to the dainty form below him. In imagination he saw the heavy weapon shooting downward. He saw it pierce the tender flesh, driving its way deep into the yielding body. He saw the ridiculous doll drop from its owner’s arms to lie sprawled and pathetic beside the quivering body of the little girl. The Killer shuddered, scowling at the inanimate iron and wood of the spear as though they constituted a sentient being endowed with a malignant mind.
Korak, briefly forgetting his bloody mission, loosened his grip on the shaft of his powerful weapon. It nearly fell from his hand, but this reminded him of his goal to sneak up on the owner of the voice that had caught his vengeful attention. He looked at the spear, with its worn grip and sharp, barbed tip. Then he let his gaze drift back to the delicate figure below him. In his mind, he envisioned the heavy weapon plunging downwards. He imagined it piercing the soft flesh, embedding deep into the yielding body. He pictured the silly doll dropping from its owner’s arms to lie sprawled and pitiful next to the trembling body of the little girl. The Killer shuddered, glaring at the lifeless steel and wood of the spear as if they were a living being with an evil mind.
Korak wondered what the girl would do were he to drop suddenly from the tree to her side. Most likely she would scream and run away. Then would come the men of the village with spears and guns and set upon him. They would either kill him or drive him away. A lump rose in the boy’s throat. He craved the companionship of his own kind, though he scarce realized how greatly. He would have liked to slip down beside the little girl and talk with her, though he knew from the words he had overheard that she spoke a language with which he was unfamiliar. They could have talked by signs a little. That would have been better than nothing. Too, he would have been glad to see her face. What he had glimpsed assured him that she was pretty; but her strongest appeal to him lay in the affectionate nature revealed by her gentle mothering of the grotesque doll.
Korak wondered what the girl would do if he suddenly dropped from the tree to her side. Most likely, she would scream and run away. Then the men from the village would come with spears and guns and attack him. They would either kill him or chase him off. A lump formed in the boy’s throat. He longed for the company of his own kind, though he hardly realized just how much. He would have liked to slip down beside the little girl and talk with her, even though he knew from the words he had overheard that she spoke a language he didn't understand. They could have communicated with gestures a little. That would have been better than nothing. Plus, he would have been happy to see her face. What he had seen assured him that she was pretty; but what attracted him the most was the affectionate nature revealed by her gentle care of the strange doll.
At last he hit upon a plan. He would attract her attention, and reassure her by a smiling greeting from a greater distance. Silently he wormed his way back into the tree. It was his intention to hail her from beyond the palisade, giving her the feeling of security which he imagined the stout barricade would afford.
At last, he came up with a plan. He would catch her attention and reassure her with a friendly wave from a distance. Quietly, he climbed back into the tree. His goal was to call out to her from beyond the fence, making her feel safe, just like he thought the strong barrier would provide.
He had scarcely left his position in the tree when his attention was attracted by a considerable noise upon the opposite side of the village. By moving a little he could see the gate at the far end of the main street. A number of men, women and children were running toward it. It swung open, revealing the head of a caravan upon the opposite side. In trooped the motley organization—black slaves and dark hued Arabs of the northern deserts; cursing camel drivers urging on their vicious charges; overburdened donkeys, waving sadly pendulous ears while they endured with stoic patience the brutalities of their masters; goats, sheep and horses. Into the village they all trooped behind a tall, sour, old man, who rode without greetings to those who shrunk from his path directly to a large goatskin tent in the center of the village. Here he spoke to a wrinkled hag.
He had barely left his spot in the tree when a loud noise caught his attention from the other side of the village. By shifting just a bit, he could see the gate at the far end of the main street. A group of men, women, and children was running toward it. The gate swung open, revealing the head of a caravan on the other side. In came the colorful bunch—black slaves and dark-skinned Arabs from the northern deserts; swearing camel drivers pushing their mean animals; overloaded donkeys, whose droopy ears waved sadly as they patiently endured their masters' harsh treatment; goats, sheep, and horses. They all marched into the village behind a tall, grumpy old man, who rode past those who shrank back from his path without a word, directly to a large goatskin tent in the center of the village. There, he spoke to a wrinkled old woman.
Korak, from his vantage spot, could see it all. He saw the old man asking questions of the black woman, and then he saw the latter point toward a secluded corner of the village which was hidden from the main street by the tents of the Arabs and the huts of the natives in the direction of the tree beneath which the little girl played. This was doubtless her father, thought Korak. He had been away and his first thought upon returning was of his little daughter. How glad she would be to see him! How she would run and throw herself into his arms, to be crushed to his breast and covered with his kisses. Korak sighed. He thought of his own father and mother far away in London.
Korak, from his vantage point, could see everything. He noticed the old man asking questions of the Black woman, and then he saw her point to a secluded corner of the village, tucked away from the main street behind the tents of the Arabs and the huts of the locals, leading towards the tree where the little girl played. This was likely her father, Korak thought. He had been away, and his first thought upon returning was of his daughter. How happy she would be to see him! How she would rush into his arms, wanting to be held tight and showered with kisses. Korak sighed. He thought about his own parents, far away in London.
He returned to his place in the tree above the girl. If he couldn’t have happiness of this sort himself he wanted to enjoy the happiness of others. Possibly if he made himself known to the old man he might be permitted to come to the village occasionally as a friend. It would be worth trying. He would wait until the old Arab had greeted his daughter, then he would make his presence known with signs of peace.
He went back to his spot in the tree above the girl. If he couldn’t have happiness like that himself, he wanted to share in the happiness of others. Maybe if he introduced himself to the old man, he could visit the village sometimes as a friend. It was worth a shot. He would wait until the old Arab greeted his daughter, then he would signal his presence with signs of peace.
The Arab was striding softly toward the girl. In a moment he would be beside her, and then how surprised and delighted she would be! Korak’s eyes sparkled in anticipation—and now the old man stood behind the little girl. His stern old face was still unrelaxed. The child was yet unconscious of his presence. She prattled on to the unresponsive Geeka. Then the old man coughed. With a start the child glanced quickly up over her shoulder. Korak could see her full face now. It was very beautiful in its sweet and innocent childishness—all soft and lovely curves. He could see her great, dark eyes. He looked for the happy love light that would follow recognition; but it did not come. Instead, terror, stark, paralyzing terror, was mirrored in her eyes, in the expression of her mouth, in the tense, cowering attitude of her body. A grim smile curved the thin, cruel lip of the Arab. The child essayed to crawl away; but before she could get out of his reach the old man kicked her brutally, sending her sprawling upon the grass. Then he followed her up to seize and strike her as was his custom.
The Arab was walking quietly toward the girl. In a moment, he would be beside her, and how surprised and delighted she would be! Korak's eyes sparkled in anticipation—and now the old man stood behind the little girl. His stern face was still unwarmed. The child was still unaware of his presence. She chattered away to the unresponsive Geeka. Then the old man coughed. Startled, the child glanced quickly over her shoulder. Korak could see her entire face now. It was very beautiful in its sweet and innocent childishness—all soft and lovely curves. He could see her big, dark eyes. He waited for the joyful recognition to bring love into her gaze; but it didn’t happen. Instead, sheer, paralyzing terror was reflected in her eyes, in the expression on her mouth, in the tense, shrinking posture of her body. A grim smile twisted the thin, cruel lips of the Arab. The child tried to crawl away; but before she could escape his reach, the old man kicked her brutally, sending her sprawling onto the grass. Then he approached to grab and hit her as was his habit.
Above them, in the tree, a beast crouched where a moment before had been a boy—a beast with dilating nostrils and bared fangs—a beast that trembled with rage.
Above them, in the tree, a creature crouched where just a moment before had been a boy—a creature with flaring nostrils and exposed fangs—a creature that shook with anger.
The Sheik was stooping to reach for the girl when The Killer dropped to the ground at his side. His spear was still in his left hand but he had forgotten it. Instead his right fist was clenched and as The Sheik took a backward step, astonished by the sudden materialization of this strange apparition apparently out of clear air, the heavy fist landed full upon his mouth backed by the weight of the young giant and the terrific power of his more than human muscles.
The Sheik was bending down to grab the girl when The Killer dropped down next to him. He still had his spear in his left hand, but it slipped his mind. Instead, his right fist was tight with anger, and as The Sheik took a step back, shocked by the sudden appearance of this strange figure seeming to come out of nowhere, the heavy fist struck him squarely on the mouth, propelled by the strength of the young giant and the incredible power of his superhuman muscles.
Bleeding and senseless The Sheik sank to earth. Korak turned toward the child. She had regained her feet and stood wide eyed and frightened, looking first into his face and then, horror struck, at the recumbent figure of The Sheik. In an involuntary gesture of protection The Killer threw an arm about the girl’s shoulders and stood waiting for the Arab to regain consciousness. For a moment they remained thus, when the girl spoke.
Bleeding and unconscious, The Sheik collapsed to the ground. Korak faced the child. She had gotten back on her feet and stood wide-eyed and terrified, first looking into his face and then, horrified, at the fallen figure of The Sheik. In an instinctive gesture of protection, The Killer wrapped an arm around the girl's shoulders and waited for the Arab to regain consciousness. They stayed that way for a moment until the girl spoke.
“When he regains his senses he will kill me,” she said, in Arabic.
“When he comes to his senses, he will kill me,” she said in Arabic.
Korak could not understand her. He shook his head, speaking to her first in English and then in the language of the great apes; but neither of these was intelligible to her. She leaned forward and touched the hilt of the long knife that the Arab wore. Then she raised her clasped hand above her head and drove an imaginary blade into her breast above her heart. Korak understood. The old man would kill her. The girl came to his side again and stood there trembling. She did not fear him. Why should she? He had saved her from a terrible beating at the hands of The Sheik. Never, in her memory, had another so befriended her. She looked up into his face. It was a boyish, handsome face, nut-brown like her own. She admired the spotted leopard skin that circled his lithe body from one shoulder to his knees. The metal anklets and armlets adorning him aroused her envy. Always had she coveted something of the kind; but never had The Sheik permitted her more than the single cotton garment that barely sufficed to cover her nakedness. No furs or silks or jewelry had there ever been for little Meriem.
Korak couldn't understand her. He shook his head, speaking to her first in English and then in the language of the great apes, but she didn't understand either. She leaned forward and touched the hilt of the long knife that the Arab wore. Then she raised her clasped hand above her head and pretended to drive an imaginary blade into her chest above her heart. Korak got it. The old man would kill her. The girl came back to his side and stood there trembling. She didn't fear him. Why would she? He had saved her from a brutal beating at the hands of The Sheik. Never, in her memory, had anyone been so kind to her. She looked up into his face. It was a youthful, handsome face, nut-brown like her own. She admired the spotted leopard skin wrapped around his athletic body from one shoulder to his knees. The metal anklets and armlets he wore made her envious. She had always wanted something like that, but The Sheik had never allowed her more than the single cotton garment that barely covered her. No furs, silks, or jewelry had ever been for little Meriem.
And Korak looked at the girl. He had always held girls in a species of contempt. Boys who associated with them were, in his estimation, mollycoddles. He wondered what he should do. Could he leave her here to be abused, possibly murdered, by the villainous old Arab? No! But, on the other hand, could he take her into the jungle with him? What could he accomplish burdened by a weak and frightened girl? She would scream at her own shadow when the moon came out upon the jungle night and the great beasts roamed, moaning and roaring, through the darkness.
And Korak looked at the girl. He had always viewed girls with a certain disdain. Boys who hung out with them, in his opinion, were soft. He wondered what he should do. Could he really leave her here to be mistreated, maybe even killed, by the evil old Arab? No! But could he take her into the jungle with him? What could he achieve while carrying a scared and weak girl? She would scream at her own shadow when the moon lit up the night and the large beasts wandered, moaning and roaring, through the darkness.
He stood for several minutes buried in thought. The girl watched his face, wondering what was passing in his mind. She, too, was thinking of the future. She feared to remain and suffer the vengeance of The Sheik. There was no one in all the world to whom she might turn, other than this half-naked stranger who had dropped miraculously from the clouds to save her from one of The Sheik’s accustomed beatings. Would her new friend leave her now? Wistfully she gazed at his intent face. She moved a little closer to him, laying a slim, brown hand upon his arm. The contact awakened the lad from his absorption. He looked down at her, and then his arm went about her shoulder once more, for he saw tears upon her lashes.
He stood for several minutes deep in thought. The girl watched his face, curious about what was on his mind. She was also thinking about the future. She was scared of staying and facing The Sheik's wrath. There was no one in the world she could turn to except this half-naked stranger who had miraculously appeared to save her from one of The Sheik’s usual beatings. Would her new friend abandon her now? Longingly, she looked at his focused face. She moved a bit closer, placing a slim, brown hand on his arm. The touch brought him out of his thoughts. He looked down at her, and then he put his arm around her shoulder again when he noticed tears on her lashes.
“Come,” he said. “The jungle is kinder than man. You shall live in the jungle and Korak and Akut will protect you.”
“Come on,” he said. “The jungle is more forgiving than people. You’ll live in the jungle and Korak and Akut will look after you.”
She did not understand his words, but the pressure of his arm drawing her away from the prostrate Arab and the tents was quite intelligible. One little arm crept about his waist and together they walked toward the palisade. Beneath the great tree that had harbored Korak while he watched the girl at play he lifted her in his arms and throwing her lightly across his shoulder leaped nimbly into the lower branches. Her arms were about his neck and from one little hand Geeka dangled down his straight young back.
She didn't understand what he was saying, but the way he was guiding her away from the lying Arab and the tents was clear enough. One small arm wrapped around his waist, and together they walked toward the fence. Under the big tree where Korak had been hiding while watching the girl play, he picked her up and tossed her lightly over his shoulder, jumping skillfully into the lower branches. Her arms were around his neck, and one little hand dangled down his straight young back.
And so Meriem entered the jungle with Korak, trusting, in her childish innocence, the stranger who had befriended her, and perhaps influenced in her belief in him by that strange intuitive power possessed by woman. She had no conception of what the future might hold. She did not know, nor could she have guessed the manner of life led by her protector. Possibly she pictured a distant village similar to that of The Sheik in which lived other white men like the stranger. That she was to be taken into the savage, primeval life of a jungle beast could not have occurred to her. Had it, her little heart would have palpitated with fear. Often had she wished to run away from the cruelties of The Sheik and Mabunu; but the dangers of the jungle always had deterred her.
And so Meriem entered the jungle with Korak, trusting, in her youthful innocence, the stranger who had become her friend, perhaps influenced by that strange instinctive power women possess. She had no idea what the future might bring. She didn’t know, nor could she have imagined, the kind of life her protector led. Maybe she envisioned a distant village like that of The Sheik where other white men lived, just like the stranger. The thought that she would be taken into the wild, primal existence of a jungle creature never crossed her mind. If it had, her little heart would have raced with fear. She had often wanted to escape the cruelty of The Sheik and Mabunu; but the dangers of the jungle had always held her back.
The two had gone but a short distance from the village when the girl spied the huge proportions of the great Akut. With a half-stifled scream she clung more closely to Korak, and pointed fearfully toward the ape.
The two had walked only a little way from the village when the girl spotted the massive figure of the great Akut. With a half-stifled scream, she held on tighter to Korak and pointed fearfully at the ape.
Akut, thinking that The Killer was returning with a prisoner, came growling toward them—a little girl aroused no more sympathy in the beast’s heart than would a full-grown bull ape. She was a stranger and therefore to be killed. He bared his yellow fangs as he approached, and to his surprise The Killer bared his likewise, but he bared them at Akut, and snarled menacingly.
Akut, believing that The Killer was coming back with a prisoner, growled as he moved toward them—a little girl didn’t evoke any more sympathy in the beast’s heart than a fully grown bull ape would. She was a stranger and therefore meant to be killed. He showed his yellow fangs as he got closer, and to his surprise, The Killer showed his too, but aimed them at Akut and snarled threateningly.
“Ah,” thought Akut, “The Killer has taken a mate,” and so, obedient to the tribal laws of his kind, he left them alone, becoming suddenly absorbed in a fuzzy caterpillar of peculiarly succulent appearance. The larva disposed of, he glanced from the corner of an eye at Korak. The youth had deposited his burden upon a large limb, where she clung desperately to keep from falling.
“Ah,” thought Akut, “The Killer has found a mate,” and so, following the tribal customs of his kind, he left them alone, suddenly focused on a fuzzy caterpillar that looked particularly tasty. After dealing with the larva, he glanced out of the corner of his eye at Korak. The young man had placed his burden on a large branch, where she clung on tightly to avoid falling.
“She will accompany us,” said Korak to Akut, jerking a thumb in the direction of the girl. “Do not harm her. We will protect her.”
“She’s coming with us,” Korak said to Akut, pointing at the girl. “Don’t hurt her. We’ll take care of her.”
Akut shrugged. To be burdened by the young of man was in no way to his liking. He could see from her evident fright at her position on the branch, and from the terrified glances she cast in his direction that she was hopelessly unfit. By all the ethics of Akut’s training and inheritance the unfit should be eliminated; but if The Killer wished this there was nothing to be done about it but to tolerate her. Akut certainly didn’t want her—of that he was quite positive. Her skin was too smooth and hairless. Quite snake-like, in fact, and her face was most unattractive. Not at all like that of a certain lovely she he had particularly noticed among the apes in the amphitheater the previous night. Ah, there was true feminine beauty for one!—a great, generous mouth; lovely, yellow fangs, and the cutest, softest side whiskers! Akut sighed. Then he rose, expanded his great chest and strutted back and forth along a substantial branch, for even a puny thing like this she of Korak’s might admire his fine coat and his graceful carriage.
Akut shrugged. Being weighed down by a young human was definitely not his thing. He could tell from her clear fear of being on the branch and the terrified looks she shot his way that she was totally unqualified. According to all the ethics of Akut’s training and background, the unfit should be removed; but if The Killer wanted her around, there was nothing to do but tolerate her. Akut definitely didn’t want her—he was sure of that. Her skin was too smooth and hairless, almost snake-like, and her face was quite unattractive. Not at all like the beautiful female he had noticed among the apes in the amphitheater the night before. Now, that was true feminine beauty!—with a big, generous mouth, lovely yellow fangs, and the cutest, softest side whiskers! Akut sighed. Then he stood up, puffed out his chest, and strutted back and forth on a sturdy branch, hoping even a weakling like this girl from Korak’s might admire his fine coat and graceful stride.
But poor little Meriem only shrank closer to Korak and almost wished that she were back in the village of The Sheik where the terrors of existence were of human origin, and so more or less familiar. The hideous ape frightened her. He was so large and so ferocious in appearance. His actions she could only interpret as a menace, for how could she guess that he was parading to excite admiration? Nor could she know of the bond of fellowship which existed between this great brute and the godlike youth who had rescued her from the Sheik.
But poor little Meriem just cuddled closer to Korak and almost wished she were back in the village of The Sheik, where the fears of life came from humans and were somewhat familiar. The terrifying ape scared her. He was so big and so fierce-looking. She could only see his actions as a threat because there was no way for her to know he was showing off to gain admiration. She also couldn't understand the bond of friendship between this giant beast and the heroic young man who had saved her from the Sheik.
Meriem spent an evening and a night of unmitigated terror. Korak and Akut led her along dizzy ways as they searched for food. Once they hid her in the branches of a tree while they stalked a near-by buck. Even her natural terror of being left alone in the awful jungle was submerged in a greater horror as she saw the man and the beast spring simultaneously upon their prey and drag it down, as she saw the handsome face of her preserver contorted in a bestial snarl; as she saw his strong, white teeth buried in the soft flesh of the kill.
Meriem spent an evening and a night filled with absolute fear. Korak and Akut guided her through confusing paths as they looked for food. At one point, they hid her in the branches of a tree while they hunted a nearby buck. Even her natural fear of being left alone in the terrifying jungle was overwhelmed by a greater horror when she saw the man and the beast leap at the same time to capture their prey and take it down. She watched as her rescuer's handsome face twisted into a savage snarl and saw his strong, white teeth buried in the tender flesh of the kill.
When he came back to her blood smeared his face and hands and breast and she shrank from him as he offered her a huge hunk of hot, raw meat. He was evidently much disturbed by her refusal to eat, and when, a moment later, he scampered away into the forest to return with fruit for her she was once more forced to alter her estimation of him. This time she did not shrink, but acknowledged his gift with a smile that, had she known it, was more than ample payment to the affection starved boy.
When he came back to her, blood was smeared across his face, hands, and chest, and she recoiled from him as he offered her a large piece of hot, raw meat. He was clearly upset by her refusal to eat, and a moment later, he ran off into the forest to come back with fruit for her. She was once again compelled to change her opinion of him. This time she didn’t pull away but accepted his gift with a smile that, if she had realized it, was more than enough reward for the affection-starved boy.
The sleeping problem vexed Korak. He knew that the girl could not balance herself in safety in a tree crotch while she slept, nor would it be safe to permit her to sleep upon the ground open to the attacks of prowling beasts of prey. There was but a single solution that presented itself—he must hold her in his arms all night. And that he did, with Akut braced upon one side of her and he upon the other, so that she was warmed by the bodies of them both.
The sleeping problem troubled Korak. He knew the girl couldn’t safely balance herself in a tree while she slept, nor was it safe to let her sleep on the ground where she could be attacked by lurking predators. The only solution that came to mind was to hold her in his arms all night. And that’s what he did, with Akut on one side of her and him on the other, so she was kept warm by both of their bodies.
She did not sleep much until the night was half spent; but at last Nature overcame her terrors of the black abyss beneath and the hairy body of the wild beast at her side, and she fell into a deep slumber which outlasted the darkness. When she opened her eyes the sun was well up. At first she could not believe in the reality of her position. Her head had rolled from Korak’s shoulder so that her eyes were directed upon the hairy back of the ape. At sight of it she shrank away. Then she realized that someone was holding her, and turning her head she saw the smiling eyes of the youth regarding her. When he smiled she could not fear him, and now she shrank closer against him in natural revulsion toward the rough coat of the brute upon her other side.
She didn't sleep much until the night was halfway over; but eventually, nature took over her fears of the dark abyss beneath her and the hairy body of the wild animal beside her, and she fell into a deep sleep that lasted through the darkness. When she opened her eyes, the sun was already up. At first, she couldn’t believe her situation. Her head had rolled off Korak’s shoulder, so she was looking at the hairy back of the ape. Seeing it made her flinch. Then she realized that someone was holding her, and when she turned her head, she saw the youth's smiling eyes looking at her. When he smiled, she couldn't be afraid of him, and now she pressed closer to him, feeling a natural aversion to the rough coat of the beast on her other side.
Korak spoke to her in the language of the apes; but she shook her head, and spoke to him in the language of the Arab, which was as unintelligible to him as was ape speech to her. Akut sat up and looked at them. He could understand what Korak said but the girl made only foolish noises that were entirely unintelligible and ridiculous. Akut could not understand what Korak saw in her to attract him. He looked at her long and steadily, appraising her carefully, then he scratched his head, rose and shook himself.
Korak spoke to her in ape language, but she shook her head and responded in Arabic, which was as confusing to him as ape speech was to her. Akut sat up and watched them. He could understand what Korak was saying, but the girl only made silly sounds that were completely meaningless and absurd. Akut couldn’t figure out what Korak found appealing about her. He stared at her for a long time, assessing her carefully, then scratched his head, stood up, and shook himself off.
His movement gave the girl a little start—she had forgotten Akut for the moment. Again she shrank from him. The beast saw that she feared him, and being a brute enjoyed the evidence of the terror his brutishness inspired. Crouching, he extended his huge hand stealthily toward her, as though to seize her. She shrank still further away. Akut’s eyes were busy drinking in the humor of the situation—he did not see the narrowing eyes of the boy upon him, nor the shortening neck as the broad shoulders rose in a characteristic attitude of preparation for attack. As the ape’s fingers were about to close upon the girl’s arm the youth rose suddenly with a short, vicious growl. A clenched fist flew before Meriem’s eyes to land full upon the snout of the astonished Akut. With an explosive bellow the anthropoid reeled backward and tumbled from the tree.
His movement startled the girl—she had forgotten about Akut for a moment. She recoiled from him again. The beast noticed her fear and, being a brute, relished the terror his brute nature inspired. Crouching, he stealthily reached out his massive hand toward her, as if to grab her. She shrank even further away. Akut’s eyes were focused on the humor of the situation—he didn’t see the boy’s narrowed eyes on him, nor the way his neck shrank as his broad shoulders tensed in a classic posture of preparing to attack. Just as the ape's fingers were about to grip the girl’s arm, the youth suddenly surged up with a quick, fierce growl. A clenched fist shot past Meriem’s face and landed squarely on the snout of the shocked Akut. With a loud bellow, the anthropoid staggered back and fell from the tree.
Korak stood glaring down upon him when a sudden swish in the bushes close by attracted his attention. The girl too was looking down; but she saw nothing but the angry ape scrambling to his feet. Then, like a bolt from a cross bow, a mass of spotted, yellow fur shot into view straight for Akut’s back. It was Sheeta, the leopard.
Korak stood glaring down at him when a sudden rustle in the bushes nearby caught his attention. The girl was also looking down, but she only saw the angry ape getting to his feet. Then, like a shot from a crossbow, a mass of spotted, yellow fur burst into view, heading straight for Akut’s back. It was Sheeta, the leopard.
X.
As the leopard leaped for the great ape Meriem gasped in surprise and horror—not for the impending fate of the anthropoid, but at the act of the youth who but an instant before had angrily struck his strange companion; for scarce had the carnivore burst into view than with drawn knife the youth had leaped far out above him, so that as Sheeta was almost in the act of sinking fangs and talons in Akut’s broad back The Killer landed full upon the leopard’s shoulders.
As the leopard jumped for the great ape, Meriem gasped in surprise and horror—not because of the imminent danger facing the anthropoid, but because of the young man who, just a moment earlier, had angrily struck his unusual companion. Hardly had the predator appeared when the youth, with knife drawn, leaped far over him. Just as Sheeta was about to sink his fangs and claws into Akut’s broad back, The Killer landed directly on the leopard's shoulders.
The cat halted in mid air, missed the ape by but a hair’s breadth, and with horrid snarlings rolled over upon its back, clutching and clawing in an effort to reach and dislodge the antagonist biting at its neck and knifing it in the side.
The cat stopped suddenly in mid-air, barely missing the ape, and with a terrifying snarl, rolled onto its back, scratching and clawing to try to reach and get rid of the enemy that was biting its neck and stabbing it in the side.
Akut, startled by the sudden rush from his rear, and following hoary instinct, was in the tree beside the girl with an agility little short of marvelous in so heavy a beast. But the moment that he turned to see what was going on below him brought him as quickly to the ground again. Personal differences were quickly forgotten in the danger which menaced his human companion, nor was he a whit less eager to jeopardize his own safety in the service of his friend than Korak had been to succor him.
Akut, startled by the sudden movement behind him, instinctively jumped into the tree next to the girl, showing agility that was almost incredible for such a big creature. But as soon as he turned to see what was happening below, he quickly came back down. Any personal issues faded away in the face of the danger threatening his human companion, and he was just as willing to put himself at risk to help his friend as Korak had been to come to his aid.
The result was that Sheeta presently found two ferocious creatures tearing him to ribbons. Shrieking, snarling and growling, the three rolled hither and thither among the underbrush, while with staring eyes the sole spectator of the battle royal crouched trembling in the tree above them hugging Geeka frantically to her breast.
The result was that Sheeta soon found two fierce creatures ripping him apart. Screaming, snarling, and growling, the three rolled back and forth in the underbrush, while with wide eyes the only observer of the chaotic scene crouched nervously in the tree above them, clutching Geeka tightly to her chest.
It was the boy’s knife which eventually decided the battle, and as the fierce feline shuddered convulsively and rolled over upon its side the youth and the ape rose and faced one another across the prostrate carcass. Korak jerked his head in the direction of the little girl in the tree.
It was the boy’s knife that ultimately decided the battle, and as the fierce cat shuddered violently and rolled onto its side, the young man and the ape stood up and faced each other across the fallen body. Korak nodded toward the little girl in the tree.
“Leave her alone,” he said; “she is mine.”
“Leave her alone,” he said. “She’s mine.”
Akut grunted, blinked his blood-shot eyes, and turned toward the body of Sheeta. Standing erect upon it he threw out his great chest, raised his face toward the heavens and gave voice to so horrid a scream that once again the little girl shuddered and shrank. It was the victory cry of the bull ape that has made a kill. The boy only looked on for a moment in silence; then he leaped into the tree again to the girl’s side. Akut presently rejoined them. For a few minutes he busied himself licking his wounds, then he wandered off to hunt his breakfast.
Akut grunted, blinked his bloodshot eyes, and turned toward Sheeta's body. Standing over it, he puffed out his chest, lifted his face to the sky, and let out such a horrific scream that the little girl shuddered and backed away. It was the victory cry of the bull ape that has made a kill. The boy only watched in silence for a moment; then he jumped back into the tree to the girl's side. Akut soon joined them. For a few minutes, he occupied himself with licking his wounds, then he wandered off to hunt for breakfast.
For many months the strange life of the three went on unmarked by any unusual occurrences. At least without any occurrences that seemed unusual to the youth or the ape; but to the little girl it was a constant nightmare of horrors for days and weeks, until she too became accustomed to gazing into the eyeless sockets of death and to the feel of the icy wind of his shroud-like mantle. Slowly she learned the rudiments of the only common medium of thought exchange which her companions possessed—the language of the great apes. More quickly she perfected herself in jungle craft, so that the time soon came when she was an important factor in the chase, watching while the others slept, or helping them to trace the spoor of whatever prey they might be stalking. Akut accepted her on a footing which bordered upon equality when it was necessary for them to come into close contact; but for the most part he avoided her. The youth always was kind to her, and if there were many occasions upon which he felt the burden of her presence he hid it from her. Finding that the night damp and chill caused her discomfort and even suffering, Korak constructed a tight little shelter high among the swaying branches of a giant tree. Here little Meriem slept in comparative warmth and safety, while The Killer and the ape perched upon near-by branches, the former always before the entrance to the lofty domicile, where he best could guard its inmate from the dangers of arboreal enemies. They were too high to feel much fear of Sheeta; but there was always Histah, the snake, to strike terror to one’s soul, and the great baboons who lived near-by, and who, while never attacking always bared their fangs and barked at any of the trio when they passed near them.
For many months, the strange lives of the three went on without any unusual events. At least, there was nothing that seemed unusual to the boy or the ape; but for the little girl, it was a constant nightmare filled with horrors for days and weeks, until she too became used to staring into the eyeless sockets of death and feeling the icy wind of his shroud-like mantle. Slowly, she learned the basics of the only common way of communicating that her companions had—the language of the great apes. She quickly got better at jungle survival skills, so much so that the time soon came when she was a crucial part of the hunt, keeping watch while the others slept or helping them track any prey they were after. Akut treated her almost as an equal when they needed to be close; but for the most part, he stayed away from her. The boy was always kind to her, and even though there were many times he felt the weight of her presence, he hid it from her. Noticing that the night’s damp and cold caused her discomfort and even pain, Korak built a snug little shelter high up in the swaying branches of a giant tree. Here, little Meriem slept in relative warmth and safety, while The Killer and the ape perched on nearby branches, with the former always positioned at the entrance to the high home, where he could best protect its occupant from the dangers of tree-dwelling enemies. They were too high to feel much fear of Sheeta; but Histah, the snake, was always there to strike terror into one’s soul, along with the large baboons living nearby, who, while never attacking, always bared their fangs and barked at any of the trio when they passed close by.
After the construction of the shelter the activities of the three became localized. They ranged less widely, for there was always the necessity of returning to their own tree at nightfall. A river flowed near by. Game and fruit were plentiful, as were fish also. Existence had settled down to the daily humdrum of the wild—the search for food and the sleeping upon full bellies. They looked no further ahead than today. If the youth thought of his past and of those who longed for him in the distant metropolis it was in a detached and impersonal sort of way as though that other life belonged to another creature than himself. He had given up hope of returning to civilization, for since his various rebuffs at the hands of those to whom he had looked for friendship he had wandered so far inland as to realize that he was completely lost in the mazes of the jungle.
After they built the shelter, the three of them mostly stayed in one area. They traveled less far because they needed to return to their own tree by nightfall. A river flowed nearby, and there was plenty of game, fruit, and fish. Life had settled into the routine of the wild—finding food during the day and sleeping on full bellies at night. They didn’t think much beyond the present. When the young man thought about his past and the people in the distant city who missed him, it felt distant and impersonal, like that life belonged to someone else. He had lost hope of going back to civilization; after being rejected by those he had hoped would be friends, he had ventured so far inland that he realized he was completely lost in the jungle's tangled depths.
Then, too, since the coming of Meriem he had found in her that one thing which he had most missed before in his savage, jungle life—human companionship. In his friendship for her there was appreciable no trace of sex influence of which he was cognizant. They were friends—companions—that was all. Both might have been boys, except for the half tender and always masterful manifestation of the protective instinct which was apparent in Korak’s attitude.
Then, since Meriem arrived, he had discovered in her the one thing he had missed most in his wild, jungle life—human companionship. His friendship for her had no noticeable trace of any sexual influence that he was aware of. They were friends—companions—that was it. They could have been boys, except for the slightly tender and always dominating way that the protective instinct showed in Korak’s attitude.
The little girl idolized him as she might have idolized an indulgent brother had she had one. Love was a thing unknown to either; but as the youth neared manhood it was inevitable that it should come to him as it did to every other savage, jungle male.
The little girl looked up to him like she would have looked up to a doting brother if she had one. Love was something neither of them understood; but as the young man approached adulthood, it was bound to come to him just like it did to every other wild, jungle guy.
As Meriem became proficient in their common language the pleasures of their companionship grew correspondingly, for now they could converse and aided by the mental powers of their human heritage they amplified the restricted vocabulary of the apes until talking was transformed from a task into an enjoyable pastime. When Korak hunted, Meriem usually accompanied him, for she had learned the fine art of silence, when silence was desirable. She could pass through the branches of the great trees now with all the agility and stealth of The Killer himself. Great heights no longer appalled her. She swung from limb to limb, or she raced through the mighty branches, surefooted, lithe, and fearless. Korak was very proud of her, and even old Akut grunted in approval where before he had growled in contempt.
As Meriem got better at their shared language, the joy of their friendship increased, since they could now talk and, using the mental skills from their human background, expanded the limited vocabulary of the apes until chatting became a fun pastime instead of a chore. When Korak went hunting, Meriem often went with him, as she had mastered the art of being quiet when necessary. She could now move through the branches of the tall trees with all the agility and stealth of The Killer himself. She was no longer frightened by great heights. She swung from branch to branch or raced through the strong limbs, confident, nimble, and bold. Korak was very proud of her, and even old Akut grunted in approval when he had previously growled in disdain.
A distant village of blacks had furnished her with a mantle of fur and feathers, with copper ornaments, and weapons, for Korak would not permit her to go unarmed, or unversed in the use of the weapons he stole for her. A leather thong over one shoulder supported the ever present Geeka who was still the recipient of her most sacred confidences. A light spear and a long knife were her weapons of offense or defense. Her body, rounding into the fulness of an early maturity, followed the lines of a Greek goddess; but there the similarity ceased, for her face was beautiful.
A distant village of Black people had provided her with a fur and feather cloak, copper jewelry, and weapons, because Korak wouldn’t let her go unarmed or without knowing how to use the weapons he took for her. A leather strap over one shoulder held the ever-present Geeka, who remained the keeper of her deepest secrets. A light spear and a long knife were her offensive and defensive weapons. Her body, developing into the fullness of early maturity, had the graceful lines of a Greek goddess; but that’s where the similarity ended, as her face was beautiful.
As she grew more accustomed to the jungle and the ways of its wild denizens fear left her. As time wore on she even hunted alone when Korak and Akut were prowling at a great distance, as they were sometimes forced to do when game was scarce in their immediate vicinity. Upon these occasions she usually confined her endeavors to the smaller animals though sometimes she brought down a deer, and once even Horta, the boar—a great tusker that even Sheeta might have thought twice before attacking.
As she became more familiar with the jungle and the habits of its wild inhabitants, her fear faded away. Over time, she even ventured out to hunt alone when Korak and Akut were far away, which sometimes happened when prey was hard to find nearby. During these hunts, she typically focused on smaller animals, though she occasionally managed to take down a deer, and once even Horta, the boar—a massive tusker that even Sheeta might have hesitated to attack.
In their stamping grounds in the jungle the three were familiar figures. The little monkeys knew them well, often coming close to chatter and frolic about them. When Akut was by, the small folk kept their distance, but with Korak they were less shy and when both the males were gone they would come close to Meriem, tugging at her ornaments or playing with Geeka, who was a never ending source of amusement to them. The girl played with them and fed them, and when she was alone they helped her to pass the long hours until Korak’s return.
In their territory in the jungle, the three were well-known figures. The little monkeys recognized them, often coming close to chatter and play around them. When Akut was nearby, the small creatures kept their distance, but with Korak, they were less timid. When both males were absent, they would approach Meriem, tugging at her jewelry or playing with Geeka, who was a constant source of entertainment for them. The girl played with them and fed them, and when she was by herself, they helped her pass the long hours until Korak came back.
Nor were they worthless as friends. In the hunt they helped her locate her quarry. Often they would come racing through the trees to her side to announce the near presence of antelope or giraffe, or with excited warnings of the proximity of Sheeta or Numa. Luscious, sun-kissed fruits which hung far out upon the frail bough of the jungle’s waving crest were brought to her by these tiny, nimble allies. Sometimes they played tricks upon her; but she was always kind and gentle with them and in their wild, half-human way they were kind to her and affectionate. Their language being similar to that of the great apes Meriem could converse with them though the poverty of their vocabulary rendered these exchanges anything but feasts of reason. For familiar objects they had names, as well as for those conditions which induced pain or pleasure, joy, sorrow, or rage. These root words were so similar to those in use among the great anthropoids as to suggest that the language of the Manus was the mother tongue. At best it lent itself to but material and sordid exchange. Dreams, aspirations, hopes, the past, the future held no place in the conversation of Manu, the monkey. All was of the present—particularly of filling his belly and catching lice.
They weren’t useless as friends. In the hunt, they helped her find her prey. Often, they would come racing through the trees to her side to signal the nearby presence of antelope or giraffe, or with excited warnings about the closeness of Sheeta or Numa. Delicious, sun-drenched fruits that hung far out on the fragile branches of the jungle’s swaying treetops were brought to her by these tiny, agile allies. Sometimes they played tricks on her, but she was always kind and gentle with them, and in their wild, half-human way, they were kind and affectionate to her. Their language was similar to that of the great apes, so Meriem could talk to them even though their limited vocabulary made these exchanges far from deep conversations. They had names for familiar objects and for things that caused pain or pleasure, joy, sorrow, or anger. These root words were so close to those used among the great primates that it suggested the language of the Manus was the original tongue. At best, it allowed for only basic and crude exchanges. Dreams, ambitions, hopes, the past, and the future had no place in Manu the monkey’s conversations. Everything was about the present—especially about filling his belly and picking lice.
Poor food was this to nourish the mental appetite of a girl just upon the brink of womanhood. And so, finding Manu only amusing as an occasional playfellow or pet, Meriem poured out her sweetest soul thoughts into the deaf ears of Geeka’s ivory head. To Geeka she spoke in Arabic, knowing that Geeka, being but a doll, could not understand the language of Korak and Akut, and that the language of Korak and Akut being that of male apes contained nothing of interest to an Arab doll.
Poor food was this to nourish the mental appetite of a girl just on the edge of womanhood. So, finding Manu only amusing as an occasional playmate or pet, Meriem shared her deepest thoughts with the unresponsive ivory head of Geeka. To Geeka, she spoke in Arabic, knowing that Geeka, being just a doll, could not understand the language of Korak and Akut, and that the language of Korak and Akut, being that of male apes, held nothing of interest for an Arab doll.
Geeka had undergone a transformation since her little mother had left the village of The Sheik. Her garmenture now reflected in miniature that of Meriem. A tiny bit of leopard skin covered her ratskin torso from shoulder to splinter knee. A band of braided grasses about her brow held in place a few gaudy feathers from the parakeet, while other bits of grass were fashioned into imitations of arm and leg ornaments of metal. Geeka was a perfect little savage; but at heart she was unchanged, being the same omnivorous listener as of yore. An excellent trait in Geeka was that she never interrupted in order to talk about herself. Today was no exception. She had been listening attentively to Meriem for an hour, propped against the bole of a tree while her lithe, young mistress stretched catlike and luxurious along a swaying branch before her.
Geeka had changed since her little mother had left the village of The Sheik. Her outfit now reflected a smaller version of Meriem's. A small piece of leopard skin covered her ratskin torso from shoulder to splintered knee. A band of braided grass around her forehead held a few flashy parakeet feathers in place, while other bits of grass were crafted into imitations of arm and leg ornaments made of metal. Geeka was a perfect little wild child; but deep down, she was the same eager listener as before. One great quality of Geeka was that she never interrupted to talk about herself. Today was no different. She had been listening intently to Meriem for an hour, leaning against the trunk of a tree while her graceful young mistress stretched like a cat and luxuriously lounged on a swaying branch above her.
“Little Geeka,” said Meriem, “our Korak has been gone for a long time today. We miss him, little Geeka, do we not? It is dull and lonesome in the great jungle when our Korak is away. What will he bring us this time, eh? Another shining band of metal for Meriem’s ankle? Or a soft, doeskin loin cloth from the body of a black she? He tells me that it is harder to get the possessions of the shes, for he will not kill them as he does the males, and they fight savagely when he leaps upon them to wrest their ornaments from them. Then come the males with spears and arrows and Korak takes to the trees. Sometimes he takes the she with him and high among the branches divests her of the things he wishes to bring home to Meriem. He says that the blacks fear him now, and at first sight of him the women and children run shrieking to their huts; but he follows them within, and it is not often that he returns without arrows for himself and a present for Meriem. Korak is mighty among the jungle people—our Korak, Geeka—no, my Korak!”
"Little Geeka," Meriem said, "our Korak has been gone for a long time today. We miss him, little Geeka, don’t we? It’s boring and lonely in the great jungle when our Korak is away. What will he bring us this time, huh? Another shiny band of metal for Meriem's ankle? Or a soft, doeskin loincloth from a black she? He tells me it's harder to get the things from the she, since he won’t kill them like he does the males, and they fight fiercely when he jumps on them to take their ornaments. Then the males come with spears and arrows, and Korak has to climb into the trees. Sometimes he takes the she with him and high up in the branches he takes off the things he wants to bring home to Meriem. He says the blacks fear him now, and at the first sight of him the women and children scream and run to their huts; but he follows them inside, and it’s not often that he comes back without arrows for himself and a gift for Meriem. Korak is powerful among the jungle people—our Korak, Geeka—no, my Korak!"
Meriem’s conversation was interrupted by the sudden plunge of an excited little monkey that landed upon her shoulders in a flying leap from a neighboring tree.
Meriem’s conversation was interrupted by the sudden leap of an excited little monkey that landed on her shoulders after jumping from a nearby tree.
“Climb!” he cried. “Climb! The Mangani are coming.”
“Climb!” he shouted. “Climb! The Mangani are coming.”
Meriem glanced lazily over her shoulder at the excited disturber of her peace.
Meriem casually looked back over her shoulder at the enthusiastic disruptor of her calm.
“Climb, yourself, little Manu,” she said. “The only Mangani in our jungle are Korak and Akut. It is they you have seen returning from the hunt. Some day you will see your own shadow, little Manu, and then you will be frightened to death.”
“Climb up, little Manu,” she said. “The only Mangani in our jungle are Korak and Akut. Those are the ones you’ve seen coming back from the hunt. One day, you’ll see your own shadow, little Manu, and it will scare you to death.”
But the monkey only screamed his warning more lustily before he raced upward toward the safety of the high terrace where Mangani, the great ape, could not follow. Presently Meriem heard the sound of approaching bodies swinging through the trees. She listened attentively. There were two and they were great apes—Korak and Akut. To her Korak was an ape—a Mangani, for as such the three always described themselves. Man was an enemy, so they did not think of themselves as belonging any longer to the same genus. Tarmangani, or great white ape, which described the white man in their language, did not fit them all. Gomangani—great black ape, or Negro—described none of them so they called themselves plain Mangani.
But the monkey just shouted his warning even louder before he climbed up to the safety of the high terrace where Mangani, the great ape, couldn’t follow. Soon, Meriem heard the sound of bodies moving through the trees. She listened closely. There were two, and they were great apes—Korak and Akut. To her, Korak was an ape—a Mangani, since that’s how the three always referred to themselves. Man was an enemy, so they didn’t see themselves as belonging to the same group anymore. Tarmangani, or great white ape, which described the white man in their language, didn’t fit them all. Gomangani—great black ape, or Negro—described none of them, so they just called themselves plain Mangani.
Meriem decided that she would feign slumber and play a joke on Korak. So she lay very still with eyes tightly closed. She heard the two approaching closer and closer. They were in the adjoining tree now and must have discovered her, for they had halted. Why were they so quiet? Why did not Korak call out his customary greeting? The quietness was ominous. It was followed presently by a very stealthy sound—one of them was creeping upon her. Was Korak planning a joke upon his own account? Well, she would fool him. Cautiously she opened her eyes the tiniest bit, and as she did so her heart stood still. Creeping silently toward her was a huge bull ape that she never before had seen. Behind him was another like him.
Meriem decided to pretend to be asleep and play a trick on Korak. So she lay very still with her eyes tightly closed. She heard the two of them getting closer and closer. They were in the nearby tree now and must have found her, since they had stopped. Why were they so quiet? Why wasn’t Korak calling out his usual greeting? The silence was unsettling. It was soon followed by a very sneaky sound—one of them was sneaking up on her. Was Korak planning a trick of his own? Well, she would outsmart him. Carefully, she opened her eyes just a little, and as she did, her heart stopped. Crawling silently toward her was a huge bull ape she had never seen before. Behind him was another one just like him.
With the agility of a squirrel Meriem was upon her feet and at the same instant the great bull lunged for her. Leaping from limb to limb the girl fled through the jungle while close behind her came the two great apes. Above them raced a bevy of screaming, chattering monkeys, hurling taunts and insults at the Mangani, and encouragement and advice to the girl.
With the speed of a squirrel, Meriem got to her feet just as the massive bull lunged at her. Jumping from branch to branch, she fled through the jungle while the two massive apes chased closely behind her. Above them, a group of screaming, chattering monkeys raced along, throwing insults at the Mangani and shouting encouragement and advice to the girl.
From tree to tree swung Meriem working ever upward toward the smaller branches which would not bear the weight of her pursuers. Faster and faster came the bull apes after her. The clutching fingers of the foremost were almost upon her again and again, but she eluded them by sudden bursts of speed or reckless chances as she threw herself across dizzy spaces.
From tree to tree, Meriem swung, climbing higher toward the smaller branches that couldn’t support the weight of her pursuers. The bull apes came after her faster and faster. The reaching fingers of the closest ones were nearly upon her again and again, but she dodged them by making sudden bursts of speed or taking reckless leaps as she hurled herself across dizzying distances.
Slowly she was gaining her way to the greater heights where safety lay, when, after a particularly daring leap, the swaying branch she grasped bent low beneath her weight, nor whipped upward again as it should have done. Even before the rending sound which followed Meriem knew that she had misjudged the strength of the limb. It gave slowly at first. Then there was a ripping as it parted from the trunk. Releasing her hold Meriem dropped among the foliage beneath, clutching for a new support. She found it a dozen feet below the broken limb. She had fallen thus many times before, so that she had no particular terror of a fall—it was the delay which appalled her most, and rightly, for scarce had she scrambled to a place of safety than the body of the huge ape dropped at her side and a great, hairy arm went about her waist.
Slowly, she was making her way up to the higher ground where safety was, when, after a particularly bold leap, the swaying branch she was holding onto bent low under her weight and didn’t spring back up as it should have. Even before the tearing sound that followed, Meriem knew she had underestimated the strength of the limb. It gave way slowly at first, and then there was a ripping noise as it parted from the trunk. Letting go, Meriem fell among the leaves below, reaching for something else to hold onto. She found it a dozen feet below the broken branch. She had fallen like this many times before, so she wasn't particularly scared of falling—it was the delay that frightened her the most, and rightly so, because barely had she struggled to a safe spot than the body of the huge ape dropped beside her and a massive, hairy arm wrapped around her waist.
Almost at once the other ape reached his companion’s side. He made a lunge at Meriem; but her captor swung her to one side, bared his fighting fangs and growled ominously. Meriem struggled to escape. She struck at the hairy breast and bearded cheek. She fastened her strong, white teeth in one shaggy forearm. The ape cuffed her viciously across the face, then he had to turn his attention to his fellow who quite evidently desired the prize for his own.
Almost immediately, the other ape reached his companion's side. He lunged at Meriem, but her captor swung her to the side, bared his sharp teeth, and growled menacingly. Meriem fought to break free. She hit his hairy chest and bearded cheek. She sank her strong, white teeth into one shaggy forearm. The ape slapped her brutally across the face, then shifted his focus to his companion, who clearly wanted Meriem for himself.
The captor could not fight to advantage upon the swaying bough, burdened as he was by a squirming, struggling captive, so he dropped quickly to the ground beneath. The other followed him, and here they fought, occasionally abandoning their duel to pursue and recapture the girl who took every advantage of her captors’ preoccupation in battle to break away in attempted escape; but always they overtook her, and first one and then the other possessed her as they struggled to tear one another to pieces for the prize.
The captor couldn’t fight effectively on the swaying branch, weighed down by a wriggling, struggling captive, so he quickly dropped to the ground below. The other followed him, and here they fought, sometimes pausing in their duel to chase and recapture the girl, who used their distraction to try to escape. But they always caught up to her, and one after the other grappled for her as they struggled to tear each other apart for the prize.
Often the girl came in for many blows that were intended for a hairy foe, and once she was felled, lying unconscious while the apes, relieved of the distraction of detaining her by force, tore into one another in fierce and terrible combat.
Often the girl took a lot of hits that were meant for a hairy enemy, and once she was knocked down, lying unconscious while the apes, free from the distraction of holding her back, fought each other in brutal and intense battle.
Above them screamed the little monkeys, racing hither and thither in a frenzy of hysterical excitement. Back and forth over the battle field flew countless birds of gorgeous plumage, squawking their hoarse cries of rage and defiance. In the distance a lion roared.
Above them, the little monkeys screeched, darting around in a frenzy of wild excitement. Countless birds with beautiful feathers swooped back and forth over the battlefield, squawking their harsh cries of anger and defiance. In the distance, a lion roared.
The larger bull was slowly tearing his antagonist to pieces. They rolled upon the ground biting and striking. Again, erect upon their hind legs they pulled and tugged like human wrestlers; but always the giant fangs found their bloody part to play until both combatants and the ground about them were red with gore.
The bigger bull was slowly ripping his opponent apart. They rolled on the ground, biting and hitting each other. Once again, standing on their hind legs, they pulled and tugged like human wrestlers; but the giant fangs always found their bloody mark until both fighters and the ground around them were stained red with blood.
Meriem, through it all, lay still and unconscious upon the ground. At last one found a permanent hold upon the jugular of the other and thus they went down for the last time. For several minutes they lay with scarce a struggle. It was the larger bull who arose alone from the last embrace. He shook himself. A deep growl rumbled from his hairy throat. He waddled back and forth between the body of the girl and that of his vanquished foe. Then he stood upon the latter and gave tongue to his hideous challenge. The little monkeys broke, screaming, in all directions as the terrifying noise broke upon their ears. The gorgeous birds took wing and fled. Once again the lion roared, this time at a greater distance.
Meriem lay motionless and unconscious on the ground. Finally, one of the bulls got a firm grip on the other’s throat, and they went down for the last time. For several minutes, they lay there, barely struggling. It was the larger bull who finally rose alone from their last confrontation. He shook himself off, and a deep growl rumbled from his throat. He paced back and forth between the girl’s body and that of his defeated opponent. Then he stood over the latter and let out a horrifying challenge. The little monkeys screeched and scattered in every direction as the frightening sound reached them. The beautiful birds took flight and escaped. Once more, the lion roared, this time from a greater distance.
The great ape waddled once more to the girl’s side. He turned her over upon her back, and stooping commenced to sniff and listen about her face and breast. She lived. The monkeys were returning. They came in swarms, and from above hurled down insults upon the victor.
The great ape waddled back to the girl’s side. He flipped her onto her back and bent down to sniff and listen around her face and chest. She was alive. The monkeys were coming back. They arrived in droves and shouted insults at the victor from above.
The ape showed his displeasure by baring his teeth and growling up at them. Then he stooped and lifting the girl to his shoulder waddled off through the jungle. In his wake followed the angry mob.
The ape expressed his annoyance by showing his teeth and growling at them. Then he bent down, lifted the girl onto his shoulder, and waddled off through the jungle. An angry mob followed behind him.
XI.
Korak, returning from the hunt, heard the jabbering of the excited monkeys. He knew that something was seriously amiss. Histah, the snake, had doubtless coiled his slimy folds about some careless Manu. The youth hastened ahead. The monkeys were Meriem’s friends. He would help them if he could. He traveled rapidly along the middle terrace. In the tree by Meriem’s shelter he deposited his trophies of the hunt and called aloud to her. There was no answer. He dropped quickly to a lower level. She might be hiding from him.
Korak, coming back from the hunt, heard the excited chatter of the monkeys. He sensed that something was really wrong. Histah, the snake, had probably wrapped his slimy body around some careless Manu. The young man hurried ahead. The monkeys were Meriem’s friends. He wanted to help them if he could. He quickly made his way along the middle terrace. In the tree by Meriem’s shelter, he dropped off his hunting trophies and called out to her. There was no response. He quickly moved down to a lower level. She might be hiding from him.
Upon a great branch where Meriem often swung at indolent ease he saw Geeka propped against the tree’s great bole. What could it mean? Meriem had never left Geeka thus alone before. Korak picked up the doll and tucked it in his belt. He called again, more loudly; but no Meriem answered his summons. In the distance the jabbering of the excited Manus was growing less distinct.
Upon a large branch where Meriem often lounged comfortably, he saw Geeka resting against the tree's thick trunk. What could that mean? Meriem had never left Geeka alone like that before. Korak picked up the doll and tucked it into his belt. He called out again, louder this time, but there was no response from Meriem. In the distance, the chatter of the excited Manus was fading away.
Could their excitement be in any way connected with Meriem’s disappearance? The bare thought was enough. Without waiting for Akut who was coming slowly along some distance in his rear, Korak swung rapidly in the direction of the chattering mob. But a few minutes sufficed to overtake the rearmost. At sight of him they fell to screaming and pointing downward ahead of them, and a moment later Korak came within sight of the cause of their rage.
Could their excitement be connected to Meriem’s disappearance in any way? Just the thought was enough. Without waiting for Akut, who was slowly making his way behind him, Korak quickly moved toward the chattering crowd. It only took a few minutes to catch up to the last person in line. When they saw him, they started screaming and pointing downward ahead of them, and a moment later, Korak spotted what was causing their anger.
The youth’s heart stood still in terror as he saw the limp body of the girl across the hairy shoulders of a great ape. That she was dead he did not doubt, and in that instant there arose within him a something which he did not try to interpret nor could have had he tried; but all at once the whole world seemed centered in that tender, graceful body, that frail little body, hanging so pitifully limp and helpless across the bulging shoulders of the brute.
The young man's heart froze in fear as he saw the lifeless body of the girl thrown over the broad shoulders of a huge ape. He had no doubt that she was dead, and in that moment, something stirred inside him that he couldn't understand, nor could he have if he had tried. Suddenly, the entire world seemed focused on that delicate, graceful body, that fragile little body, hanging so pitifully limp and helpless over the muscular shoulders of the beast.
He knew then that little Meriem was his world—his sun, his moon, his stars—with her going had gone all light and warmth and happiness. A groan escaped his lips, and after that a series of hideous roars, more bestial than the beasts’, as he dropped plummet-like in mad descent toward the perpetrator of this hideous crime.
He realized then that little Meriem was his everything—his sun, his moon, his stars—and with her departure, all light, warmth, and happiness had vanished. A groan slipped from his lips, followed by a series of horrific roars, more animalistic than the beasts’, as he plunged down in a crazy descent toward the one responsible for this terrible crime.
The bull ape turned at the first note of this new and menacing voice, and as he turned a new flame was added to the rage and hatred of The Killer, for he saw that the creature before him was none other than the king ape which had driven him away from the great anthropoids to whom he had looked for friendship and asylum.
The bull ape turned at the first sound of this new and threatening voice, and as he turned, another spark ignited the fury and resentment of The Killer, for he realized that the creature in front of him was none other than the king ape who had chased him away from the great anthropoids he had sought for companionship and safety.
Dropping the body of the girl to the ground the bull turned to battle anew for possession of his expensive prize; but this time he looked for an easy conquest. He too recognized Korak. Had he not chased him away from the amphitheater without even having to lay a fang or paw upon him? With lowered head and bulging shoulders he rushed headlong for the smooth-skinned creature who was daring to question his right to his prey.
Dropping the girl’s body to the ground, the bull turned to fight again for his expensive prize; but this time he wanted an easy win. He recognized Korak too. Hadn't he chased him away from the arena without even needing to use a fang or a paw? With his head lowered and shoulders tense, he charged straight at the smooth-skinned creature who dared to challenge his right to his prize.
They met head on like two charging bulls, to go down together tearing and striking. Korak forgot his knife. Rage and bloodlust such as his could be satisfied only by the feel of hot flesh between rending fangs, by the gush of new life blood against his bare skin, for, though he did not realize it, Korak, The Killer, was fighting for something more compelling than hate or revenge—he was a great male fighting another male for a she of his own kind.
They collided like two charging bulls, going down together, clawing and hitting. Korak forgot his knife. The rage and bloodlust he felt could only be satisfied by the sensation of warm flesh between his tearing fangs, by the rush of fresh blood against his bare skin, for, though he didn’t know it, Korak, The Killer, was fighting for something deeper than hate or revenge—he was a powerful male battling another male for a female of his own species.
So impetuous was the attack of the man-ape that he found his hold before the anthropoid could prevent him—a savage hold, with strong jaws closed upon a pulsing jugular, and there he clung, with closed eyes, while his fingers sought another hold upon the shaggy throat.
So sudden was the attack of the man-ape that he got a grip before the anthropoid could stop him—a brutal hold, with strong jaws clamped down on a throbbing jugular, and there he clung, with his eyes shut, while his fingers searched for another grip on the furry throat.
It was then that Meriem opened her eyes. At the sight before her they went wide.
It was then that Meriem opened her eyes. At the sight in front of her, they went wide.
“Korak!” she cried. “Korak! My Korak! I knew that you would come. Kill him, Korak! Kill him!” And with flashing eyes and heaving bosom the girl, coming to her feet, ran to Korak’s side to encourage him. Nearby lay The Killer’s spear, where he had flung it as he charged the ape. The girl saw it and snatched it up. No faintness overcame her in the face of this battle primeval at her feet. For her there was no hysterical reaction from the nerve strain of her own personal encounter with the bull. She was excited; but cool and entirely unafraid. Her Korak was battling with another Mangani that would have stolen her; but she did not seek the safety of an overhanging bough there to watch the battle from afar, as would a she Mangani. Instead she placed the point of Korak’s spear against the bull ape’s side and plunged the sharp point deep into the savage heart. Korak had not needed her aid, for the great bull had been already as good as dead, with the blood gushing from his torn jugular; but Korak rose smiling with a word of approbation for his helper.
“Korak!” she shouted. “Korak! My Korak! I knew you would come. Kill him, Korak! Kill him!” With shining eyes and a racing heart, the girl jumped to her feet and ran to stand by Korak to cheer him on. Nearby lay The Killer’s spear, which he had thrown aside as he charged at the ape. The girl spotted it and quickly grabbed it. She didn’t feel faint in the face of the primal battle right in front of her. There was no hysterical reaction from the stress of her own encounter with the bull. She was excited but calm and completely unafraid. Her Korak was fighting another Mangani that would have taken her; but she didn’t look for safety in a tree to watch the fight from a distance like a female Mangani would. Instead, she placed the tip of Korak’s spear against the bull ape’s side and drove the sharp point deep into its savage heart. Korak hadn’t needed her help, as the massive bull was already as good as dead with blood pouring from its severed jugular; but Korak got up smiling with a word of appreciation for his helper.
How tall and fine she was! Had she changed suddenly within the few hours of his absence, or had his battle with the ape affected his vision? He might have been looking at Meriem through new eyes for the many startling and wonderful surprises his gaze revealed. How long it had been since he had found her in her father’s village, a little Arab girl, he did not know, for time is of no import in the jungle and so he had kept no track of the passing days. But he realized, as he looked upon her now, that she was no longer such a little girl as he had first seen playing with Geeka beneath the great tree just within the palisade. The change must have been very gradual to have eluded his notice until now. And what was it that had caused him to realize it so suddenly? His gaze wandered from the girl to the body of the dead bull. For the first time there flashed to his understanding the explanation of the reason for the girl’s attempted abduction. Korak’s eyes went wide and then they closed to narrow slits of rage as he stood glaring down upon the abysmal brute at his feet. When next his glance rose to Meriem’s face a slow flush suffused his own. Now, indeed, was he looking upon her through new eyes—the eyes of a man looking upon a maid.
How tall and beautiful she was! Had she changed suddenly during the few hours he’d been away, or had his fight with the ape impacted how he saw her? He might have been looking at Meriem with fresh eyes, given the many shocking and amazing things his gaze revealed. He couldn’t remember how long it had been since he found her in her father’s village, a little Arab girl, because time doesn’t matter in the jungle, and he hadn’t kept track of the days. But as he looked at her now, he realized she was no longer the little girl he had first seen playing with Geeka under the big tree just inside the fence. The change must have been so gradual that it hadn’t caught his attention until now. But what had caused him to see it so clearly all of a sudden? His gaze shifted from the girl to the body of the dead bull. For the first time, he understood why the girl had been trying to escape. Korak’s eyes widened and then narrowed into slits of anger as he glared down at the massive beast lying at his feet. When his gaze returned to Meriem’s face, a slow blush spread across his own. Now he was truly seeing her with new eyes—the eyes of a man looking at a woman.
Akut had come up just as Meriem had speared Korak’s antagonist. The exultation of the old ape was keen. He strutted, stiff-legged and truculent about the body of the fallen enemy. He growled and upcurved his long, flexible lip. His hair bristled. He was paying no attention to Meriem and Korak. Back in the uttermost recesses of his little brain something was stirring—something which the sight and smell of the great bull had aroused. The outward manifestation of the germinating idea was one of bestial rage; but the inner sensations were pleasurable in the extreme. The scent of the great bull and the sight of his huge and hairy figure had wakened in the heart of Akut a longing for the companionship of his own kind. So Korak was not alone undergoing a change.
Akut had arrived just as Meriem had taken down Korak’s enemy. The old ape was filled with excitement. He strutted around the body of the fallen foe, stiff-legged and aggressive. He growled, curling his long, flexible lip. His hair stood on end. He ignored Meriem and Korak completely. Somewhere deep in his little brain, something was stirring—something triggered by the sight and smell of the great bull. The outward expression of this emerging idea was one of savage rage, but the inner feelings were extremely pleasurable. The scent of the great bull and the sight of his massive, hairy body had sparked in Akut a desire for the company of his own kind. So Korak wasn't the only one experiencing a change.
And Meriem? She was a woman. It is woman’s divine right to love. Always she had loved Korak. He was her big brother. Meriem alone underwent no change. She was still happy in the companionship of her Korak. She still loved him—as a sister loves an indulgent brother—and she was very, very proud of him. In all the jungle there was no other creature so strong, so handsome, or so brave.
And Meriem? She was a woman. It's a woman's divine right to love. She had always loved Korak. He was her big brother. Meriem didn't change at all. She was still happy being around her Korak. She still loved him—as a sister loves a loving brother—and she was very, very proud of him. In the entire jungle, there was no other creature so strong, so handsome, or so brave.
Korak came close to her. There was a new light in his eyes as she looked up into them; but she did not understand it. She did not realize how close they were to maturity, nor aught of all the difference in their lives the look in Korak’s eyes might mean.
Korak moved closer to her. There was a new spark in his eyes as she looked up at him, but she didn’t get it. She didn’t realize how close they were to adulthood, nor did she understand the significance of the look in Korak’s eyes and what it might mean for their lives.
“Meriem,” he whispered and his voice was husky as he laid a brown hand upon her bare shoulder. “Meriem!” Suddenly he crushed her to him. She looked up into his face, laughing, and then he bent and kissed her full upon the mouth. Even then she did not understand. She did not recall ever having been kissed before. It was very nice. Meriem liked it. She thought it was Korak’s way of showing how glad he was that the great ape had not succeeded in running away with her. She was glad too, so she put her arms about The Killer’s neck and kissed him again and again. Then, discovering the doll in his belt she transferred it to her own possession, kissing it as she had kissed Korak.
“Meriem,” he whispered, his voice deep as he placed a brown hand on her bare shoulder. “Meriem!” Suddenly, he pulled her close. She looked up at him, laughing, and then he leaned down and kissed her fully on the mouth. Even then, she didn’t understand. She couldn’t remember ever being kissed before. It felt really nice. Meriem liked it. She thought it was Korak’s way of showing how glad he was that the great ape hadn’t managed to take her away. She was happy too, so she wrapped her arms around The Killer’s neck and kissed him over and over. Then, noticing the doll in his belt, she took it for herself, kissing it just like she had kissed Korak.
Korak wanted her to say something. He wanted to tell her how he loved her; but the emotion of his love choked him and the vocabulary of the Mangani was limited.
Korak wanted her to say something. He wanted to tell her how much he loved her, but the intensity of his feelings overwhelmed him, and the words in the Mangani language were limited.
There came a sudden interruption. It was from Akut—a sudden, low growl, no louder than those he had been giving vent to the while he pranced about the dead bull, nor half so loud in fact; but of a timbre that bore straight to the perceptive faculties of the jungle beast ingrained in Korak. It was a warning. Korak looked quickly up from the glorious vision of the sweet face so close to his. Now his other faculties awoke. His ears, his nostrils were on the alert. Something was coming!
There was a sudden interruption. It came from Akut—a sudden, low growl, no louder than the sounds he had been making while he pranced around the dead bull, and not even half as loud; but it had a tone that went straight to the instincts of the jungle beast ingrained in Korak. It was a warning. Korak quickly looked up from the beautiful vision of the sweet face so close to him. Now his other senses were alert. His ears, his nostrils were wide open. Something was approaching!
The Killer moved to Akut’s side. Meriem was just behind them. The three stood like carved statues gazing into the leafy tangle of the jungle. The noise that had attracted their attention increased, and presently a great ape broke through the underbrush a few paces from where they stood. The beast halted at sight of them. He gave a warning grunt back over his shoulder, and a moment later coming cautiously another bull appeared. He was followed by others—both bulls and females with young, until two score hairy monsters stood glaring at the three. It was the tribe of the dead king ape. Akut was the first to speak. He pointed to the body of the dead bull.
The Killer moved to Akut’s side. Meriem was right behind them. The three stood like carved statues, staring into the leafy chaos of the jungle. The noise that had caught their attention grew louder, and soon a large ape broke through the underbrush just a few steps away. The creature paused when it saw them. It let out a warning grunt over its shoulder, and moments later, another bull cautiously appeared. It was followed by others—both bulls and females with young—until there were twenty hairy monsters glaring at the three. It was the tribe of the deceased king ape. Akut was the first to speak. He pointed to the body of the dead bull.
“Korak, mighty fighter, has killed your king,” he grunted. “There is none greater in all the jungle than Korak, son of Tarzan. Now Korak is king. What bull is greater than Korak?” It was a challenge to any bull who might care to question Korak’s right to the kingship. The apes jabbered and chattered and growled among themselves for a time. At last a young bull came slowly forward rocking upon his short legs, bristling, growling, terrible.
“Korak, the strong warrior, has killed your king,” he said gruffly. “There’s no one greater in the entire jungle than Korak, son of Tarzan. Now Korak is king. What bull is mightier than Korak?” It was a challenge to any bull that might dare question Korak’s right to be king. The apes chattered and growled among themselves for a while. Finally, a young bull stepped forward slowly, swaying on his short legs, bristling, growling, and looking fierce.
The beast was enormous, and in the full prime of his strength. He belonged to that almost extinct species for which white men have long sought upon the information of the natives of the more inaccessible jungles. Even the natives seldom see these great, hairy, primordial men.
The beast was huge and at the peak of its power. It belonged to that nearly extinct species that white men have been searching for based on what the locals say about the more remote jungles. Even the locals rarely encounter these massive, hairy, primitive beings.
Korak advanced to meet the monster. He, too, was growling. In his mind a plan was revolving. To close with this powerful, untired brute after having just passed through a terrific battle with another of his kind would have been to tempt defeat. He must find an easier way to victory. Crouching, he prepared to meet the charge which he knew would soon come, nor did he have long to wait. His antagonist paused only for sufficient time to permit him to recount for the edification of the audience and the confounding of Korak a brief résumé of his former victories, of his prowess, and of what he was about to do to this puny Tarmangani. Then he charged.
Korak moved forward to face the monster. He was growling too. He was formulating a plan in his mind. Engaging this powerful, tireless beast right after battling another one would be a risky move. He needed to find an easier path to victory. Crouching down, he got ready to brace for the charge he knew was coming, and he didn't have to wait long. His opponent paused just long enough to give the audience a rundown of his past victories, his strength, and what he was about to do to this weak Tarmangani. Then he charged.
With clutching fingers and wide opened jaws he came down upon the waiting Korak with the speed of an express train. Korak did not move until the great arms swung to embrace him, then he dropped low beneath them, swung a terrific right to the side of the beast’s jaw as he side-stepped his rushing body, and swinging quickly about stood ready over the fallen ape where he sprawled upon the ground.
With gripping hands and his mouth wide open, he descended upon the waiting Korak with the speed of a speeding train. Korak didn't move until the huge arms reached out to grab him; then he ducked beneath them, delivered a powerful right hook to the side of the beast's jaw as he sidestepped its charging body, and quickly turned to stand over the fallen ape sprawled on the ground.
It was a surprised anthropoid that attempted to scramble to its feet. Froth flecked its hideous lips. Red were the little eyes. Blood curdling roars tumbled from the deep chest. But it did not reach its feet. The Killer stood waiting above it, and the moment that the hairy chin came upon the proper level another blow that would have felled an ox sent the ape over backward.
It was a stunned ape trying to get back on its feet. Foam dotted its grotesque lips. Its little eyes were red. Blood-curdling roars erupted from its deep chest. But it didn’t manage to stand. The Killer remained poised above it, and the moment the hairy chin was at the right height, another blow that could take down an ox sent the ape tumbling backward.
Again and again the beast struggled to arise, but each time the mighty Tarmangani stood waiting with ready fist and pile driver blow to bowl him over. Weaker and weaker became the efforts of the bull. Blood smeared his face and breast. A red stream trickled from nose and mouth. The crowd that had cheered him on at first with savage yells, now jeered him—their approbation was for the Tarmangani.
Again and again, the beast tried to get up, but each time the strong Tarmangani stood ready with his fist and powerful strike to knock him down. The bull's attempts grew weaker and weaker. Blood covered his face and chest. A red stream flowed from his nose and mouth. The crowd that initially cheered him on with fierce shouts now mocked him—their approval was for the Tarmangani.
“Kagoda?” inquired Korak, as he sent the bull down once more.
“Kagoda?” Korak asked, as he sent the bull down once more.
Again the stubborn bull essayed to scramble to his feet. Again The Killer struck him a terrific blow. Again he put the question, kagoda—have you had enough?
Again, the stubborn bull tried to get back on its feet. Again, The Killer hit it with a tremendous blow. Again, he asked, kagoda—have you had enough?
For a moment the bull lay motionless. Then from between battered lips came the single word: “Kagoda!”
For a moment, the bull lay still. Then, from its torn lips, came the single word: “Kagoda!”
“Then rise and go back among your people,” said Korak. “I do not wish to be king among people who once drove me from them. Keep your own ways, and we will keep ours. When we meet we may be friends, but we shall not live together.”
“Then get up and go back to your people,” said Korak. “I don’t want to be a king among those who once cast me out. You stick to your ways, and we’ll stick to ours. When we meet, we can be friends, but we’re not going to live together.”
An old bull came slowly toward The Killer.
An old bull walked slowly toward The Killer.
“You have killed our king,” he said. “You have defeated him who would have been king. You could have killed him had you wished. What shall we do for a king?”
“You’ve killed our king,” he said. “You’ve defeated the one who could have been king. You could have killed him if you wanted to. What are we going to do for a king?”
Korak turned toward Akut.
Korak faced Akut.
“There is your king,” he said. But Akut did not want to be separated from Korak, although he was anxious enough to remain with his own kind. He wanted Korak to remain, too. He said as much.
“There is your king,” he said. But Akut didn’t want to be separated from Korak, even though he was eager to stay with his own kind. He wanted Korak to stay, too. He said as much.
The youth was thinking of Meriem—of what would be best and safest for her. If Akut went away with the apes there would be but one to watch over and protect her. On the other hand were they to join the tribe he would never feel safe to leave Meriem behind when he went out to hunt, for the passions of the ape-folk are not ever well controlled. Even a female might develop an insane hatred for the slender white girl and kill her during Korak’s absence.
The young man was thinking about Meriem—what would be best and safest for her. If Akut left with the apes, there would only be one protector for her. On the flip side, if they joined the tribe, he would never feel comfortable leaving Meriem behind when he went hunting, because the emotions of the ape people are often unpredictable. Even a female could develop a crazy hatred for the slender white girl and harm her while Korak was away.
“We will live near you,” he said, at last. “When you change your hunting ground we will change ours, Meriem and I, and so remain near you; but we shall not dwell among you.”
“We will live close to you,” he finally said. “When you move to a new hunting area, Meriem and I will move ours too, to stay near you; but we will not live among you.”
Akut raised objections to this plan. He did not wish to be separated from Korak. At first he refused to leave his human friend for the companionship of his own kind; but when he saw the last of the tribe wandering off into the jungle again and his glance rested upon the lithe figure of the dead king’s young mate as she cast admiring glances at her lord’s successor the call of blood would not be denied. With a farewell glance toward his beloved Korak he turned and followed the she ape into the labyrinthine mazes of the wood.
Akut opposed this plan. He didn't want to be separated from Korak. At first, he refused to leave his human friend for the company of his own kind; but when he saw the last of the tribe heading back into the jungle and noticed the slender figure of the deceased king’s young mate admiring her lord’s successor, the pull of his own kind became too strong to resist. With one last look at his beloved Korak, he turned and followed the she-ape into the tangled paths of the woods.
After Korak had left the village of the blacks following his last thieving expedition, the screams of his victim and those of the other women and children had brought the warriors in from the forest and the river. Great was the excitement and hot was the rage of the men when they learned that the white devil had again entered their homes, frightened their women and stolen arrows and ornaments and food.
After Korak left the village of the blacks after his last thieving trip, the screams of his victim and those of the other women and children brought the warriors in from the forest and the river. The men were incredibly excited and filled with rage when they found out that the white devil had once again entered their homes, terrified their women, and stolen arrows, ornaments, and food.
Even their superstitious fear of this weird creature who hunted with a huge bull ape was overcome in their desire to wreak vengeance upon him and rid themselves for good and all of the menace of his presence in the jungle.
Even their superstitious fear of this strange creature, who hunted alongside a massive bull ape, was overshadowed by their desire to take revenge on him and permanently get rid of the threat posed by his presence in the jungle.
And so it was that a score of the fleetest and most doughty warriors of the tribe set out in pursuit of Korak and Akut but a few minutes after they had left the scene of The Killer’s many depredations.
And so it was that twenty of the fastest and bravest warriors of the tribe set out to chase Korak and Akut just a few minutes after they had left the site of The Killer’s many attacks.
The youth and the ape had traveled slowly and with no precautions against a successful pursuit. Nor was their attitude of careless indifference to the blacks at all remarkable. So many similar raids had gone unpunished that the two had come to look upon the Negroes with contempt. The return journey led them straight up wind. The result being that the scent of their pursuers was borne away from them, so they proceeded upon their way in total ignorance of the fact that tireless trackers but little less expert in the mysteries of woodcraft than themselves were dogging their trail with savage insistence.
The young man and the ape had moved slowly and without any precautions against being followed. Their casual disregard for the black people they encountered was not surprising. So many similar raids had gone unpunished that they had come to view the Negroes with disdain. On their return trip, they went directly against the wind. This meant that the scent of their pursuers was carried away from them, so they continued on their way completely unaware that relentless trackers, just as skilled in navigating the woods as they were, were closely following their path with fierce determination.
The little party of warriors was led by Kovudoo, the chief; a middle-aged savage of exceptional cunning and bravery. It was he who first came within sight of the quarry which they had followed for hours by the mysterious methods of their almost uncanny powers of observation, intuition, and even scent.
The small group of warriors was led by Kovudoo, the chief; a middle-aged savage known for his exceptional cunning and bravery. He was the first to spot the target they had been tracking for hours using their almost supernatural skills of observation, intuition, and even smell.
Kovudoo and his men came upon Korak, Akut and Meriem after the killing of the king ape, the noise of the combat having led them at last straight to their quarry. The sight of the slender white girl had amazed the savage chief and held him gazing at the trio for a moment before ordering his warriors to rush out upon their prey. In that moment it was that the great apes came and again the blacks remained awestruck witnesses to the palaver, and the battle between Korak and the young bull.
Kovudoo and his men found Korak, Akut, and Meriem after the king ape was killed, the noise from the fight finally guiding them to their target. The sight of the slender white girl amazed the savage chief, making him stare at the trio for a moment before telling his warriors to charge at their prey. At that moment, the great apes arrived, and once again, the black warriors stood in awe as they watched the conversation and the battle between Korak and the young bull.
But now the apes had gone, and the white youth and the white maid stood alone in the jungle. One of Kovudoo’s men leaned close to the ear of his chief. “Look!” he whispered, and pointed to something that dangled at the girl’s side. “When my brother and I were slaves in the village of The Sheik my brother made that thing for The Sheik’s little daughter—she played with it always and called it after my brother, whose name is Geeka. Just before we escaped some one came and struck down The Sheik, stealing his daughter away. If this is she The Sheik will pay you well for her return.”
But now the apes were gone, and the white guy and the white girl were alone in the jungle. One of Kovudoo’s men leaned in close to his chief's ear. “Look!” he whispered, pointing at something that hung from the girl's side. “When my brother and I were slaves in The Sheik's village, my brother made that for The Sheik’s little daughter—she always played with it and named it after my brother, whose name is Geeka. Just before we escaped, someone came and killed The Sheik, taking his daughter away. If this is her, The Sheik will pay you handsomely to get her back.”
Korak’s arm had again gone around the shoulders of Meriem. Love raced hot through his young veins. Civilization was but a half-remembered state—London as remote as ancient Rome. In all the world there were but they two—Korak, The Killer, and Meriem, his mate. Again he drew her close to him and covered her willing lips with his hot kisses. And then from behind him broke a hideous bedlam of savage war cries and a score of shrieking blacks were upon them.
Korak’s arm was once more wrapped around Meriem's shoulders. Love surged passionately through his young veins. Civilization felt like a distant memory—London was as far away as ancient Rome. In the entire world, it was just the two of them—Korak, The Killer, and Meriem, his partner. He pulled her close again and kissed her eagerly. Suddenly, from behind him erupted a terrifying cacophony of savage war cries, and a horde of screaming warriors charged toward them.
Korak turned to give battle. Meriem with her own light spear stood by his side. An avalanche of barbed missiles flew about them. One pierced Korak’s shoulder, another his leg, and he went down.
Korak turned to fight. Meriem, armed with her own light spear, stood next to him. A flood of barbed missiles flew around them. One hit Korak in the shoulder, another in his leg, and he fell.
Meriem was unscathed for the blacks had intentionally spared her. Now they rushed forward to finish Korak and make good the girl’s capture; but as they came there came also from another point in the jungle the great Akut and at his heels the huge bulls of his new kingdom.
Meriem was unharmed because the men had deliberately spared her. Now they charged forward to finish off Korak and secure the girl’s capture; but as they approached, the great Akut appeared from another part of the jungle, followed by the massive bulls of his new kingdom.
Snarling and roaring they rushed upon the black warriors when they saw the mischief they had already wrought. Kovudoo, realizing the danger of coming to close quarters with these mighty ape-men, seized Meriem and called upon his warriors to retreat. For a time the apes followed them, and several of the blacks were badly mauled and one killed before they succeeded in escaping. Nor would they have gotten off thus easily had Akut not been more concerned with the condition of the wounded Korak than with the fate of the girl upon whom he had always looked as more or less of an interloper and an unquestioned burden.
Snarling and roaring, they charged at the black warriors when they realized the trouble they had caused. Kovudoo, understanding the risk of facing these powerful ape-men up close, grabbed Meriem and ordered his warriors to pull back. For a while, the apes chased them, and several of the black warriors suffered serious injuries, with one being killed before they managed to escape. They wouldn’t have gotten away so easily if Akut hadn’t been more worried about the wounded Korak than about the fate of the girl, who he had always seen as somewhat of an outsider and a hassle.
Korak lay bleeding and unconscious when Akut reached his side. The great ape tore the heavy spears from his flesh, licked the wounds and then carried his friend to the lofty shelter that Korak had constructed for Meriem. Further than this the brute could do nothing. Nature must accomplish the rest unaided or Korak must die.
Korak was lying there, bleeding and unconscious when Akut got to him. The big ape yanked the heavy spears out of his body, licked the wounds, and then carried his friend to the high shelter that Korak had built for Meriem. Beyond this, there was nothing more the brute could do. Nature had to take over from here, or Korak would die.
He did not die, however. For days he lay helpless with fever, while Akut and the apes hunted close by that they might protect him from such birds and beasts as might reach his lofty retreat. Occasionally Akut brought him juicy fruits which helped to slake his thirst and allay his fever, and little by little his powerful constitution overcame the effects of the spear thrusts. The wounds healed and his strength returned. All during his rational moments as he had lain upon the soft furs which lined Meriem’s nest he had suffered more acutely from fears for Meriem than from the pain of his own wounds. For her he must live. For her he must regain his strength that he might set out in search of her. What had the blacks done to her? Did she still live, or had they sacrificed her to their lust for torture and human flesh? Korak almost trembled with terror as the most hideous possibilities of the girl’s fate suggested themselves to him out of his knowledge of the customs of Kovudoo’s tribe.
He didn’t die, though. For days, he lay helpless with a fever while Akut and the apes hunted nearby to keep him safe from any birds and beasts that might reach his high retreat. Occasionally, Akut brought him juicy fruits that helped quench his thirst and ease his fever, and little by little, his strong constitution overcame the effects of the spear wounds. The injuries healed, and his strength returned. During his clear moments while lying on the soft furs in Meriem’s nest, he felt more intense fear for Meriem than pain from his own wounds. For her, he had to live. For her, he had to regain his strength so he could go out in search of her. What had the black people done to her? Was she still alive, or had they sacrificed her to satisfy their desire for torture and human flesh? Korak nearly trembled with dread as the most horrifying possibilities about her fate came to mind based on what he knew about the customs of Kovudoo’s tribe.
The days dragged their weary lengths along, but at last he had sufficiently regained his strength to crawl from the shelter and make his way unaided to the ground. Now he lived more upon raw meat, for which he was entirely dependent on Akut’s skill and generosity. With the meat diet his strength returned more rapidly, and at last he felt that he was fit to undertake the journey to the village of the blacks.
The days dragged on, but finally he had recovered enough to crawl out of the shelter and make his way to the ground on his own. Now he mostly ate raw meat, relying entirely on Akut’s skill and generosity for it. With the meat-heavy diet, his strength came back faster, and he finally felt ready to make the journey to the village of the black people.
XII.
Two tall, bearded white men moved cautiously through the jungle from their camp beside a wide river. They were Carl Jenssen and Sven Malbihn, but little altered in appearance since the day, years before, that they and their safari had been so badly frightened by Korak and Akut as the former sought haven with them.
Two tall, bearded white men moved cautiously through the jungle from their camp by a wide river. They were Carl Jenssen and Sven Malbihn, looking little different from the day, years ago, that they and their safari were so badly scared by Korak and Akut when the former sought refuge with them.
Every year had they come into the jungle to trade with the natives, or to rob them; to hunt and trap; or to guide other white men in the land they knew so well. Always since their experience with The Sheik had they operated at a safe distance from his territory.
Every year they came into the jungle to trade with the locals, or to exploit them; to hunt and trap; or to guide other white men in the land they knew so well. Since their encounter with The Sheik, they always worked from a safe distance away from his territory.
Now they were closer to his village than they had been for years, yet safe enough from discovery owing to the uninhabited nature of the intervening jungle and the fear and enmity of Kovudoo’s people for The Sheik, who, in time past, had raided and all but exterminated the tribe.
Now they were closer to his village than they had been in years, yet safe enough from being discovered due to the deserted jungle between them and the fear and hostility of Kovudoo’s people toward The Sheik, who, in the past, had raided and nearly wiped out the tribe.
This year they had come to trap live specimens for a European zoological garden, and today they were approaching a trap which they had set in the hope of capturing a specimen of the large baboons that frequented the neighborhood. As they approached the trap they became aware from the noises emanating from its vicinity that their efforts had been crowned with success. The barking and screaming of hundreds of baboons could mean naught else than that one or more of their number had fallen a victim to the allurements of the bait.
This year, they came to capture live specimens for a European zoo, and today they were nearing a trap they had set, hoping to catch one of the large baboons that roamed the area. As they got closer to the trap, the sounds coming from the surrounding area made it clear that their efforts had paid off. The barking and screaming of hundreds of baboons could only mean that one or more of them had been lured in by the bait.
The extreme caution of the two men was prompted by former experiences with the intelligent and doglike creatures with which they had to deal. More than one trapper has lost his life in battle with enraged baboons who will hesitate to attack nothing upon one occasion, while upon another a single gun shot will disperse hundreds of them.
The extreme caution of the two men was prompted by their past experiences with the intelligent, dog-like creatures they had to deal with. More than one trapper has lost his life in a confrontation with angry baboons, who might not hesitate to attack one moment, while in another, a single gunshot can send hundreds of them running.
Heretofore the Swedes had always watched near-by their trap, for as a rule only the stronger bulls are thus caught, since in their greediness they prevent the weaker from approaching the covered bait, and when once within the ordinary rude trap woven on the spot of interlaced branches they are able, with the aid of their friends upon the outside, to demolish their prison and escape. But in this instance the trappers had utilized a special steel cage which could withstand all the strength and cunning of a baboon. It was only necessary, therefore, to drive away the herd which they knew were surrounding the prison and wait for their boys who were even now following them to the trap.
Until now, the Swedes always kept a close eye on their trap because, usually, only the stronger bulls get caught. Their greediness keeps the weaker ones from getting close to the bait. Once they enter the typical rough trap made from intertwined branches, they often manage to break free with help from their friends outside. However, in this case, the trappers used a special steel cage that could handle all the strength and cleverness of a baboon. So, they just needed to drive away the herd surrounding the cage and wait for their boys, who were already on their way to the trap.
As they came within sight of the spot they found conditions precisely as they had expected. A large male was battering frantically against the steel wires of the cage that held him captive. Upon the outside several hundred other baboons were tearing and tugging in his aid, and all were roaring and jabbering and barking at the top of their lungs.
As they approached the location, they saw exactly what they had anticipated. A large male was desperately hitting against the steel wires of the cage that confined him. Outside, several hundred other baboons were pulling and tugging in his support, all roaring, chattering, and barking at the top of their lungs.
But what neither the Swedes nor the baboons saw was the half-naked figure of a youth hidden in the foliage of a nearby tree. He had come upon the scene at almost the same instant as Jenssen and Malbihn, and was watching the activities of the baboons with every mark of interest.
But what neither the Swedes nor the baboons noticed was the half-naked young man hidden in the leaves of a nearby tree. He had come upon the scene at almost the same moment as Jenssen and Malbihn and was watching the baboons' activities with keen interest.
Korak’s relations with the baboons had never been over friendly. A species of armed toleration had marked their occasional meetings. The baboons and Akut had walked stiff legged and growling past one another, while Korak had maintained a bared fang neutrality. So now he was not greatly disturbed by the predicament of their king. Curiosity prompted him to tarry a moment, and in that moment his quick eyes caught the unfamiliar coloration of the clothing of the two Swedes behind a bush not far from him. Now he was all alertness. Who were these interlopers? What was their business in the jungle of the Mangani? Korak slunk noiselessly around them to a point where he might get their scent as well as a better view of them, and scarce had he done so when he recognized them—they were the men who had fired upon him years before. His eyes blazed. He could feel the hairs upon his scalp stiffen at the roots. He watched them with the intentness of a panther about to spring upon its prey.
Korak's relationship with the baboons had never been very friendly. Their occasional encounters were marked by a sort of armed tolerance. The baboons and Akut would walk past each other stiff-legged and growling, while Korak stayed neutral with his fangs bared. So, he wasn't too bothered by the situation involving their king. His curiosity made him pause for a moment, and during that time, his sharp eyes noticed the unusual clothing of two Swedes hiding behind a bush not far away. Now he was fully alert. Who were these intruders? What were they doing in the jungle of the Mangani? Korak quietly moved around them to get their scent and a better look, and as soon as he did, he recognized them—they were the men who had shot at him years ago. His eyes burned with anger. He could feel the hair on his scalp bristle. He watched them with the intensity of a panther ready to pounce on its prey.
He saw them rise and, shouting, attempt to frighten away the baboons as they approached the cage. Then one of them raised his rifle and fired into the midst of the surprised and angry herd. For an instant Korak thought that the baboons were about to charge, but two more shots from the rifles of the white men sent them scampering into the trees. Then the two Europeans advanced upon the cage. Korak thought that they were going to kill the king. He cared nothing for the king but he cared less for the two white men. The king had never attempted to kill him—the white men had. The king was a denizen of his own beloved jungle—the white men were aliens. His loyalty therefore was to the baboon against the human. He could speak the language of the baboon—it was identical to that of the great apes. Across the clearing he saw the jabbering horde watching.
He watched them get up and, yelling, try to scare off the baboons as they got closer to the cage. Then one of them raised his rifle and fired into the middle of the startled and angry group. For a moment, Korak thought the baboons were about to charge, but two more shots from the rifles of the white men made them run off into the trees. Then the two Europeans approached the cage. Korak thought they were going to kill the king. He didn't care about the king, but he cared even less for the two white men. The king had never tried to kill him—the white men had. The king was a resident of his own cherished jungle—the white men were outsiders. His loyalty was therefore to the baboon against the human. He could speak the baboon's language—it was the same as that of the great apes. Across the clearing, he saw the chattering group watching.
Raising his voice he shouted to them. The white men turned at the sound of this new factor behind them. They thought it was another baboon that had circled them; but though they searched the trees with their eyes they saw nothing of the now silent figure hidden by the foliage. Again Korak shouted.
Raising his voice, he yelled at them. The white men turned at the sound of this new presence behind them. They thought it was another baboon that had gone around them; but even as they scanned the trees with their eyes, they saw nothing of the now silent figure hidden by the leaves. Again, Korak shouted.
“I am The Killer,” he cried. “These men are my enemies and yours. I will help you free your king. Run out upon the strangers when you see me do so, and together we will drive them away and free your king.”
“I am The Killer,” he shouted. “These men are my enemies and yours. I will help you rescue your king. Charge at the strangers when you see me do it, and together we will drive them off and free your king.”
And from the baboons came a great chorus: “We will do what you say, Korak.”
And from the baboons came a loud chorus: “We’ll do whatever you say, Korak.”
Dropping from his tree Korak ran toward the two Swedes, and at the same instant three hundred baboons followed his example. At sight of the strange apparition of the half-naked white warrior rushing upon them with uplifted spear Jenssen and Malbihn raised their rifles and fired at Korak; but in the excitement both missed and a moment later the baboons were upon them. Now their only hope of safety lay in escape, and dodging here and there, fighting off the great beasts that leaped upon their backs, they ran into the jungle. Even then they would have died but for the coming of their men whom they met a couple of hundred yards from the cage.
Dropping from his tree, Korak ran toward the two Swedes, and at the same moment, three hundred baboons followed his lead. When Jenssen and Malbihn saw the unusual sight of the half-naked white warrior charging at them with an upraised spear, they raised their rifles and fired at Korak; but in the chaos, both missed, and a moment later, the baboons were upon them. Their only hope of safety was to escape, so they zigzagged and fought off the large beasts that pounced on their backs as they ran into the jungle. Even then, they would have met their end if not for the arrival of their men, whom they encountered a couple of hundred yards from the cage.
Once the white men had turned in flight Korak gave them no further attention, turning instead to the imprisoned baboon. The fastenings of the door that had eluded the mental powers of the baboons, yielded their secret immediately to the human intelligence of The Killer, and a moment later the king baboon stepped forth to liberty. He wasted no breath in thanks to Korak, nor did the young man expect thanks. He knew that none of the baboons would ever forget his service, though as a matter of fact he did not care if they did. What he had done had been prompted by a desire to be revenged upon the two white men. The baboons could never be of service to him. Now they were racing in the direction of the battle that was being waged between their fellows and the followers of the two Swedes, and as the din of battle subsided in the distance, Korak turned and resumed his journey toward the village of Kovudoo.
Once the white men fled, Korak ignored them and instead focused on the imprisoned baboon. The door's fastenings, which had puzzled the baboons, revealed their secret to The Killer's human intelligence almost immediately, and a moment later, the king baboon stepped out into freedom. He didn't waste any breath thanking Korak, nor did the young man expect any gratitude. He knew that none of the baboons would ever forget his help, although he honestly didn't care if they did. His actions were driven by a desire for revenge against the two white men. The baboons were never going to be useful to him. Now, they were racing toward the battle happening between their fellow baboons and the two Swedes' followers, and as the sounds of conflict faded in the distance, Korak turned and continued his journey toward the village of Kovudoo.
On the way he came upon a herd of elephants standing in an open forest glade. Here the trees were too far apart to permit Korak to travel through the branches—a trail he much preferred not only because of its freedom from dense underbrush and the wider field of vision it gave him but from pride in his arboreal ability. It was exhilarating to swing from tree to tree; to test the prowess of his mighty muscles; to reap the pleasurable fruits of his hard won agility. Korak joyed in the thrills of the highflung upper terraces of the great forest, where, unhampered and unhindered, he might laugh down upon the great brutes who must keep forever to the darkness and the gloom of the musty soil.
On his way, he stumbled upon a herd of elephants standing in a clearing in the forest. Here, the trees were spaced too far apart for Korak to move through the branches—a route he preferred because it was free from thick underbrush and offered a wider view, plus he took pride in his ability to navigate the treetops. It was exciting to swing from tree to tree, testing his strong muscles and enjoying the rewards of his hard-earned agility. Korak delighted in the thrills of the lofty upper levels of the great forest, where, unrestrained and free, he could look down and laugh at the massive creatures that were stuck in the shadows and the gloom of the damp ground.
But here, in this open glade where Tantor flapped his giant ears and swayed his huge bulk from side to side, the ape-man must pass along the surface of the ground—a pygmy amongst giants. A great bull raised his trunk to rattle a low warning as he sensed the coming of an intruder. His weak eyes roved hither and thither but it was his keen scent and acute hearing which first located the ape-man. The herd moved restlessly, prepared for fight, for the old bull had caught the scent of man.
But here, in this open clearing where Tantor flapped his huge ears and swayed his massive body from side to side, the ape-man had to move along the ground—like a small person among giants. A large bull lifted his trunk to make a low warning sound as he sensed the approach of an intruder. His weak eyes scanned the area, but it was his sharp sense of smell and excellent hearing that first picked up on the ape-man's presence. The herd shifted nervously, ready to fight, since the old bull had caught the scent of a human.
“Peace, Tantor,” called The Killer. “It is I, Korak, Tarmangani.”
“Calm down, Tantor,” called The Killer. “It’s me, Korak, Tarmangani.”
The bull lowered his trunk and the herd resumed their interrupted meditations. Korak passed within a foot of the great bull. A sinuous trunk undulated toward him, touching his brown hide in a half caress. Korak slapped the great shoulder affectionately as he went by. For years he had been upon good terms with Tantor and his people. Of all the jungle folk he loved best the mighty pachyderm—the most peaceful and at the same time the most terrible of them all. The gentle gazelle feared him not, yet Numa, lord of the jungle, gave him a wide berth. Among the younger bulls, the cows and the calves Korak wound his way. Now and then another trunk would run out to touch him, and once a playful calf grasped his legs and upset him.
The bull lowered his trunk, and the herd went back to their interrupted thoughts. Korak passed within a foot of the massive bull. A smooth trunk moved toward him, gently brushing against his brown skin in a half embrace. As he walked by, Korak affectionately slapped the giant shoulder. For years, he had been on good terms with Tantor and his group. Of all the creatures in the jungle, he loved the mighty pachyderm the most—the most peaceful yet the most formidable of them all. The gentle gazelle wasn't afraid of him, but Numa, the king of the jungle, kept his distance. Korak navigated through the younger bulls, the cows, and the calves. Occasionally, another trunk would reach out to touch him, and once a playful calf grabbed his legs and knocked him over.
The afternoon was almost spent when Korak arrived at the village of Kovudoo. There were many natives lolling in shady spots beside the conical huts or beneath the branches of the several trees which had been left standing within the enclosure. Warriors were in evidence upon hand. It was not a good time for a lone enemy to prosecute a search through the village. Korak determined to await the coming of darkness. He was a match for many warriors; but he could not, unaided, overcome an entire tribe—not even for his beloved Meriem. While he waited among the branches and foliage of a near-by tree he searched the village constantly with his keen eyes, and twice he circled it, sniffing the vagrant breezes which puffed erratically from first one point of the compass and then another. Among the various stenches peculiar to a native village the ape-man’s sensitive nostrils were finally rewarded by cognizance of the delicate aroma which marked the presence of her he sought. Meriem was there—in one of those huts! But which one he could not know without closer investigation, and so he waited, with the dogged patience of a beast of prey, until night had fallen.
The afternoon was almost over when Korak arrived at the village of Kovudoo. Many locals were lounging in shady spots next to the conical huts or under the trees that had been left standing inside the enclosure. There were warriors visible nearby. It wasn’t a good time for a lone intruder to search through the village. Korak decided to wait for darkness. He could handle many warriors, but he couldn’t take on an entire tribe alone—not even for his beloved Meriem. While he waited among the branches and foliage of a nearby tree, he kept a constant watch on the village with his sharp eyes, circling it twice and sniffing the erratic breezes that came from different directions. Amid the various odors typical of a native village, the ape-man’s sensitive nose finally picked up the subtle scent that signaled the presence of the one he was looking for. Meriem was there—in one of those huts! But which one he couldn’t tell without closer investigation, so he waited patiently like a predator until night fell.
The camp fires of the blacks dotted the gloom with little points of light, casting their feeble rays in tiny circles of luminosity that brought into glistening relief the naked bodies of those who lay or squatted about them. It was then that Korak slid silently from the tree that had hidden him and dropped lightly to the ground within the enclosure.
The campfires of the Black people dotted the darkness with small lights, casting weak rays in tiny circles of brightness that made the bare bodies of those lounging or sitting nearby shimmer. It was at that moment that Korak quietly descended from the tree that had concealed him and landed softly on the ground inside the enclosure.
Keeping well in the shadows of the huts he commenced a systematic search of the village—ears, eyes and nose constantly upon the alert for the first intimation of the near presence of Meriem. His progress must of necessity be slow since not even the keen-eared curs of the savages must guess the presence of a stranger within the gates. How close he came to a detection on several occasions The Killer well knew from the restless whining of several of them.
Staying hidden in the shadows of the huts, he started a careful search of the village—his ears, eyes, and nose always alert for the first sign of Meriem nearby. He had to move slowly because even the sharp-eared dogs of the savages couldn’t suspect that a stranger was inside the gates. The Killer was fully aware of how close he came to being discovered on several occasions, listening to the restless whining of several of the dogs.
It was not until he reached the back of a hut at the head of the wide village street that Korak caught again, plainly, the scent of Meriem. With nose close to the thatched wall Korak sniffed eagerly about the structure—tense and palpitant as a hunting hound. Toward the front and the door he made his way when once his nose had assured him that Meriem lay within; but as he rounded the side and came within view of the entrance he saw a burly Negro armed with a long spear squatting at the portal of the girl’s prison. The fellow’s back was toward him, his figure outlined against the glow of cooking fires further down the street. He was alone. The nearest of his fellows were beside a fire sixty or seventy feet beyond. To enter the hut Korak must either silence the sentry or pass him unnoticed. The danger in the accomplishment of the former alternative lay in the practical certainty of alarming the warriors near by and bringing them and the balance of the village down upon him. To achieve the latter appeared practically impossible. To you or me it would have been impossible; but Korak, The Killer, was not as you or I.
It wasn't until he reached the back of a hut at the end of the wide village street that Korak caught a clear whiff of Meriem's scent again. With his nose close to the thatched wall, Korak sniffed eagerly around the building—tense and alert like a hunting dog. Once he confirmed that Meriem was inside, he made his way toward the front and the door. But as he rounded the side and came into view of the entrance, he saw a large Black man armed with a long spear sitting at the entrance to the girl’s prison. The guy had his back to him, his figure illuminated by the glow of cooking fires further down the street. He was alone. The nearest of his companions were by a fire sixty or seventy feet away. To enter the hut, Korak had to either take down the guard or slip past him unnoticed. The risk with the first option was that he would likely alert the nearby warriors and bring them and the rest of the village down on him. The second option seemed practically impossible. For you or me, it would be impossible; but Korak, The Killer, was not like you or me.
There was a good twelve inches of space between the broad back of the black and the frame of the doorway. Could Korak pass through behind the savage warrior without detection? The light that fell upon the glistening ebony of the sentry’s black skin fell also upon the light brown of Korak’s. Should one of the many further down the street chance to look long in this direction they must surely note the tall, light-colored, moving figure; but Korak depended upon their interest in their own gossip to hold their attention fast where it already lay, and upon the firelight near them to prevent them seeing too plainly at a distance into the darkness at the village end where his work lay.
There was a good twelve inches of space between the broad back of the black guy and the doorway frame. Could Korak slip through behind the savage warrior without being noticed? The light shining on the glossy black skin of the sentry also illuminated Korak’s light brown skin. If anyone down the street happened to glance this way, they would definitely see the tall, light-colored figure moving; but Korak relied on their focus on their own gossip to keep their attention where it already was, and on the firelight nearby to prevent them from clearly seeing into the darkness at the end of the village where he needed to work.
Flattened against the side of the hut, yet not arousing a single warning rustle from its dried thatching, The Killer came closer and closer to the watcher. Now he was at his shoulder. Now he had wormed his sinuous way behind him. He could feel the heat of the naked body against his knees. He could hear the man breathe. He marveled that the dull-witted creature had not long since been alarmed; but the fellow sat there as ignorant of the presence of another as though that other had not existed.
Flattened against the side of the hut, without making a single sound from its dried roof, The Killer moved closer to the watcher. Now he was at his shoulder. Now he had stealthily slid behind him. He could feel the warmth of the bare body against his knees. He could hear the man breathe. He was amazed that the dim-witted guy hadn't gotten nervous by now; but the man remained completely unaware of the other’s presence, as if the other didn't exist at all.
Korak moved scarcely more than an inch at a time, then he would stand motionless for a moment. Thus was he worming his way behind the guard when the latter straightened up, opened his cavernous mouth in a wide yawn, and stretched his arms above his head. Korak stood rigid as stone. Another step and he would be within the hut. The black lowered his arms and relaxed. Behind him was the frame work of the doorway. Often before had it supported his sleepy head, and now he leaned back to enjoy the forbidden pleasure of a cat nap.
Korak moved just an inch at a time, then he would freeze for a moment. That’s how he was sneaking behind the guard when the guard straightened up, yawned widely, and stretched his arms above his head. Korak stood as still as a rock. One more step and he would be inside the hut. The guard lowered his arms and relaxed. Behind him was the doorway frame. He had often rested his tired head against it, and now he leaned back to indulge in the tempting delight of a quick nap.
But instead of the door frame his head and shoulders came in contact with the warm flesh of a pair of living legs. The exclamation of surprise that almost burst from his lips was throttled in his throat by steel-thewed fingers that closed about his windpipe with the suddenness of thought. The black struggled to arise—to turn upon the creature that had seized him—to wriggle from its hold; but all to no purpose. As he had been held in a mighty vise of iron he could not move. He could not scream. Those awful fingers at his throat but closed more and more tightly. His eyes bulged from their sockets. His face turned an ashy blue. Presently he relaxed once more—this time in the final dissolution from which there is no quickening. Korak propped the dead body against the door frame. There it sat, lifelike in the gloom. Then the ape-man turned and glided into the Stygian darkness of the hut’s interior.
But instead of hitting the door frame, his head and shoulders made contact with the warm flesh of a pair of living legs. The exclamation of surprise that almost burst from his lips was choked back by powerful fingers that wrapped around his throat suddenly. The man struggled to get up—to confront the creature that had grabbed him—to wriggle free from its grip; but it was all in vain. He was held in a vise grip and couldn’t move. He couldn’t scream. Those terrible fingers around his throat tightened even more. His eyes bulged out of their sockets. His face turned an ashy blue. Eventually, he relaxed once more—this time in the final surrender from which there is no return. Korak propped the dead body against the door frame. There it stood, looking lifelike in the gloom. Then the ape-man turned and slipped into the pitch-black darkness of the hut’s interior.
“Meriem!” he whispered.
“Meriem!” he said softly.
“Korak! My Korak!” came an answering cry, subdued by fear of alarming her captors, and half stifled by a sob of joyful welcome.
“Korak! My Korak!” came a response, muffled by the fear of alarming her captors and half choked back by a sob of joyful greeting.
The youth knelt and cut the bonds that held the girl’s wrists and ankles. A moment later he had lifted her to her feet, and grasping her by the hand led her towards the entrance. Outside the grim sentinel of death kept his grisly vigil. Sniffing at his dead feet whined a mangy native cur. At sight of the two emerging from the hut the beast gave an ugly snarl and an instant later as it caught the scent of the strange white man it raised a series of excited yelps. Instantly the warriors at the near-by fire were attracted. They turned their heads in the direction of the commotion. It was impossible that they should fail to see the white skins of the fugitives.
The young man knelt and cut the ropes binding the girl’s wrists and ankles. Moments later, he had her on her feet, and taking her hand, he led her toward the entrance. Outside, the grim guardian of death kept his watch. A scruffy local dog was sniffing at its dead paws and whined softly. When it saw the two coming out of the hut, the dog growled menacingly, and as it picked up the scent of the unfamiliar white man, it erupted into a series of excited yelps. Instantly, the warriors by the nearby fire were drawn to the noise. They turned their heads toward the commotion. There was no way they could miss the white skin of the escapees.
Korak slunk quickly into the shadows at the hut’s side, drawing Meriem with him; but he was too late. The blacks had seen enough to arouse their suspicions and a dozen of them were now running to investigate. The yapping cur was still at Korak’s heels leading the searchers unerringly in pursuit. The youth struck viciously at the brute with his long spear; but, long accustomed to dodging blows, the wily creature made a most uncertain target.
Korak quickly slipped into the shadows next to the hut, pulling Meriem with him; but he was too late. The locals had seen enough to raise their suspicions, and a dozen of them were now rushing over to investigate. The yapping dog was still at Korak’s heels, leading the searchers right to him. The young man viciously struck at the dog with his long spear; however, the clever creature, used to dodging blows, was a very hard target.
Other blacks had been alarmed by the running and shouting of their companions and now the entire population of the village was swarming up the street to assist in the search. Their first discovery was the dead body of the sentry, and a moment later one of the bravest of them had entered the hut and discovered the absence of the prisoner. These startling announcements filled the blacks with a combination of terror and rage; but, seeing no foe in evidence they were enabled to permit their rage to get the better of their terror, and so the leaders, pushed on by those behind them, ran rapidly around the hut in the direction of the yapping of the mangy cur. Here they found a single white warrior making away with their captive, and recognizing him as the author of numerous raids and indignities and believing that they had him cornered and at a disadvantage, they charged savagely upon him.
Other Black people had been alarmed by the running and shouting of their friends, and now the whole village was rushing up the street to help with the search. Their first discovery was the dead body of the guard, and moments later, one of the bravest among them entered the hut and found that the prisoner was missing. These shocking revelations filled the Black people with a mix of fear and anger; however, since they saw no enemy in sight, they allowed their anger to overpower their fear. The leaders, pushed on by those behind them, quickly ran around the hut in the direction of the barking of the scruffy dog. Here, they found a single white warrior trying to escape with their captive. Recognizing him as the one responsible for many attacks and humiliations and believing they had him trapped and at a disadvantage, they fiercely charged at him.
Korak, seeing that they were discovered, lifted Meriem to his shoulders and ran for the tree which would give them egress from the village. He was handicapped in his flight by the weight of the girl whose legs would but scarce bear her weight, to say nothing of maintaining her in rapid flight, for the tightly drawn bonds that had been about her ankles for so long had stopped circulation and partially paralyzed her extremities.
Korak, realizing they had been found out, lifted Meriem onto his shoulders and sprinted toward the tree that would allow them to escape the village. He was slowed down by the weight of the girl, whose legs could barely support her, let alone keep her stable during his fast run. The tightly tied bonds around her ankles had cut off circulation and partially numbed her legs.
Had this not been the case the escape of the two would have been a feat of little moment, since Meriem was scarcely a whit less agile than Korak, and fully as much at home in the trees as he. But with the girl on his shoulder Korak could not both run and fight to advantage, and the result was that before he had covered half the distance to the tree a score of native curs attracted by the yelping of their mate and the yells and shouts of their masters had closed in upon the fleeing white man, snapping at his legs and at last succeeding in tripping him. As he went down the hyena-like brutes were upon him, and as he struggled to his feet the blacks closed in.
If this hadn’t been the case, the escape of the two wouldn’t have been such a big deal, since Meriem was hardly any less agile than Korak and just as comfortable in the trees as he was. But with the girl on his shoulder, Korak couldn’t run and fight effectively at the same time, and as a result, by the time he had covered half the distance to the tree, a pack of native dogs, drawn in by the barking of their companion and the shouts of their owners, had surrounded the fleeing white man, snapping at his legs and eventually managing to trip him. As he fell, the hyena-like creatures attacked him, and as he struggled to his feet, the black men closed in.
A couple of them seized the clawing, biting Meriem, and subdued her—a blow upon the head was sufficient. For the ape-man they found more drastic measures would be necessary.
A couple of them grabbed the scratching, biting Meriem and held her down—a hit to the head was enough. For the ape-man, they realized they would need to take more severe action.
Weighted down as he was by dogs and warriors he still managed to struggle to his feet. To right and left he swung crushing blows to the faces of his human antagonists—to the dogs he paid not the slightest attention other than to seize the more persistent and wring their necks with a single quick movement of the wrist.
Weighted down as he was by dogs and warriors, he still managed to push himself up to his feet. He swung powerful punches to the faces of his human opponents, barely paying any attention to the dogs except to grab the more persistent ones and snap their necks with a quick motion of his wrist.
A knob stick aimed at him by an ebon Hercules he caught and wrested from his antagonist, and then the blacks experienced to the full the possibilities for punishment that lay within those smooth flowing muscles beneath the velvet brown skin of the strange, white giant. He rushed among them with all the force and ferocity of a bull elephant gone mad. Hither and thither he charged striking down the few who had the temerity to stand against him, and it was evident that unless a chance spear thrust brought him down he would rout the entire village and regain his prize. But old Kovudoo was not to be so easily robbed of the ransom which the girl represented, and seeing that their attack which had up to now resulted in a series of individual combats with the white warrior, he called his tribesmen off, and forming them in a compact body about the girl and the two who watched over her bid them do nothing more than repel the assaults of the ape-man.
A wooden stick aimed at him by a muscular Black man was caught and wrested from his opponent, and then the others fully felt the potential for punishment that lay within those smooth, powerful muscles beneath the dark brown skin of the strange, white giant. He charged through them with all the strength and fury of a raging bull elephant. He charged here and there, striking down the few who dared to stand against him, and it was clear that unless a lucky spear thrust took him down, he would defeat the entire village and reclaim his prize. But old Kovudoo wasn’t going to let them easily take the ransom that the girl represented, and seeing that their attack had so far resulted in a series of individual fights with the white warrior, he called his tribesmen back and organized them into a tight group around the girl and the two who were watching over her, instructing them to do nothing more than fend off the attacks of the ape-man.
Again and again Korak rushed against this human barricade bristling with spear points. Again and again he was repulsed, often with severe wounds to caution him to greater wariness. From head to foot he was red with his own blood, and at last, weakening from the loss of it, he came to the bitter realization that alone he could do no more to succor his Meriem.
Again and again, Korak charged at this human wall covered in spear points. Again and again, he was pushed back, often with serious injuries to remind him to be more careful. His body was covered in his own blood, and finally, weakened from the loss, he came to the harsh realization that he could do nothing more to help his Meriem on his own.
Presently an idea flashed through his brain. He called aloud to the girl. She had regained consciousness now and replied.
Presently, an idea popped into his head. He called out to the girl. She had come to her senses now and responded.
“Korak goes,” he shouted; “but he will return and take you from the Gomangani. Good-bye, my Meriem. Korak will come for you again.”
“Korak is leaving,” he shouted; “but he’ll be back to take you away from the Gomangani. Goodbye, my Meriem. Korak will come for you again.”
“Good-bye!” cried the girl. “Meriem will look for you until you come.”
“Goodbye!” shouted the girl. “Meriem will search for you until you return.”
Like a flash, and before they could know his intention or prevent him, Korak wheeled, raced across the village and with a single leap disappeared into the foliage of the great tree that was his highroad to the village of Kovudoo. A shower of spears followed him, but their only harvest was a taunting laugh flung back from out the darkness of the jungle.
Like a flash, and before they could figure out what he was up to or stop him, Korak turned, sprinted across the village, and with one leap vanished into the leaves of the big tree that was his route to the village of Kovudoo. A flurry of spears followed him, but the only thing they caught was a mocking laugh thrown back from the darkness of the jungle.
XIII.
Meriem, again bound and under heavy guard in Kovudoo’s own hut, saw the night pass and the new day come without bringing the momentarily looked for return of Korak. She had no doubt but that he would come back and less still that he would easily free her from her captivity. To her Korak was little short of omnipotent. He embodied for her all that was finest and strongest and best in her savage world. She gloried in his prowess and worshipped him for the tender thoughtfulness that always had marked his treatment of her. No other within the ken of her memory had ever accorded her the love and gentleness that was his daily offering to her. Most of the gentler attributes of his early childhood had long since been forgotten in the fierce battle for existence which the customs of the mysterious jungle had forced upon him. He was more often savage and bloodthirsty than tender and kindly. His other friends of the wild looked for no gentle tokens of his affection. That he would hunt with them and fight for them was sufficient. If he growled and showed his fighting fangs when they trespassed upon his inalienable rights to the fruits of his kills they felt no anger toward him—only greater respect for the efficient and the fit—for him who could not only kill but protect the flesh of his kill.
Meriem, once again tied up and heavily guarded in Kovudoo’s hut, watched the night go by and the new day arrive without the expected return of Korak. She had no doubt he would come back and was even more certain he would easily free her from her captivity. To her, Korak was almost all-powerful. He represented everything that was best and strongest in her wild world. She took pride in his abilities and admired him for the caring thoughtfulness that always characterized how he treated her. No one else in her memory had ever given her the love and gentleness that was his everyday gift to her. Most of the softer qualities of his early childhood had long been forgotten in the brutal struggle for survival that the jungle’s harsh customs had forced upon him. He was more often fierce and aggressive than gentle and kind. His other wild friends expected no soft displays of his affection. That he would hunt and fight for them was enough. If he growled and bared his teeth when they encroached on his right to the spoils of his hunts, they felt no anger toward him—only increased respect for someone who was capable and strong—someone who could not only kill but also defend the rewards of his hunt.
But toward Meriem he always had shown more of his human side. He killed primarily for her. It was to the feet of Meriem that he brought the fruits of his labors. It was for Meriem more than for himself that he squatted beside his flesh and growled ominously at whosoever dared sniff too closely to it. When he was cold in the dark days of rain, or thirsty in a prolonged drouth, his discomfort engendered first of all thoughts of Meriem’s welfare—after she had been made warm, after her thirst had been slaked, then he turned to the affair of ministering to his own wants.
But toward Meriem, he always revealed more of his human side. He killed mainly for her. It was to Meriem that he brought the results of his efforts. He squatted next to his catch and growled ominously at anyone who dared come too close, all for Meriem rather than for himself. When he was cold during the rainy days or thirsty during a long drought, his discomfort first made him think about Meriem's well-being—after he made sure she was warm and her thirst was quenched, only then did he consider taking care of his own needs.
The softest skins fell gracefully from the graceful shoulders of his Meriem. The sweetest-scented grasses lined her bower where other soft, furry pelts made hers the downiest couch in all the jungle.
The softest skins draped elegantly from the lovely shoulders of his Meriem. The most fragrant grasses surrounded her resting place, where other soft, furry pelts created the coziest couch in the entire jungle.
What wonder then that Meriem loved her Korak? But she loved him as a little sister might love a big brother who was very good to her. As yet she knew naught of the love of a maid for a man.
What a surprise it was that Meriem loved her Korak! But she loved him like a little sister loves a big brother who treats her well. She didn’t yet understand the love a girl has for a guy.
So now as she lay waiting for him she dreamed of him and of all that he meant to her. She compared him with The Sheik, her father, and at thought of the stern, grizzled, old Arab she shuddered. Even the savage blacks had been less harsh to her than he. Not understanding their tongue she could not guess what purpose they had in keeping her a prisoner. She knew that man ate man, and she had expected to be eaten; but she had been with them for some time now and no harm had befallen her. She did not know that a runner had been dispatched to the distant village of The Sheik to barter with him for a ransom. She did not know, nor did Kovudoo, that the runner had never reached his destination—that he had fallen in with the safari of Jenssen and Malbihn and with the talkativeness of a native to other natives had unfolded his whole mission to the black servants of the two Swedes. These had not been long in retailing the matter to their masters, and the result was that when the runner left their camp to continue his journey he had scarce passed from sight before there came the report of a rifle and he rolled lifeless into the underbrush with a bullet in his back.
So now, as she lay there waiting for him, she dreamed of him and everything he meant to her. She compared him to The Sheik, her father, and the thought of the stern, grizzled old Arab made her shudder. Even the savage blacks had been less cruel to her than he had been. Not knowing their language, she couldn't figure out why they kept her captive. She knew that people could be cannibals, and she had expected to be eaten; but she had been with them for some time now, and no harm had come to her. She didn't know that a runner had been sent to the faraway village of The Sheik to negotiate for her ransom. She also didn't know, nor did Kovudoo, that the runner had never made it to his destination—that he had crossed paths with the safari of Jenssen and Malbihn, and in his eagerness to talk to other natives, he revealed his entire mission to the black servants of the two Swedes. It didn't take long for them to relay the information to their masters, and as a result, when the runner left their camp to continue his journey, he had barely vanished from sight before there was the report of a rifle, and he fell lifeless into the underbrush with a bullet in his back.
A few moments later Malbihn strolled back into the encampment, where he went to some pains to let it be known that he had had a shot at a fine buck and missed. The Swedes knew that their men hated them, and that an overt act against Kovudoo would quickly be carried to the chief at the first opportunity. Nor were they sufficiently strong in either guns or loyal followers to risk antagonizing the wily old chief.
A few moments later, Malbihn walked back into the camp, making sure everyone knew he had a chance to take a shot at a big buck and missed. The Swedes were aware that their men despised them, and that any open action against Kovudoo would be reported to the chief at the first chance. They also didn’t have enough firepower or trusted allies to risk making the clever old chief their enemy.
Following this episode came the encounter with the baboons and the strange, white savage who had allied himself with the beasts against the humans. Only by dint of masterful maneuvering and the expenditure of much power had the Swedes been able to repulse the infuriated apes, and even for hours afterward their camp was constantly besieged by hundreds of snarling, screaming devils.
Following this episode came the encounter with the baboons and the strange, white savage who had teamed up with the beasts against the humans. Only through clever moves and a lot of effort had the Swedes been able to fend off the furious apes, and even hours later, their camp was repeatedly attacked by hundreds of growling, screaming fiends.
The Swedes, rifles in hand, repelled numerous savage charges which lacked only efficient leadership to have rendered them as effective in results as they were terrifying in appearance. Time and time again the two men thought they saw the smooth-skinned body of the wild ape-man moving among the baboons in the forest, and the belief that he might head a charge upon them proved most disquieting. They would have given much for a clean shot at him, for to him they attributed the loss of their specimen and the ugly attitude of the baboons toward them.
The Swedes, armed with rifles, fended off several brutal attacks that, if they had better leadership, could have been as successful as they were frightening. Again and again, the two men thought they caught sight of the sleek body of the wild ape-man moving among the baboons in the forest, and the idea that he might lead another charge at them was very unsettling. They would have done almost anything for a clear shot at him, as they blamed him for losing their specimen and for the hostile behavior of the baboons toward them.
“The fellow must be the same we fired on several years ago,” said Malbihn. “That time he was accompanied by a gorilla. Did you get a good look at him, Carl?”
“The guy must be the same one we fired a few years ago,” said Malbihn. “Back then, he was with a gorilla. Did you get a good look at him, Carl?”
“Yes,” replied Jenssen. “He was not five paces from me when I fired at him. He appears to be an intelligent looking European—and not much more than a lad. There is nothing of the imbecile or degenerate in his features or expression, as is usually true in similar cases, where some lunatic escapes into the woods and by living in filth and nakedness wins the title of wild man among the peasants of the neighborhood. No, this fellow is of different stuff—and so infinitely more to be feared. As much as I should like a shot at him I hope he stays away. Should he ever deliberately lead a charge against us I wouldn’t give much for our chances if we happened to fail to bag him at the first rush.”
“Yes,” Jenssen replied. “He was just five steps away from me when I shot at him. He looks like a smart European—and he’s hardly more than a kid. There’s no sign of stupidity or degeneration in his face or expression, which is usually the case when some crazy person runs off into the woods and, by living in filth and without clothes, earns the label of wild man among the local villagers. No, this guy is made of different stuff—and that makes him so much more dangerous. As much as I’d like a shot at him, I hope he keeps his distance. If he ever intentionally leads an attack against us, I wouldn’t give much for our chances if we didn’t manage to take him down quickly.”
But the white giant did not appear again to lead the baboons against them, and finally the angry brutes themselves wandered off into the jungle leaving the frightened safari in peace.
But the white giant didn’t show up again to guide the baboons against them, and eventually the angry creatures wandered off into the jungle, leaving the scared safari in peace.
The next day the Swedes set out for Kovudoo’s village bent on securing possession of the person of the white girl whom Kovudoo’s runner had told them lay captive in the chief’s village. How they were to accomplish their end they did not know. Force was out of the question, though they would not have hesitated to use it had they possessed it. In former years they had marched rough shod over enormous areas, taking toll by brute force even when kindliness or diplomacy would have accomplished more; but now they were in bad straits—so bad that they had shown their true colors scarce twice in a year and then only when they came upon an isolated village, weak in numbers and poor in courage.
The next day, the Swedes headed out to Kovudoo’s village, determined to rescue the white girl who Kovudoo’s runner had told them was captive in the chief’s village. They had no idea how they would achieve this. Using force was not an option, although they would have done so if they could. In the past, they had treaded heavily across vast areas, taking what they wanted through brute strength even when kindness or diplomacy would have worked better; but now they were in a tough spot—so much so that they had shown their true selves barely twice in a year, and only when they stumbled upon a small, weak village.
Kovudoo was not as these, and though his village was in a way remote from the more populous district to the north his power was such that he maintained an acknowledged suzerainty over the thin thread of villages which connected him with the savage lords to the north. To have antagonized him would have spelled ruin for the Swedes. It would have meant that they might never reach civilization by the northern route. To the west, the village of The Sheik lay directly in their path, barring them effectually. To the east the trail was unknown to them, and to the south there was no trail. So the two Swedes approached the village of Kovudoo with friendly words upon their tongues and deep craft in their hearts.
Kovudoo was different from the others, and even though his village was somewhat isolated from the larger area to the north, his power was such that he held a recognized dominance over the sparse villages that connected him to the fierce lords in the north. To provoke him would have meant disaster for the Swedes. It would have indicated that they might never reach civilization through the northern route. To the west, the village of The Sheik stood squarely in their way, effectively blocking them. To the east, the path was unfamiliar to them, and to the south there was no route at all. So the two Swedes approached Kovudoo's village with friendly words and clever plans in their minds.
Their plans were well made. There was no mention of the white prisoner—they chose to pretend that they were not aware that Kovudoo had a white prisoner. They exchanged gifts with the old chief, haggling with his plenipotentiaries over the value of what they were to receive for what they gave, as is customary and proper when one has no ulterior motives. Unwarranted generosity would have aroused suspicion.
Their plans were solid. They didn’t bring up the white prisoner—they decided to act like they didn’t know that Kovudoo had one. They exchanged gifts with the old chief, negotiating with his representatives over the worth of what they were going to receive in exchange for what they offered, as is normal and appropriate when there are no hidden agendas. Unjustified generosity would have raised eyebrows.
During the palaver which followed they retailed the gossip of the villages through which they had passed, receiving in exchange such news as Kovudoo possessed. The palaver was long and tiresome, as these native ceremonies always are to Europeans. Kovudoo made no mention of his prisoner and from his generous offers of guides and presents seemed anxious to assure himself of the speedy departure of his guests. It was Malbihn who, quite casually, near the close of their talk, mentioned the fact that The Sheik was dead. Kovudoo evinced interest and surprise.
During the conversation that followed, they shared the gossip from the villages they had traveled through and got updates from Kovudoo in return. The discussion dragged on and felt tedious, as these local ceremonies usually do for Europeans. Kovudoo didn't bring up his prisoner and appeared eager to ensure his guests left quickly, making generous offers of guides and gifts. It was Malbihn who, almost casually, mentioned towards the end of their talk that The Sheik was dead. Kovudoo showed interest and surprise.
“You did not know it?” asked Malbihn. “That is strange. It was during the last moon. He fell from his horse when the beast stepped in a hole. The horse fell upon him. When his men came up The Sheik was quite dead.”
“You didn't know about that?” asked Malbihn. “That's odd. It happened during the last full moon. He fell off his horse when the animal stepped in a hole. The horse landed on him. By the time his men got there, The Sheik was completely dead.”
Kovudoo scratched his head. He was much disappointed. No Sheik meant no ransom for the white girl. Now she was worthless, unless he utilized her for a feast or—a mate. The latter thought aroused him. He spat at a small beetle crawling through the dust before him. He eyed Malbihn appraisingly. These white men were peculiar. They traveled far from their own villages without women. Yet he knew they cared for women. But how much did they care for them?—that was the question that disturbed Kovudoo.
Kovudoo scratched his head, feeling really disappointed. No Sheik meant no ransom for the white girl. Now she was worthless to him unless he used her for a feast or—a mate. The second idea excited him. He spat at a small beetle crawling through the dust in front of him. He looked at Malbihn thoughtfully. These white men were strange. They traveled far from their own villages without women. Yet he knew they cared about women. But how much did they really care?—that was the question that troubled Kovudoo.
“I know where there is a white girl,” he said, unexpectedly. “If you wish to buy her she may be had cheap.”
“I know where there’s a white girl,” he said, out of the blue. “If you want to buy her, she can be had for a low price.”
Malbihn shrugged. “We have troubles enough, Kovudoo,” he said, “without burdening ourselves with an old she-hyena, and as for paying for one—” Malbihn snapped his fingers in derision.
Malbihn shrugged. “We have enough problems, Kovudoo,” he said, “without adding an old she-hyena to our worries, and as for paying for one—” Malbihn snapped his fingers in disdain.
“She is young,” said Kovudoo, “and good looking.”
“She’s young,” said Kovudoo, “and attractive.”
The Swedes laughed. “There are no good looking white women in the jungle, Kovudoo,” said Jenssen. “You should be ashamed to try to make fun of old friends.”
The Swedes laughed. “There are no attractive white women in the jungle, Kovudoo,” said Jenssen. “You should be embarrassed to try to make fun of old friends.”
Kovudoo sprang to his feet. “Come,” he said, “I will show you that she is all I say.”
Kovudoo jumped up. “Come,” he said, “I’ll show you that she’s everything I say.”
Malbihn and Jenssen rose to follow him and as they did so their eyes met, and Malbihn slowly drooped one of his lids in a sly wink. Together they followed Kovudoo toward his hut. In the dim interior they discerned the figure of a woman lying bound upon a sleeping mat.
Malbihn and Jenssen stood up to follow him, and as they did, their eyes locked. Malbihn slowly closed one eye in a sly wink. They walked together after Kovudoo towards his hut. Inside, in the low light, they could make out a woman lying tied up on a sleeping mat.
Malbihn took a single glance and turned away. “She must be a thousand years old, Kovudoo,” he said, as he left the hut.
Malbihn took one look and turned away. “She must be a thousand years old, Kovudoo,” he said as he exited the hut.
“She is young,” cried the savage. “It is dark in here. You cannot see. Wait, I will have her brought out into the sunlight,” and he commanded the two warriors who watched the girl to cut the bonds from her ankles and lead her forth for inspection.
“She’s young,” shouted the savage. “It’s dark in here. You can’t see. Hold on, I’ll have her brought out into the sunlight,” and he ordered the two warriors watching the girl to cut the ropes from her ankles and bring her out for inspection.
Malbihn and Jenssen evinced no eagerness, though both were fairly bursting with it—not to see the girl but to obtain possession of her. They cared not if she had the face of a marmoset, or the figure of pot-bellied Kovudoo himself. All that they wished to know was that she was the girl who had been stolen from The Sheik several years before. They thought that they would recognize her for such if she was indeed the same, but even so the testimony of the runner Kovudoo had sent to The Sheik was such as to assure them that the girl was the one they had once before attempted to abduct.
Malbihn and Jenssen showed no excitement, even though they were practically bursting with it—not to see the girl but to claim her for themselves. They didn’t care if she looked like a marmoset or had the body of the pot-bellied Kovudoo. All they wanted to know was that she was the girl who had been taken from The Sheik several years ago. They thought they would recognize her if she was indeed the same, but still, the testimony of the messenger Kovudoo had sent to The Sheik was enough to convince them that the girl was the one they had previously tried to kidnap.
As Meriem was brought forth from the darkness of the hut’s interior the two men turned with every appearance of disinterestedness to glance at her. It was with difficulty that Malbihn suppressed an ejaculation of astonishment. The girl’s beauty fairly took his breath from him; but instantly he recovered his poise and turned to Kovudoo.
As Meriem was pulled out from the darkness inside the hut, the two men pretended to be uninterested and looked at her. Malbihn had to work hard to keep from gasping in surprise. The girl’s beauty left him speechless; but he quickly regained his composure and turned to Kovudoo.
“Well?” he said to the old chief.
"Well?" he asked the old chief.
“Is she not both young and good looking?” asked Kovudoo.
“Is she not both young and attractive?” asked Kovudoo.
“She is not old,” replied Malbihn; “but even so she will be a burden. We did not come from the north after wives—there are more than enough there for us.”
“She’s not old,” replied Malbihn; “but still, she’ll be a burden. We didn’t come from the north looking for wives—there are plenty of them up there for us.”
Meriem stood looking straight at the white men. She expected nothing from them—they were to her as much enemies as the black men. She hated and feared them all. Malbihn spoke to her in Arabic.
Meriem stood looking directly at the white men. She expected nothing from them—they were just as much enemies to her as the black men. She hated and feared them all. Malbihn spoke to her in Arabic.
“We are friends,” he said. “Would you like to have us take you away from here?”
“We're friends,” he said. “Would you like us to take you away from here?”
Slowly and dimly as though from a great distance recollection of the once familiar tongue returned to her.
Slowly and faintly, as if from a long way away, memories of the once-familiar language came back to her.
“I should like to go free,” she said, “and go back to Korak.”
“I want to be free,” she said, “and go back to Korak.”
“You would like to go with us?” persisted Malbihn.
“You want to come with us?” Malbihn pressed.
“No,” said Meriem.
“No,” Meriem replied.
Malbihn turned to Kovudoo. “She does not wish to go with us,” he said.
Malbihn turned to Kovudoo. “She doesn’t want to come with us,” he said.
“You are men,” returned the black. “Can you not take her by force?”
“You're men,” the black replied. “Can’t you just take her by force?”
“It would only add to our troubles,” replied the Swede. “No, Kovudoo, we do not wish her; though, if you wish to be rid of her, we will take her away because of our friendship for you.”
“It would only make things worse,” replied the Swede. “No, Kovudoo, we don't want her; but if you want her gone, we will take her away out of friendship for you.”
Now Kovudoo knew that he had made a sale. They wanted her. So he commenced to bargain, and in the end the person of Meriem passed from the possession of the black chieftain into that of the two Swedes in consideration of six yards of Amerikan, three empty brass cartridge shells and a shiny, new jack knife from New Jersey. And all but Meriem were more than pleased with the bargain.
Now Kovudoo knew he had made a sale. They wanted her. So he started to negotiate, and in the end, Meriem was transferred from the black chieftain to the two Swedes in exchange for six yards of American fabric, three empty brass cartridge shells, and a shiny new jackknife from New Jersey. Everyone except Meriem was more than happy with the deal.
Kovudoo stipulated but a single condition and that was that the Europeans were to leave his village and take the girl with them as early the next morning as they could get started. After the sale was consummated he did not hesitate to explain his reasons for this demand. He told them of the strenuous attempt of the girl’s savage mate to rescue her, and suggested that the sooner they got her out of the country the more likely they were to retain possession of her.
Kovudoo made just one condition: the Europeans had to leave his village and take the girl with them as early as they could the next morning. Once the sale was finalized, he didn’t hold back in explaining his reasons for this demand. He told them about the fierce attempts of the girl's savage partner to save her and suggested that the sooner they got her out of the country, the more likely they were to keep her.
Meriem was again bound and placed under guard, but this time in the tent of the Swedes. Malbihn talked to her, trying to persuade her to accompany them willingly. He told her that they would return her to her own village; but when he discovered that she would rather die than go back to the old sheik, he assured her that they would not take her there, nor, as a matter of fact, had they had an intention of so doing. As he talked with the girl the Swede feasted his eyes upon the beautiful lines of her face and figure. She had grown tall and straight and slender toward maturity since he had seen her in The Sheik’s village on that long gone day. For years she had represented to him a certain fabulous reward. In his thoughts she had been but the personification of the pleasures and luxuries that many francs would purchase. Now as she stood before him pulsing with life and loveliness she suggested other seductive and alluring possibilities. He came closer to her and laid his hand upon her. The girl shrank from him. He seized her and she struck him heavily in the mouth as he sought to kiss her. Then Jenssen entered the tent.
Meriem was once again tied up and kept under watch, but this time it was in the Swedes' tent. Malbihn spoke to her, trying to convince her to come with them willingly. He told her that they would take her back to her village; however, when he realized she would rather die than return to the old sheik, he reassured her that they wouldn’t take her there, nor had they ever intended to. As he talked with her, the Swede admired the beautiful features of her face and body. She had grown tall, straight, and slender as she matured since he had last seen her in The Sheik's village on that long-ago day. For years, she had represented a certain lavish reward in his mind. To him, she had been just a symbol of the pleasures and luxuries that could be bought with many francs. Now, standing before him full of life and beauty, she hinted at other tempting and attractive possibilities. He moved closer and put his hand on her. The girl recoiled from him. He grabbed her, and she hit him hard in the mouth as he tried to kiss her. At that moment, Jenssen entered the tent.
“Malbihn!” he almost shouted. “You fool!”
“Malbihn!” he almost yelled. “You idiot!”
Sven Malbihn released his hold upon the girl and turned toward his companion. His face was red with mortification.
Sven Malbihn let go of the girl and turned to his friend. His face was flushed with embarrassment.
“What the devil are you trying to do?” growled Jenssen. “Would you throw away every chance for the reward? If we maltreat her we not only couldn’t collect a sou, but they’d send us to prison for our pains. I thought you had more sense, Malbihn.”
“What the hell are you trying to do?” Jenssen growled. “Are you really willing to throw away every chance at the reward? If we mistreat her, not only can we forget about collecting a penny, but they’ll also throw us in prison for our trouble. I thought you were smarter than this, Malbihn.”
“I’m not a wooden man,” growled Malbihn.
“I’m not a wooden man,” Malbihn growled.
“You’d better be,” rejoined Jenssen, “at least until we have delivered her over in safety and collected what will be coming to us.”
“You better be,” Jenssen replied, “at least until we safely deliver her and get what we're owed.”
“Oh, hell,” cried Malbihn. “What’s the use? They’ll be glad enough to have her back, and by the time we get there with her she’ll be only too glad to keep her mouth shut. Why not?”
“Oh, hell,” Malbihn exclaimed. “What’s the point? They’ll be more than happy to have her back, and by the time we get there with her, she’ll be more than willing to stay quiet. Why not?”
“Because I say not,” growled Jenssen. “I’ve always let you boss things, Sven; but here’s a case where what I say has got to go—because I’m right and you’re wrong, and we both know it.”
“Because I’m not going to,” Jenssen said gruffly. “I’ve always let you take charge, Sven; but this time what I say has to count—because I’m right and you know it.”
“You’re getting damned virtuous all of a sudden,” growled Malbihn. “Perhaps you think I have forgotten about the inn keeper’s daughter, and little Celella, and that nigger at—”
“You're suddenly acting all high and mighty,” Malbihn growled. “Maybe you think I’ve forgotten about the innkeeper’s daughter, and little Celella, and that guy at—”
“Shut up!” snapped Jenssen. “It’s not a matter of virtue and you are as well aware of that as I. I don’t want to quarrel with you, but so help me God, Sven, you’re not going to harm this girl if I have to kill you to prevent it. I’ve suffered and slaved and been nearly killed forty times in the last nine or ten years trying to accomplish what luck has thrown at our feet at last, and now I’m not going to be robbed of the fruits of success because you happen to be more of a beast than a man. Again I warn you, Sven—” and he tapped the revolver that swung in its holster at his hip.
“Shut up!” Jenssen snapped. “This isn’t about virtue, and you know that just as well as I do. I don’t want to argue with you, but I swear, Sven, you’re not going to hurt this girl if it means I have to kill you to stop it. I’ve suffered and worked myself to the bone and come close to death forty times in the last nine or ten years trying to achieve what luck has finally put in front of us, and I won’t let you take away the rewards of success just because you act more like a beast than a man. I warn you again, Sven—” and he tapped the revolver that hung in its holster at his hip.
Malbihn gave his friend an ugly look, shrugged his shoulders, and left the tent. Jenssen turned to Meriem.
Malbihn shot his friend a nasty glance, shrugged, and walked out of the tent. Jenssen turned to Meriem.
“If he bothers you again, call me,” he said. “I shall always be near.”
“If he bothers you again, call me,” he said. “I’ll always be close.”
The girl had not understood the conversation that had been carried on by her two owners, for it had been in Swedish; but what Jenssen had just said to her in Arabic she understood and from it grasped an excellent idea of what had passed between the two. The expressions upon their faces, their gestures, and Jenssen’s final tapping of his revolver before Malbihn had left the tent had all been eloquent of the seriousness of their altercation. Now, toward Jenssen she looked for friendship, and with the innocence of youth she threw herself upon his mercy, begging him to set her free, that she might return to Korak and her jungle life; but she was doomed to another disappointment, for the man only laughed at her roughly and told her that if she tried to escape she would be punished by the very thing that he had just saved her from.
The girl hadn’t understood the conversation between her two owners because it was in Swedish, but she understood what Jenssen had just said to her in Arabic and got a clear idea of what had happened between them. The looks on their faces, their gestures, and Jenssen’s final tap of his revolver before Malbihn left the tent all indicated how serious their argument had been. Now, she looked to Jenssen for friendship, and with the innocence of youth, she threw herself on his mercy, begging him to let her go so she could return to Korak and her life in the jungle. But she was in for another disappointment, as the man just laughed harshly at her and told her that if she tried to escape, she would face the very thing he had just saved her from.
All that night she lay listening for a signal from Korak. All about the jungle life moved through the darkness. To her sensitive ears came sounds that the others in the camp could not hear—sounds that she interpreted as we might interpret the speech of a friend, but not once came a single note that reflected the presence of Korak. But she knew that he would come. Nothing short of death itself could prevent her Korak from returning for her. What delayed him though?
All night she lay there, waiting to hear from Korak. Life in the jungle continued to stir in the darkness around her. Her keen ears picked up sounds that the others in the camp couldn’t hear—sounds she understood as clearly as we might understand a friend's words. But not once did she hear anything that signaled Korak was near. Still, she was certain he would come. Nothing but death could keep her Korak from coming back for her. But what was holding him up?
When morning came again and the night had brought no succoring Korak, Meriem’s faith and loyalty were still unshaken though misgivings began to assail her as to the safety of her friend. It seemed unbelievable that serious mishap could have overtaken her wonderful Korak who daily passed unscathed through all the terrors of the jungle. Yet morning came, the morning meal was eaten, the camp broken and the disreputable safari of the Swedes was on the move northward with still no sign of the rescue the girl momentarily expected.
When morning arrived again and the night had brought no help for Korak, Meriem’s faith and loyalty remained strong, even though worries began to creep in about her friend's safety. It felt unimaginable that anything serious could have happened to her incredible Korak, who effortlessly faced all the dangers of the jungle every day. But morning came, breakfast was eaten, the camp was packed up, and the shady Swedish safari was heading north without any sign of the rescue the girl was hoping for.
All that day they marched, and the next and the next, nor did Korak even so much as show himself to the patient little waiter moving, silently and stately, beside her hard captors.
All that day they marched, and the next and the next, and Korak didn’t even show himself to the patient little waiter moving silently and gracefully beside her tough captors.
Malbihn remained scowling and angry. He replied to Jenssen’s friendly advances in curt monosyllables. To Meriem he did not speak, but on several occasions she discovered him glaring at her from beneath half closed lids—greedily. The look sent a shudder through her. She hugged Geeka closer to her breast and doubly regretted the knife that they had taken from her when she was captured by Kovudoo.
Malbihn stayed scowling and furious. He responded to Jenssen’s friendly attempts with short, sharp answers. He didn't say anything to Meriem, but several times she caught him staring at her with half-closed eyes—hungrily. The look made her shiver. She pulled Geeka tighter to her chest and regretted even more the knife they had taken from her when Kovudoo captured her.
It was on the fourth day that Meriem began definitely to give up hope. Something had happened to Korak. She knew it. He would never come now, and these men would take her far away. Presently they would kill her. She would never see her Korak again.
It was on the fourth day that Meriem started to lose hope for good. Something had happened to Korak. She was sure of it. He would never come now, and these men would take her far away. Soon they would kill her. She would never see her Korak again.
On this day the Swedes rested, for they had marched rapidly and their men were tired. Malbihn and Jenssen had gone from camp to hunt, taking different directions. They had been gone about an hour when the door of Meriem’s tent was lifted and Malbihn entered. The look of a beast was on his face.
On this day, the Swedes took a break because they had marched quickly and their men were exhausted. Malbihn and Jenssen had left the camp to go hunting, each taking a different path. They had been gone for about an hour when Malbihn walked into Meriem’s tent, his expression resembling that of a wild animal.
XIV.
With wide eyes fixed upon him, like a trapped creature horrified beneath the mesmeric gaze of a great serpent, the girl watched the approach of the man. Her hands were free, the Swedes having secured her with a length of ancient slave chain fastened at one end to an iron collar padlocked about her neck and at the other to a long stake driven deep into the ground.
With wide eyes locked onto him, like a frightened animal caught in the hypnotic stare of a huge snake, the girl watched the man come closer. Her hands were free; the Swedes had tied her with an old slave chain that was attached at one end to an iron collar padlocked around her neck and at the other end to a long stake driven deep into the ground.
Slowly Meriem shrank inch by inch toward the opposite end of the tent. Malbihn followed her. His hands were extended and his fingers half-opened—claw-like—to seize her. His lips were parted, and his breath came quickly, pantingly.
Slowly, Meriem backed away inch by inch toward the other end of the tent. Malbihn followed her, his hands outstretched and fingers half-open—like claws—ready to grab her. His lips were parted, and he was breathing rapidly, panting.
The girl recalled Jenssen’s instructions to call him should Malbihn molest her; but Jenssen had gone into the jungle to hunt. Malbihn had chosen his time well. Yet she screamed, loud and shrill, once, twice, a third time, before Malbihn could leap across the tent and throttle her alarming cries with his brute fingers. Then she fought him, as any jungle she might fight, with tooth and nail. The man found her no easy prey. In that slender, young body, beneath the rounded curves and the fine, soft skin, lay the muscles of a young lioness. But Malbihn was no weakling. His character and appearance were brutal, nor did they belie his brawn. He was of giant stature and of giant strength. Slowly he forced the girl back upon the ground, striking her in the face when she hurt him badly either with teeth or nails. Meriem struck back, but she was growing weaker from the choking fingers at her throat.
The girl remembered Jenssen's instructions to call him if Malbihn tried to harm her, but Jenssen had gone into the jungle to hunt. Malbihn had picked the perfect moment. Still, she screamed, loud and piercing, once, twice, a third time, before Malbihn could jump across the tent and silence her cries with his powerful hands. Then she fought him, as fiercely as any jungle creature would, using tooth and nail. The man found her no easy target. Beneath her slender frame and smooth skin lay the strength of a young lioness. But Malbihn was no weakling. His character and appearance were brutal, which matched his physical power. He was tall and incredibly strong. Slowly, he pushed her down to the ground, hitting her in the face whenever she hurt him with her teeth or nails. Meriem struck back, but she was growing weaker from his choking grip on her throat.
Out in the jungle Jenssen had brought down two bucks. His hunting had not carried him far afield, nor was he prone to permit it to do so. He was suspicious of Malbihn. The very fact that his companion had refused to accompany him and elected instead to hunt alone in another direction would not, under ordinary circumstances, have seemed fraught with sinister suggestion; but Jenssen knew Malbihn well, and so, having secured meat, he turned immediately back toward camp, while his boys brought in his kill.
Out in the jungle, Jenssen had taken down two bucks. He hadn’t ventured far, nor was he likely to. He was wary of Malbihn. The fact that his companion decided not to join him and chose instead to hunt alone in a different direction wouldn’t normally raise any red flags; but Jenssen knew Malbihn well, so after securing the meat, he headed straight back to camp while his guys brought in his catch.
He had covered about half the return journey when a scream came faintly to his ears from the direction of camp. He halted to listen. It was repeated twice. Then silence. With a muttered curse Jenssen broke into a rapid run. He wondered if he would be too late. What a fool Malbihn was indeed to thus chance jeopardizing a fortune!
He had made it about halfway back when he faintly heard a scream coming from the direction of the camp. He stopped to listen. It happened twice. Then there was silence. With a quiet curse, Jenssen took off running. He worried that he might be too late. What a fool Malbihn was to risk a fortune like this!
Further away from camp than Jenssen and upon the opposite side another heard Meriem’s screams—a stranger who was not even aware of the proximity of white men other than himself—a hunter with a handful of sleek, black warriors. He, too, listened intently for a moment. That the voice was that of a woman in distress he could not doubt, and so he also hastened at a run in the direction of the affrighted voice; but he was much further away than Jenssen so that the latter reached the tent first. What the Swede found there roused no pity within his calloused heart, only anger against his fellow scoundrel. Meriem was still fighting off her attacker. Malbihn still was showering blows upon her. Jenssen, streaming foul curses upon his erstwhile friend, burst into the tent. Malbihn, interrupted, dropped his victim and turned to meet Jenssen’s infuriated charge. He whipped a revolver from his hip. Jenssen, anticipating the lightning move of the other’s hand, drew almost simultaneously, and both men fired at once. Jenssen was still moving toward Malbihn at the time, but at the flash of the explosion he stopped. His revolver dropped from nerveless fingers. For a moment he staggered drunkenly. Deliberately Malbihn put two more bullets into his friend’s body at close range. Even in the midst of the excitement and her terror Meriem found herself wondering at the tenacity of life which the hit man displayed. His eyes were closed, his head dropped forward upon his breast, his hands hung limply before him. Yet still he stood there upon his feet, though he reeled horribly. It was not until the third bullet had found its mark within his body that he lunged forward upon his face. Then Malbihn approached him, and with an oath kicked him viciously. Then he returned once more to Meriem. Again he seized her, and at the same instant the flaps of the tent opened silently and a tall white man stood in the aperture. Neither Meriem or Malbihn saw the newcomer. The latter’s back was toward him while his body hid the stranger from Meriem’s eyes.
Further away from camp than Jenssen and on the opposite side, another person heard Meriem’s screams—a stranger who was unaware of any other white men nearby—a hunter accompanied by a group of sleek, black warriors. He listened intently for a moment. There was no doubt in his mind that the voice belonged to a woman in distress, so he also ran toward the frightened cries. However, he was much farther away than Jenssen, so Jenssen reached the tent first. What the Swede found there stirred no pity in his hardened heart, only anger toward his fellow scoundrel. Meriem was still fighting off her attacker, while Malbihn continued to rain blows down on her. Jenssen, hurling foul curses at his former friend, burst into the tent. Malbihn, interrupted, dropped his victim and turned to confront Jenssen’s furious charge. He pulled a revolver from his hip. Jenssen, anticipating Malbihn’s swift move, drew his own weapon almost simultaneously, and both men fired at the same time. Jenssen was still advancing toward Malbihn when the gunfire lit up the tense atmosphere, but as the explosion rang out, he stopped. His revolver slipped from his numb fingers. For a brief moment, he staggered as if drunk. Malbihn deliberately shot two more bullets into his friend’s body at close range. Even amid the chaos and her terror, Meriem couldn’t help but marvel at the persistence of life that the hit man showed. His eyes were closed, his head hung forward on his chest, and his hands drooped weakly in front of him. Yet he still stood on his feet, swaying precariously. It was not until the third bullet struck him that he collapsed face-first onto the ground. Malbihn then approached him and, cursing, kicked him viciously. Afterward, he returned to Meriem, seizing her once more at that exact moment when the flaps of the tent parted silently, revealing a tall white man at the entrance. Neither Meriem nor Malbihn noticed the newcomer; Malbihn’s back was turned to him, blocking him from Meriem’s view.
He crossed the tent quickly, stepping over Jenssen’s body. The first intimation Malbihn had that he was not to carry out his design without further interruption was a heavy hand upon his shoulder. He wheeled to face an utter stranger—a tall, black-haired, gray-eyed stranger clad in khaki and pith helmet. Malbihn reached for his gun again, but another hand had been quicker than his and he saw the weapon tossed to the ground at the side of the tent—out of reach.
He hurried across the tent, stepping over Jenssen’s body. The first sign Malbihn had that he wouldn’t be able to go through with his plan without any more interruptions was a heavy hand on his shoulder. He turned to confront a complete stranger—a tall, dark-haired, gray-eyed man dressed in khaki and a pith helmet. Malbihn tried to grab his gun again, but another hand was faster than his, and he saw the weapon tossed to the ground beside the tent—out of reach.
“What is the meaning of this?” the stranger addressed his question to Meriem in a tongue she did not understand. She shook her head and spoke in Arabic. Instantly the man changed his question to that language.
“What does this mean?” the stranger asked Meriem in a language she didn't understand. She shook her head and replied in Arabic. Immediately, the man switched his question to that language.
“These men are taking me away from Korak,” explained the girl. “This one would have harmed me. The other, whom he had just killed, tried to stop him. They were both very bad men; but this one is the worse. If my Korak were here he would kill him. I suppose you are like them, so you will not kill him.”
“These guys are taking me away from Korak,” the girl explained. “This one would have hurt me. The other one, whom he just killed, tried to stop him. They were both really bad guys, but this one is the worse. If my Korak were here, he would kill him. I guess you’re just like them, so you won’t kill him.”
The stranger smiled. “He deserves killing,” he said. “There is no doubt of that. Once I should have killed him; but not now. I will see, though, that he does not bother you any more.”
The stranger smiled. “He deserves to die,” he said. “There’s no doubt about that. I might have killed him once; but not now. I’ll make sure he doesn’t bother you anymore.”
He was holding Malbihn in a grasp the giant Swede could not break, though he struggled to do so, and he was holding him as easily as Malbihn might have held a little child, yet Malbihn was a huge man, mightily thewed. The Swede began to rage and curse. He struck at his captor, only to be twisted about and held at arm’s length. Then he shouted to his boys to come and kill the stranger. In response a dozen strange blacks entered the tent. They, too, were powerful, clean-limbed men, not at all like the mangy crew that followed the Swedes.
He had Malbihn in a grip that the giant Swede couldn't break, even though he was trying hard to escape, and he was holding him as effortlessly as Malbihn might hold a small child, even though Malbihn was an enormous man, strongly built. The Swede started to rage and curse. He swung at his captor, only to be twisted around and held at arm’s length. Then he yelled to his guys to come and take out the stranger. In response, a dozen unfamiliar black men entered the tent. They, too, were strong, well-built men, nothing like the scruffy crew that followed the Swedes.
“We have had enough foolishness,” said the stranger to Malbihn. “You deserve death, but I am not the law. I know now who you are. I have heard of you before. You and your friend here bear a most unsavory reputation. We do not want you in our country. I shall let you go this time; but should you ever return I shall take the law into my own hands. You understand?”
“We've had enough of this nonsense,” the stranger said to Malbihn. “You deserve to die, but I'm not the one who decides that. I know who you are now. I've heard about you before. You and your friend have a terrible reputation. We don’t want you in our country. I’ll let you go this time, but if you ever come back, I’ll take matters into my own hands. Do you understand?”
Malbihn blustered and threatened, finishing by applying a most uncomplimentary name to his captor. For this he received a shaking that rattled his teeth. Those who know say that the most painful punishment that can be inflicted upon an adult male, short of injuring him, is a good, old fashioned shaking. Malbihn received such a shaking.
Malbihn yelled and threatened, ending by calling his captor a very unflattering name. For this, he got a shaking that rattled his teeth. Those who know say that the most painful punishment you can give to an adult man, without causing harm, is a good, old-fashioned shaking. Malbihn got just that.
“Now get out,” said the stranger, “and next time you see me remember who I am,” and he spoke a name in the Swede’s ear—a name that more effectually subdued the scoundrel than many beatings—then he gave him a push that carried him bodily through the tent doorway to sprawl upon the turf beyond.
“Now get out,” said the stranger, “and next time you see me, remember who I am,” and he whispered a name in the Swede’s ear—a name that subdued the scoundrel more effectively than any beating could—then he shoved him hard enough to send him sprawling out of the tent doorway and onto the ground outside.
“Now,” he said, turning toward Meriem, “who has the key to this thing about your neck?”
“Now,” he said, turning to Meriem, “who has the key to this thing around your neck?”
The girl pointed to Jenssen’s body. “He carried it always,” she said.
The girl pointed at Jenssen’s body. “He always carried it,” she said.
The stranger searched the clothing on the corpse until he came upon the key. A moment more Meriem was free.
The stranger rummaged through the clothes on the body until he found the key. In just a moment, Meriem was free.
“Will you let me go back to my Korak?” she asked.
“Will you let me go back to my Korak?” she asked.
“I will see that you are returned to your people,” he replied. “Who are they and where is their village?”
“I'll make sure you get back to your people,” he replied. “Who are they and where's their village?”
He had been eyeing her strange, barbaric garmenture wonderingly. From her speech she was evidently an Arab girl; but he had never before seen one thus clothed.
He had been observing her unusual, tribal outfit with curiosity. From the way she spoke, it was clear she was an Arab girl; but he had never seen one dressed like that before.
“Who are your people? Who is Korak?” he asked again.
“Who are your people? Who is Korak?” he asked again.
“Korak! Why Korak is an ape. I have no other people. Korak and I live in the jungle alone since A’ht went to be king of the apes.” She had always thus pronounced Akut’s name, for so it had sounded to her when first she came with Korak and the ape. “Korak could have been kind, but he would not.”
“Korak! Why Korak is an ape. I have no one else. Korak and I live in the jungle alone since A’ht became king of the apes.” She always pronounced Akut’s name this way because that’s how it sounded to her when she first came with Korak and the ape. “Korak could have been nice, but he wouldn’t.”
A questioning expression entered the stranger’s eyes. He looked at the girl closely.
A puzzled look crossed the stranger's face. He examined the girl closely.
“So Korak is an ape?” he said. “And what, pray, are you?”
“Wait, so Korak is an ape?” he asked. “And what about you?”
“I am Meriem. I, also, am an ape.”
“I am Meriem. I’m also an ape.”
“M-m,” was the stranger’s only oral comment upon this startling announcement; but what he thought might have been partially interpreted through the pitying light that entered his eyes. He approached the girl and started to lay his hand upon her forehead. She drew back with a savage little growl. A smile touched his lips.
“M-m,” was the stranger’s only spoken response to this surprising news; but what he felt might have been somewhat reflected in the sympathetic light in his eyes. He moved closer to the girl and reached out to touch her forehead. She pulled back with a fierce little growl. A smile flickered on his lips.
“You need not fear me,” he said. “I shall not harm you. I only wish to discover if you have fever—if you are entirely well. If you are we will set forth in search of Korak.”
“You don’t need to be afraid of me,” he said. “I won’t hurt you. I just want to find out if you have a fever—if you’re completely okay. If you are, we’ll head out to look for Korak.”
Meriem looked straight into the keen gray eyes. She must have found there an unquestionable assurance of the honorableness of their owner, for she permitted him to lay his palm upon her forehead and feel her pulse. Apparently she had no fever.
Meriem looked directly into the sharp gray eyes. She must have sensed an undeniable certainty of the owner’s integrity, as she allowed him to place his hand on her forehead and check her pulse. It seemed she didn’t have a fever.
“How long have you been an ape?” asked the man.
“How long have you been a monkey?” asked the man.
“Since I was a little girl, many, many years ago, and Korak came and took me from my father who was beating me. Since then I have lived in the trees with Korak and A’ht.”
“Since I was a little girl, a long time ago, when Korak came and took me away from my father who was hitting me. Since then, I have lived in the trees with Korak and A’ht.”
“Where in the jungle lives Korak?” asked the stranger.
“Where in the jungle does Korak live?” asked the stranger.
Meriem pointed with a sweep of her hand that took in, generously, half the continent of Africa.
Meriem gestured broadly with her hand, encompassing nearly half of the African continent.
“Could you find your way back to him?”
“Can you find your way back to him?”
“I do not know,” she replied; “but he will find his way to me.”
"I don't know," she replied, "but he'll find his way to me."
“Then I have a plan,” said the stranger. “I live but a few marches from here. I shall take you home where my wife will look after you and care for you until we can find Korak or Korak finds us. If he could find you here he can find you at my village. Is it not so?”
“Then I have a plan,” said the stranger. “I live just a little way from here. I’ll take you home where my wife will take care of you until we can find Korak or he finds us. If he could find you here, he can find you in my village. Right?”
Meriem thought that it was so; but she did not like the idea of not starting immediately back to meet Korak. On the other hand the man had no intention of permitting this poor, insane child to wander further amidst the dangers of the jungle. From whence she had come, or what she had undergone he could not guess, but that her Korak and their life among the apes was but a figment of a disordered mind he could not doubt. He knew the jungle well, and he knew that men have lived alone and naked among the savage beasts for years; but a frail and slender girl! No, it was not possible.
Meriem believed it was true; however, she didn’t like the idea of not heading back to find Korak right away. On the other hand, the man was determined not to let this poor, confused girl wander any further into the dangers of the jungle. He couldn’t imagine where she had come from or what she had been through, but he had no doubt that her thoughts of Korak and their life with the apes were just a product of her disturbed mind. He was well-acquainted with the jungle and knew that men could survive alone and exposed among the wild beasts for years; but a fragile and petite girl! No, that just didn’t seem possible.
Together they went outside. Malbihn’s boys were striking camp in preparation for a hasty departure. The stranger’s blacks were conversing with them. Malbihn stood at a distance, angry and glowering. The stranger approached one of his own men.
Together they went outside. Malbihn's guys were packing up the camp to leave quickly. The stranger's team was chatting with them. Malbihn watched from a distance, fuming and glaring. The stranger walked over to one of his own men.
“Find out where they got this girl,” he commanded.
“Find out where they got this girl,” he ordered.
The Negro thus addressed questioned one of Malbihn’s followers. Presently he returned to his master.
The Black man who was spoken to questioned one of Malbihn's followers. Soon after, he went back to his master.
“They bought her from old Kovudoo,” he said. “That is all that this fellow will tell me. He pretends that he knows nothing more, and I guess that he does not. These two white men were very bad men. They did many things that their boys knew not the meanings of. It would be well, Bwana, to kill the other.”
“They bought her from old Kovudoo,” he said. “That’s all this guy will tell me. He acts like he doesn’t know anything else, and I doubt he really does. These two white men were truly bad news. They did a lot of things that their boys didn't understand. It might be a good idea, Bwana, to kill the other one.”
“I wish that I might; but a new law is come into this part of the jungle. It is not as it was in the old days, Muviri,” replied the master.
“I wish I could; but a new law has come to this part of the jungle. It's not like it was in the old days, Muviri,” replied the master.
The stranger remained until Malbihn and his safari had disappeared into the jungle toward the north. Meriem, trustful now, stood at his side, Geeka clutched in one slim, brown hand. They talked together, the man wondering at the faltering Arabic of the girl, but attributing it finally to her defective mentality. Could he have known that years had elapsed since she had used it until she was taken by the Swedes he would not have wondered that she had half forgotten it. There was yet another reason why the language of The Sheik had thus readily eluded her; but of that reason she herself could not have guessed the truth any better than could the man.
The stranger stayed until Malbihn and his safari had vanished into the jungle to the north. Meriem, now trusting, stood beside him, holding Geeka in one slim, brown hand. They chatted, the man curious about the girl's halting Arabic, but he ultimately blamed it on her limited mental capacity. If he had known that years had passed since she last spoke it, before the Swedes took her, he wouldn't have been surprised that she had mostly forgotten it. There was one more reason why the language of The Sheik had slipped from her so easily; but she, just like the man, couldn't have guessed the truth behind that reason.
He tried to persuade her to return with him to his “village” as he called it, or douar, in Arabic; but she was insistent upon searching immediately for Korak. As a last resort he determined to take her with him by force rather than sacrifice her life to the insane hallucination which haunted her; but, being a wise man, he determined to humor her first and then attempt to lead her as he would have her go. So when they took up their march it was in the direction of the south, though his own ranch lay almost due east.
He tried to convince her to come back with him to his "village," or douar in Arabic, but she was determined to immediately search for Korak. As a last resort, he decided to take her with him by force instead of risking her life to the crazy delusion that haunted her. However, being a wise man, he chose to go along with her for a bit and then gently guide her the way he wanted her to go. So when they started their journey, they headed south, even though his own ranch was almost directly east.
By degrees he turned the direction of their way more and more eastward, and greatly was he pleased to note that the girl failed to discover that any change was being made. Little by little she became more trusting. At first she had had but her intuition to guide her belief that this big Tarmangani meant her no harm, but as the days passed and she saw that his kindness and consideration never faltered she came to compare him with Korak, and to be very fond of him; but never did her loyalty to her apeman flag.
Gradually, he steered their path further east, and he was very pleased to see that the girl didn’t notice any shift in direction. Bit by bit, she grew more trusting. Initially, she only had her instincts to believe that this big Tarmangani meant her no harm, but as the days went by and she observed that his kindness and thoughtfulness never wavered, she began to compare him to Korak and developed a strong fondness for him; however, her loyalty to her apeman never weakened.
On the fifth day they came suddenly upon a great plain and from the edge of the forest the girl saw in the distance fenced fields and many buildings. At the sight she drew back in astonishment.
On the fifth day, they unexpectedly arrived at a vast plain, and from the edge of the forest, the girl noticed fenced fields and numerous buildings in the distance. At the sight, she stepped back in surprise.
“Where are we?” she asked, pointing.
“Where are we?” she asked, pointing.
“We could not find Korak,” replied the man, “and as our way led near my douar I have brought you here to wait and rest with my wife until my men can find your ape, or he finds you. It is better thus, little one. You will be safer with us, and you will be happier.”
“We couldn’t find Korak,” the man replied, “and since our path took us close to my douar, I brought you here to wait and relax with my wife until my men can locate your ape, or he finds you. It's better this way, little one. You'll be safer with us, and you'll be happier.”
“I am afraid, Bwana,” said the girl. “In thy douar they will beat me as did The Sheik, my father. Let me go back into the jungle. There Korak will find me. He would not think to look for me in the douar of a white man.”
“I’m scared, Bwana,” the girl said. “In your douar, they’ll beat me like The Sheik, my father did. Let me go back into the jungle. There, Korak will find me. He wouldn’t think to look for me in the douar of a white man.”
“No one will beat you, child,” replied the man. “I have not done so, have I? Well, here all belong to me. They will treat you well. Here no one is beaten. My wife will be very good to you, and at last Korak will come, for I shall send men to search for him.”
“No one will hurt you, kid,” the man said. “I haven't done that, have I? Well, everyone here is under my care. They'll take good care of you. No one gets hurt here. My wife will be very nice to you, and eventually, Korak will arrive, because I'll send people to look for him.”
The girl shook her head. “They could not bring him, for he would kill them, as all men have tried to kill him. I am afraid. Let me go, Bwana.”
The girl shook her head. “They can’t bring him, because he would kill them, just like all the other men who have tried to kill him. I’m scared. Let me go, Bwana.”
“You do not know the way to your own country. You would be lost. The leopards or the lions would get you the first night, and after all you would not find your Korak. It is better that you stay with us. Did I not save you from the bad man? Do you not owe me something for that? Well, then remain with us for a few weeks at least until we can determine what is best for you. You are only a little girl—it would be wicked to permit you to go alone into the jungle.”
“You don’t know how to get back to your own country. You’d be lost. The leopards or the lions would get you the first night, and you still wouldn’t find your Korak. It’s better for you to stay with us. Didn’t I save you from that bad man? Don’t you owe me something for that? So, stay with us for a few weeks at least until we can figure out what’s best for you. You’re just a little girl—it would be wrong to let you go alone into the jungle.”
Meriem laughed. “The jungle,” she said, “is my father and my mother. It has been kinder to me than have men. I am not afraid of the jungle. Nor am I afraid of the leopard or the lion. When my time comes I shall die. It may be that a leopard or a lion shall kill me, or it may be a tiny bug no bigger than the end of my littlest finger. When the lion leaps upon me, or the little bug stings me I shall be afraid—oh, then I shall be terribly afraid, I know; but life would be very miserable indeed were I to spend it in terror of the thing that has not yet happened. If it be the lion my terror shall be short of life; but if it be the little bug I may suffer for days before I die. And so I fear the lion least of all. He is great and noisy. I can hear him, or see him, or smell him in time to escape; but any moment I may place a hand or foot on the little bug, and never know that he is there until I feel his deadly sting. No, I do not fear the jungle. I love it. I should rather die than leave it forever; but your douar is close beside the jungle. You have been good to me. I will do as you wish, and remain here for a while to wait the coming of my Korak.”
Meriem laughed. "The jungle," she said, "is like my dad and my mom. It's treated me better than people have. I'm not scared of the jungle. I'm also not afraid of the leopard or the lion. When it's my time to go, I'll die. It could be a leopard or a lion that takes me out, or it might be a tiny bug no bigger than the tip of my pinky. When the lion jumps at me, or when the little bug stings me, I know I'll be scared—oh, I’ll be really scared, I get that; but life would be pretty miserable if I spent it worrying about things that haven't happened yet. If it's the lion, my fear will be brief; but if it’s the little bug, I might suffer for days before I die. So I actually fear the lion the least. He's big and loud. I can hear him, see him, or smell him in time to get away; but at any moment, I could accidentally step on the little bug and never even know it's there until I feel its deadly sting. No, I'm not afraid of the jungle. I love it. I'd rather die than leave it forever; but your douar is right next to the jungle. You've been kind to me. I'll do what you want and stay here for a while to wait for my Korak."
“Good!” said the man, and he led the way down toward the flower-covered bungalow behind which lay the barns and out-houses of a well-ordered African farm.
“Great!” said the man, and he led the way down toward the flower-covered bungalow, behind which were the barns and outbuildings of a well-kept African farm.
As they came nearer a dozen dogs ran barking toward them—gaunt wolf hounds, a huge great Dane, a nimble-footed collie and a number of yapping, quarrelsome fox terriers. At first their appearance was savage and unfriendly in the extreme; but once they recognized the foremost black warriors, and the white man behind them their attitude underwent a remarkable change. The collie and the fox terriers became frantic with delirious joy, and while the wolf hounds and the great Dane were not a whit less delighted at the return of their master their greetings were of a more dignified nature. Each in turn sniffed at Meriem who displayed not the slightest fear of any of them.
As they approached, a dozen dogs ran barking toward them—skinny wolfhounds, a massive Great Dane, a sprightly collie, and several yapping, feisty fox terriers. At first, they seemed extremely fierce and unfriendly; however, once they recognized the leading black warriors and the white man with them, their attitude changed dramatically. The collie and the fox terriers erupted with wild joy, while the wolfhounds and the Great Dane, though equally happy to see their master, offered a more restrained welcome. Each dog took turns sniffing Meriem, who showed no fear of any of them.
The wolf hounds bristled and growled at the scent of wild beasts that clung to her garment; but when she laid her hand upon their heads and her soft voice murmured caressingly they half-closed their eyes, lifting their upper lips in contented canine smiles. The man was watching them and he too smiled, for it was seldom that these savage brutes took thus kindly to strangers. It was as though in some subtile way the girl had breathed a message of kindred savagery to their savage hearts.
The wolfhounds bristled and growled at the smell of wild animals clinging to her clothes; but when she placed her hand on their heads and spoke softly to them, they half-closed their eyes, lifting their upper lips in happy dog grins. The man was watching them and smiled as well, because it was rare for these fierce animals to be so friendly to strangers. It was as if the girl had somehow communicated a shared wildness to their untamed spirits.
With her slim fingers grasping the collar of a wolf hound upon either side of her Meriem walked on toward the bungalow upon the porch of which a woman dressed in white waved a welcome to her returning lord. There was more fear in the girl’s eyes now than there had been in the presence of strange men or savage beasts. She hesitated, turning an appealing glance toward the man.
With her slender fingers holding onto the collar of a wolfhound on either side of her, Meriem walked toward the bungalow, where a woman in white waved a welcome to her returning lord. There was more fear in the girl's eyes now than there had been when she was around strange men or wild animals. She hesitated, casting a pleading look toward the man.
“This is my wife,” he said. “She will be glad to welcome you.”
“This is my wife,” he said. “She'll be happy to welcome you.”
The woman came down the path to meet them. The man kissed her, and turning toward Meriem introduced them, speaking in the Arab tongue the girl understood.
The woman walked down the path to meet them. The man kissed her, and as he turned to Meriem, he introduced them, speaking in Arabic, which the girl understood.
“This is Meriem, my dear,” he said, and he told the story of the jungle waif in so far as he knew it.
“This is Meriem, my dear,” he said, and he shared the story of the jungle orphan as much as he knew it.
Meriem saw that the woman was beautiful. She saw that sweetness and goodness were stamped indelibly upon her countenance. She no longer feared her, and when her brief story had been narrated and the woman came and put her arms about her and kissed her and called her “poor little darling” something snapped in Meriem’s little heart. She buried her face on the bosom of this new friend in whose voice was the mother tone that Meriem had not heard for so many years that she had forgotten its very existence. She buried her face on the kindly bosom and wept as she had not wept before in all her life—tears of relief and joy that she could not fathom.
Meriem saw that the woman was beautiful. She noticed that sweetness and goodness were clearly visible on her face. She no longer felt afraid of her, and after the woman shared her brief story, she came over, wrapped her arms around Meriem, kissed her, and called her “poor little darling.” Something shifted in Meriem’s heart. She buried her face in the chest of this new friend, whose voice had a motherly tone that Meriem hadn't heard in so many years that she had forgotten it even existed. She pressed her face against the kind bosom and cried like she never had before—tears of relief and joy that she couldn’t fully understand.
And so came Meriem, the savage little Mangani, out of her beloved jungle into the midst of a home of culture and refinement. Already “Bwana” and “My Dear,” as she first heard them called and continued to call them, were as father and mother to her. Once her savage fears allayed, she went to the opposite extreme of trustfulness and love. Now she was willing to wait here until they found Korak, or Korak found her. She did not give up that thought—Korak, her Korak always was first.
And so Meriem, the wild little Mangani, came out of her cherished jungle into a world of culture and sophistication. Already, “Bwana” and “My Dear,” the names she first heard and continued to use, felt like a father and mother to her. Once her wild fears were calmed, she swung to the other extreme of trust and affection. Now she was ready to stay here until they found Korak or Korak found her. She didn’t let go of that thought—Korak, her Korak, was always her priority.
XV.
And out in the jungle, far away, Korak, covered with wounds, stiff with clotted blood, burning with rage and sorrow, swung back upon the trail of the great baboons. He had not found them where he had last seen them, nor in any of their usual haunts; but he sought them along the well-marked spoor they had left behind them, and at last he overtook them. When first he came upon them they were moving slowly but steadily southward in one of those periodic migrations the reasons for which the baboon himself is best able to explain. At sight of the white warrior who came upon them from down wind the herd halted in response to the warning cry of the sentinel that had discovered him. There was much growling and muttering; much stiff-legged circling on the part of the bulls. The mothers, in nervous, high pitched tones, called their young to their sides, and with them moved to safety behind their lords and masters.
And out in the jungle, far away, Korak, covered in wounds and stiff with dried blood, burning with anger and sadness, retraced the path of the large baboons. He hadn’t found them where he last saw them or in any of their usual spots; instead, he followed the clear trail they had left behind and finally caught up with them. When he first saw them, they were moving slowly yet steadily southward on one of those periodic migrations that the baboons are best at explaining. When the herd spotted the white warrior approaching from downwind, they halted in response to the warning cry of the sentinel that had seen him. There was a lot of growling and murmuring; the bulls circled with stiff legs. The mothers, in nervous, high-pitched voices, called their young to their sides and moved to safety behind their lords and masters.
Korak called aloud to the king, who, at the familiar voice, advanced slowly, warily, and still stiff-legged. He must have the confirmatory evidence of his nose before venturing to rely too implicitly upon the testimony of his ears and eyes. Korak stood perfectly still. To have advanced then might have precipitated an immediate attack, or, as easily, a panic of flight. Wild beasts are creatures of nerves. It is a relatively simple thing to throw them into a species of hysteria which may induce either a mania for murder, or symptoms of apparent abject cowardice—it is a question, however, if a wild animal ever is actually a coward.
Korak shouted to the king, who, recognizing the familiar voice, approached slowly, cautiously, and still a bit stiff. He needed to confirm with his sense of smell before trusting too much in what he heard and saw. Korak stood completely still. Moving forward at that moment could have triggered an immediate attack or, just as easily, a panic to flee. Wild animals are highly sensitive. It's relatively easy to throw them into a sort of frenzy that can lead either to a killing spree or signs of sheer cowardice—though it’s debatable whether a wild animal can truly be considered a coward.
The king baboon approached Korak. He walked around him in an ever decreasing circle—growling, grunting, sniffing. Korak spoke to him.
The king baboon walked up to Korak. He circled him, getting closer each time—growling, grunting, sniffing. Korak talked to him.
“I am Korak,” he said. “I opened the cage that held you. I saved you from the Tarmangani. I am Korak, The Killer. I am your friend.”
“I’m Korak,” he said. “I opened the cage that held you. I saved you from the Tarmangani. I’m Korak, The Killer. I’m your friend.”
“Huh,” grunted the king. “Yes, you are Korak. My ears told me that you were Korak. My eyes told me that you were Korak. Now my nose tells me that you are Korak. My nose is never wrong. I am your friend. Come, we shall hunt together.”
“Huh,” grunted the king. “Yeah, you’re Korak. My ears told me you were Korak. My eyes confirmed you were Korak. Now my nose says you’re Korak. My nose is never wrong. I’m your friend. Come on, let’s go hunt together.”
“Korak cannot hunt now,” replied the ape-man. “The Gomangani have stolen Meriem. They have tied her in their village. They will not let her go. Korak, alone, was unable to set her free. Korak set you free. Now will you bring your people and set Korak’s Meriem free?”
“Korak can’t hunt right now,” replied the ape-man. “The Gomangani have taken Meriem. They’ve tied her up in their village. They won’t let her go. Korak, on his own, couldn’t set her free. Korak set you free. Will you now bring your people to help free Korak’s Meriem?”
“The Gomangani have many sharp sticks which they throw. They pierce the bodies of my people. They kill us. The gomangani are bad people. They will kill us all if we enter their village.”
“The Gomangani have a lot of sharp sticks that they throw. They stab my people. They kill us. The Gomangani are terrible people. They will kill all of us if we go into their village.”
“The Tarmangani have sticks that make a loud noise and kill at a great distance,” replied Korak. “They had these when Korak set you free from their trap. If Korak had run away from them you would now be a prisoner among the Tarmangani.”
“The Tarmangani have guns that make a loud noise and can kill from far away,” replied Korak. “They had those when I rescued you from their trap. If I had run away from them, you would now be a prisoner among the Tarmangani.”
The baboon scratched his head. In a rough circle about him and the ape-man squatted the bulls of his herd. They blinked their eyes, shouldered one another about for more advantageous positions, scratched in the rotting vegetation upon the chance of unearthing a toothsome worm, or sat listlessly eyeing their king and the strange Mangani, who called himself thus but who more closely resembled the hated Tarmangani. The king looked at some of the older of his subjects, as though inviting suggestion.
The baboon scratched his head. In a rough circle around him and the ape-man squatted the bulls of his herd. They blinked their eyes, nudged each other for better spots, scratched through the decaying leaves in hopes of finding a tasty worm, or sat idly watching their king and the strange Mangani, who called himself that but looked more like the despised Tarmangani. The king glanced at some of the older members of his group, as if inviting their input.
“We are too few,” grunted one.
"We're too few," grunted one.
“There are the baboons of the hill country,” suggested another. “They are as many as the leaves of the forest. They, too, hate the Gomangani. They love to fight. They are very savage. Let us ask them to accompany us. Then can we kill all the Gomangani in the jungle.” He rose and growled horribly, bristling his stiff hair.
“There are the baboons from the hills,” another suggested. “There are as many of them as there are leaves in the forest. They also hate the Gomangani. They love to fight and are really fierce. Let’s ask them to join us. Then we can wipe out all the Gomangani in the jungle.” He stood up and growled menacingly, his stiff hair bristling.
“That is the way to talk,” cried The Killer, “but we do not need the baboons of the hill country. We are enough. It will take a long time to fetch them. Meriem may be dead and eaten before we could free her. Let us set out at once for the village of the Gomangani. If we travel very fast it will not take long to reach it. Then, all at the same time, we can charge into the village, growling and barking. The Gomangani will be very frightened and will run away. While they are gone we can seize Meriem and carry her off. We do not have to kill or be killed—all that Korak wishes is his Meriem.”
“That’s the right way to talk,” shouted The Killer, “but we don’t need the baboons from the hills. We’re enough on our own. It’ll take too long to get them back. Meriem might be dead or worse by the time we rescue her. Let’s head to the Gomangani village right away. If we move quickly, we’ll get there in no time. Then we can all charge into the village together, growling and barking. The Gomangani will be terrified and will run off. While they’re gone, we can grab Meriem and take her with us. We don’t have to kill anyone or put ourselves in danger—all that Korak wants is his Meriem.”
“We are too few,” croaked the old ape again.
“We're too few,” croaked the old ape again.
“Yes, we are too few,” echoed others.
“Yes, we’re too few,” echoed others.
Korak could not persuade them. They would help him, gladly; but they must do it in their own way and that meant enlisting the services of their kinsmen and allies of the hill country. So Korak was forced to give in. All he could do for the present was to urge them to haste, and at his suggestion the king baboon with a dozen of his mightiest bulls agreed to go to the hill country with Korak, leaving the balance of the herd behind.
Korak couldn't convince them. They were willing to help him, but they wanted to do it their own way, which meant getting support from their relatives and allies in the hills. So, Korak had to accept that. All he could do for now was urge them to hurry, and at his suggestion, the king baboon and a dozen of his strongest bulls agreed to go to the hill country with Korak, leaving the rest of the herd behind.
Once enlisted in the adventure the baboons became quite enthusiastic about it. The delegation set off immediately. They traveled swiftly; but the ape-man found no difficulty in keeping up with them. They made a tremendous racket as they passed through the trees in an endeavor to suggest to enemies in their front that a great herd was approaching, for when the baboons travel in large numbers there is no jungle creature who cares to molest them. When the nature of the country required much travel upon the level, and the distance between trees was great, they moved silently, knowing that the lion and the leopard would not be fooled by noise when they could see plainly for themselves that only a handful of baboons were on the trail.
Once they joined the adventure, the baboons became really excited about it. The group set off right away. They moved quickly, but the ape-man had no trouble keeping up with them. They made a huge noise as they went through the trees, trying to convince any enemies ahead that a large herd was coming because when baboons travel in big groups, no jungle animal dares to bother them. When the landscape required a lot of traveling on flat ground and the distance between trees was long, they moved quietly, knowing that lions and leopards wouldn't be tricked by noise when they could clearly see that only a small number of baboons were on the path.
For two days the party raced through the savage country, passing out of the dense jungle into an open plain, and across this to timbered mountain slopes. Here Korak never before had been. It was a new country to him and the change from the monotony of the circumscribed view in the jungle was pleasing. But he had little desire to enjoy the beauties of nature at this time. Meriem, his Meriem was in danger. Until she was freed and returned to him he had little thought for aught else.
For two days, the group sped through the wild landscape, moving from the thick jungle to an open plain, and then across to forested mountain slopes. Korak had never been here before. It was a new territory for him, and the shift from the limited view in the jungle was refreshing. However, he didn't really want to appreciate the beauty of nature right now. Meriem, his Meriem, was in danger. Until she was rescued and back with him, he couldn’t focus on anything else.
Once in the forest that clothed the mountain slopes the baboons advanced more slowly. Constantly they gave tongue to a plaintive note of calling. Then would follow silence while they listened. At last, faintly from the distance straight ahead came an answer.
Once in the forest covering the mountain slopes, the baboons moved more slowly. They consistently emitted a sad calling sound. Then there would be silence as they listened. Finally, a faint answer came from the distance straight ahead.
The baboons continued to travel in the direction of the voices that floated through the forest to them in the intervals of their own silence. Thus, calling and listening, they came closer to their kinsmen, who, it was evident to Korak, were coming to meet them in great numbers; but when, at last, the baboons of the hill country came in view the ape-man was staggered at the reality that broke upon his vision.
The baboons kept moving toward the voices that drifted through the forest during their quiet moments. As they called out and listened, they got closer to their relatives, who, as Korak could see, were approaching in large numbers; but when the hill country baboons finally came into sight, the ape-man was stunned by the reality that unfolded before him.
What appeared a solid wall of huge baboons rose from the ground through the branches of the trees to the loftiest terrace to which they dared entrust their weight. Slowly they were approaching, voicing their weird, plaintive call, and behind them, as far as Korak’s eyes could pierce the verdure, rose solid walls of their fellows treading close upon their heels. There were thousands of them. The ape-man could not but think of the fate of his little party should some untoward incident arouse even momentarily the rage of fear of a single one of all these thousands.
What looked like a solid wall of giant baboons climbed up from the ground through the branches of the trees to the highest terrace they dared put their weight on. They were slowly moving closer, making their strange, mournful calls, and behind them, as far as Korak could see through the greenery, there were more and more of their kind following closely behind. There were thousands of them. The ape-man couldn’t help but think about the fate of his small group if something unexpected triggered the anger or fear of even one of these thousands.
But nothing such befell. The two kings approached one another, as was their custom, with much sniffing and bristling. They satisfied themselves of each other’s identity. Then each scratched the other’s back. After a moment they spoke together. Korak’s friend explained the nature of their visit, and for the first time Korak showed himself. He had been hiding behind a bush. The excitement among the hill baboons was intense at sight of him. For a moment Korak feared that he should be torn to pieces; but his fear was for Meriem. Should he die there would be none to succor her.
But nothing like that happened. The two kings moved towards each other, as they usually did, with a lot of sniffing and showing off. They confirmed each other’s identity. Then, they each scratched the other’s back. After a moment, they spoke together. Korak’s friend explained why they were visiting, and for the first time, Korak revealed himself. He had been hiding behind a bush. The excitement among the hill baboons was overwhelming when they saw him. For a moment, Korak feared he might be torn apart; but his main concern was for Meriem. If he died, there would be nobody to help her.
The two kings, however, managed to quiet the multitude, and Korak was permitted to approach. Slowly the hill baboons came closer to him. They sniffed at him from every angle. When he spoke to them in their own tongue they were filled with wonder and delight. They talked to him and listened while he spoke. He told them of Meriem, and of their life in the jungle where they were the friends of all the ape folk from little Manu to Mangani, the great ape.
The two kings, however, were able to calm the crowd, and Korak was allowed to come forward. Gradually, the hill baboons moved closer to him. They sniffed at him from all sides. When he talked to them in their own language, they were filled with amazement and joy. They responded to him and listened as he spoke. He told them about Meriem and about their life in the jungle, where they were friends with all the ape species, from little Manu to Mangani, the great ape.
“The Gomangani, who are keeping Meriem from me, are no friends of yours,” he said. “They kill you. The baboons of the low country are too few to go against them. They tell me that you are very many and very brave—that your numbers are as the numbers of the grasses upon the plains or the leaves within the forest, and that even Tantor, the elephant, fears you, so brave you are. They told me that you would be happy to accompany us to the village of the Gomangani and punish these bad people while I, Korak, The Killer, carry away my Meriem.”
“The Gomangani, who are keeping Meriem away from me, are not your friends,” he said. “They will kill you. The baboons in the lowlands are too few to stand up to them. They tell me that you are numerous and very brave—that your numbers are like the grasses on the plains or the leaves in the forest, and that even Tantor, the elephant, fears you, because you’re so brave. They told me that you would be willing to come with us to the Gomangani village and deal with these bad people while I, Korak, The Killer, take my Meriem.”
The king ape puffed out his chest and strutted about very stiff-legged indeed. So also did many of the other great bulls of his nation. They were pleased and flattered by the words of the strange Tarmangani, who called himself Mangani and spoke the language of the hairy progenitors of man.
The king ape puffed out his chest and walked around stiff-legged. So did many of the other big bulls of his kind. They felt pleased and flattered by the words of the strange Tarmangani, who called himself Mangani and spoke the language of the hairy ancestors of man.
“Yes,” said one, “we of the hill country are mighty fighters. Tantor fears us. Numa fears us. Sheeta fears us. The Gomangani of the hill country are glad to pass us by in peace. I, for one, will come with you to the village of the Gomangani of the low places. I am the king’s first he-child. Alone can I kill all the Gomangani of the low country,” and he swelled his chest and strutted proudly back and forth, until the itching back of a comrade commanded his industrious attention.
“Yes,” said one, “we from the hills are fierce fighters. Tantor fears us. Numa fears us. Sheeta fears us. The Gomangani from the hills are happy to avoid us peacefully. I, for one, will go with you to the village of the Gomangani from the lowlands. I am the king’s first-born son. I alone can take down all the Gomangani from the low country,” and he puffed out his chest and walked proudly back and forth until a comrade’s itching back demanded his attention.
“I am Goob,” cried another. “My fighting fangs are long. They are sharp. They are strong. Into the soft flesh of many a Gomangani have they been buried. Alone I slew the sister of Sheeta. Goob will go to the low country with you and kill so many of the Gomangani that there will be none left to count the dead,” and then he, too, strutted and pranced before the admiring eyes of the shes and the young.
“I’m Goob,” shouted another. “My fighting fangs are long. They’re sharp. They’re strong. They’ve sunk into the soft flesh of many Gomangani. I defeated Sheeta’s sister all by myself. Goob will go to the low country with you and take out so many Gomangani that there won’t be any left to count the dead,” and then he, too, strutted and pranced before the admiring eyes of the women and the young.
Korak looked at the king, questioningly.
Korak looked at the king with a questioning expression.
“Your bulls are very brave,” he said; “but braver than any is the king.”
“Your bulls are pretty brave,” he said, “but the king is even braver than any of them.”
Thus addressed, the shaggy bull, still in his prime—else he had been no longer king—growled ferociously. The forest echoed to his lusty challenges. The little baboons clutched fearfully at their mothers’ hairy necks. The bulls, electrified, leaped high in air and took up the roaring challenge of their king. The din was terrific.
Thus addressed, the shaggy bull, still in his prime—otherwise he wouldn't still be king—growled fiercely. The forest echoed with his powerful challenges. The little baboons clung anxiously to their mothers’ furry necks. The bulls, energized, jumped high in the air and accepted the roaring challenge of their king. The noise was amazing.
Korak came close to the king and shouted in his ear, “Come.” Then he started off through the forest toward the plain that they must cross on their long journey back to the village of Kovudoo, the Gomangani. The king, still roaring and shrieking, wheeled and followed him. In their wake came the handful of low country baboons and the thousands of the hill clan—savage, wiry, dog-like creatures, athirst for blood.
Korak stepped up to the king and yelled in his ear, “Come.” Then he headed off through the forest toward the plain they needed to cross on their long journey back to the village of Kovudoo, the Gomangani. The king, still roaring and screaming, turned and followed him. Behind them trailed a few lowland baboons and thousands of the hill clan—ferocious, wiry, dog-like creatures hungry for blood.
And so they came, upon the second day, to the village of Kovudoo. It was mid-afternoon. The village was sunk in the quiet of the great equatorial sun-heat. The mighty herd traveled quietly now. Beneath the thousands of padded feet the forest gave forth no greater sound than might have been produced by the increased soughing of a stronger breeze through the leafy branches of the trees.
And so they arrived, on the second day, at the village of Kovudoo. It was mid-afternoon. The village was wrapped in the stillness of the intense equatorial heat. The massive herd moved silently now. Beneath the thousands of padded feet, the forest made no louder sound than what might have been created by a stronger breeze rustling through the leafy branches of the trees.
Korak and the two kings were in the lead. Close beside the village they halted until the stragglers had closed up. Now utter silence reigned. Korak, creeping stealthily, entered the tree that overhung the palisade. He glanced behind him. The pack were close upon his heels. The time had come. He had warned them continuously during the long march that no harm must befall the white she who lay a prisoner within the village. All others were their legitimate prey. Then, raising his face toward the sky, he gave voice to a single cry. It was the signal.
Korak and the two kings took the lead. They stopped near the village until the stragglers caught up. Complete silence fell. Korak, moving quietly, climbed into the tree that hung over the palisade. He looked back. The pack was right behind him. The moment had arrived. He had repeatedly warned them during the long march that no harm should come to the white woman who was a prisoner in the village. Everyone else was fair game. Then, tilting his face towards the sky, he let out a single cry. It was the signal.
In response three thousand hairy bulls leaped screaming and barking into the village of the terrified blacks. Warriors poured from every hut. Mothers gathered their babies in their arms and fled toward the gates as they saw the horrid horde pouring into the village street. Kovudoo marshaled his fighting men about him and, leaping and yelling to arouse their courage, offered a bristling, spear tipped front to the charging horde.
In response, three thousand hairy bulls charged into the village, screaming and barking, causing panic among the terrified villagers. Warriors rushed out from every hut. Mothers grabbed their babies and ran toward the gates as they saw the horrifying crowd flooding the village street. Kovudoo gathered his fighters around him, jumping and yelling to boost their morale, and formed a spear-tipped defense against the charging horde.
Korak, as he had led the march, led the charge. The blacks were struck with horror and dismay at the sight of this white-skinned youth at the head of a pack of hideous baboons. For an instant they held their ground, hurling their spears once at the advancing multitude; but before they could fit arrows to their bows they wavered, gave, and turned in terrified rout. Into their ranks, upon their backs, sinking strong fangs into the muscles of their necks sprang the baboons and first among them, most ferocious, most blood-thirsty, most terrible was Korak, The Killer.
Korak, who had led the march, now led the charge. The black warriors were filled with horror and shock at the sight of this white-skinned youth at the forefront of a pack of grotesque baboons. For a moment, they stood their ground, throwing their spears at the advancing crowd; but before they could fit arrows to their bows, they faltered, retreated, and fled in fear. Into their ranks, on their backs, the baboons leaped, sinking their strong fangs into the muscles of their necks, with Korak, The Killer, being the fiercest, most bloodthirsty, and most terrifying among them.
At the village gates, through which the blacks poured in panic, Korak left them to the tender mercies of his allies and turned himself eagerly toward the hut in which Meriem had been a prisoner. It was empty. One after another the filthy interiors revealed the same disheartening fact—Meriem was in none of them. That she had not been taken by the blacks in their flight from the village Korak knew for he had watched carefully for a glimpse of her among the fugitives.
At the village gates, where the people rushed in fear, Korak left them to the care of his allies and eagerly headed toward the hut where Meriem had been held captive. It was empty. One by one, the dirty interiors showed the same disappointing truth—Meriem wasn’t in any of them. He knew she hadn’t been captured by the fleeing villagers because he had been keeping a close eye for a glimpse of her among the crowd.
To the mind of the ape-man, knowing as he did the proclivities of the savages, there was but a single explanation—Meriem had been killed and eaten. With the conviction that Meriem was dead there surged through Korak’s brain a wave of blood red rage against those he believed to be her murderer. In the distance he could hear the snarling of the baboons mixed with the screams of their victims, and towards this he made his way. When he came upon them the baboons had commenced to tire of the sport of battle, and the blacks in a little knot were making a new stand, using their knob sticks effectively upon the few bulls who still persisted in attacking them.
To the ape-man, who understood the tendencies of savages, there was only one explanation—Meriem had been killed and eaten. With the belief that Meriem was dead, a wave of blood-red rage surged through Korak's mind toward those he thought were her murderers. In the distance, he could hear the snarls of the baboons mixed with the screams of their victims, and he headed in that direction. When he arrived, the baboons had started to lose interest in the fight, while the Black men in a small group were making a new stand, effectively using their clubs against the few bulls that continued to attack.
Among these broke Korak from the branches of a tree above them—swift, relentless, terrible, he hurled himself upon the savage warriors of Kovudoo. Blind fury possessed him. Too, it protected him by its very ferocity. Like a wounded lioness he was here, there, everywhere, striking terrific blows with hard fists and with the precision and timeliness of the trained fighter. Again and again he buried his teeth in the flesh of a foeman. He was upon one and gone again to another before an effective blow could be dealt him. Yet, though great was the weight of his execution in determining the result of the combat, it was outweighed by the terror which he inspired in the simple, superstitious minds of his foeman. To them this white warrior, who consorted with the great apes and the fierce baboons, who growled and snarled and snapped like a beast, was not human. He was a demon of the forest—a fearsome god of evil whom they had offended, and who had come out of his lair deep in the jungle to punish them. And because of this belief there were many who offered but little defense, feeling as they did the futility of pitting their puny mortal strength against that of a deity.
Amidst this chaos, Korak leaped down from the branches of a tree above them—swift, relentless, and terrifying, he unleashed himself on the savage warriors of Kovudoo. He was consumed by blind rage, which also shielded him through its sheer ferocity. Like a wounded lioness, he was everywhere at once, delivering powerful punches with the skill and timing of a trained fighter. Time and again, he sank his teeth into the flesh of an enemy. He would attack one and then vanish to strike another before they could land a hit on him. Yet, although his actions played a crucial role in the outcome of the fight, the fear he instilled in the simple, superstitious minds of his foes overshadowed it. To them, this white warrior, who mingled with the great apes and fierce baboons, who growled and snarled like a beast, was not human. He was a demon of the forest—a terrifying god of evil they had offended, come out from his lair deep in the jungle to punish them. Because of this belief, many offered little resistance, feeling it was pointless to challenge a deity with their feeble human strength.
Those who could fled, until at last there were no more to pay the penalty for a deed, which, while not beyond them, they were, nevertheless, not guilty of. Panting and bloody, Korak paused for want of further victims. The baboons gathered about him, sated themselves with blood and battle. They lolled upon the ground, fagged.
Those who could get away did, until finally there was no one left to face the consequences for an act that, while not impossible for them, they were still not responsible for. Breathing heavily and covered in blood, Korak stopped, having run out of victims. The baboons surrounded him, satisfied with their bloodshed and fighting. They sprawled on the ground, exhausted.
In the distance Kovudoo was gathering his scattered tribesmen, and taking account of injuries and losses. His people were panic stricken. Nothing could prevail upon them to remain longer in this country. They would not even return to the village for their belongings. Instead they insisted upon continuing their flight until they had put many miles between themselves and the stamping ground of the demon who had so bitterly attacked them. And thus it befell that Korak drove from their homes the only people who might have aided him in a search for Meriem, and cut off the only connecting link between him and her from whomsoever might come in search of him from the douar of the kindly Bwana who had befriended his little jungle sweetheart.
In the distance, Kovudoo was rounding up his scattered tribesmen and assessing their injuries and losses. His people were terrified. Nothing could convince them to stay in this land. They wouldn't even go back to the village for their stuff. Instead, they insisted on fleeing until they had put many miles between themselves and the ground where the demon had violently attacked them. And so it happened that Korak drove away the only people who could have helped him in finding Meriem and cut off the only connection he had to her from anyone who might come looking for him from the douar of the kind Bwana who had helped his little jungle sweetheart.
It was a sour and savage Korak who bade farewell to his baboon allies upon the following morning. They wished him to accompany him; but the ape-man had no heart for the society of any. Jungle life had encouraged taciturnity in him. His sorrow had deepened this to a sullen moroseness that could not brook even the savage companionship of the ill-natured baboons.
It was a bitter and fierce Korak who said goodbye to his baboon allies the next morning. They wanted him to stay with them, but the ape-man wasn’t in the mood for anyone’s company. Jungle life had made him quiet. His sadness had turned into a gloomy outlook that couldn’t handle even the rough company of the mean-spirited baboons.
Brooding and despondent he took his solitary way into the deepest jungle. He moved along the ground when he knew that Numa was abroad and hungry. He took to the same trees that harbored Sheeta, the panther. He courted death in a hundred ways and a hundred forms. His mind was ever occupied with reminiscences of Meriem and the happy years that they had spent together. He realized now to the full what she had meant to him. The sweet face, the tanned, supple, little body, the bright smile that always had welcomed his return from the hunt haunted him continually.
Brooding and downcast, he made his way alone into the deepest jungle. He stayed low to the ground, knowing that Numa was out there, hungry. He climbed into the same trees where Sheeta, the panther, lurked. He faced death in countless ways and forms. His thoughts were constantly filled with memories of Meriem and the happy years they had shared. He now fully understood what she had meant to him. The sweet face, the tanned, agile little body, the bright smile that always greeted him when he came back from the hunt haunted him endlessly.
Inaction soon threatened him with madness. He must be on the go. He must fill his days with labor and excitement that he might forget—that night might find him so exhausted that he should sleep in blessed unconsciousness of his misery until a new day had come.
Inaction quickly pushed him to the brink of madness. He had to stay active. He needed to fill his days with work and excitement so he could forget—that by nightfall he would be so worn out that he could sleep peacefully, unaware of his misery until a new day arrived.
Had he guessed that by any possibility Meriem might still live he would at least have had hope. His days could have been devoted to searching for her; but he implicitly believed that she was dead.
Had he suspected that there was even a chance Meriem might still be alive, he would have had hope. He could have spent his days searching for her; but he fully believed that she was dead.
For a long year he led his solitary, roaming life. Occasionally he fell in with Akut and his tribe, hunting with them for a day or two; or he might travel to the hill country where the baboons had come to accept him as a matter of course; but most of all was he with Tantor, the elephant—the great gray battle ship of the jungle—the super-dreadnaught of his savage world.
For a whole year, he lived a lonely, wandering life. Sometimes he joined Akut and his tribe, hunting with them for a day or two; other times, he would head to the hills where the baboons had come to accept him as part of their group; but mostly, he spent his time with Tantor, the elephant—the huge gray battleship of the jungle—the ultimate powerhouse of his wild world.
The peaceful quiet of the monster bulls, the watchful solicitude of the mother cows, the awkward playfulness of the calves rested, interested, and amused Korak. The life of the huge beasts took his mind, temporarily from his own grief. He came to love them as he loved not even the great apes, and there was one gigantic tusker in particular of which he was very fond—the lord of the herd—a savage beast that was wont to charge a stranger upon the slightest provocation, or upon no provocation whatsoever. And to Korak this mountain of destruction was docile and affectionate as a lap dog.
The calm serenity of the massive bulls, the caring attention of the mother cows, and the clumsy playfulness of the calves fascinated and entertained Korak. The lives of these huge creatures momentarily distracted him from his own sadness. He grew to love them even more than he loved the great apes, and there was one enormous tusker in particular that he was especially fond of—the leader of the herd—a fierce beast that would charge at a stranger with the slightest cause or even with no reason at all. Yet to Korak, this towering force was as gentle and loving as a lap dog.
He came when Korak called. He wound his trunk about the ape-man’s body and lifted him to his broad neck in response to a gesture, and there would Korak lie at full length kicking his toes affectionately into the thick hide and brushing the flies from about the tender ears of his colossal chum with a leafy branch torn from a nearby tree by Tantor for the purpose.
He came when Korak called. He wrapped his trunk around the ape-man’s body and lifted him onto his broad neck in response to a gesture, and there Korak would lie at full length, playfully kicking his toes into the thick hide and swatting away the flies from the sensitive ears of his gigantic friend with a leafy branch that Tantor had ripped from a nearby tree for that purpose.
And all the while Meriem was scarce a hundred miles away.
And all this time, Meriem was barely a hundred miles away.
XVI.
To Meriem, in her new home, the days passed quickly. At first she was all anxiety to be off into the jungle searching for her Korak. Bwana, as she insisted upon calling her benefactor, dissuaded her from making the attempt at once by dispatching a head man with a party of blacks to Kovudoo’s village with instructions to learn from the old savage how he came into possession of the white girl and as much of her antecedents as might be culled from the black chieftain. Bwana particularly charged his head man with the duty of questioning Kovudoo relative to the strange character whom the girl called Korak, and of searching for the ape-man if he found the slightest evidence upon which to ground a belief in the existence of such an individual. Bwana was more than fully convinced that Korak was a creature of the girl’s disordered imagination. He believed that the terrors and hardships she had undergone during captivity among the blacks and her frightful experience with the two Swedes had unbalanced her mind but as the days passed and he became better acquainted with her and able to observe her under the ordinary conditions of the quiet of his African home he was forced to admit that her strange tale puzzled him not a little, for there was no other evidence whatever that Meriem was not in full possession of her normal faculties.
To Meriem, in her new home, the days flew by. At first, she was anxious to head into the jungle looking for her Korak. Bwana, as she insisted on calling her benefactor, discouraged her from making the attempt right away by sending a head man with a group of locals to Kovudoo’s village with instructions to find out from the old savage how he got the white girl and as much of her background as could be gathered from the black chief. Bwana specifically instructed his head man to ask Kovudoo about the strange figure the girl called Korak and to search for the ape-man if he found even the slightest evidence to support the belief in such a person. Bwana was convinced that Korak was just a product of the girl's troubled imagination. He thought that the fears and hardships she faced during her time with the blacks and her terrifying experience with the two Swedes had affected her mind. However, as days went by and he got to know her better, observing her in the calm of his African home, he had to admit that her unusual story puzzled him a lot since there was no other evidence suggesting that Meriem was not fully in control of her normal faculties.
The white man’s wife, whom Meriem had christened “My Dear” from having first heard her thus addressed by Bwana, took not only a deep interest in the little jungle waif because of her forlorn and friendless state, but grew to love her as well for her sunny disposition and natural charm of temperament. And Meriem, similarly impressed by little attributes in the gentle, cultured woman, reciprocated the other’s regard and affection.
The white man's wife, whom Meriem had nicknamed “My Dear” after hearing Bwana call her that, took a keen interest in the little jungle orphan due to her lonely and friendless condition, but also grew to love her for her cheerful nature and natural charm. Meriem, similarly drawn to the kind and cultured woman, returned the feelings of affection and regard.
And so the days flew by while Meriem waited the return of the head man and his party from the country of Kovudoo. They were short days, for into them were crowded many hours of insidious instruction of the unlettered child by the lonely woman. She commenced at once to teach the girl English without forcing it upon her as a task. She varied the instruction with lessons in sewing and deportment, nor once did she let Meriem guess that it was not all play. Nor was this difficult, since the girl was avid to learn. Then there were pretty dresses to be made to take the place of the single leopard skin and in this she found the child as responsive and enthusiastic as any civilized miss of her acquaintance.
And so the days went by as Meriem waited for the head man and his group to return from the country of Kovudoo. They were short days, filled with hours of subtle teaching from the lonely woman to the uneducated girl. She immediately started teaching the girl English, making it feel like play rather than a chore. She mixed in lessons on sewing and proper behavior, never letting Meriem feel that it was anything but fun. This was easy because the girl was eager to learn. Plus, there were beautiful dresses to be made to replace the single leopard skin, and in this, she found the child as engaged and enthusiastic as any well-mannered girl she knew.
A month passed before the head man returned—a month that had transformed the savage, half-naked little tarmangani into a daintily frocked girl of at least outward civilization. Meriem had progressed rapidly with the intricacies of the English language, for Bwana and My Dear had persistently refused to speak Arabic from the time they had decided that Meriem must learn English, which had been a day or two after her introduction into their home.
A month went by before the head man came back—a month that had changed the wild, half-naked little tarmangani into a neatly dressed girl who looked civilized on the outside. Meriem had quickly advanced in her understanding of English, since Bwana and My Dear had consistently refused to speak Arabic from the moment they decided Meriem needed to learn English, which was just a day or two after she arrived at their home.
The report of the head man plunged Meriem into a period of despondency, for he had found the village of Kovudoo deserted nor, search as he would, could he discover a single native anywhere in the vicinity. For some time he had camped near the village, spending the days in a systematic search of the environs for traces of Meriem’s Korak; but in this quest, too, had he failed. He had seen neither apes nor ape-man. Meriem at first insisted upon setting forth herself in search of Korak, but Bwana prevailed upon her to wait. He would go himself, he assured her, as soon as he could find the time, and at last Meriem consented to abide by his wishes; but it was months before she ceased to mourn almost hourly for her Korak.
The report from the leader left Meriem feeling hopeless because he had found the village of Kovudoo completely abandoned, and no matter how hard he looked, he couldn't find a single native nearby. He spent quite a while camping near the village, thoroughly searching the area for any sign of Meriem's Korak, but he was unsuccessful in that too. He had seen neither apes nor the ape-man. At first, Meriem insisted on going out to look for Korak herself, but Bwana convinced her to wait. He promised her he would go as soon as he had the time, and eventually, Meriem agreed to his plan; but it took months before she stopped grieving almost every hour for her Korak.
My Dear grieved with the grieving girl and did her best to comfort and cheer her. She told her that if Korak lived he would find her; but all the time she believed that Korak had never existed beyond the child’s dreams. She planned amusements to distract Meriem’s attention from her sorrow, and she instituted a well-designed campaign to impress upon the child the desirability of civilized life and customs. Nor was this difficult, as she was soon to learn, for it rapidly became evident that beneath the uncouth savagery of the girl was a bed rock of innate refinement—a nicety of taste and predilection that quite equaled that of her instructor.
My dear was heartbroken along with the grieving girl and did everything she could to comfort and uplift her. She reassured her that if Korak was alive, he would find her; but deep down, she thought that Korak never really existed outside of the child’s imagination. She organized fun activities to take Meriem's mind off her sadness and launched a thoughtful plan to show the child the benefits of a civilized life and customs. This wasn't hard to do, as she would soon realize, because it quickly became clear that beneath the rough exterior of the girl was a solid foundation of natural refinement—a sense of taste and preference that matched her own.
My Dear was delighted. She was lonely and childless, and so she lavished upon this little stranger all the mother love that would have gone to her own had she had one. The result was that by the end of the first year none might have guessed that Meriem ever had existed beyond the lap of culture and luxury.
My Dear was overjoyed. She felt lonely and had no children, so she poured all her motherly love onto this little stranger, giving her what she would have given to her own child if she had one. By the end of the first year, no one would have guessed that Meriem had ever experienced anything outside of a life filled with culture and luxury.
She was sixteen now, though she easily might have passed for nineteen, and she was very good to look upon, with her black hair and her tanned skin and all the freshness and purity of health and innocence. Yet she still nursed her secret sorrow, though she no longer mentioned it to My Dear. Scarce an hour passed that did not bring its recollection of Korak, and its poignant yearning to see him again.
She was sixteen now, but she could easily be mistaken for nineteen, and she was lovely to look at, with her black hair and tanned skin, exuding freshness and the purity of health and innocence. Still, she carried her secret sadness, even though she no longer talked about it with My Dear. Not an hour went by without memories of Korak surfacing and a strong desire to see him again.
Meriem spoke English fluently now, and read and wrote it as well. One day My Dear spoke jokingly to her in French and to her surprise Meriem replied in the same tongue—slowly, it is true, and haltingly; but none the less in excellent French, such, though, as a little child might use. Thereafter they spoke a little French each day, and My Dear often marveled that the girl learned this language with a facility that was at times almost uncanny. At first Meriem had puckered her narrow, arched, little eye brows as though trying to force recollection of something all but forgotten which the new words suggested, and then, to her own astonishment as well as to that of her teacher she had used other French words than those in the lessons—used them properly and with a pronunciation that the English woman knew was more perfect than her own; but Meriem could neither read nor write what she spoke so well, and as My Dear considered a knowledge of correct English of the first importance, other than conversational French was postponed for a later day.
Meriem now spoke English fluently and could read and write it as well. One day, My Dear joked with her in French, and to her surprise, Meriem replied in the same language—slowly and hesitantly, it’s true, but still in excellent French, similar to how a small child might speak. From then on, they practiced a bit of French each day, and My Dear often marveled at how easily Meriem learned this language, sometimes in a way that felt almost uncanny. At first, Meriem furrowed her narrow, arched eyebrows, as if trying to recall something nearly forgotten that the new words triggered, and then, to her own astonishment as well as that of her teacher, she used other French words beyond those from the lessons—using them correctly and with a pronunciation that the English woman recognized was more precise than her own. However, Meriem could neither read nor write what she spoke so well, and since My Dear considered knowledge of proper English to be the most important, studying anything beyond conversational French was set aside for later.
“You doubtless heard French spoken at times in your father’s douar,” suggested My Dear, as the most reasonable explanation.
“You probably heard French spoken at times in your father’s douar,” suggested My Dear, as the most reasonable explanation.
Meriem shook her head.
Meriem shook her head.
“It may be,” she said, “but I do not recall ever having seen a Frenchman in my father’s company—he hated them and would have nothing whatever to do with them, and I am quite sure that I never heard any of these words before, yet at the same time I find them all familiar. I cannot understand it.”
“It might be,” she said, “but I don’t remember ever seeing a Frenchman around my dad—he hated them and wouldn’t have anything to do with them, and I’m pretty sure I've never heard any of these words before, yet at the same time, they all seem familiar. I can’t make sense of it.”
“Neither can I,” agreed My Dear.
“Neither can I,” agreed My Dear.
It was about this time that a runner brought a letter that, when she learned the contents, filled Meriem with excitement. Visitors were coming! A number of English ladies and gentlemen had accepted My Dear’s invitation to spend a month of hunting and exploring with them. Meriem was all expectancy. What would these strangers be like? Would they be as nice to her as had Bwana and My Dear, or would they be like the other white folk she had known—cruel and relentless. My Dear assured her that they all were gentle folk and that she would find them kind, considerate and honorable.
It was around this time that a runner brought a letter that, when she learned its contents, filled Meriem with excitement. Visitors were coming! Several English ladies and gentlemen had accepted My Dear’s invitation to spend a month hunting and exploring with them. Meriem was full of anticipation. What would these strangers be like? Would they be as nice to her as Bwana and My Dear had been, or would they be like the other white people she had known—cruel and relentless? My Dear assured her that they were all gentle people and that she would find them kind, considerate, and honorable.
To My Dear’s surprise there was none of the shyness of the wild creature in Meriem’s anticipation of the visit of strangers.
To My Dear’s surprise, there was none of the shyness of a wild creature in Meriem’s excitement about the visit from strangers.
She looked forward to their coming with curiosity and with a certain pleasurable anticipation when once she was assured that they would not bite her. In fact she appeared no different than would any pretty young miss who had learned of the expected coming of company.
She was curious and excited about their arrival once she was sure they wouldn’t bite her. In fact, she looked just like any pretty young woman who had heard that guests were coming.
Korak’s image was still often in her thoughts, but it aroused now a less well-defined sense of bereavement. A quiet sadness pervaded Meriem when she thought of him; but the poignant grief of her loss when it was young no longer goaded her to desperation. Yet she was still loyal to him. She still hoped that some day he would find her, nor did she doubt for a moment but that he was searching for her if he still lived. It was this last suggestion that caused her the greatest perturbation. Korak might be dead. It scarce seemed possible that one so well-equipped to meet the emergencies of jungle life should have succumbed so young; yet when she had last seen him he had been beset by a horde of armed warriors, and should he have returned to the village again, as she well knew he must have, he may have been killed. Even her Korak could not, single handed, slay an entire tribe.
Korak's image still often crossed her mind, but now it stirred a less intense feeling of loss. A quiet sadness filled Meriem whenever she thought of him; however, the sharp grief she felt at the beginning no longer drove her to despair. Still, she remained loyal to him. She continued to hope that one day he would find her, and she had no doubt that he was searching for her if he was still alive. This last thought caused her the most distress. Korak might be dead. It hardly seemed possible that someone so capable of handling the challenges of jungle life could have succumbed so young; yet, when she last saw him, he had been surrounded by a group of armed warriors. If he had returned to the village again, as she knew he must have, he might have been killed. Even her Korak could not, by himself, defeat an entire tribe.
At last the visitors arrived. There were three men and two women—the wives of the two older men. The youngest member of the party was Hon. Morison Baynes, a young man of considerable wealth who, having exhausted all the possibilities for pleasure offered by the capitals of Europe, had gladly seized upon this opportunity to turn to another continent for excitement and adventure.
At last, the visitors arrived. There were three men and two women—the wives of the two older men. The youngest member of the group was Hon. Morison Baynes, a wealthy young man who, after exploring all the pleasures offered by Europe's capitals, eagerly took this chance to seek excitement and adventure on a different continent.
He looked upon all things un-European as rather more than less impossible, still he was not at all averse to enjoying the novelty of unaccustomed places, and making the most of strangers indigenous thereto, however unspeakable they might have seemed to him at home. In manner he was suave and courteous to all—if possible a trifle more punctilious toward those he considered of meaner clay than toward the few he mentally admitted to equality.
He viewed everything non-European as somewhat impossible, yet he had no problem embracing the novelty of unfamiliar places and getting to know the locals, no matter how strange they might have seemed to him back home. He was smooth and polite to everyone—often even a bit more formal with those he thought were beneath him than with the few he considered his equals.
Nature had favored him with a splendid physique and a handsome face, and also with sufficient good judgment to appreciate that while he might enjoy the contemplation of his superiority to the masses, there was little likelihood of the masses being equally entranced by the same cause. And so he easily maintained the reputation of being a most democratic and likeable fellow, and indeed he was likable. Just a shade of his egotism was occasionally apparent—never sufficient to become a burden to his associates. And this, briefly, was the Hon. Morison Baynes of luxurious European civilization. What would be the Hon. Morison Baynes of central Africa it were difficult to guess.
Nature had blessed him with a great physique and a good-looking face, along with enough good sense to realize that while he could appreciate his superiority over others, the masses likely wouldn't feel the same way about him. Because of this, he easily kept up the image of being a very democratic and friendly guy, and he truly was likable. Every now and then, a touch of his egotism would show, but it was never enough to become a hassle for his friends. And this, in short, was the Hon. Morison Baynes of wealthy European society. What the Hon. Morison Baynes would be like in central Africa is hard to imagine.
Meriem, at first, was shy and reserved in the presence of the strangers. Her benefactors had seen fit to ignore mention of her strange past, and so she passed as their ward whose antecedents not having been mentioned were not to be inquired into. The guests found her sweet and unassuming, laughing, vivacious and a never exhausted storehouse of quaint and interesting jungle lore.
Meriem was initially shy and reserved around the strangers. Her benefactors chose not to bring up her unusual background, so she was seen as their ward, and the lack of mention of her past meant no one asked about it. The guests found her sweet and unassuming, lively, cheerful, and a never-ending source of fascinating jungle stories.
She had ridden much during her year with Bwana and My Dear. She knew each favorite clump of concealing reeds along the river that the buffalo loved best. She knew a dozen places where lions laired, and every drinking hole in the drier country twenty-five miles back from the river. With unerring precision that was almost uncanny she could track the largest or the smallest beast to his hiding place. But the thing that baffled them all was her instant consciousness of the presence of carnivora that others, exerting their faculties to the utmost, could neither see nor hear.
She had done a lot of riding during her year with Bwana and My Dear. She knew all the favorite spots with dense reeds along the river that the buffalo preferred. She was aware of a dozen places where lions rested and every watering hole in the dry area twenty-five miles back from the river. With a remarkable precision that was almost eerie, she could track both the largest and the smallest animals to their hiding spots. But what puzzled everyone was her immediate awareness of the presence of carnivores that others, pushing their senses to the limit, could neither see nor hear.
The Hon. Morison Baynes found Meriem a most beautiful and charming companion. He was delighted with her from the first. Particularly so, it is possible, because he had not thought to find companionship of this sort upon the African estate of his London friends. They were together a great deal as they were the only unmarried couple in the little company. Meriem, entirely unaccustomed to the companionship of such as Baynes, was fascinated by him. His tales of the great, gay cities with which he was familiar filled her with admiration and with wonder. If the Hon. Morison always shone to advantage in these narratives Meriem saw in that fact but a most natural consequence to his presence upon the scene of his story—wherever Morison might be he must be a hero; so thought the girl.
The Hon. Morison Baynes found Meriem to be a beautiful and charming companion. He was delighted with her from the very beginning. It might have been especially surprising for him because he didn’t expect to find such companionship on the African estate of his London friends. They spent a lot of time together since they were the only unmarried couple in the small group. Meriem, who was completely unaccustomed to the company of someone like Baynes, was captivated by him. His stories about the vibrant cities he knew filled her with admiration and wonder. Whenever the Hon. Morison shared these tales, Meriem saw it as a natural reflection of his presence in the story—wherever Morison was, he had to be a hero, or so she thought.
With the actual presence and companionship of the young Englishman the image of Korak became less real. Where before it had been an actuality to her she now realized that Korak was but a memory. To that memory she still was loyal; but what weight has a memory in the presence of a fascinating reality?
With the young Englishman actually there and keeping her company, the image of Korak felt less real. What had once been a genuine presence for her now became just a memory. She remained loyal to that memory, but how much does a memory matter when faced with an intriguing reality?
Meriem had never accompanied the men upon a hunt since the arrival of the guests. She never had cared particularly for the sport of killing. The tracking she enjoyed; but the mere killing for the sake of killing she could not find pleasure in—little savage that she had been, and still, to some measure, was. When Bwana had gone forth to shoot for meat she had always been his enthusiastic companion; but with the coming of the London guests the hunting had deteriorated into mere killing. Slaughter the host would not permit; yet the purpose of the hunts were for heads and skins and not for food. So Meriem remained behind and spent her days either with My Dear upon the shaded verandah, or riding her favorite pony across the plains or to the forest edge. Here she would leave him untethered while she took to the trees for the moment’s unalloyed pleasures of a return to the wild, free existence of her earlier childhood.
Meriem had never joined the men on a hunt since the guests arrived. She had never really cared for the sport of killing. She enjoyed the tracking, but she couldn't find any pleasure in killing just for the sake of it—little savage that she had been, and still partly was. When Bwana went out to shoot for meat, she was always his eager companion; but with the arrival of the London guests, the hunting had turned into just killing. The host wouldn’t allow slaughter; still, the purpose of the hunts was for trophies, not for food. So Meriem stayed behind and spent her days either with My Dear on the shaded verandah or riding her favorite pony across the plains or to the edge of the forest. There, she would leave him untethered while she climbed the trees for the pure joy of returning to the wild, free existence of her earlier childhood.
Then would come again visions of Korak, and, tired at last of leaping and swinging through the trees, she would stretch herself comfortably upon a branch and dream. And presently, as today, she found the features of Korak slowly dissolve and merge into those of another, and the figure of a tanned, half-naked tarmangani become a khaki clothed Englishman astride a hunting pony.
Then visions of Korak would return, and tired of jumping and swinging through the trees, she would settle back comfortably on a branch and daydream. Soon, just like today, she noticed Korak’s features slowly fading and blending into someone else's, and the image of a tanned, half-naked tarmangani transformed into a khaki-clad Englishman riding a hunting pony.
And while she dreamed there came to her ears from a distance, faintly, the terrified bleating of a kid. Meriem was instantly alert. You or I, even had we been able to hear the pitiful wail at so great distance, could not have interpreted it; but to Meriem it meant a species of terror that afflicts the ruminant when a carnivore is near and escape impossible.
And while she dreamed, she faintly heard the terrified bleating of a kid coming from a distance. Meriem became instantly alert. You or I, even if we could hear that pitiful wail from so far away, wouldn't have understood it; but for Meriem, it signaled a kind of terror that animals experience when a predator is close and escape is impossible.
It had been both a pleasure and a sport of Korak’s to rob Numa of his prey whenever possible, and Meriem too had often joyed in the thrill of snatching some dainty morsel almost from the very jaws of the king of beasts. Now, at the sound of the kid’s bleat, all the well remembered thrills recurred. Instantly she was all excitement to play again the game of hide and seek with death.
It had been both enjoyable and a challenge for Korak to steal Numa's prey whenever he could, and Meriem often got a thrill from grabbing a tasty bite right from the jaws of the king of beasts. Now, at the sound of the kid's bleat, all those familiar thrills came rushing back. Instantly, she was filled with excitement to play the dangerous game of hide and seek with death once more.
Quickly she loosened her riding skirt and tossed it aside—it was a heavy handicap to successful travel in the trees. Her boots and stockings followed the skirt, for the bare sole of the human foot does not slip upon dry or even wet bark as does the hard leather of a boot. She would have liked to discard her riding breeches also, but the motherly admonitions of My Dear had convinced Meriem that it was not good form to go naked through the world.
Quickly, she loosened her riding skirt and tossed it aside—it was a heavy hindrance to traveling easily through the trees. Her boots and stockings followed the skirt because the bare sole of a human foot doesn’t slip on dry or even wet bark like the hard leather of a boot. She would have liked to take off her riding breeches too, but her dear mother’s advice had made Meriem think it wasn’t appropriate to go naked in the world.
At her hip hung a hunting knife. Her rifle was still in its boot at her pony’s withers. Her revolver she had not brought.
At her hip hung a hunting knife. Her rifle was still in its holster at her pony’s withers. She hadn’t brought her revolver.
The kid was still bleating as Meriem started rapidly in its direction, which she knew was straight toward a certain water hole which had once been famous as a rendezvous for lions. Of late there had been no evidence of carnivora in the neighborhood of this drinking place; but Meriem was positive that the bleating of the kid was due to the presence of either lion or panther.
The kid was still bleating as Meriem quickly moved toward it, knowing she was heading straight for a water hole that used to be well-known as a meeting spot for lions. Recently, there had been no signs of predators near this watering place, but Meriem was sure the bleating of the kid indicated the presence of either a lion or a panther.
But she would soon know, for she was rapidly approaching the terrified animal. She wondered as she hastened onward that the sounds continued to come from the same point. Why did the kid not run away? And then she came in sight of the little animal and knew. The kid was tethered to a stake beside the waterhole.
But she would soon find out, since she was quickly getting closer to the scared animal. As she rushed forward, she wondered why the sounds kept coming from the same spot. Why wasn’t the kid running away? Then she saw the little animal and understood. The kid was tied to a stake next to the waterhole.
Meriem paused in the branches of a near-by tree and scanned the surrounding clearing with quick, penetrating eyes. Where was the hunter? Bwana and his people did not hunt thus. Who could have tethered this poor little beast as a lure to Numa? Bwana never countenanced such acts in his country and his word was law among those who hunted within a radius of many miles of his estate.
Meriem stopped in the branches of a nearby tree and looked around the clearing with sharp, observant eyes. Where was the hunter? Bwana and his people didn’t hunt like this. Who could have tied this poor little animal up as bait for Numa? Bwana would never allow such things in his land, and his word was law among those who hunted within miles of his estate.
Some wandering savages, doubtless, thought Meriem; but where were they? Not even her keen eyes could discover them. And where was Numa? Why had he not long since sprung upon this delicious and defenseless morsel? That he was close by was attested by the pitiful crying of the kid. Ah! Now she saw him. He was lying close in a clump of brush a few yards to her right. The kid was down wind from him and getting the full benefit of his terrorizing scent, which did not reach Meriem.
Some wandering savages, for sure, thought Meriem; but where were they? Not even her sharp eyes could find them. And where was Numa? Why hadn't he lunged at this tasty and unprotected prey long ago? That he was nearby was clear from the sad cries of the kid. Ah! Now she spotted him. He was lying in a thicket a few yards to her right. The kid was downwind from him, fully experiencing his terrifying scent, which didn’t reach Meriem.
To circle to the opposite side of the clearing where the trees approached closer to the kid. To leap quickly to the little animal’s side and cut the tether that held him would be the work of but a moment. In that moment Numa might charge, and then there would be scarce time to regain the safety of the trees, yet it might be done. Meriem had escaped from closer quarters than that many times before.
To move over to the other side of the clearing where the trees were closer to the kid. To quickly jump to the little animal’s side and cut the rope that held him would only take a moment. In that moment, Numa might charge, and there wouldn’t be much time to get back to the safety of the trees, but it could be done. Meriem had gotten away from tighter situations than that many times before.
The doubt that gave her momentary pause was caused by fear of the unseen hunters more than by fear of Numa. If they were stranger blacks the spears that they held in readiness for Numa might as readily be loosed upon whomever dared release their bait as upon the prey they sought thus to trap. Again the kid struggled to be free. Again his piteous wail touched the tender heart strings of the girl. Tossing discretion aside, she commenced to circle the clearing. Only from Numa did she attempt to conceal her presence. At last she reached the opposite trees. An instant she paused to look toward the great lion, and at the same moment she saw the huge beast rise slowly to his full height. A low roar betokened that he was ready.
The doubt that made her hesitate briefly was more about the fear of the hidden hunters than of Numa. If they were strangers, the spears they had ready for Numa could just as easily be thrown at anyone who dared to release their bait as at the prey they were trying to trap. Once more, the kid struggled to escape. Once more, his pitiful cry tugged at the girl's heartstrings. Ignoring her better judgment, she started to circle the clearing. She only tried to hide her presence from Numa. Finally, she reached the trees on the other side. For a moment, she paused to look at the great lion, and at that moment, she saw the massive beast slowly rise to its full height. A low roar signaled that he was ready.
Meriem loosened her knife and leaped to the ground. A quick run brought her to the side of the kid. Numa saw her. He lashed his tail against his tawny sides. He roared terribly; but, for an instant, he remained where he stood—surprised into inaction, doubtless, by the strange apparition that had sprung so unexpectedly from the jungle.
Meriem loosened her knife and jumped to the ground. A quick run took her to the side of the kid. Numa saw her. He whipped his tail against his tan sides. He roared loudly; but for a moment, he stayed where he was—frozen in surprise by the strange figure that had suddenly appeared from the jungle.
Other eyes were upon Meriem, too—eyes in which were no less surprise than that reflected in the yellow-green orbs of the carnivore. A white man, hiding in a thorn boma, half rose as the young girl leaped into the clearing and dashed toward the kid. He saw Numa hesitate. He raised his rifle and covered the beast’s breast. The girl reached the kid’s side. Her knife flashed, and the little prisoner was free. With a parting bleat it dashed off into the jungle. Then the girl turned to retreat toward the safety of the tree from which she had dropped so suddenly and unexpectedly into the surprised view of the lion, the kid and the man.
Other eyes were on Meriem too—eyes that held as much surprise as those reflected in the yellow-green gaze of the predator. A white man, hiding in a thorn boma, partially stood up as the young girl jumped into the clearing and ran towards the kid. He noticed Numa hesitate. He raised his rifle and aimed at the beast's chest. The girl reached the kid and her knife flashed, setting the little prisoner free. With a final bleat, it sprinted off into the jungle. Then the girl turned to head back towards the safety of the tree from which she had unexpectedly dropped into the astonished view of the lion, the kid, and the man.
As she turned the girl’s face was turned toward the hunter. His eyes went wide as he saw her features. He gave a little gasp of surprise; but now the lion demanded all his attention—the baffled, angry beast was charging. His breast was still covered by the motionless rifle. The man could have fired and stopped the charge at once; but for some reason, since he had seen the girl’s face, he hesitated. Could it be that he did not care to save her? Or, did he prefer, if possible, to remain unseen by her? It must have been the latter cause which kept the trigger finger of the steady hand from exerting the little pressure that would have brought the great beast to at least a temporary pause.
As she turned, the girl's face was directed toward the hunter. His eyes widened as he took in her features. He let out a small gasp of surprise; but now the lion demanded all his focus—the frustrated, furious beast was charging. His chest was still covered by the still rifle. The man could have shot and stopped the charge instantly; but for some reason, since he had seen the girl's face, he hesitated. Could it be that he didn’t want to save her? Or did he prefer, if possible, to stay hidden from her? It must have been the latter reason that kept the trigger finger of his steady hand from applying the slight pressure that would have brought the huge beast to at least a temporary halt.
Like an eagle the man watched the race for life the girl was making. A second or two measured the time which the whole exciting event consumed from the moment that the lion broke into his charge. Nor once did the rifle sights fail to cover the broad breast of the tawny sire as the lion’s course took him a little to the man’s left. Once, at the very last moment, when escape seemed impossible, the hunter’s finger tightened ever so little upon the trigger, but almost coincidentally the girl leaped for an over hanging branch and seized it. The lion leaped too; but the nimble Meriem had swung herself beyond his reach without a second or an inch to spare.
Like an eagle, the man watched the girl race for her life. The whole thrilling event lasted just a second or two, starting from the moment the lion charged. Not once did the rifle sights waver from the broad chest of the tawny beast as it moved slightly to the man’s left. At the very last second, when escape seemed impossible, the hunter's finger tightened just a bit on the trigger, but almost at the same moment, the girl jumped for an overhanging branch and grabbed it. The lion jumped too, but the agile Meriem swung herself out of reach with barely a second or an inch to spare.
The man breathed a sigh of relief as he lowered his rifle. He saw the girl fling a grimace at the angry, roaring, maneater beneath her, and then, laughing, speed away into the forest. For an hour the lion remained about the water hole. A hundred times could the hunter have bagged his prey. Why did he fail to do so? Was he afraid that the shot might attract the girl and cause her to return?
The man sighed with relief as he lowered his rifle. He watched the girl make a face at the furious, roaring beast below her, and then, laughing, she darted into the forest. The lion lingered around the water hole for an hour. The hunter could have taken the shot a hundred times. Why didn’t he? Was he worried that the gunshot might draw the girl back?
At last Numa, still roaring angrily, strode majestically into the jungle. The hunter crawled from his boma, and half an hour later was entering a little camp snugly hidden in the forest. A handful of black followers greeted his return with sullen indifference. He was a great bearded man, a huge, yellow-bearded giant, when he entered his tent. Half an hour later he emerged smooth shaven.
At last, Numa, still roaring with rage, walked powerfully into the jungle. The hunter crawled out from his boma, and half an hour later, he was entering a small camp snugly hidden in the forest. A handful of black followers greeted his return with dull indifference. He was a huge, bearded man, a giant with a yellow beard, when he entered his tent. Half an hour later, he came out clean-shaven.
His blacks looked at him in astonishment.
His friends looked at him in disbelief.
“Would you know me?” he asked.
“Would you recognize me?” he asked.
“The hyena that bore you would not know you, Bwana,” replied one.
“The hyena that gave birth to you wouldn’t recognize you, sir,” replied one.
The man aimed a heavy fist at the black’s face; but long experience in dodging similar blows saved the presumptuous one.
The man swung a powerful punch at the other guy's face, but his previous experience dodging similar hits helped him avoid it.
XVII.
Meriem returned slowly toward the tree in which she had left her skirt, her shoes and her stockings. She was singing blithely; but her song came to a sudden stop when she came within sight of the tree, for there, disporting themselves with glee and pulling and hauling upon her belongings, were a number of baboons. When they saw her they showed no signs of terror. Instead they bared their fangs and growled at her. What was there to fear in a single she-Tarmangani? Nothing, absolutely nothing.
Meriem walked slowly back to the tree where she had left her skirt, shoes, and stockings. She was singing happily, but her song suddenly stopped when she spotted the tree. There, playing around and dragging her things, were a group of baboons. When they saw her, they didn't look scared at all. Instead, they bared their teeth and growled at her. What was there to fear from just one woman? Nothing, absolutely nothing.
In the open plain beyond the forest the hunters were returning from the day’s sport. They were widely separated, hoping to raise a wandering lion on the homeward journey across the plain. The Hon. Morison Baynes rode closest to the forest. As his eyes wandered back and forth across the undulating, shrub sprinkled ground they fell upon the form of a creature close beside the thick jungle where it terminated abruptly at the plain’s edge.
In the open field beyond the forest, the hunters were coming back from their day out. They were spread out, hoping to spot a wandering lion on their way home across the plain. The Hon. Morison Baynes rode nearest to the forest. As he scanned the rolling, brush-covered ground, his gaze landed on a creature right next to the dense jungle, where it abruptly met the edge of the plain.
He reined his mount in the direction of his discovery. It was yet too far away for his untrained eyes to recognize it; but as he came closer he saw that it was a horse, and was about to resume the original direction of his way when he thought that he discerned a saddle upon the beast’s back. He rode a little closer. Yes, the animal was saddled. The Hon. Morison approached yet nearer, and as he did so his eyes expressed a pleasurable emotion of anticipation, for they had now recognized the pony as the special favorite of Meriem.
He pulled his horse in the direction of what he had found. It was still too far away for his inexperienced eyes to make out; but as he got closer, he saw that it was a horse, and he was about to continue on his original path when he thought he saw a saddle on the animal's back. He rode a bit closer. Yes, the horse was saddled. The Hon. Morison moved even nearer, and as he did, his eyes showed a happy sense of anticipation, as he now recognized the pony as Meriem's special favorite.
He galloped to the animal’s side. Meriem must be within the wood. The man shuddered a little at the thought of an unprotected girl alone in the jungle that was still, to him, a fearful place of terrors and stealthily stalking death. He dismounted and left his horse beside Meriem’s. On foot he entered the jungle. He knew that she was probably safe enough and he wished to surprise her by coming suddenly upon her.
He rode quickly to the animal's side. Meriem must be in the woods. The man trembled a bit at the idea of an unprotected girl alone in a jungle that still felt like a terrifying place full of lurking dangers. He got off his horse and left it next to Meriem's. On foot, he walked into the jungle. He figured she was probably safe enough and wanted to surprise her by appearing out of nowhere.
He had gone but a short distance into the wood when he heard a great jabbering in a near-by tree. Coming closer he saw a band of baboons snarling over something. Looking intently he saw that one of them held a woman’s riding skirt and that others had boots and stockings. His heart almost ceased to beat as he quite naturally placed the most direful explanation upon the scene. The baboons had killed Meriem and stripped this clothing from her body. Morison shuddered.
He had only walked a little way into the woods when he heard a loud commotion from a nearby tree. As he approached, he saw a group of baboons fighting over something. Looking closer, he realized that one of them was holding a woman’s riding skirt, while others had boots and stockings. His heart nearly stopped as he quickly assumed the worst. The baboons had killed Meriem and taken her clothes. Morison shuddered.
He was about to call aloud in the hope that after all the girl still lived when he saw her in a tree close beside that was occupied by the baboons, and now he saw that they were snarling and jabbering at her. To his amazement he saw the girl swing, ape-like, into the tree below the huge beasts. He saw her pause upon a branch a few feet from the nearest baboon. He was about to raise his rifle and put a bullet through the hideous creature that seemed about to leap upon her when he heard the girl speak. He almost dropped his rifle from surprise as a strange jabbering, identical with that of the apes, broke from Meriem’s lips.
He was about to call out, hoping that the girl was still alive when he saw her in a tree close by, which was occupied by the baboons, and now he noticed they were snarling and chattering at her. To his amazement, he saw the girl swing, resembling an ape, into the tree beneath the massive beasts. He saw her pause on a branch just a few feet from the nearest baboon. He was about to raise his rifle and shoot the hideous creature that looked ready to pounce on her when he heard the girl speak. He almost dropped his rifle in shock as a strange chattering, identical to that of the apes, came from Meriem's lips.
The baboons stopped their snarling and listened. It was quite evident that they were as much surprised as the Hon. Morison Baynes. Slowly and one by one they approached the girl. She gave not the slightest evidence of fear of them. They quite surrounded her now so that Baynes could not have fired without endangering the girl’s life; but he no longer desired to fire. He was consumed with curiosity.
The baboons stopped growling and listened. It was clear that they were as surprised as the Hon. Morison Baynes. Slowly, one by one, they approached the girl. She showed no sign of being scared of them. They surrounded her completely, so Baynes couldn't shoot without putting the girl's life at risk; but he no longer wanted to shoot. He was overwhelmed with curiosity.
For several minutes the girl carried on what could be nothing less than a conversation with the baboons, and then with seeming alacrity every article of her apparel in their possession was handed over to her. The baboons still crowded eagerly about her as she donned them. They chattered to her and she chattered back. The Hon. Morison Baynes sat down at the foot of a tree and mopped his perspiring brow. Then he rose and made his way back to his mount.
For several minutes, the girl engaged in what could only be described as a conversation with the baboons, and then, with surprising speed, they returned every piece of her clothing they had. The baboons continued to gather excitedly around her as she put them on. They chattered at her, and she chattered back. The Hon. Morison Baynes sat down at the base of a tree and wiped his sweaty brow. Then he got up and headed back to his horse.
When Meriem emerged from the forest a few minutes later she found him there, and he eyed her with wide eyes in which were both wonder and a sort of terror.
When Meriem stepped out of the forest a few minutes later, she saw him there, and he looked at her with wide eyes that showed both amazement and a kind of fear.
“I saw your horse here,” he explained, “and thought that I would wait and ride home with you—you do not mind?”
“I saw your horse here,” he said, “and thought I’d wait and ride home with you—are you okay with that?”
“Of course not,” she replied. “It will be lovely.”
“Of course not,” she said. “It’ll be great.”
As they made their way stirrup to stirrup across the plain the Hon. Morison caught himself many times watching the girl’s regular profile and wondering if his eyes had deceived him or if, in truth, he really had seen this lovely creature consorting with grotesque baboons and conversing with them as fluently as she conversed with him. The thing was uncanny—impossible; yet he had seen it with his own eyes.
As they rode side by side across the plain, Hon. Morison found himself repeatedly glancing at the girl's delicate profile, questioning whether his eyes were playing tricks on him or if he had actually witnessed this beautiful girl interacting with bizarre baboons, chatting with them as effortlessly as she chatted with him. It was strange—impossible; yet he had seen it with his own eyes.
And as he watched her another thought persisted in obtruding itself into his mind. She was most beautiful and very desirable; but what did he know of her? Was she not altogether impossible? Was the scene that he had but just witnessed not sufficient proof of her impossibility? A woman who climbed trees and conversed with the baboons of the jungle! It was quite horrible!
And as he watched her, another thought kept pushing into his mind. She was incredibly beautiful and very appealing, but what did he really know about her? Wasn't she completely out of reach? Wasn't the scene he had just seen enough evidence of her outlandishness? A woman who climbed trees and talked to the baboons in the jungle! It was downright terrifying!
Again the Hon. Morison mopped his brow. Meriem glanced toward him.
Again, the Hon. Morison wiped his forehead. Meriem glanced at him.
“You are warm,” she said. “Now that the sun is setting I find it quite cool. Why do you perspire now?”
“You're warm,” she said. “Now that the sun is setting, I find it pretty cool. Why are you sweating now?”
He had not intended to let her know that he had seen her with the baboons; but quite suddenly, before he realized what he was saying, he had blurted it out.
He hadn't meant to let her know that he had seen her with the baboons; but suddenly, before he even realized what he was saying, he had blurted it out.
“I perspire from emotion,” he said. “I went into the jungle when I discovered your pony. I wanted to surprise you; but it was I who was surprised. I saw you in the trees with the baboons.”
“I sweat from feeling,” he said. “I ventured into the jungle when I found your pony. I wanted to shock you; but it was I who was shocked. I saw you in the trees with the baboons.”
“Yes?” she said quite unemotionally, as though it was a matter of little moment that a young girl should be upon intimate terms with savage jungle beasts.
“Yes?” she said in a flat tone, as if it were no big deal that a young girl was close with wild jungle animals.
“It was horrible!” ejaculated the Hon. Morison.
“It was awful!” exclaimed the Hon. Morison.
“Horrible?” repeated Meriem, puckering her brows in bewilderment. “What was horrible about it? They are my friends. Is it horrible to talk with one’s friends?”
“Horrible?” Meriem echoed, furrowing her brows in confusion. “What was horrible about it? They are my friends. Is it horrible to talk with your friends?”
“You were really talking with them, then?” cried the Hon. Morison. “You understood them and they understood you?”
“You were actually talking to them, then?” exclaimed the Hon. Morison. “You got what they were saying and they got what you were saying?”
“Certainly.”
"Of course."
“But they are hideous creatures—degraded beasts of a lower order. How could you speak the language of beasts?”
“But they are ugly creatures—degraded animals of a lower level. How can you speak the language of animals?”
“They are not hideous, and they are not degraded,” replied Meriem. “Friends are never that. I lived among them for years before Bwana found me and brought me here. I scarce knew any other tongue than that of the mangani. Should I refuse to know them now simply because I happen, for the present, to live among humans?”
“They're not horrible, and they’re not inferior,” Meriem replied. “Friends are never like that. I lived with them for years before Bwana found me and brought me here. I hardly knew any other language besides that of the mangani. Should I ignore them now just because I happen to live among humans at the moment?”
“For the present!” ejaculated the Hon. Morison. “You cannot mean that you expect to return to live among them? Come, come, what foolishness are we talking! The very idea! You are spoofing me, Miss Meriem. You have been kind to these baboons here and they know you and do not molest you; but that you once lived among them—no, that is preposterous.”
“For now!” exclaimed the Hon. Morison. “You can’t seriously expect to go back to living with them? Come on, what nonsense are we talking about! The very thought! You’re joking with me, Miss Meriem. You’ve been nice to these baboons here, and they recognize you and don’t bother you; but that you actually lived among them—no, that’s ridiculous.”
“But I did, though,” insisted the girl, seeing the real horror that the man felt in the presence of such an idea reflected in his tone and manner, and rather enjoying baiting him still further. “Yes, I lived, almost naked, among the great apes and the lesser apes. I dwelt among the branches of the trees. I pounced upon the smaller prey and devoured it—raw. With Korak and A’ht I hunted the antelope and the boar, and I sat upon a tree limb and made faces at Numa, the lion, and threw sticks at him and annoyed him until he roared so terribly in his rage that the earth shook.
"But I really did," the girl insisted, noticing the genuine horror the man felt at such an idea reflected in his voice and behavior, and finding it amusing to provoke him even more. "Yeah, I lived almost naked among the great apes and the smaller ones. I lived in the tree branches. I would jump on smaller prey and eat it—raw. With Korak and A’ht, I hunted antelope and boar, and I sat on a tree branch, making faces at Numa, the lion, throwing sticks at him and bothering him until he roared so loudly in his anger that it shook the ground.
“And Korak built me a lair high among the branches of a mighty tree. He brought me fruits and flesh. He fought for me and was kind to me—until I came to Bwana and My Dear I do not recall that any other than Korak was ever kind to me.” There was a wistful note in the girl’s voice now and she had forgotten that she was bantering the Hon. Morison. She was thinking of Korak. She had not thought of him a great deal of late.
“And Korak made me a home high up in the branches of a huge tree. He brought me fruits and meat. He fought for me and treated me well—until I met Bwana, and my dear, I can’t remember anyone else besides Korak ever being kind to me.” There was a touch of sadness in the girl’s voice now, and she had forgotten that she was joking with the Hon. Morison. She was thinking about Korak. She hadn’t thought much about him lately.
For a time both were silently absorbed in their own reflections as they rode on toward the bungalow of their host. The girl was thinking of a god-like figure, a leopard skin half concealing his smooth, brown hide as he leaped nimbly through the trees to lay an offering of food before her on his return from a successful hunt. Behind him, shaggy and powerful, swung a huge anthropoid ape, while she, Meriem, laughing and shouting her welcome, swung upon a swaying limb before the entrance to her sylvan bower. It was a pretty picture as she recalled it. The other side seldom obtruded itself upon her memory—the long, black nights—the chill, terrible jungle nights—the cold and damp and discomfort of the rainy season—the hideous mouthings of the savage carnivora as they prowled through the Stygian darkness beneath—the constant menace of Sheeta, the panther, and Histah, the snake—the stinging insects—the loathesome vermin. For, in truth, all these had been outweighed by the happiness of the sunny days, the freedom of it all, and, most, the companionship of Korak.
For a while, both were quietly lost in their own thoughts as they rode toward their host's bungalow. The girl envisioned a god-like figure, a leopard skin partially hiding his smooth, brown body as he gracefully jumped through the trees to bring her food after a successful hunt. Behind him, a huge, shaggy ape followed closely. Meriem, laughing and cheering him on, swung from a swaying branch in front of her forest home. It was a beautiful memory. The darker times rarely came to mind—the long, black nights—the bone-chilling jungle nights—the cold, damp discomfort of the rainy season—the terrifying sounds of the wild animals prowling in the dark—always being on guard against Sheeta, the panther, and Histah, the snake—the biting insects—the nasty pests. Because, truly, all of these were overshadowed by the joy of the sunny days, the sense of freedom, and, most importantly, the companionship of Korak.
The man’s thoughts were rather jumbled. He had suddenly realized that he had come mighty near falling in love with this girl of whom he had known nothing up to the previous moment when she had voluntarily revealed a portion of her past to him. The more he thought upon the matter the more evident it became to him that he had given her his love—that he had been upon the verge of offering her his honorable name. He trembled a little at the narrowness of his escape. Yet, he still loved her. There was no objection to that according to the ethics of the Hon. Morison Baynes and his kind. She was a meaner clay than he. He could no more have taken her in marriage than he could have taken one of her baboon friends, nor would she, of course, expect such an offer from him. To have his love would be sufficient honor for her—his name he would, naturally, bestow upon one in his own elevated social sphere.
The man's thoughts were pretty jumbled. He had just realized that he almost fell in love with this girl he knew nothing about until she voluntarily shared a bit of her past with him. The more he thought about it, the clearer it became that he had given her his love—that he was close to offering her his respectable name. He felt a bit shaky about how close he had come to that. Still, he loved her. There was nothing wrong with that according to the ethics of the Hon. Morison Baynes and his kind. She was of a lower social status than he was. He couldn't have married her any more than he could have married one of her baboon friends, nor would she, of course, expect such an offer from him. To have his love would be enough honor for her—he would naturally give his name to someone from his own elevated social circle.
A girl who had consorted with apes, who, according to her own admission, had lived almost naked among them, could have no considerable sense of the finer qualities of virtue. The love that he would offer her, then, would, far from offending her, probably cover all that she might desire or expect.
A girl who had spent time with apes, who, by her own account, had lived nearly naked among them, couldn't have much understanding of the higher virtues. The love he would offer her would likely not offend her; instead, it would cover everything she could desire or expect.
The more the Hon. Morison Baynes thought upon the subject the more fully convinced he became that he was contemplating a most chivalrous and unselfish act. Europeans will better understand his point of view than Americans, poor, benighted provincials, who are denied a true appreciation of caste and of the fact that “the king can do no wrong.” He did not even have to argue the point that she would be much happier amidst the luxuries of a London apartment, fortified as she would be by both his love and his bank account, than lawfully wed to such a one as her social position warranted. There was one question however, which he wished to have definitely answered before he committed himself even to the program he was considering.
The more the Hon. Morison Baynes thought about it, the more convinced he became that he was considering a truly noble and selfless act. Europeans would understand his perspective better than Americans, who are sadly unaware of the significance of social classes and the idea that “the king can do no wrong.” He didn’t even need to argue that she would be much happier living in the luxury of a London apartment, supported by both his love and his financial resources, than if she were legally married to someone more aligned with her social status. However, there was one question he wanted answered definitively before he committed to the plan he was considering.
“Who were Korak and A’ht?” he asked.
“Who were Korak and A’ht?” he asked.
“A’ht was a Mangani,” replied Meriem, “and Korak a Tarmangani.”
“A’ht was a Mangani,” Meriem replied, “and Korak a Tarmangani.”
“And what, pray, might a Mangani be, and a Tarmangani?”
“And what, exactly, is a Mangani and a Tarmangani?”
The girl laughed.
The girl laughed.
“You are a Tarmangani,” she replied. “The Mangani are covered with hair—you would call them apes.”
“You're a Tarmangani,” she said. “The Mangani have fur all over—they're what you would call apes.”
“Then Korak was a white man?” he asked.
“Then Korak was a white guy?” he asked.
“Yes.”
"Yep."
“And he was—ah—your—er—your—?” He paused, for he found it rather difficult to go on with that line of questioning while the girl’s clear, beautiful eyes were looking straight into his.
“And he was—uh—your—um—your—?” He paused, as he found it quite challenging to continue that line of questioning while the girl's clear, beautiful eyes were staring directly at him.
“My what?” insisted Meriem, far too unsophisticated in her unspoiled innocence to guess what the Hon. Morison was driving at.
“My what?” insisted Meriem, too naive in her untainted innocence to understand what the Hon. Morison was hinting at.
“Why—ah—your brother?” he stumbled.
“Why—uh—your brother?” he stumbled.
“No, Korak was not my brother,” she replied.
“No, Korak wasn’t my brother,” she replied.
“Was he your husband, then?” he finally blurted.
“Was he your husband, then?” he finally said.
Far from taking offense, Meriem broke into a merry laugh.
Far from being offended, Meriem burst into a cheerful laugh.
“My husband!” she cried. “Why how old do you think I am? I am too young to have a husband. I had never thought of such a thing. Korak was—why—,” and now she hesitated, too, for she never before had attempted to analyse the relationship that existed between herself and Korak—“why, Korak was just Korak,” and again she broke into a gay laugh as she realized the illuminating quality of her description.
“My husband!” she exclaimed. “How old do you think I am? I’m too young to have a husband. I never thought about that before. Korak was—well—,” and now she paused, too, because she had never tried to figure out the relationship between herself and Korak—“well, Korak was just Korak,” and again she burst into a cheerful laugh as she recognized how insightful her description was.
Looking at her and listening to her the man beside her could not believe that depravity of any sort or degree entered into the girl’s nature, yet he wanted to believe that she had not been virtuous, for otherwise his task was less a sinecure—the Hon. Morison was not entirely without conscience.
Looking at her and listening to her, the man next to her couldn't believe that any kind of depravity was part of her nature. However, he wanted to believe she hadn't been virtuous because, otherwise, his job would be less of an easy ride—the Hon. Morison wasn't completely devoid of conscience.
For several days the Hon. Morison made no appreciable progress toward the consummation of his scheme. Sometimes he almost abandoned it for he found himself time and again wondering how slight might be the provocation necessary to trick him into making a bona-fide offer of marriage to Meriem if he permitted himself to fall more deeply in love with her, and it was difficult to see her daily and not love her. There was a quality about her which, all unknown to the Hon. Morison, was making his task an extremely difficult one—it was that quality of innate goodness and cleanness which is a good girl’s stoutest bulwark and protection—an impregnable barrier that only degeneracy has the effrontery to assail. The Hon. Morison Baynes would never be considered a degenerate.
For several days, the Hon. Morison made little progress toward finishing his plan. Sometimes he nearly gave up on it because he kept finding himself wondering how little it would take to coax him into making a genuine marriage proposal to Meriem if he let himself fall more in love with her, and it was hard to see her every day and not love her. There was something about her that, unbeknownst to the Hon. Morison, was making his task extremely challenging—it was that quality of inherent goodness and purity that acts as a strong shield and protection for a good girl—an unbreakable barrier that only someone truly depraved would dare to cross. The Hon. Morison Baynes would never be seen as depraved.
He was sitting with Meriem upon the verandah one evening after the others had retired. Earlier they had been playing tennis—a game in which the Hon. Morison shone to advantage, as, in truth, he did in most all manly sports. He was telling Meriem stories of London and Paris, of balls and banquets, of the wonderful women and their wonderful gowns, of the pleasures and pastimes of the rich and powerful. The Hon. Morison was a past master in the art of insidious boasting. His egotism was never flagrant or tiresome—he was never crude in it, for crudeness was a plebeianism that the Hon. Morison studiously avoided, yet the impression derived by a listener to the Hon. Morison was one that was not at all calculated to detract from the glory of the house of Baynes, or from that of its representative.
He was sitting with Meriem on the verandah one evening after the others had gone to bed. Earlier, they had been playing tennis—a game in which the Hon. Morison excelled, as he did in almost all athletic pursuits. He was sharing stories with Meriem about London and Paris, about parties and receptions, about the amazing women and their stunning dresses, and about the pleasures and pastimes of the wealthy and powerful. The Hon. Morison was a master at subtle boasting. His self-importance was never obvious or annoying—he was never crude about it, as crudeness was something the Hon. Morison carefully avoided. However, the impression he left on a listener was definitely one that did not diminish the reputation of the Baynes family or its representative.
Meriem was entranced. His tales were like fairy stories to this little jungle maid. The Hon. Morison loomed large and wonderful and magnificent in her mind’s eye. He fascinated her, and when he drew closer to her after a short silence and took her hand she thrilled as one might thrill beneath the touch of a deity—a thrill of exaltation not unmixed with fear.
Meriem was captivated. His stories felt like fairy tales to this young girl from the jungle. The Hon. Morison appeared grand, amazing, and magnificent in her imagination. He intrigued her, and when he moved closer to her after a brief silence and took her hand, she felt a rush of excitement, like one might feel under the touch of a god—an exhilarating feeling that was tinged with a bit of fear.
He bent his lips close to her ear.
He leaned in close to her ear.
“Meriem!” he whispered. “My little Meriem! May I hope to have the right to call you ‘my little Meriem’?”
“Meriem!” he whispered. “My little Meriem! Can I hope to have the right to call you ‘my little Meriem’?”
The girl turned wide eyes upward to his face; but it was in shadow. She trembled but she did not draw away. The man put an arm about her and drew her closer.
The girl looked up at him with wide eyes, but his face was in shadow. She trembled but didn’t pull away. The man wrapped an arm around her and pulled her closer.
“I love you!” he whispered.
"I love you!" he whispered.
She did not reply. She did not know what to say. She knew nothing of love. She had never given it a thought; but she did know that it was very nice to be loved, whatever it meant. It was nice to have people kind to one. She had known so little of kindness or affection.
She didn’t respond. She didn’t know what to say. She knew nothing about love. She had never thought about it; but she did know that it felt really good to be loved, no matter what it meant. It was nice to have people be kind to her. She had experienced so little kindness or affection.
“Tell me,” he said, “that you return my love.”
“Tell me,” he said, “that you love me back.”
His lips came steadily closer to hers. They had almost touched when a vision of Korak sprang like a miracle before her eyes. She saw Korak’s face close to hers, she felt his lips hot against hers, and then for the first time in her life she guessed what love meant. She drew away, gently.
His lips moved closer to hers. They were about to touch when a vision of Korak appeared before her eyes like a miracle. She saw Korak’s face near hers, felt his lips warm against hers, and for the first time in her life, she understood what love meant. She pulled away gently.
“I am not sure,” she said, “that I love you. Let us wait. There is plenty of time. I am too young to marry yet, and I am not sure that I should be happy in London or Paris—they rather frighten me.”
“I’m not sure,” she said, “that I love you. Let’s wait. There’s plenty of time. I’m too young to get married yet, and I’m not sure that I’d be happy in London or Paris—they kind of scare me.”
How easily and naturally she had connected his avowal of love with the idea of marriage! The Hon. Morison was perfectly sure that he had not mentioned marriage—he had been particularly careful not to do so. And then she was not sure that she loved him! That, too, came rather in the nature of a shock to his vanity. It seemed incredible that this little barbarian should have any doubts whatever as to the desirability of the Hon. Morison Baynes.
How easily and naturally she had linked his confession of love to the idea of marriage! The Hon. Morison was completely certain that he hadn’t brought up marriage—he had been very careful not to. And then there was the fact that she wasn’t even sure she loved him! That, too, was a bit of a blow to his ego. It seemed unbelievable that this little wildling could have any doubts about the appeal of the Hon. Morison Baynes.
The first flush of passion cooled, the Hon. Morison was enabled to reason more logically. The start had been all wrong. It would be better now to wait and prepare her mind gradually for the only proposition which his exalted estate would permit him to offer her. He would go slow. He glanced down at the girl’s profile. It was bathed in the silvery light of the great tropic moon. The Hon. Morison Baynes wondered if it were to be so easy a matter to “go slow.” She was most alluring.
The initial rush of passion faded, allowing Hon. Morison to think more clearly. The beginning had been all wrong. It would be better now to take his time and gradually prepare her mind for the only proposal that his elevated status would allow him to make. He would take it slow. He looked down at the girl’s profile, illuminated by the silvery light of the bright tropical moon. Hon. Morison Baynes wondered if it would really be so easy to "take it slow." She was incredibly tempting.
Meriem rose. The vision of Korak was still before her.
Meriem got up. The image of Korak was still in front of her.
“Good night,” she said. “It is almost too beautiful to leave,” she waved her hand in a comprehensive gesture which took in the starry heavens, the great moon, the broad, silvered plain, and the dense shadows in the distance, that marked the jungle. “Oh, how I love it!”
“Good night,” she said. “It’s almost too beautiful to leave,” she waved her hand, indicating the starry sky, the big moon, the wide, silvery plain, and the dark shadows in the distance that marked the jungle. “Oh, how I love it!”
“You would love London more,” he said earnestly. “And London would love you. You would be a famous beauty in any capital of Europe. You would have the world at your feet, Meriem.”
“You would love London even more,” he said sincerely. “And London would adore you. You would be a famous beauty in any capital of Europe. You would have the world at your feet, Meriem.”
“Good night!” she repeated, and left him.
“Good night!” she said again, and walked away from him.
The Hon. Morison selected a cigarette from his crested case, lighted it, blew a thin line of blue smoke toward the moon, and smiled.
The Hon. Morison picked a cigarette from his fancy case, lit it, blew a thin stream of blue smoke toward the moon, and smiled.
XVIII.
Meriem and Bwana were sitting on the verandah together the following day when a horseman appeared in the distance riding across the plain toward the bungalow. Bwana shaded his eyes with his hand and gazed out toward the oncoming rider. He was puzzled. Strangers were few in Central Africa. Even the blacks for a distance of many miles in every direction were well known to him. No white man came within a hundred miles that word of his coming did not reach Bwana long before the stranger. His every move was reported to the big Bwana—just what animals he killed and how many of each species, how he killed them, too, for Bwana would not permit the use of prussic acid or strychnine; and how he treated his “boys.”
Meriem and Bwana were sitting on the porch together the next day when a horseman appeared in the distance, riding across the plain toward the bungalow. Bwana shielded his eyes with his hand and looked out at the approaching rider. He was confused. Strangers were rare in Central Africa. Even the locals for miles around were well known to him. No white man came within a hundred miles without Bwana hearing about it long before the stranger arrived. Every move was reported to the big Bwana—what animals he hunted and how many of each species, how he hunted them, too, since Bwana didn’t allow the use of prussic acid or strychnine; and how he treated his “boys.”
Several European sportsmen had been turned back to the coast by the big Englishman’s orders because of unwarranted cruelty to their black followers, and one, whose name had long been heralded in civilized communities as that of a great sportsman, was driven from Africa with orders never to return when Bwana found that his big bag of fourteen lions had been made by the diligent use of poisoned bait.
Several European athletes were sent back to the coast by the big Englishman's orders due to unnecessary cruelty toward their black companions, and one, who had long been celebrated in civilized societies as a great sportsman, was banished from Africa with orders never to come back after Bwana discovered that his impressive haul of fourteen lions had been achieved through the use of poisoned bait.
The result was that all good sportsmen and all the natives loved and respected him. His word was law where there had never been law before. There was scarce a head man from coast to coast who would not heed the big Bwana’s commands in preference to those of the hunters who employed them, and so it was easy to turn back any undesirable stranger—Bwana had simply to threaten to order his boys to desert him.
The outcome was that all the good athletes and all the locals admired and respected him. His word was law where there had been none before. There was hardly a leader from coast to coast who wouldn’t follow the big Bwana’s orders over those of the hunters who hired them, so it was easy to send away any unwanted newcomer—Bwana just had to threaten to tell his guys to leave him.
But there was evidently one who had slipped into the country unheralded. Bwana could not imagine who the approaching horseman might be. After the manner of frontier hospitality the globe round he met the newcomer at the gate, welcoming him even before he had dismounted. He saw a tall, well knit man of thirty or over, blonde of hair and smooth shaven. There was a tantalizing familiarity about him that convinced Bwana that he should be able to call the visitor by name, yet he was unable to do so. The newcomer was evidently of Scandinavian origin—both his appearance and accent denoted that. His manner was rough but open. He made a good impression upon the Englishman, who was wont to accept strangers in this wild and savage country at their own valuation, asking no questions and assuming the best of them until they proved themselves undeserving of his friendship and hospitality.
But it was clear that someone had come into the country without any announcement. Bwana couldn't figure out who the horseman approaching might be. Following the tradition of frontier hospitality from around the world, he greeted the newcomer at the gate, welcoming him even before he got off his horse. He noticed a tall, muscular man in his thirties, with blonde hair and a clean-shaven face. There was something oddly familiar about him that made Bwana feel like he should know the visitor’s name, but he couldn't recall it. The newcomer clearly had Scandinavian roots—his appearance and accent made that obvious. He had a rough but friendly demeanor. This made a good impression on the Englishman, who was used to treating strangers in this wild and untamed country with trust, asking no questions and assuming the best of them until they proved otherwise unworthy of his friendship and hospitality.
“It is rather unusual that a white man comes unheralded,” he said, as they walked together toward the field into which he had suggested that the traveler might turn his pony. “My friends, the natives, keep us rather well-posted.”
“It’s pretty unusual for a white guy to show up without any warning,” he said as they walked together toward the field where he had suggested the traveler might turn his pony. “My friends, the locals, keep us pretty well-informed.”
“It is probably due to the fact that I came from the south,” explained the stranger, “that you did not hear of my coming. I have seen no village for several marches.”
“It’s probably because I’m from the south,” the stranger explained, “that you didn’t hear about my arrival. I haven’t seen any villages for several days.”
“No, there are none to the south of us for many miles,” replied Bwana. “Since Kovudoo deserted his country I rather doubt that one could find a native in that direction under two or three hundred miles.”
“No, there aren’t any to the south of us for many miles,” replied Bwana. “Since Kovudoo left his land, I really doubt you could find a native in that direction for at least two or three hundred miles.”
Bwana was wondering how a lone white man could have made his way through the savage, unhospitable miles that lay toward the south. As though guessing what must be passing through the other’s mind, the stranger vouchsafed an explanation.
Bwana was wondering how a single white man could have navigated the brutal, unwelcoming miles that stretched south. It was as if he could sense what the other was thinking, so the stranger offered an explanation.
“I came down from the north to do a little trading and hunting,” he said, “and got way off the beaten track. My head man, who was the only member of the safari who had ever before been in the country, took sick and died. We could find no natives to guide us, and so I simply swung back straight north. We have been living on the fruits of our guns for over a month. Didn’t have an idea there was a white man within a thousand miles of us when we camped last night by a water hole at the edge of the plain. This morning I started out to hunt and saw the smoke from your chimney, so I sent my gun bearer back to camp with the good news and rode straight over here myself. Of course I’ve heard of you—everybody who comes into Central Africa does—and I’d be mighty glad of permission to rest up and hunt around here for a couple of weeks.”
“I came down from the north to do some trading and hunting,” he said, “and ended up way off the beaten path. My leader, who was the only member of the safari who had been in the area before, got sick and died. We couldn't find any locals to guide us, so I just headed straight back north. We've been living off what we’ve hunted for over a month. I had no clue there was a white man within a thousand miles of us when we set up camp last night by a water hole at the edge of the plain. This morning, I went out to hunt and spotted the smoke from your chimney, so I sent my gun bearer back to camp with the good news and came straight over here myself. Of course, I've heard of you—everyone who visits Central Africa has—and I’d be really glad to get permission to rest and hunt around here for a couple of weeks.”
“Certainly,” replied Bwana. “Move your camp up close to the river below my boys’ camp and make yourself at home.”
“Sure,” replied Bwana. “Set up your camp near the river, close to my boys' camp, and make yourself comfortable.”
They had reached the verandah now and Bwana was introducing the stranger to Meriem and My Dear, who had just come from the bungalow’s interior.
They had arrived at the porch, and Bwana was introducing the stranger to Meriem and My Dear, who had just come out from the inside of the bungalow.
“This is Mr. Hanson,” he said, using the name the man had given him. “He is a trader who has lost his way in the jungle to the south.”
“This is Mr. Hanson,” he said, using the name the man had given him. “He’s a trader who got lost in the jungle to the south.”
My Dear and Meriem bowed their acknowledgments of the introduction. The man seemed rather ill at ease in their presence. His host attributed this to the fact that his guest was unaccustomed to the society of cultured women, and so found a pretext to quickly extricate him from his seemingly unpleasant position and lead him away to his study and the brandy and soda which were evidently much less embarrassing to Mr. Hanson.
My Dear and Meriem nodded their thanks for the introduction. The man appeared somewhat uncomfortable around them. His host thought this was because the guest wasn't used to being around cultured women, so he quickly found a way to get him out of what seemed like an awkward situation and led him to his study, where the brandy and soda were clearly much less awkward for Mr. Hanson.
When the two had left them Meriem turned toward My Dear.
When the two had left them, Meriem turned to My Dear.
“It is odd,” she said, “but I could almost swear that I had known Mr. Hanson in the past. It is odd, but quite impossible,” and she gave the matter no further thought.
“It’s strange,” she said, “but I feel like I’ve known Mr. Hanson before. It’s weird, but totally impossible,” and she didn’t think about it any more.
Hanson did not accept Bwana’s invitation to move his camp closer to the bungalow. He said his boys were inclined to be quarrelsome, and so were better off at a distance; and he, himself, was around but little, and then always avoided coming into contact with the ladies. A fact which naturally aroused only laughing comment on the rough trader’s bashfulness. He accompanied the men on several hunting trips where they found him perfectly at home and well versed in all the finer points of big game hunting. Of an evening he often spent much time with the white foreman of the big farm, evidently finding in the society of this rougher man more common interests than the cultured guests of Bwana possessed for him. So it came that his was a familiar figure about the premises by night. He came and went as he saw fit, often wandering along in the great flower garden that was the especial pride and joy of My Dear and Meriem. The first time that he had been surprised there he apologized gruffly, explaining that he had always been fond of the good old blooms of northern Europe which My Dear had so successfully transplanted in African soil.
Hanson didn’t take Bwana’s offer to move his camp closer to the bungalow. He mentioned that his crew tended to be argumentative, so it was better for them to stay at a distance; plus, he himself was rarely around and always avoided interacting with the ladies. This naturally drew some teasing about the rough trader’s shyness. He joined the men on several hunting trips, where he seemed completely at ease and knowledgeable about all the nuances of big game hunting. In the evenings, he often spent a lot of time with the white foreman of the large farm, clearly finding more common interests with this rougher man than with the cultured guests of Bwana. As a result, he was a familiar sight around the property at night. He came and went as he pleased, often wandering through the beautiful flower garden that was especially cherished by My Dear and Meriem. The first time he was caught there, he gruffly apologized, saying he had always been fond of the classic blooms from northern Europe that My Dear had so successfully grown in African soil.
Was it, though, the ever beautiful blossoms of hollyhocks and phlox that drew him to the perfumed air of the garden, or that other infinitely more beautiful flower who wandered often among the blooms beneath the great moon—the black-haired, suntanned Meriem?
Was it, though, the always stunning flowers of hollyhocks and phlox that attracted him to the fragrant air of the garden, or that other infinitely more beautiful flower who often strolled among the blooms under the big moon—the black-haired, sun-kissed Meriem?
For three weeks Hanson had remained. During this time he said that his boys were resting and gaining strength after their terrible ordeals in the untracked jungle to the south; but he had not been as idle as he appeared to have been. He divided his small following into two parties, entrusting the leadership of each to men whom he believed that he could trust. To them he explained his plans and the rich reward that they would win from him if they carried his designs to a successful conclusion. One party he moved very slowly northward along the trail that connects with the great caravan routes entering the Sahara from the south. The other he ordered straight westward with orders to halt and go into permanent camp just beyond the great river which marks the natural boundary of the country that the big Bwana rightfully considers almost his own.
For three weeks, Hanson stayed put. During this time, he claimed that his guys were resting and regaining strength after their brutal experiences in the uncharted jungle to the south; however, he hadn’t been as idle as he seemed. He split his small group into two teams, trusting each to leaders he believed he could rely on. He laid out his plans to them and explained the generous rewards they would receive if they successfully executed his strategies. One team he led slowly north along the trail connecting to the major caravan routes entering the Sahara from the south. The other he directed straight west, instructing them to stop and set up a permanent camp just beyond the great river that marks the natural boundary of the territory the big Bwana rightly considers almost his own.
To his host he explained that he was moving his safari slowly toward the north—he said nothing of the party moving westward. Then, one day, he announced that half his boys had deserted, for a hunting party from the bungalow had come across his northerly camp and he feared that they might have noticed the reduced numbers of his following.
To his host, he explained that he was slowly moving his safari north—he didn’t mention the group heading west. Then, one day, he announced that half of his crew had deserted, as a hunting party from the bungalow had stumbled upon his northern camp, and he was worried they might have noticed the smaller number of his team.
And thus matters stood when, one hot night, Meriem, unable to sleep, rose and wandered out into the garden. The Hon. Morison had been urging his suit once more that evening, and the girl’s mind was in such a turmoil that she had been unable to sleep.
And so things were when, one hot night, Meriem, unable to sleep, got up and walked into the garden. The Hon. Morison had been pressing his case again that evening, and the girl's mind was so troubled that she just couldn't sleep.
The wide heavens about her seemed to promise a greater freedom from doubt and questioning. Baynes had urged her to tell him that she loved him. A dozen times she thought that she might honestly give him the answer that he demanded. Korak fast was becoming but a memory. That he was dead she had come to believe, since otherwise he would have sought her out. She did not know that he had even better reason to believe her dead, and that it was because of that belief he had made no effort to find her after his raid upon the village of Kovudoo.
The vast sky around her seemed to promise more freedom from doubt and questioning. Baynes had urged her to tell him that she loved him. Dozens of times, she thought she might honestly give him the answer he wanted. Korak was quickly becoming just a memory. She had come to believe he was dead, since otherwise he would have tried to find her. She didn’t realize that he had even more reason to think she was dead, and it was because of that belief that he hadn’t made any effort to search for her after his raid on the village of Kovudoo.
Behind a great flowering shrub Hanson lay gazing at the stars and waiting. He had lain thus and there many nights before. For what was he waiting, or for whom? He heard the girl approaching, and half raised himself to his elbow. A dozen paces away, the reins looped over a fence post, stood his pony.
Behind a big flowering bush, Hanson lay looking at the stars and waiting. He had done this many nights before. But what was he waiting for, or who? He heard the girl coming closer and propped himself up on his elbow. A dozen steps away, with the reins draped over a fence post, stood his pony.
Meriem, walking slowly, approached the bush behind which the waiter lay. Hanson drew a large bandanna handkerchief from his pocket and rose stealthily to his knees. A pony neighed down at the corrals. Far out across the plain a lion roared. Hanson changed his position until he squatted upon both feet, ready to come erect quickly.
Meriem, walking slowly, approached the bush where the waiter was hiding. Hanson pulled a large bandanna handkerchief from his pocket and quietly got down on his knees. A pony neighed down at the corrals. Far out across the plain, a lion roared. Hanson shifted his position until he was squatting on both feet, ready to stand up quickly.
Again the pony neighed—this time closer. There was the sound of his body brushing against shrubbery. Hanson heard and wondered how the animal had gotten from the corral, for it was evident that he was already in the garden. The man turned his head in the direction of the beast. What he saw sent him to the ground, huddled close beneath the shrubbery—a man was coming, leading two ponies.
Again, the pony neighed—this time closer. He could hear its body brushing against the bushes. Hanson heard it and wondered how the animal had gotten from the corral, because it was clear he was already in the garden. The man turned his head toward the animal. What he saw made him drop to the ground, huddled close beneath the bushes—a man was coming, leading two ponies.
Meriem heard now and stopped to look and listen. A moment later the Hon. Morison Baynes drew near, the two saddled mounts at his heels.
Meriem heard something and paused to look and listen. A moment later, the Hon. Morison Baynes approached, with two saddled horses following him.
Meriem looked up at him in surprise. The Hon. Morison grinned sheepishly.
Meriem looked up at him in shock. The Hon. Morison grinned awkwardly.
“I couldn’t sleep,” he explained, “and was going for a bit of a ride when I chanced to see you out here, and I thought you’d like to join me. Ripping good sport, you know, night riding. Come on.”
“I couldn’t sleep,” he said, “so I went out for a ride and happened to see you here. I thought you’d want to join me. Night riding is a lot of fun, you know. Come on.”
Meriem laughed. The adventure appealed to her.
Meriem laughed. She was excited about the adventure.
“All right,” she said.
“Okay,” she said.
Hanson swore beneath his breath. The two led their horses from the garden to the gate and through it. There they discovered Hanson’s mount.
Hanson muttered a curse under his breath. The two guided their horses from the garden to the gate and out through it. There, they found Hanson’s horse.
“Why here’s the trader’s pony,” remarked Baynes.
“Look, here’s the trader’s pony,” said Baynes.
“He’s probably down visiting with the foreman,” said Meriem.
“He's probably down chatting with the foreman,” said Meriem.
“Pretty late for him, isn’t it?” remarked the Hon. Morison. “I’d hate to have to ride back through that jungle at night to his camp.”
“Pretty late for him, isn’t it?” said the Hon. Morison. “I’d really dislike having to ride back through that jungle to his camp at night.”
As though to give weight to his apprehensions the distant lion roared again. The Hon. Morison shivered and glanced at the girl to note the effect of the uncanny sound upon her. She appeared not to have noticed it.
As if to emphasize his fears, the distant lion roared again. The Hon. Morison shivered and looked at the girl to see how she was reacting to the eerie sound. She didn't seem to have noticed it.
A moment later the two had mounted and were moving slowly across the moon-bathed plain. The girl turned her pony’s head straight toward the jungle. It was in the direction of the roaring of the hungry lion.
A moment later, the two had mounted and were moving slowly across the moonlit plain. The girl directed her pony’s head straight toward the jungle. It was in the direction of the roaring of the hungry lion.
“Hadn’t we better steer clear of that fellow?” suggested the Hon. Morison. “I guess you didn’t hear him.”
“Shouldn't we avoid that guy?” suggested the Hon. Morison. “I guess you didn't hear him.”
“Yes, I heard him,” laughed Meriem. “Let’s ride over and call on him.”
“Yeah, I heard him,” Meriem laughed. “Let’s ride over and pay him a visit.”
The Hon. Morison laughed uneasily. He didn’t care to appear at a disadvantage before this girl, nor did he care, either, to approach a hungry lion too closely at night. He carried his rifle in his saddle boot; but moonlight is an uncertain light to shoot by, nor ever had he faced a lion alone—even by day. The thought gave him a distinct nausea. The beast ceased his roaring now. They heard him no more and the Hon. Morison gained courage accordingly. They were riding down wind toward the jungle. The lion lay in a little swale to their right. He was old. For two nights he had not fed, for no longer was his charge as swift or his spring as mighty as in the days of his prime when he spread terror among the creatures of his wild domain. For two nights and days he had gone empty, and for long time before that he had fed only upon carrion. He was old; but he was yet a terrible engine of destruction.
The Hon. Morison laughed awkwardly. He didn’t want to seem at a disadvantage in front of this girl, nor did he want to get too close to a hungry lion at night. He had his rifle tucked in his saddle boot, but moonlight isn’t a reliable light for shooting, and he had never faced a lion alone—even in the daytime. The thought made him feel a little sick. The lion stopped roaring now. They didn’t hear him anymore, which gave the Hon. Morison a bit of courage. They were riding downwind toward the jungle. The lion was lying in a small dip to their right. He was old. He hadn’t eaten for two nights, and he was no longer as quick or as strong as he had been in his prime when he instilled fear in the creatures of his wild territory. He had gone hungry for two days and nights, and long before that, he had only feasted on carrion. He was old; but he was still a terrifying force of destruction.
At the edge of the forest the Hon. Morison drew rein. He had no desire to go further. Numa, silent upon his padded feet, crept into the jungle beyond them. The wind, now, was blowing gently between him and his intended prey. He had come a long way in search of man, for even in his youth he had tasted human flesh and while it was poor stuff by comparison with eland and zebra it was less difficult to kill. In Numa’s estimation man was a slow-witted, slow-footed creature which commanded no respect unless accompanied by the acrid odor which spelled to the monarch’s sensitive nostrils the great noise and the blinding flash of an express rifle.
At the edge of the forest, Hon. Morison stopped his horse. He didn’t want to go any further. Numa, moving silently on his padded feet, crept into the jungle ahead. The wind was now blowing gently between him and his target. He had traveled a long way to find a human, since even in his youth, he had tasted human flesh. While it was inferior to eland and zebra, it was easier to catch. In Numa's view, humans were slow-witted and slow-footed creatures that deserved no respect unless they came with the sharp smell that signaled the loud noise and blinding flash of a rifle.
He caught the dangerous scent tonight; but he was ravenous to madness. He would face a dozen rifles, if necessary, to fill his empty belly. He circled about into the forest that he might again be down wind from his victims, for should they get his scent he could not hope to overtake them. Numa was famished; but he was old and crafty.
He picked up a dangerous scent tonight, but he was starving to the point of madness. He would confront a dozen rifles if it meant filling his empty stomach. He moved silently through the forest so he could be downwind from his prey because if they caught his scent, he wouldn’t have a chance of catching them. Numa was hungry, but he was old and wise.
Deep in the jungle another caught faintly the scent of man and of Numa both. He raised his head and sniffed. He cocked it upon one side and listened.
Deep in the jungle, another caught a faint whiff of both man and Numa. He lifted his head and sniffed. He tilted it to one side and listened.
“Come on,” said Meriem, “let’s ride in a way—the forest is wonderful at night. It is open enough to permit us to ride.”
“Come on,” Meriem said, “let’s go for a ride—the forest looks amazing at night. It’s open enough for us to ride in.”
The Hon. Morison hesitated. He shrank from revealing his fear in the presence of the girl. A braver man, sure of his own position, would have had the courage to have refused uselessly to expose the girl to danger. He would not have thought of himself at all; but the egotism of the Hon. Morison required that he think always of self first. He had planned the ride to get Meriem away from the bungalow. He wanted to talk to her alone and far enough away so should she take offense at his purposed suggestion he would have time in which to attempt to right himself in her eyes before they reached home. He had little doubt, of course, but that he should succeed; but it is to his credit that he did have some slight doubts.
The Hon. Morison hesitated. He was reluctant to show his fear in front of the girl. A braver man, confident in his own position, would have had the courage to refuse to put her in danger. He wouldn’t have thought of himself at all; but the selfishness of the Hon. Morison meant he always prioritized his own interests. He had planned the ride to take Meriem away from the bungalow. He wanted to speak to her alone and far enough away so that if she took offense at his intended suggestion, he would have time to try to recover in her eyes before they headed home. He was confident he would succeed, but it’s worth noting that he did have some slight doubts.
“You needn’t be afraid of the lion,” said Meriem, noting his slight hesitancy. “There hasn’t been a man eater around here for two years, Bwana says, and the game is so plentiful that there is no necessity to drive Numa to human flesh. Then, he has been so often hunted that he rather keeps out of man’s way.”
“You don’t need to be scared of the lion,” Meriem said, noticing his slight hesitation. “Bwana says there hasn’t been a man-eater in this area for two years, and there are so many animals around that there’s no need for Numa to go after humans. Plus, he’s been hunted so many times that he tends to stay away from people.”
“Oh, I’m not afraid of lions,” replied the Hon. Morison. “I was just thinking what a beastly uncomfortable place a forest is to ride in. What with the underbrush and the low branches and all that, you know, it’s not exactly cut out for pleasure riding.”
“Oh, I’m not scared of lions,” replied the Hon. Morison. “I was just thinking about how really uncomfortable a forest is for riding. With the underbrush and the low branches and all that, you know, it’s not really meant for a relaxing ride.”
“Let’s go a-foot then,” suggested Meriem, and started to dismount.
“Let’s walk then,” suggested Meriem, and started to get off.
“Oh, no,” cried the Hon. Morison, aghast at this suggestion. “Let’s ride,” and he reined his pony into the dark shadows of the wood. Behind him came Meriem and in front, prowling ahead waiting a favorable opportunity, skulked Numa, the lion.
“Oh, no,” shouted the Hon. Morison, shocked by this suggestion. “Let’s ride,” and he turned his pony toward the dark shadows of the woods. Behind him followed Meriem, and in front, lurking and waiting for the right moment, sneaked Numa, the lion.
Out upon the plain a lone horseman muttered a low curse as he saw the two disappear from sight. It was Hanson. He had followed them from the bungalow. Their way led in the direction of his camp, so he had a ready and plausible excuse should they discover him; but they had not seen him for they had not turned their eyes behind.
Out on the plain, a solitary rider quietly swore as he watched the two vanish from view. It was Hanson. He had tracked them from the bungalow. Their path was heading toward his camp, so he had a quick and believable reason ready in case they spotted him; but they hadn’t seen him since they hadn’t looked back.
Now he turned directly toward the spot at which they had entered the jungle. He no longer cared whether he was observed or not. There were two reasons for his indifference. The first was that he saw in Baynes’ act a counterpart of his own planned abduction of the girl. In some way he might turn the thing to his own purposes. At least he would keep in touch with them and make sure that Baynes did not get her. His other reason was based on his knowledge of an event that had transpired at his camp the previous night—an event which he had not mentioned at the bungalow for fear of drawing undesired attention to his movements and bringing the blacks of the big Bwana into dangerous intercourse with his own boys. He had told at the bungalow that half his men had deserted. That story might be quickly disproved should his boys and Bwana’s grow confidential.
Now he turned directly toward the spot where they had entered the jungle. He no longer cared if anyone was watching him. There were two reasons for his indifference. The first was that he saw in Baynes’ actions a reflection of his own planned kidnapping of the girl. In some way, he might use this to his advantage. At the very least, he would stay in the loop and make sure that Baynes didn’t get her. His other reason stemmed from what had happened at his camp the previous night—something he hadn't mentioned at the bungalow because he didn’t want to attract unwanted attention to his movements or put his boys in a risky situation with the big Bwana's men. He had told everyone at the bungalow that half of his men had deserted. That story could easily be disproved if his boys and Bwana’s started talking.
The event that he had failed to mention and which now urged him hurriedly after the girl and her escort had occurred during his absence early the preceding evening. His men had been sitting around their camp fire, entirely encircled by a high, thorn boma, when, without the slightest warning, a huge lion had leaped amongst them and seized one of their number. It had been solely due to the loyalty and courage of his comrades that his life had been saved, and then only after a battle royal with the hunger-enraged beast had they been able to drive him off with burning brands, spears, and rifles.
The event he didn’t mention, which now had him rushing after the girl and her escort, happened during his absence the previous evening. His men had been sitting around their campfire, completely surrounded by a tall thorn boma, when, without any warning, a huge lion jumped in among them and grabbed one of their own. It was only thanks to the loyalty and bravery of his comrades that his life was saved. It took a fierce battle with the starving beast before they managed to drive it away with burning brands, spears, and rifles.
From this Hanson knew that a man eater had wandered into the district or been developed by the aging of one of the many lions who ranged the plains and hills by night, or lay up in the cool wood by day. He had heard the roaring of a hungry lion not half an hour before, and there was little doubt in his mind but that the man eater was stalking Meriem and Baynes. He cursed the Englishman for a fool, and spurred rapidly after them.
From this, Hanson realized that a man-eater had come into the area or that one of the many lions that roamed the plains and hills at night had started preying on humans due to old age. He had heard the roar of a hungry lion not even half an hour ago, and he had no doubt that the man-eater was tracking Meriem and Baynes. He cursed the Englishman for being an idiot and quickly rode after them.
Meriem and Baynes had drawn up in a small, natural clearing. A hundred yards beyond them Numa lay crouching in the underbrush, his yellow-green eyes fixed upon his prey, the tip of his sinuous tail jerking spasmodically. He was measuring the distance between him and them. He was wondering if he dared venture a charge, or should he wait yet a little longer in the hope that they might ride straight into his jaws. He was very hungry; but also was he very crafty. He could not chance losing his meat by a hasty and ill-considered rush. Had he waited the night before until the blacks slept he would not have been forced to go hungry for another twenty-four hours.
Meriem and Baynes had pulled up in a small, natural clearing. A hundred yards away, Numa was crouched in the underbrush, his yellow-green eyes locked on his prey, the tip of his sleek tail twitching nervously. He was calculating the distance between himself and them. He wondered if he should charge or wait a little longer, hoping they would ride right into his grasp. He was very hungry, but he was also very clever. He couldn't risk losing his meal with a rushed and careless attack. If he had waited until the night before when the blacks were sleeping, he wouldn’t have had to go hungry for another twenty-four hours.
Behind him the other that had caught his scent and that of man together came to a sitting posture upon the branch of a tree in which he had reposed himself for slumber. Beneath him a lumbering gray hulk swayed to and fro in the darkness. The beast in the tree uttered a low guttural and dropped to the back of the gray mass. He whispered a word in one of the great ears and Tantor, the elephant, raised his trunk aloft, swinging it high and low to catch the scent that the word had warned him of. There was another whispered word—was it a command?—and the lumbering beast wheeled into an awkward, yet silent shuffle, in the direction of Numa, the lion, and the stranger Tarmangani his rider had scented.
Behind him, another creature that had picked up his scent and that of a human settled onto a branch of the tree where he had fallen asleep. Below him, a heavy gray shape swayed in the dark. The animal in the tree let out a low growl and dropped onto the back of the gray figure. He whispered a word into one of the large ears, and Tantor, the elephant, raised his trunk high, swinging it up and down to catch the scent that the word had alerted him to. Another whispered word—was it a command?—and the heavy creature moved into a clumsy yet silent shuffle in the direction of Numa, the lion, and the unfamiliar Tarmangani that his rider had sensed.
Onward they went, the scent of the lion and his prey becoming stronger and stronger. Numa was becoming impatient. How much longer must he wait for his meat to come his way? He lashed his tail viciously now. He almost growled. All unconscious of their danger the man and the girl sat talking in the little clearing.
Onward they went, the smell of the lion and his prey getting stronger and stronger. Numa was getting impatient. How much longer did he have to wait for his dinner to come his way? He lashed his tail angrily now. He almost growled. Completely unaware of the danger, the man and the girl sat talking in the small clearing.
Their horses were pressed side by side. Baynes had found Meriem’s hand and was pressing it as he poured words of love into her ear, and Meriem was listening.
Their horses were squeezed close together. Baynes had found Meriem’s hand and was holding it as he whispered words of love into her ear, and Meriem was listening.
“Come to London with me,” urged the Hon. Morison. “I can gather a safari and we can be a whole day upon the way to the coast before they guess that we have gone.”
“Come to London with me,” urged the Hon. Morison. “I can organize a safari and we can spend a whole day traveling to the coast before they realize we’ve left.”
“Why must we go that way?” asked the girl. “Bwana and My Dear would not object to our marriage.”
“Why do we have to go that way?” asked the girl. “Bwana and My Dear wouldn’t mind our marriage.”
“I cannot marry you just yet,” explained the Hon. Morison, “there are some formalities to be attended to first—you do not understand. It will be all right. We will go to London. I cannot wait. If you love me you will come. What of the apes you lived with? Did they bother about marriage? They love as we love. Had you stayed among them you would have mated as they mate. It is the law of nature—no man-made law can abrogate the laws of God. What difference does it make if we love one another? What do we care for anyone in the world besides ourselves? I would give my life for you—will you give nothing for me?”
“I can’t marry you just yet,” the Hon. Morison said. “There are some formalities we need to take care of first—you don’t understand. It’ll be fine. We’ll go to London. I can’t wait. If you love me, you’ll come with me. What about the apes you lived with? Did they care about marriage? They love like we do. If you had stayed with them, you would have mated like they do. It’s the law of nature—no man-made law can cancel out the laws of God. What difference does it make if we love each other? What do we care about anyone else in the world besides ourselves? I would give my life for you—will you give nothing for me?”
“You love me?” she said. “You will marry me when we have reached London?”
“You love me?” she asked. “Will you marry me when we get to London?”
“I swear it,” he cried.
“I swear it,” he shouted.
“I will go with you,” she whispered, “though I do not understand why it is necessary.” She leaned toward him and he took her in his arms and bent to press his lips to hers.
“I'll go with you,” she whispered, “even though I don't get why it's necessary.” She leaned toward him, and he held her in his arms and bent down to kiss her.
At the same instant the head of a huge tusker poked through the trees that fringed the clearing. The Hon. Morison and Meriem, with eyes and ears for one another alone, did not see or hear; but Numa did. The man upon Tantor’s broad head saw the girl in the man’s arms. It was Korak; but in the trim figure of the neatly garbed girl he did not recognize his Meriem. He only saw a Tarmangani with his she. And then Numa charged.
At that moment, the head of a massive tusker pushed through the trees that surrounded the clearing. The Hon. Morison and Meriem, focused solely on each other, didn't notice or hear anything; but Numa did. The man on Tantor’s broad head spotted the girl in the man's arms. It was Korak; but in the neatly dressed figure of the girl, he didn't recognize his Meriem. He only saw a Tarmangani with his girl. And then Numa charged.
With a frightful roar, fearful lest Tantor had come to frighten away his prey, the great beast leaped from his hiding place. The earth trembled to his mighty voice. The ponies stood for an instant transfixed with terror. The Hon. Morison Baynes went white and cold. The lion was charging toward them full in the brilliant light of the magnificent moon. The muscles of the Hon. Morison no longer obeyed his will—they flexed to the urge of a greater power—the power of Nature’s first law. They drove his spurred heels deep into his pony’s flanks, they bore the rein against the brute’s neck that wheeled him with an impetuous drive toward the plain and safety.
With a terrifying roar, afraid that Tantor had come to scare off his prey, the great beast jumped out from his hiding spot. The ground shook with his powerful voice. The ponies stood frozen in fear for a moment. The Hon. Morison Baynes turned pale and cold. The lion was charging at them in the bright light of the stunning moon. The muscles of the Hon. Morison no longer followed his command—they reacted to the urge of a greater force—the force of Nature’s first law. They drove his spurred heels deep into his pony’s sides, forcing the reins against the animal's neck, which propelled him with a frantic burst toward the plain and safety.
The girl’s pony, squealing in terror, reared and plunged upon the heels of his mate. The lion was close upon him. Only the girl was cool—the girl and the half-naked savage who bestrode the neck of his mighty mount and grinned at the exciting spectacle chance had staked for his enjoyment.
The girl’s pony, screaming in fear, reared up and charged at the hooves of his companion. The lion was right behind him. Only the girl stayed calm—the girl and the half-naked savage who sat on the neck of his powerful horse, grinning at the thrilling scene that fate had set up for his entertainment.
To Korak here were but two strange Tarmangani pursued by Numa, who was empty. It was Numa’s right to prey; but one was a she. Korak felt an intuitive urge to rush to her protection. Why, he could not guess. All Tarmangani were enemies now. He had lived too long a beast to feel strongly the humanitarian impulses that were inherent in him—yet feel them he did, for the girl at least.
To Korak, there were just two unfamiliar humans being chased by Numa, who was hungry. It was Numa’s right to hunt; but one of them was a woman. Korak felt a strong instinct to defend her. He couldn't explain why. All humans were enemies to him now. He had spent too long living as a beast to feel deeply the compassionate urges that were natural to him—yet he did feel them, at least for the girl.
He urged Tantor forward. He raised his heavy spear and hurled it at the flying target of the lion’s body. The girl’s pony had reached the trees upon the opposite side of the clearing. Here he would become easy prey to the swiftly moving lion; but Numa, infuriated, preferred the woman upon his back. It was for her he leaped.
He urged Tantor onward. He raised his heavy spear and threw it at the moving target of the lion’s body. The girl’s pony had reached the trees on the other side of the clearing. Here he would be easy prey for the fast-moving lion; but Numa, furious, preferred the woman on his back. It was for her that he leaped.
Korak gave an exclamation of astonishment and approval as Numa landed upon the pony’s rump and at the same instant the girl swung free of her mount to the branches of a tree above her.
Korak let out a shout of amazement and approval as Numa landed on the pony's back, and at the same moment, the girl jumped off her mount and grabbed onto the branches of a tree above her.
Korak’s spear struck Numa in the shoulder, knocking him from his precarious hold upon the frantically plunging horse. Freed of the weight of both girl and lion the pony raced ahead toward safety. Numa tore and struck at the missile in his shoulder but could not dislodge it. Then he resumed the chase.
Korak's spear hit Numa in the shoulder, knocking him off his shaky grip on the wildly plunging horse. Now free of both the girl and the lion, the pony charged ahead toward safety. Numa clawed and struck at the spear in his shoulder but couldn't get it out. Then he continued the chase.
Korak guided Tantor into the seclusion of the jungle. He did not wish to be seen, nor had he.
Korak led Tantor into the hidden parts of the jungle. He didn't want to be seen, and he wasn't.
Hanson had almost reached the wood when he heard the lion’s terrific roars, and knew that the charge had come. An instant later the Hon. Morison broke upon his vision, racing like mad for safety. The man lay flat upon his pony’s back hugging the animal’s neck tightly with both arms and digging the spurs into his sides. An instant later the second pony appeared—riderless.
Hanson was just about to reach the woods when he heard the lion's terrifying roars and realized the attack had begun. A moment later, the Hon. Morison came into view, sprinting like crazy for safety. The man lay flat on his pony's back, gripping the animal's neck tightly with both arms and digging his spurs into its sides. Moments later, a second pony appeared—without a rider.
Hanson groaned as he guessed what had happened out of sight in the jungle. With an oath he spurred on in the hope of driving the lion from his prey—his rifle was ready in his hand. And then the lion came into view behind the girl’s pony. Hanson could not understand. He knew that if Numa had succeeded in seizing the girl he would not have continued in pursuit of the others.
Hanson groaned as he figured out what had happened out of sight in the jungle. With an oath, he urged his horse forward, hoping to drive the lion away from its prey—his rifle was ready in his hand. Then the lion appeared behind the girl's pony. Hanson couldn't comprehend it. He knew that if the lion had managed to grab the girl, it wouldn't have chased after the others.
He drew in his own mount, took quick aim and fired. The lion stopped in his tracks, turned and bit at his side, then rolled over dead. Hanson rode on into the forest, calling aloud to the girl.
He pulled in his horse, took aim quickly, and shot. The lion halted, turned, bit at its side, and then collapsed dead. Hanson rode deeper into the forest, shouting for the girl.
“Here I am,” came a quick response from the foliage of the trees just ahead. “Did you hit him?”
“Here I am,” replied a voice from the trees ahead. “Did you get him?”
“Yes,” replied Hanson. “Where are you? You had a mighty narrow escape. It will teach you to keep out of the jungle at night.”
“Yes,” replied Hanson. “Where are you? You had an incredibly close call. It’ll teach you to stay away from the jungle at night.”
Together they returned to the plain where they found the Hon. Morison riding slowly back toward them. He explained that his pony had bolted and that he had had hard work stopping him at all. Hanson grinned, for he recalled the pounding heels that he had seen driving sharp spurs into the flanks of Baynes’ mount; but he said nothing of what he had seen. He took Meriem up behind him and the three rode in silence toward the bungalow.
Together they headed back to the plain where they spotted the Hon. Morison riding slowly toward them. He explained that his pony had taken off and that he had struggled to stop it. Hanson smirked, recalling the hard kicks he had seen driving sharp spurs into the sides of Baynes’ horse, but he kept quiet about what he had witnessed. He lifted Meriem up behind him, and the three rode in silence toward the bungalow.
XIX.
Behind them Korak emerged from the jungle and recovered his spear from Numa’s side. He still was smiling. He had enjoyed the spectacle exceedingly. There was one thing that troubled him—the agility with which the she had clambered from her pony’s back into the safety of the tree above her. That was more like mangani—more like his lost Meriem. He sighed. His lost Meriem! His little, dead Meriem! He wondered if this she stranger resembled his Meriem in other ways. A great longing to see her overwhelmed him. He looked after the three figures moving steadily across the plain. He wondered where might lie their destination. A desire to follow them came over him, but he only stood there watching until they had disappeared in the distance. The sight of the civilized girl and the dapper, khaki clad Englishman had aroused in Korak memories long dormant.
Behind them, Korak stepped out of the jungle and retrieved his spear from Numa’s side. He was still smiling; he had really enjoyed the show. But there was one thing that bothered him—the way she had quickly climbed from her pony's back to the safety of the tree above her. That was more like the mangani—more like his lost Meriem. He sighed. His lost Meriem! His little, dead Meriem! He wondered if this stranger resembled his Meriem in other ways. A deep longing to see her flooded over him. He watched the three figures moving steadily across the plain, curious about where they might be headed. A desire to follow them came over him, but he just stood there watching until they vanished into the distance. The sight of the civilized girl and the neatly dressed Englishman stirred up memories in Korak that had long been buried.
Once he had dreamed of returning to the world of such as these; but with the death of Meriem hope and ambition seemed to have deserted him. He cared now only to pass the remainder of his life in solitude, as far from man as possible. With a sigh he turned slowly back into the jungle.
Once he had dreamed of coming back to a world like this; but with Meriem's death, hope and ambition seemed to have left him. Now, he only wanted to spend the rest of his life in solitude, as far away from people as he could get. With a sigh, he slowly turned back into the jungle.
Tantor, nervous by nature, had been far from reassured by close proximity to the three strange whites, and with the report of Hanson’s rifle had turned and ambled away at his long, swinging shuffle. He was nowhere in sight when Korak returned to look for him. The ape-man, however, was little concerned by the absence of his friend. Tantor had a habit of wandering off unexpectedly. For a month they might not see one another, for Korak seldom took the trouble to follow the great pachyderm, nor did he upon this occasion. Instead he found a comfortable perch in a large tree and was soon asleep.
Tantor, who was naturally anxious, didn't feel reassured by being so close to the three strange white men. When he heard Hanson’s rifle, he turned and strolled away, moving with his long, swinging gait. He was nowhere to be found when Korak came back to look for him. However, the ape-man wasn't too worried about his friend's absence. Tantor often wandered off unexpectedly. They could go a whole month without seeing each other because Korak rarely bothered to follow the large creature, and he didn’t this time either. Instead, he found a comfy spot in a big tree and soon fell asleep.
At the bungalow Bwana had met the returning adventurers on the verandah. In a moment of wakefulness he had heard the report of Hanson’s rifle far out across the plain, and wondered what it might mean. Presently it had occurred to him that the man whom he considered in the light of a guest might have met with an accident on his way back to camp, so he had arisen and gone to his foreman’s quarters where he had learned that Hanson had been there earlier in the evening but had departed several hours before. Returning from the foreman’s quarters Bwana had noticed that the corral gate was open and further investigation revealed the fact that Meriem’s pony was gone and also the one most often used by Baynes. Instantly Bwana assumed that the shot had been fired by Hon. Morison, and had again aroused his foreman and was making preparations to set forth in investigation when he had seen the party approaching across the plain.
At the bungalow, Bwana had met the returning adventurers on the porch. In a moment of alertness, he’d heard the sound of Hanson’s rifle far out across the plain and wondered what it could signify. Eventually, it occurred to him that the person he thought of as a guest might have gotten into an accident on his way back to camp, so he got up and went to his foreman’s quarters where he found out that Hanson had been there earlier in the evening but had left several hours ago. On his way back from the foreman’s quarters, Bwana noticed that the corral gate was open and further investigation showed that Meriem’s pony was missing, along with the one most frequently used by Baynes. Immediately, Bwana assumed that the shot had been fired by Hon. Morison, and he roused his foreman again and started preparing to set out to investigate when he saw the group approaching across the plain.
Explanation on the part of the Englishman met a rather chilly reception from his host. Meriem was silent. She saw that Bwana was angry with her. It was the first time and she was heart broken.
Explanation from the Englishman was met with a rather cold response from his host. Meriem was quiet. She could see that Bwana was upset with her. It was the first time this had happened, and she was heartbroken.
“Go to your room, Meriem,” he said; “and Baynes, if you will step into my study, I’d like to have a word with you in a moment.”
“Go to your room, Meriem,” he said; “and Baynes, if you could come into my study, I’d like to talk to you for a minute.”
He stepped toward Hanson as the others turned to obey him. There was something about Bwana even in his gentlest moods that commanded instant obedience.
He moved toward Hanson as the others turned to follow him. There was something about Bwana, even in his softest moments, that demanded immediate compliance.
“How did you happen to be with them, Hanson?” he asked.
“How did you end up with them, Hanson?” he asked.
“I’d been sitting in the garden,” replied the trader, “after leaving Jervis’ quarters. I have a habit of doing that as your lady probably knows. Tonight I fell asleep behind a bush, and was awakened by them two spooning. I couldn’t hear what they said, but presently Baynes brings two ponies and they ride off. I didn’t like to interfere for it wasn’t any of my business, but I knew they hadn’t ought to be ridin’ about that time of night, leastways not the girl—it wasn’t right and it wasn’t safe. So I follows them and it’s just as well I did. Baynes was gettin’ away from the lion as fast as he could, leavin’ the girl to take care of herself, when I got a lucky shot into the beast’s shoulder that fixed him.”
“I had been sitting in the garden,” replied the trader, “after leaving Jervis’ place. I tend to do that as your lady probably knows. Tonight I nodded off behind a bush and was woken up by those two cuddling. I couldn’t hear what they were saying, but soon Baynes brought two ponies and they rode off. I didn’t want to interfere because it wasn’t my business, but I knew they shouldn’t be out riding at that time of night, especially not the girl—it wasn’t right and it wasn’t safe. So I followed them, and it's a good thing I did. Baynes was trying to get away from the lion as fast as he could, leaving the girl to fend for herself, when I got a lucky shot into the beast’s shoulder that took care of it.”
Hanson paused. Both men were silent for a time. Presently the trader coughed in an embarrassed manner as though there was something on his mind he felt in duty bound to say, but hated to.
Hanson stopped. Both men were quiet for a moment. Soon, the trader cleared his throat awkwardly, like he had something on his mind that he felt he needed to say but really didn’t want to.
“What is it, Hanson?” asked Bwana. “You were about to say something weren’t you?”
“What’s going on, Hanson?” asked Bwana. “You were about to say something, right?”
“Well, you see it’s like this,” ventured Hanson. “Bein’ around here evenings a good deal I’ve seen them two together a lot, and, beggin’ your pardon, sir, but I don’t think Mr. Baynes means the girl any good. I’ve overheard enough to make me think he’s tryin’ to get her to run off with him.” Hanson, to fit his own ends, hit nearer the truth than he knew. He was afraid that Baynes would interfere with his own plans, and he had hit upon a scheme to both utilize the young Englishman and get rid of him at the same time.
"Well, here’s the deal," Hanson said. "Since I spend a lot of evenings around here, I've seen those two together quite a bit, and, no offense, sir, but I don’t think Mr. Baynes has the girl's best interests at heart. I've overheard enough to make me believe he’s trying to convince her to run away with him." Hanson, aiming for his own interests, was closer to the truth than he realized. He was worried that Baynes would mess with his plans, and he had come up with a scheme to both use the young Englishman and get rid of him at the same time.
“And I thought,” continued the trader, “that inasmuch as I’m about due to move you might like to suggest to Mr. Baynes that he go with me. I’d be willin’ to take him north to the caravan trails as a favor to you, sir.”
“And I thought,” continued the trader, “that since I’m about to leave, you might want to suggest to Mr. Baynes that he come with me. I’d be happy to take him north to the caravan trails as a favor to you, sir.”
Bwana stood in deep thought for a moment. Presently he looked up.
Bwana stood in deep thought for a moment. Then he looked up.
“Of course, Hanson, Mr. Baynes is my guest,” he said, a grim twinkle in his eye. “Really I cannot accuse him of planning to run away with Meriem on the evidence that we have, and as he is my guest I should hate to be so discourteous as to ask him to leave; but, if I recall his words correctly, it seems to me that he has spoken of returning home, and I am sure that nothing would delight him more than going north with you—you say you start tomorrow? I think Mr. Baynes will accompany you. Drop over in the morning, if you please, and now good night, and thank you for keeping a watchful eye on Meriem.”
“Sure, Hanson, Mr. Baynes is my guest,” he said, a grim glint in his eye. “I really can’t claim he’s planning to run away with Meriem based on the evidence we have, and since he’s my guest, I wouldn’t want to be rude by asking him to leave; but if I remember correctly, he has mentioned wanting to go home, and I'm sure he’d love to head north with you—you said you’re leaving tomorrow? I think Mr. Baynes will join you. Please swing by in the morning, and now good night, and thanks for keeping an eye on Meriem.”
Hanson hid a grin as he turned and sought his saddle. Bwana stepped from the verandah to his study, where he found the Hon. Morison pacing back and forth, evidently very ill at ease.
Hanson stifled a grin as he turned and grabbed his saddle. Bwana walked from the porch into his study, where he found the Hon. Morison pacing nervously back and forth.
“Baynes,” said Bwana, coming directly to the point, “Hanson is leaving for the north tomorrow. He has taken a great fancy to you, and just asked me to say to you that he’d be glad to have you accompany him. Good night, Baynes.”
“Baynes,” said Bwana, getting straight to the point, “Hanson is heading up north tomorrow. He really likes you and just asked me to tell you that he’d love for you to join him. Good night, Baynes.”
At Bwana’s suggestion Meriem kept to her room the following morning until after the Hon. Morison Baynes had departed. Hanson had come for him early—in fact he had remained all night with the foreman, Jervis, that they might get an early start.
At Bwana's suggestion, Meriem stayed in her room the next morning until the Hon. Morison Baynes had left. Hanson had come to get him early—in fact, he had stayed all night with the foreman, Jervis, so they could get a head start.
The farewell exchanges between the Hon. Morison and his host were of the most formal type, and when at last the guest rode away Bwana breathed a sigh of relief. It had been an unpleasant duty and he was glad that it was over; but he did not regret his action. He had not been blind to Baynes’ infatuation for Meriem, and knowing the young man’s pride in caste he had never for a moment believed that his guest would offer his name to this nameless Arab girl, for, extremely light in color though she was for a full blood Arab, Bwana believed her to be such.
The goodbye exchanges between the Hon. Morison and his host were very formal, and when the guest finally rode off, Bwana let out a sigh of relief. It had been an uncomfortable task, and he was glad it was over; however, he didn’t regret his decision. He had noticed Baynes’ obsession with Meriem, and knowing the young man’s pride in his social status, he never for a moment thought that his guest would propose to this unnamed Arab girl. Even though she was very light-skinned for a pure Arab, Bwana believed that she was one.
He did not mention the subject again to Meriem, and in this he made a mistake, for the young girl, while realizing the debt of gratitude she owed Bwana and My Dear, was both proud and sensitive, so that Bwana’s action in sending Baynes away and giving her no opportunity to explain or defend hurt and mortified her. Also it did much toward making a martyr of Baynes in her eyes and arousing in her breast a keen feeling of loyalty toward him.
He didn't bring up the topic again with Meriem, and that was a mistake. The young girl, while aware of the gratitude she owed Bwana and My Dear, was both proud and sensitive. Bwana's decision to send Baynes away and not give her a chance to explain or defend herself hurt her deeply. It also made her see Baynes as more of a martyr and sparked a strong sense of loyalty toward him.
What she had half-mistaken for love before, she now wholly mistook for love. Bwana and My Dear might have told her much of the social barriers that they only too well knew Baynes must feel existed between Meriem and himself, but they hesitated to wound her. It would have been better had they inflicted this lesser sorrow, and saved the child the misery that was to follow because of her ignorance.
What she had once partially confused for love, she now completely misidentified as love. Bwana and My Dear might have explained to her the social barriers that they knew Baynes felt existed between Meriem and himself, but they hesitated to hurt her feelings. It would have been better if they had caused this smaller pain and spared the girl the suffering that was to come because of her lack of understanding.
As Hanson and Baynes rode toward the former’s camp the Englishman maintained a morose silence. The other was attempting to formulate an opening that would lead naturally to the proposition he had in mind. He rode a neck behind his companion, grinning as he noted the sullen scowl upon the other’s patrician face.
As Hanson and Baynes rode toward Hansen's camp, the Englishman stayed silent and gloomy. Baynes tried to find a way to start a conversation that would smoothly lead to the idea he had. He rode a neck behind his companion, grinning as he noticed the unhappy frown on the other’s aristocratic face.
“Rather rough on you, wasn’t he?” he ventured at last, jerking his head back in the direction of the bungalow as Baynes turned his eyes upon him at the remark. “He thinks a lot of the girl,” continued Hanson, “and don’t want nobody to marry her and take her away; but it looks to me as though he was doin’ her more harm than good in sendin’ you away. She ought to marry some time, and she couldn’t do better than a fine young gentleman like you.”
“Pretty harsh on you, wasn’t he?” he finally said, nodding back toward the bungalow as Baynes turned to look at him after the comment. “He cares a lot about the girl,” Hanson continued, “and doesn’t want anyone to marry her and take her away; but it seems to me like he’s doing her more harm than good by sending you away. She should get married eventually, and she couldn’t do better than a great young guy like you.”
Baynes, who had at first felt inclined to take offense at the mention of his private affairs by this common fellow, was mollified by Hanson’s final remark, and immediately commenced to see in him a man of fine discrimination.
Baynes, who initially felt offended by this common guy bringing up his private matters, was softened by Hanson’s last comment and started to see him as a person of great insight.
“He’s a darned bounder,” grumbled the Hon. Morison; “but I’ll get even with him. He may be the whole thing in Central Africa but I’m as big as he is in London, and he’ll find it out when he comes home.”
“He's such a jerk,” complained the Hon. Morison; “but I'll get back at him. He might be a big deal in Central Africa, but I'm just as important as he is in London, and he'll realize it when he returns.”
“If I was you,” said Hanson, “I wouldn’t let any man keep me from gettin’ the girl I want. Between you and me I ain’t got no use for him either, and if I can help you any way just call on me.”
“If I were you,” said Hanson, “I wouldn’t let any guy stop me from getting the girl I want. Honestly, I’m not a fan of him either, and if I can help you in any way, just reach out to me.”
“It’s mighty good of you, Hanson,” replied Baynes, warming up a bit; “but what can a fellow do here in this God-forsaken hole?”
“It’s really nice of you, Hanson,” replied Baynes, starting to feel a bit more comfortable; “but what can someone do here in this miserable place?”
“I know what I’d do,” said Hanson. “I’d take the girl along with me. If she loves you she’ll go, all right.”
“I know what I’d do,” Hanson said. “I’d take the girl with me. If she loves you, she’ll go for sure.”
“It can’t be done,” said Baynes. “He bosses this whole blooming country for miles around. He’d be sure to catch us.”
“It can’t be done,” said Baynes. “He runs this whole damn area for miles around. He’d definitely catch us.”
“No, he wouldn’t, not with me running things,” said Hanson. “I’ve been trading and hunting here for ten years and I know as much about the country as he does. If you want to take the girl along I’ll help you, and I’ll guarantee that there won’t nobody catch up with us before we reach the coast. I’ll tell you what, you write her a note and I’ll get it to her by my head man. Ask her to meet you to say goodbye—she won’t refuse that. In the meantime we can be movin’ camp a little further north all the time and you can make arrangements with her to be all ready on a certain night. Tell her I’ll meet her then while you wait for us in camp. That’ll be better for I know the country well and can cover it quicker than you. You can take care of the safari and be movin’ along slow toward the north and the girl and I’ll catch up to you.”
“No, he won’t, not with me in charge,” said Hanson. “I’ve been trading and hunting here for ten years, and I know this area as well as he does. If you want to take the girl with you, I’ll help, and I guarantee no one will catch up to us before we reach the coast. Here’s the plan: write her a note, and I’ll get it to her through my right-hand man. Ask her to meet you to say goodbye—she won’t say no to that. In the meantime, we can keep moving our camp slightly north, and you can make arrangements with her to be ready on a specific night. Tell her I’ll meet her then while you wait for us at camp. That’ll work better because I know the area well and can cover the distance faster than you. You can handle the safari and move slowly north, and the girl and I will catch up to you.”
“But suppose she won’t come?” suggested Baynes.
"But what if she doesn't come?" Baynes suggested.
“Then make another date for a last good-bye,” said Hanson, “and instead of you I’ll be there and I’ll bring her along anyway. She’ll have to come, and after it’s all over she won’t feel so bad about it—especially after livin’ with you for two months while we’re makin’ the coast.”
“Then set up another date for a final goodbye,” said Hanson, “and instead of you, I’ll be there and I’ll bring her along anyway. She’ll have to come, and after it’s all over, she won’t feel so bad about it—especially after living with you for two months while we’re making our way to the coast.”
A shocked and angry protest rose to Baynes’ lips; but he did not utter it, for almost simultaneously came the realization that this was practically the same thing he had been planning upon himself. It had sounded brutal and criminal from the lips of the rough trader; but nevertheless the young Englishman saw that with Hanson’s help and his knowledge of African travel the possibilities of success would be much greater than as though the Hon. Morison were to attempt the thing single handed. And so he nodded a glum assent.
A shocked and angry protest rose to Baynes' lips, but he held it back, realizing that this was pretty much the same thing he had been planning himself. It had sounded brutal and wrong coming from the rough trader, but still, the young Englishman recognized that with Hanson's help and his own knowledge of African travel, the chances of success would be much higher than if the Hon. Morison tried to do it alone. So he nodded in reluctant agreement.
The balance of the long ride to Hanson’s northerly camp was made in silence, for both men were occupied with their own thoughts, most of which were far from being either complimentary or loyal to the other. As they rode through the wood the sounds of their careless passage came to the ears of another jungle wayfarer. The Killer had determined to come back to the place where he had seen the white girl who took to the trees with the ability of long habitude. There was a compelling something in the recollection of her that drew him irresistibly toward her. He wished to see her by the light of day, to see her features, to see the color of her eyes and hair. It seemed to him that she must bear a strong resemblance to his lost Meriem, and yet he knew that the chances were that she did not. The fleeting glimpse that he had had of her in the moonlight as she swung from the back of her plunging pony into the branches of the tree above her had shown him a girl of about the same height as his Meriem; but of a more rounded and developed femininity.
The ride to Hanson’s northern camp was quiet, as both men were lost in their own thoughts, which weren't exactly kind or loyal to each other. As they made their way through the woods, their careless sounds caught the attention of another traveler in the jungle. The Killer had decided to return to the spot where he had seen the white girl who climbed trees like she had been doing it forever. There was something about the memory of her that irresistibly pulled him toward her. He wanted to see her in daylight, to take in her features, and to notice the color of her eyes and hair. He felt she must look a lot like his lost Meriem, even though he knew it was unlikely. The brief sight he had of her in the moonlight, as she swung from her frenzied pony into the branches above, had shown him a girl about the same height as his Meriem, but with a more rounded and developed femininity.
Now he was moving lazily back in the direction of the spot where he had seen the girl when the sounds of the approaching horsemen came to his sharp ears. He moved stealthily through the branches until he came within sight of the riders. The younger man he instantly recognized as the same he had seen with his arms about the girl in the moonlit glade just the instant before Numa charged. The other he did not recognize though there was a familiarity about his carriage and figure that puzzled Korak.
Now he was moving slowly back toward the place where he had seen the girl when the sounds of the approaching horsemen reached his keen ears. He crept quietly through the branches until he could see the riders. He immediately recognized the younger man as the same one he had seen with his arms around the girl in the moonlit clearing just before Numa charged. The other man was unfamiliar to him, but something about his posture and figure puzzled Korak.
The ape-man decided that to find the girl again he would but have to keep in touch with the young Englishman, and so he fell in behind the pair, following them to Hanson’s camp. Here the Hon. Morison penned a brief note, which Hanson gave into the keeping of one of his boys who started off forthwith toward the south.
The ape-man figured that to find the girl again, he just needed to stay in touch with the young Englishman. So, he trailed behind the two of them, following them to Hanson’s camp. There, the Hon. Morison wrote a quick note, which Hanson handed to one of his boys, who took off immediately towards the south.
Korak remained in the vicinity of the camp, keeping a careful watch upon the Englishman. He had half expected to find the girl at the destination of the two riders and had been disappointed when no sign of her materialized about the camp.
Korak stayed close to the camp, keeping a close eye on the Englishman. He had half hoped to see the girl where the two riders had gone and felt let down when there was no sign of her around the camp.
Baynes was restless, pacing back and forth beneath the trees when he should have been resting against the forced marches of the coming flight. Hanson lay in his hammock and smoked. They spoke but little. Korak lay stretched upon a branch among the dense foliage above them. Thus passed the balance of the afternoon. Korak became hungry and thirsty. He doubted that either of the men would leave camp now before morning, so he withdrew, but toward the south, for there it seemed most likely the girl still was.
Baynes was restless, walking back and forth under the trees when he should have been resting for the grueling journey ahead. Hanson was lying in his hammock, smoking. They barely talked. Korak was stretched out on a branch in the thick leaves above them. This is how the rest of the afternoon went by. Korak got hungry and thirsty. He figured that neither of the men would leave camp before morning, so he decided to head south, where it seemed most likely that the girl still was.
In the garden beside the bungalow Meriem wandered thoughtfully in the moonlight. She still smarted from Bwana’s, to her, unjust treatment of the Hon. Morison Baynes. Nothing had been explained to her, for both Bwana and My Dear had wished to spare her the mortification and sorrow of the true explanation of Baynes’ proposal. They knew, as Meriem did not, that the man had no intention of marrying her, else he would have come directly to Bwana, knowing full well that no objection would be interposed if Meriem really cared for him.
In the garden next to the bungalow, Meriem wandered thoughtfully in the moonlight. She was still hurt by Bwana’s, what she felt was, unfair treatment of the Hon. Morison Baynes. No one had explained anything to her because both Bwana and My Dear wanted to protect her from the embarrassment and pain of the real reason behind Baynes’ proposal. They knew, unlike Meriem, that the man had no intention of marrying her. If he had, he would have gone directly to Bwana, knowing that there would be no objections if Meriem truly cared for him.
Meriem loved them both and was grateful to them for all that they had done for her; but deep in her little heart surged the savage love of liberty that her years of untrammeled freedom in the jungle had made part and parcel of her being. Now, for the first time since she had come to them, Meriem felt like a prisoner in the bungalow of Bwana and My Dear.
Meriem loved both of them and was thankful for everything they had done for her; but deep down in her heart was the fierce desire for freedom that her years of unrestricted life in the jungle had become an essential part of her. Now, for the first time since she had arrived, Meriem felt like a prisoner in Bwana and My Dear's bungalow.
Like a caged tigress the girl paced the length of the enclosure. Once she paused near the outer fence, her head upon one side—listening. What was it she had heard? The pad of naked human feet just beyond the garden. She listened for a moment. The sound was not repeated. Then she resumed her restless walking. Down to the opposite end of the garden she passed, turned and retraced her steps toward the upper end. Upon the sward near the bushes that hid the fence, full in the glare of the moonlight, lay a white envelope that had not been there when she had turned almost upon the very spot a moment before.
Like a caged tigress, the girl paced back and forth in the enclosure. She paused near the outer fence, tilting her head to one side—listening. What had she heard? The sound of bare human feet just beyond the garden. She listened for a moment. The sound didn’t come again. Then she resumed her restless walking. She moved to the opposite end of the garden, turned, and walked back toward the upper end. On the grass near the bushes that concealed the fence, fully illuminated by the moonlight, was a white envelope that hadn’t been there just moments before when she turned in that very spot.
Meriem stopped short in her tracks, listening again, and sniffing—more than ever the tigress; alert, ready. Beyond the bushes a naked black runner squatted, peering through the foliage. He saw her take a step closer to the letter. She had seen it. He rose quietly and following the shadows of the bushes that ran down to the corral was soon gone from sight.
Meriem came to a sudden stop, listening carefully and sniffing—more than ever like a tigress; alert, prepared. Beyond the bushes, a bare black runner crouched, looking through the leaves. He noticed her take a step closer to the letter. She had spotted it. He quietly stood up and, following the shadows of the bushes leading down to the corral, quickly disappeared from view.
Meriem’s trained ears heard his every move. She made no attempt to seek closer knowledge of his identity. Already she had guessed that he was a messenger from the Hon. Morison. She stooped and picked up the envelope. Tearing it open she easily read the contents by the moon’s brilliant light. It was, as she had guessed, from Baynes.
Meriem’s sharp ears picked up on every move he made. She didn’t try to find out who he was. She already suspected he was a messenger from the Hon. Morison. She bent down and picked up the envelope. As she tore it open, she read the contents easily by the bright light of the moon. It was, as she had thought, from Baynes.
“I cannot go without seeing you again,” it read. “Come to the clearing early tomorrow morning and say good-bye to me. Come alone.”
“I can’t go without seeing you again,” it said. “Meet me at the clearing early tomorrow morning to say goodbye. Come alone.”
There was a little more—words that made her heart beat faster and a happy flush mount her cheek.
There was a little more—words that caused her heart to race and a happy flush to rise in her cheeks.
XX.
It was still dark when the Hon. Morison Baynes set forth for the trysting place. He insisted upon having a guide, saying that he was not sure that he could find his way back to the little clearing. As a matter of fact the thought of that lonely ride through the darkness before the sun rose had been too much for his courage, and he craved company. A black, therefore, preceded him on foot. Behind and above him came Korak, whom the noise in the camp had awakened.
It was still dark when the Hon. Morison Baynes set out for the meeting spot. He insisted on having a guide, saying he wasn’t sure he could find his way back to the small clearing. The truth was that the idea of that lonely ride through the darkness before sunrise had been too daunting for him, and he wanted some company. So, a black man led the way on foot. Behind and above him was Korak, who had been roused by the noise in the camp.
It was nine o’clock before Baynes drew rein in the clearing. Meriem had not yet arrived. The black lay down to rest. Baynes lolled in his saddle. Korak stretched himself comfortably upon a lofty limb, where he could watch those beneath him without being seen.
It was nine o’clock when Baynes pulled up in the clearing. Meriem hadn’t shown up yet. The black horse lay down to rest. Baynes relaxed in his saddle. Korak settled comfortably on a high branch, where he could keep an eye on those below without being noticed.
An hour passed. Baynes gave evidence of nervousness. Korak had already guessed that the young Englishman had come here to meet another, nor was he at all in doubt as to the identity of that other. The Killer was perfectly satisfied that he was soon again to see the nimble she who had so forcefully reminded him of Meriem.
An hour went by. Baynes showed signs of being nervous. Korak had already figured out that the young Englishman was here to meet someone else, and he had no doubt about who that someone was. The Killer was completely sure that he would soon see the quick-witted woman who had so strongly reminded him of Meriem.
Presently the sound of an approaching horse came to Korak’s ears. She was coming! She had almost reached the clearing before Baynes became aware of her presence, and then as he looked up, the foliage parted to the head and shoulders of her mount and Meriem rode into view. Baynes spurred to meet her. Korak looked searchingly down upon her, mentally anathematizing the broad-brimmed hat that hid her features from his eyes. She was abreast the Englishman now. Korak saw the man take both her hands and draw her close to his breast. He saw the man’s face concealed for a moment beneath the same broad brim that hid the girl’s. He could imagine their lips meeting, and a twinge of sorrow and sweet recollection combined to close his eyes for an instant in that involuntary muscular act with which we attempt to shut out from the mind’s eye harrowing reflections.
Right now, the sound of an approaching horse reached Korak’s ears. She was coming! She had nearly reached the clearing before Baynes noticed her, and then as he looked up, the foliage parted to reveal the head and shoulders of her horse, and Meriem rode into view. Baynes spurred his horse to meet her. Korak looked down at her intently, mentally cursing the broad-brimmed hat that shielded her features from him. She was now alongside the Englishman. Korak saw the man take both her hands and pull her close to him. He saw the man’s face disappear for a moment beneath the same broad brim that covered the girl’s. He could picture their lips meeting, and a mix of sorrow and sweet memories made him close his eyes for a moment in that involuntary reaction we have to block out painful thoughts.
When he looked again they had drawn apart and were conversing earnestly. Korak could see the man urging something. It was equally evident that the girl was holding back. There were many of her gestures, and the way in which she tossed her head up and to the right, tip-tilting her chin, that reminded Korak still more strongly of Meriem. And then the conversation was over and the man took the girl in his arms again to kiss her good-bye. She turned and rode toward the point from which she had come. The man sat on his horse watching her. At the edge of the jungle she turned to wave him a final farewell.
When he looked again, they had pulled apart and were talking seriously. Korak could see the guy trying to convince her of something. It was also clear that the girl was reluctant. Many of her gestures, and the way she tilted her head up and to the right, reminded Korak even more of Meriem. Then the conversation ended, and the man took the girl in his arms again to kiss her goodbye. She turned and rode back toward where she had come from. The man sat on his horse, watching her. At the edge of the jungle, she turned to wave him a final goodbye.
“Tonight!” she cried, throwing back her head as she called the words to him across the little distance which separated them—throwing back her head and revealing her face for the first time to the eyes of The Killer in the tree above. Korak started as though pierced through the heart with an arrow. He trembled and shook like a leaf. He closed his eyes, pressing his palms across them, and then he opened them again and looked but the girl was gone—only the waving foliage of the jungle’s rim marked where she had disappeared. It was impossible! It could not be true! And yet, with his own eyes he had seen his Meriem—older a little, with figure more rounded by nearer maturity, and subtly changed in other ways; more beautiful than ever, yet still his little Meriem. Yes, he had seen the dead alive again; he had seen his Meriem in the flesh. She lived! She had not died! He had seen her—he had seen his Meriem—IN THE ARMS OF ANOTHER MAN! And that man sat below him now, within easy reach. Korak, The Killer, fondled his heavy spear. He played with the grass rope dangling from his gee-string. He stroked the hunting knife at his hip. And the man beneath him called to his drowsy guide, bent the rein to his pony’s neck and moved off toward the north. Still sat Korak, The Killer, alone among the trees. Now his hands hung idly at his sides. His weapons and what he had intended were forgotten for the moment. Korak was thinking. He had noted that subtle change in Meriem. When last he had seen her she had been his little, half-naked Mangani—wild, savage, and uncouth. She had not seemed uncouth to him then; but now, in the change that had come over her, he knew that such she had been; yet no more uncouth than he, and he was still uncouth.
“Tonight!” she shouted, throwing her head back as she called to him across the short distance that separated them—throwing her head back and revealing her face for the first time to the eyes of The Killer in the tree above. Korak flinched as if struck through the heart by an arrow. He trembled and shook like a leaf. He shut his eyes, pressing his palms against them, and then opened them again, but the girl was gone—only the swaying leaves of the jungle’s edge showed where she had disappeared. It was impossible! It couldn’t be true! And yet, with his own eyes, he had seen his Meriem—she was a bit older, with a figure more rounded by approaching maturity and subtly changed in other ways; more beautiful than ever, yet still his little Meriem. Yes, he had seen the dead alive again; he had seen his Meriem in the flesh. She lived! She hadn’t died! He had seen her—he had seen his Meriem—IN THE ARMS OF ANOTHER MAN! And that man sat below him now, within easy reach. Korak, The Killer, toyed with his heavy spear. He fiddled with the grass rope hanging from his waist. He caressed the hunting knife at his hip. And the man beneath him called to his sleepy guide, pulled the reins to his pony’s neck, and moved off toward the north. Still, Korak, The Killer, sat alone among the trees. Now his hands hung idly at his sides. His weapons and what he had intended were forgotten for the moment. Korak was thinking. He had noticed that subtle change in Meriem. The last time he had seen her, she had been his little, half-naked Mangani—wild, savage, and uncouth. She hadn’t seemed uncouth to him then; but now, with the change that had come over her, he realized that she had been; yet no more uncouth than he, and he was still uncouth.
In her had taken place the change. In her he had just seen a sweet and lovely flower of refinement and civilization, and he shuddered as he recalled the fate that he himself had planned for her—to be the mate of an ape-man, his mate, in the savage jungle. Then he had seen no wrong in it, for he had loved her, and the way he had planned had been the way of the jungle which they two had chosen as their home; but now, after having seen the Meriem of civilized attire, he realized the hideousness of his once cherished plan, and he thanked God that chance and the blacks of Kovudoo had thwarted him.
In her, the change had occurred. In her, he had just seen a sweet and lovely flower of refinement and civilization, and he shuddered as he remembered the fate he had envisioned for her—to be the partner of an ape-man, his partner, in the savage jungle. At the time, he saw nothing wrong with it because he loved her, and the way he had planned seemed fitting for the jungle they had chosen as their home; but now, after seeing the Meriem in civilized clothing, he realized the horrible nature of his once cherished plan, and he thanked God that chance and the people of Kovudoo had stopped him.
Yet he still loved her, and jealousy seared his soul as he recalled the sight of her in the arms of the dapper young Englishman. What were his intentions toward her? Did he really love her? How could one not love her? And she loved him, of that Korak had had ample proof. Had she not loved him she would not have accepted his kisses. His Meriem loved another! For a long time he let that awful truth sink deep, and from it he tried to reason out his future plan of action. In his heart was a great desire to follow the man and slay him; but ever there rose in his consciousness the thought: She loves him. Could he slay the creature Meriem loved? Sadly he shook his head. No, he could not. Then came a partial decision to follow Meriem and speak with her. He half started, and then glanced down at his nakedness and was ashamed. He, the son of a British peer, had thus thrown away his life, had thus degraded himself to the level of a beast that he was ashamed to go to the woman he loved and lay his love at her feet. He was ashamed to go to the little Arab maid who had been his jungle playmate, for what had he to offer her?
Yet he still loved her, and jealousy burned in his soul as he remembered seeing her in the arms of the stylish young Englishman. What were his intentions with her? Did he really love her? How could anyone not love her? And she loved him, of that Korak was sure. If she hadn’t loved him, she wouldn’t have accepted his kisses. His Meriem loved someone else! For a long time, he let that awful truth sink in, and from it, he tried to figure out his future plan. Deep down, he had a strong desire to track the man down and kill him; but the thought kept coming to his mind: She loves him. Could he really kill the man Meriem loved? Sadly, he shook his head. No, he couldn’t. Then he partially decided to follow Meriem and talk to her. He started to move, but then glanced down at his nakedness and felt ashamed. He, the son of a British noble, had thrown away his life like this, degrading himself to the point where he was ashamed to go to the woman he loved and express his feelings. He felt ashamed to approach the little Arab girl who had been his jungle playmate, for what did he have to offer her?
For years circumstances had prevented a return to his father and mother, and at last pride had stepped in and expunged from his mind the last vestige of any intention to return. In a spirit of boyish adventure he had cast his lot with the jungle ape. The killing of the crook in the coast inn had filled his childish mind with terror of the law, and driven him deeper into the wilds. The rebuffs that he had met at the hands of men, both black and white, had had their effect upon his mind while yet it was in a formative state, and easily influenced.
For years, circumstances had kept him from returning to his father and mother, and eventually, pride took over and wiped out any last thought of going back. In a spirit of youthful adventure, he chose to align himself with the jungle apes. The killing of the crook at the coastal inn had filled his young mind with fear of the law and pushed him further into the wilderness. The rejections he faced from both black and white men impacted his mind while it was still developing and easily swayed.
He had come to believe that the hand of man was against him, and then he had found in Meriem the only human association he required or craved. When she had been snatched from him his sorrow had been so deep that the thought of ever mingling again with human beings grew still more unutterably distasteful. Finally and for all time, he thought, the die was cast. Of his own volition he had become a beast, a beast he had lived, a beast he would die.
He had come to believe that people were against him, and then he found in Meriem the only human connection he needed or desired. When she had been taken from him, his grief was so intense that the idea of ever interacting with other people again became even more unbearable. He finally thought, once and for all, that the decision was made. He had chosen to become an animal, an animal he had lived as, and an animal he would die as.
Now that it was too late, he regretted it. For now Meriem, still living, had been revealed to him in a guise of progress and advancement that had carried her completely out of his life. Death itself could not have further removed her from him. In her new world she loved a man of her own kind. And Korak knew that it was right. She was not for him—not for the naked, savage ape. No, she was not for him; but he still was hers. If he could not have her and happiness, he would at least do all that lay in his power to assure happiness to her. He would follow the young Englishman. In the first place he would know that he meant Meriem no harm, and after that, though jealousy wrenched his heart, he would watch over the man Meriem loved, for Meriem’s sake; but God help that man if he thought to wrong her!
Now that it was too late, he regretted it. Meriem, still alive, had shown herself to him in a form of progress and growth that had completely taken her out of his life. Death itself couldn't have separated her from him any more than this. In her new world, she loved a man of her own kind. And Korak knew that this was right. She wasn’t for him—not for the naked, wild ape. No, she wasn’t for him; but he was still hers. If he couldn’t have her and happiness, he would at least do everything in his power to ensure her happiness. He would follow the young Englishman. First, he needed to make sure that he meant Meriem no harm. After that, even though jealousy tore at his heart, he would watch over the man Meriem loved, for her sake; but God help that man if he ever thought to hurt her!
Slowly he aroused himself. He stood erect and stretched his great frame, the muscles of his arms gliding sinuously beneath his tanned skin as he bent his clenched fists behind his head. A movement on the ground beneath caught his eye. An antelope was entering the clearing. Immediately Korak became aware that he was empty—again he was a beast. For a moment love had lifted him to sublime heights of honor and renunciation.
Slowly he woke up. He stood tall and stretched his big body, the muscles in his arms moving smoothly under his tanned skin as he clasped his fists behind his head. Something on the ground caught his eye. An antelope was walking into the clearing. In an instant, Korak realized he felt empty—once more, he was just a beast. For a brief moment, love had raised him to incredible levels of honor and selflessness.
The antelope was crossing the clearing. Korak dropped to the ground upon the opposite side of the tree, and so lightly that not even the sensitive ears of the antelope apprehended his presence. He uncoiled his grass rope—it was the latest addition to his armament, yet he was proficient with it. Often he traveled with nothing more than his knife and his rope—they were light and easy to carry. His spear and bow and arrows were cumbersome and he usually kept one or all of them hidden away in a private cache.
The antelope was crossing the open space. Korak dropped down on the other side of the tree, moving so quietly that even the antelope's keen ears didn’t notice him. He unraveled his grass rope—it was the newest tool in his collection, but he was skilled with it. Often, he traveled with just his knife and rope—they were light and easy to carry. His spear, bow, and arrows were bulky, so he usually kept one or all of them tucked away in a hidden spot.
Now he held a single coil of the long rope in his right hand, and the balance in his left. The antelope was but a few paces from him. Silently Korak leaped from his hiding place swinging the rope free from the entangling shrubbery. The antelope sprang away almost instantly; but instantly, too, the coiled rope, with its sliding noose, flew through the air above him. With unerring precision it settled about the creature’s neck. There was a quick wrist movement of the thrower, the noose tightened. The Killer braced himself with the rope across his hip, and as the antelope tautened the singing strands in a last frantic bound for liberty he was thrown over upon his back.
Now he held one end of the long rope in his right hand and the other end in his left. The antelope was just a few steps away from him. Silently, Korak jumped from his hiding spot, swinging the rope free from the bushes. The antelope took off almost immediately, but at the same moment, the coiled rope, with its sliding noose, flew through the air above him. With perfect aim, it settled around the animal's neck. A quick flick of the wrist tightened the noose. The Killer braced himself with the rope across his hip, and as the antelope strained against the taut strands in a final desperate attempt to escape, he was thrown onto his back.
Then, instead of approaching the fallen animal as a roper of the western plains might do, Korak dragged his captive to himself, pulling him in hand over hand, and when he was within reach leaping upon him even as Sheeta the panther might have done, and burying his teeth in the animal’s neck while he found its heart with the point of his hunting knife. Recoiling his rope, he cut a few generous strips from his kill and took to the trees again, where he ate in peace. Later he swung off in the direction of a nearby water hole, and then he slept.
Then, instead of approaching the fallen animal like a cowboy from the plains, Korak pulled his catch toward himself, reeling him in hand over hand. Once he was close enough, he jumped on him just like Sheeta the panther would have, sinking his teeth into the animal's neck while he used the tip of his hunting knife to find its heart. After reeling in his rope, he cut a few generous strips from his kill and climbed back into the trees, where he ate in peace. Later, he headed toward a nearby water hole, and then he slept.
In his mind, of course, was the suggestion of another meeting between Meriem and the young Englishman that had been borne to him by the girl’s parting: “Tonight!”
In his mind, of course, was the idea of another meeting between Meriem and the young Englishman that had been brought to him by the girl's farewell: "Tonight!"
He had not followed Meriem because he knew from the direction from which she had come and in which she returned that wheresoever she had found an asylum it lay out across the plains and not wishing to be discovered by the girl he had not cared to venture into the open after her. It would do as well to keep in touch with the young man, and that was precisely what he intended doing.
He hadn’t followed Meriem because he knew from the direction she had come from and the way she returned that wherever she had found shelter was out across the plains. Not wanting to be seen by her, he didn’t bother to go out into the open after her. It was just as good to stay connected with the young man, and that was exactly what he planned to do.
To you or me the possibility of locating the Hon. Morison in the jungle after having permitted him to get such a considerable start might have seemed remote; but to Korak it was not at all so. He guessed that the white man would return to his camp; but should he have done otherwise it would be a simple matter to The Killer to trail a mounted man accompanied by another on foot. Days might pass and still such a spoor would be sufficiently plain to lead Korak unfalteringly to its end; while a matter of a few hours only left it as clear to him as though the makers themselves were still in plain sight.
For you or me, finding the Hon. Morison in the jungle after giving him such a big head start might have seemed unlikely; but for Korak, it wasn't. He figured the white man would head back to his camp; but even if he didn't, it would be easy for The Killer to track a rider with someone on foot. Days could go by, and the traces would still be clear enough for Korak to follow without hesitation to the end; a few hours would make it just as obvious to him as if the people who made the tracks were right there in front of him.
And so it came that a few minutes after the Hon. Morison Baynes entered the camp to be greeted by Hanson, Korak slipped noiselessly into a near-by tree. There he lay until late afternoon and still the young Englishman made no move to leave camp. Korak wondered if Meriem were coming there. A little later Hanson and one of his black boys rode out of camp. Korak merely noted the fact. He was not particularly interested in what any other member of the company than the young Englishman did.
And so it happened that a few minutes after the Hon. Morison Baynes arrived at the camp to be welcomed by Hanson, Korak quietly climbed into a nearby tree. He stayed there until late afternoon, and still the young Englishman did not leave the camp. Korak wondered if Meriem would be coming there. A little later, Hanson and one of his black helpers rode out of camp. Korak simply took note of it. He wasn't really interested in what anyone else in the group, other than the young Englishman, was doing.
Darkness came and still the young man remained. He ate his evening meal, afterward smoking numerous cigarettes. Presently he began to pace back and forth before his tent. He kept his boy busy replenishing the fire. A lion coughed and he went into his tent to reappear with an express rifle. Again he admonished the boy to throw more brush upon the fire. Korak saw that he was nervous and afraid, and his lip curled in a sneer of contempt.
Darkness fell, but the young man stayed put. He had his dinner and then smoked several cigarettes. Soon, he started pacing in front of his tent. He kept the boy busy adding more wood to the fire. When a lion coughed, he went into his tent and came out with a rifle. He warned the boy again to put more brush on the fire. Korak noticed that he was anxious and scared, and he sneered in contempt.
Was this the creature who had supplanted him in the heart of his Meriem? Was this a man, who trembled when Numa coughed? How could such as he protect Meriem from the countless dangers of the jungle? Ah, but he would not have to. They would live in the safety of European civilization, where men in uniforms were hired to protect them. What need had a European of prowess to protect his mate? Again the sneer curled Korak’s lip.
Was this the guy who had taken his place in Meriem’s heart? Was this a man who flinched when Numa coughed? How could someone like him possibly keep Meriem safe from all the dangers of the jungle? But he wouldn’t have to. They would live in the security of European civilization, where men in uniforms were paid to protect them. What did a European need in terms of strength to keep his partner safe? Again, a sneer twisted Korak’s lip.
Hanson and his boy had ridden directly to the clearing. It was already dark when they arrived. Leaving the boy there Hanson rode to the edge of the plain, leading the boy’s horse. There he waited. It was nine o’clock before he saw a solitary figure galloping toward him from the direction of the bungalow. A few moments later Meriem drew in her mount beside him. She was nervous and flushed. When she recognized Hanson she drew back, startled.
Hanson and his son had ridden straight to the clearing. It was already dark when they got there. After leaving the boy, Hanson rode to the edge of the plain, leading the boy's horse. He waited there. It was nine o'clock when he saw a lone figure riding towards him from the direction of the bungalow. A few moments later, Meriem pulled her horse up next to him. She looked nervous and flushed. When she saw Hanson, she pulled back, shocked.
“Mr. Baynes’ horse fell on him and sprained his ankle,” Hanson hastened to explain. “He couldn’t very well come so he sent me to meet you and bring you to camp.”
“Mr. Baynes’ horse fell on him and sprained his ankle,” Hanson quickly explained. “He couldn’t make it, so he sent me to meet you and bring you to camp.”
The girl could not see in the darkness the gloating, triumphant expression on the speaker’s face.
The girl couldn't see the smug, victorious look on the speaker's face in the dark.
“We had better hurry,” continued Hanson, “for we’ll have to move along pretty fast if we don’t want to be overtaken.”
“We should hurry,” Hanson continued, “because we need to move quickly if we don’t want to be caught up with.”
“Is he hurt badly?” asked Meriem.
“Is he seriously hurt?” Meriem asked.
“Only a little sprain,” replied Hanson. “He can ride all right; but we both thought he’d better lie up tonight, and rest, for he’ll have plenty hard riding in the next few weeks.”
“Just a minor sprain,” Hanson replied. “He can ride fine, but we both figured it would be better for him to rest tonight since he’ll have a lot of hard riding in the coming weeks.”
“Yes,” agreed the girl.
“Yeah,” agreed the girl.
Hanson swung his pony about and Meriem followed him. They rode north along the edge of the jungle for a mile and then turned straight into it toward the west. Meriem, following, payed little attention to directions. She did not know exactly where Hanson’s camp lay and so she did not guess that he was not leading her toward it. All night they rode, straight toward the west. When morning came, Hanson permitted a short halt for breakfast, which he had provided in well-filled saddle bags before leaving his camp. Then they pushed on again, nor did they halt a second time until in the heat of the day he stopped and motioned the girl to dismount.
Hanson turned his pony around, and Meriem followed him. They rode north along the edge of the jungle for a mile, then headed straight into it toward the west. Meriem didn't pay much attention to where they were going. She had no idea where Hanson's camp was and didn't realize he wasn't leading her there. They rode all night, heading directly west. When morning came, Hanson allowed a short break for breakfast, which he had packed in well-filled saddlebags before leaving his camp. Then they continued on, and they didn’t stop again until the heat of the day when he signaled for the girl to get off.
“We will sleep here for a time and let the ponies graze,” he said.
“We will rest here for a while and let the ponies eat grass,” he said.
“I had no idea the camp was so far away,” said Meriem.
“I had no idea the camp was so far away,” Meriem said.
“I left orders that they were to move on at day break,” explained the trader, “so that we could get a good start. I knew that you and I could easily overtake a laden safari. It may not be until tomorrow that we’ll catch up with them.”
“I told them to leave at dawn,” the trader explained, “so we could get an early start. I knew you and I could easily catch up to a loaded safari. It might not be until tomorrow that we actually catch up with them.”
But though they traveled part of the night and all the following day no sign of the safari appeared ahead of them. Meriem, an adept in jungle craft, knew that none had passed ahead of them for many days. Occasionally she saw indications of an old spoor, a very old spoor, of many men. For the most part they followed this well-marked trail along elephant paths and through park-like groves. It was an ideal trail for rapid traveling.
But even though they traveled part of the night and all the next day, they didn't see any sign of the safari ahead. Meriem, skilled in jungle survival, knew that no one had gone ahead of them for many days. Occasionally, she spotted signs of an old trail, very old, made by many people. Mostly, they followed this clearly marked path along elephant trails and through grove-like areas. It was the perfect path for quick travel.
Meriem at last became suspicious. Gradually the attitude of the man at her side had begun to change. Often she surprised him devouring her with his eyes. Steadily the former sensation of previous acquaintanceship urged itself upon her. Somewhere, sometime before she had known this man. It was evident that he had not shaved for several days. A blonde stubble had commenced to cover his neck and cheeks and chin, and with it the assurance that he was no stranger continued to grow upon the girl.
Meriem finally started to feel suspicious. Little by little, the way the guy next to her was acting changed. Often, she caught him staring at her intensely. The familiar feeling of knowing him from before pushed into her mind. She had definitely met this guy somewhere, sometime. It was clear he hadn’t shaved for a few days. A light stubble was starting to grow on his neck, cheeks, and chin, and along with it, the sense that he wasn’t a stranger kept growing on her.
It was not until the second day, however, that Meriem rebelled. She drew in her pony at last and voiced her doubts. Hanson assured her that the camp was but a few miles further on.
It wasn't until the second day that Meriem finally spoke up. She pulled in her pony and shared her concerns. Hanson reassured her that the camp was just a few miles ahead.
“We should have overtaken them yesterday,” he said. “They must have marched much faster than I had believed possible.”
“We should have caught up with them yesterday,” he said. “They must have marched a lot faster than I thought possible.”
“They have not marched here at all,” said Meriem. “The spoor that we have been following is weeks old.”
“They haven't marched here at all,” Meriem said. “The tracks we've been following are weeks old.”
Hanson laughed.
Hanson laughed.
“Oh, that’s it, is it?” he cried. “Why didn’t you say so before? I could have easily explained. We are not coming by the same route; but we’ll pick up their trail sometime today, even if we don’t overtake them.”
“Oh, is that all?” he exclaimed. “Why didn’t you mention that earlier? I could have easily explained. We aren't taking the same path, but we'll find their trail sometime today, even if we don’t catch up to them.”
Now, at last, Meriem knew the man was lying to her. What a fool he must be to think that anyone could believe such a ridiculous explanation? Who was so stupid as to believe that they could have expected to overtake another party, and he had certainly assured her that momentarily he expected to do so, when that party’s route was not to meet theirs for several miles yet?
Now, finally, Meriem realized the man was lying to her. What a fool he must be to think anyone would believe such a ridiculous explanation. Who was so foolish as to believe they could catch up to another group when he had definitely assured her that he expected to do so any minute, even though that group's path wouldn’t intersect with theirs for several miles?
She kept her own counsel however, planning to escape at the first opportunity when she might have a sufficient start of her captor, as she now considered him, to give her some assurance of outdistancing him. She watched his face continually when she could without being observed. Tantalizingly the placing of his familiar features persisted in eluding her. Where had she known him? Under what conditions had they met before she had seen him about the farm of Bwana? She ran over in her mind all the few white men she ever had known. There were some who had come to her father’s douar in the jungle. Few it is true, but there had been some. Ah, now she had it! She had seen him there! She almost seized upon his identity and then in an instant, it had slipped from her again.
She kept her thoughts to herself, planning to escape at the first chance she got when she could have a good head start on her captor, as she now thought of him, to make sure she could outrun him. She watched his face whenever she could do so without being noticed. Frustratingly, she couldn’t quite place his familiar features. Where had she known him from? Under what circumstances had they met before she saw him at Bwana's farm? She mentally combed through the few white men she had known. There were some who had visited her father’s douar in the jungle. Few, it’s true, but there were some. Ah, now she had it! She had seen him there! She almost grasped his identity, and then in an instant, it slipped away again.
It was mid afternoon when they suddenly broke out of the jungle upon the banks of a broad and placid river. Beyond, upon the opposite shore, Meriem described a camp surrounded by a high, thorn boma.
It was mid-afternoon when they suddenly emerged from the jungle onto the banks of a wide and calm river. On the other side, Meriem spotted a camp enclosed by a tall, thorny boma.
“Here we are at last,” said Hanson. He drew his revolver and fired in the air. Instantly the camp across the river was astir. Black men ran down the river’s bank. Hanson hailed them. But there was no sign of the Hon. Morison Baynes.
“Here we are at last,” said Hanson. He pulled out his revolver and fired it into the air. Instantly, the camp across the river came to life. Black men ran down the riverbank. Hanson called to them. But there was no sign of the Hon. Morison Baynes.
In accordance with their master’s instructions the blacks manned a canoe and rowed across. Hanson placed Meriem in the little craft and entered it himself, leaving two boys to watch the horses, which the canoe was to return for and swim across to the camp side of the river.
Following their master’s orders, the Black men got into a canoe and rowed across. Hanson put Meriem in the small boat and climbed in himself, leaving two boys behind to watch the horses, which the canoe would come back for and swim across to their camp on the other side of the river.
Once in the camp Meriem asked for Baynes. For the moment her fears had been allayed by the sight of the camp, which she had come to look upon as more or less a myth. Hanson pointed toward the single tent that stood in the center of the enclosure.
Once in the camp, Meriem asked for Baynes. For now, her fears had eased at the sight of the camp, which she had come to see as somewhat of a myth. Hanson pointed to the single tent that stood in the middle of the enclosure.
“There,” he said, and preceded her toward it. At the entrance he held the flap aside and motioned her within. Meriem entered and looked about. The tent was empty. She turned toward Hanson. There was a broad grin on his face.
“There,” he said, and walked ahead of her toward it. At the entrance, he held the flap open and gestured for her to go inside. Meriem stepped in and looked around. The tent was empty. She turned to Hanson. There was a big grin on his face.
“Where is Mr. Baynes?” she demanded.
“Where is Mr. Baynes?” she asked.
“He ain’t here,” replied Hanson. “Leastwise I don’t see him, do you? But I’m here, and I’m a damned sight better man than that thing ever was. You don’t need him no more—you got me,” and he laughed uproariously and reached for her.
“He's not here,” replied Hanson. “At least I don’t see him, do you? But I’m here, and I’m a hell of a lot better than that guy ever was. You don’t need him anymore—you’ve got me,” and he laughed loudly and reached for her.
Meriem struggled to free herself. Hanson encircled her arms and body in his powerful grip and bore her slowly backward toward the pile of blankets at the far end of the tent. His face was bent close to hers. His eyes were narrowed to two slits of heat and passion and desire. Meriem was looking full into his face as she fought for freedom when there came over her a sudden recollection of a similar scene in which she had been a participant and with it full recognition of her assailant. He was the Swede Malbihn who had attacked her once before, who had shot his companion who would have saved her, and from whom she had been rescued by Bwana. His smooth face had deceived her; but now with the growing beard and the similarity of conditions recognition came swift and sure.
Meriem struggled to break free. Hanson wrapped his powerful arms around her and slowly pulled her back toward the pile of blankets at the far end of the tent. His face was close to hers, and his eyes were narrowed, filled with heat, passion, and desire. As she fought for her freedom, Meriem looked directly into his face when a sudden memory hit her of a similar situation she had been in before, along with a clear recognition of her attacker. He was the Swede Malbihn, who had tried to assault her once before, who had shot his partner who might have rescued her, and whom Bwana had saved her from. His smooth face had fooled her; but now, with his growing beard and the similar circumstances, the recognition came quickly and unmistakably.
But today there would be no Bwana to save her.
But today there would be no boss to save her.
XXI.
The black boy whom Malbihn had left awaiting him in the clearing with instructions to remain until he returned sat crouched at the foot of a tree for an hour when he was suddenly startled by the coughing grunt of a lion behind him. With celerity born of the fear of death the boy clambered into the branches of the tree, and a moment later the king of beasts entered the clearing and approached the carcass of an antelope which, until now, the boy had not seen.
The black boy whom Malbihn had left waiting for him in the clearing with orders to stay put until his return sat crouched at the base of a tree for an hour when he was suddenly startled by the coughing grunt of a lion behind him. With a quickness fueled by the fear of death, the boy scrambled up into the branches of the tree, and a moment later, the king of beasts entered the clearing and moved toward the carcass of an antelope that the boy hadn’t noticed until now.
Until daylight the beast fed, while the black clung, sleepless, to his perch, wondering what had become of his master and the two ponies. He had been with Malbihn for a year, and so was fairly conversant with the character of the white. His knowledge presently led him to believe that he had been purposely abandoned. Like the balance of Malbihn’s followers, this boy hated his master cordially—fear being the only bond that held him to the white man. His present uncomfortable predicament but added fuel to the fires of his hatred.
Until daylight, the beast fed while the boy clung to his perch, wide awake, wondering what had happened to his master and the two ponies. He had been with Malbihn for a year and was fairly familiar with the white man's character. His understanding made him think that he had been intentionally left behind. Like the rest of Malbihn’s followers, the boy had a strong dislike for his master—fear was the only thing keeping him tied to the white man. His current uncomfortable situation only intensified his feelings of hatred.
As the sun rose the lion withdrew into the jungle and the black descended from his tree and started upon his long journey back to camp. In his primitive brain revolved various fiendish plans for a revenge that he would not have the courage to put into effect when the test came and he stood face to face with one of the dominant race.
As the sun rose, the lion retreated into the jungle, and the black man climbed down from his tree to begin his long trek back to camp. In his primitive mind, he considered various vengeful schemes that he wouldn't have the courage to carry out when the moment came and he faced one of the dominant race.
A mile from the clearing he came upon the spoor of two ponies crossing his path at right angles. A cunning look entered the black’s eyes. He laughed uproariously and slapped his thighs.
A mile from the clearing, he discovered the tracks of two ponies crossing his path at a right angle. A clever look appeared in the black man’s eyes. He laughed loudly and slapped his thighs.
Negroes are tireless gossipers, which, of course, is but a roundabout way of saying that they are human. Malbihn’s boys had been no exception to the rule and as many of them had been with him at various times during the past ten years there was little about his acts and life in the African wilds that was not known directly or by hearsay to them all.
Negroes are relentless gossipers, which, of course, is just a way of saying that they are human. Malbihn’s boys were no exception to this rule, and since many of them had been with him at different times over the past ten years, there was little about his actions and life in the African wilderness that they didn’t know directly or by hearsay.
And so, knowing his master and many of his past deeds, knowing, too, a great deal about the plans of Malbihn and Baynes that had been overheard by himself, or other servants; and knowing well from the gossip of the head-men that half of Malbihn’s party lay in camp by the great river far to the west, it was not difficult for the boy to put two and two together and arrive at four as the sum—the four being represented by a firm conviction that his master had deceived the other white man and taken the latter’s woman to his western camp, leaving the other to suffer capture and punishment at the hands of the Big Bwana whom all feared. Again the boy bared his rows of big, white teeth and laughed aloud. Then he resumed his northward way, traveling at a dogged trot that ate up the miles with marvelous rapidity.
So, knowing his master and many of his past actions, and being aware of the plans of Malbihn and Baynes that he had overheard or heard about from other servants, along with gossip from the leaders that half of Malbihn’s group was camped by the big river far to the west, it wasn’t hard for the boy to connect the dots and conclude that his master had tricked the other white man and taken his woman to the western camp, leaving the other to face capture and punishment at the hands of the Big Bwana, who everyone feared. The boy grinned, showing his big, white teeth, and laughed out loud. Then he continued his journey north, moving at a steady trot that covered the miles with impressive speed.
In the Swede’s camp the Hon. Morison had spent an almost sleepless night of nervous apprehension and doubts and fears. Toward morning he had slept, utterly exhausted. It was the headman who awoke him shortly after sun rise to remind him that they must at once take up their northward journey. Baynes hung back. He wanted to wait for “Hanson” and Meriem. The headman urged upon him the danger that lay in loitering. The fellow knew his master’s plans sufficiently well to understand that he had done something to arouse the ire of the Big Bwana and that it would fare ill with them all if they were overtaken in Big Bwana’s country. At the suggestion Baynes took alarm.
In the Swede’s camp, Hon. Morison had spent an almost sleepless night full of nervousness, doubts, and fears. Toward morning, he finally fell asleep, utterly exhausted. It was the headman who woke him shortly after sunrise to remind him that they needed to start their northward journey right away. Baynes hesitated; he wanted to wait for “Hanson” and Meriem. The headman pressed him on the danger of lingering. The man knew his master’s plans well enough to realize that he had done something to provoke the Big Bwana, and that it would go badly for all of them if they were caught in Big Bwana’s territory. At this suggestion, Baynes became alarmed.
What if the Big Bwana, as the head-man called him, had surprised “Hanson” in his nefarious work. Would he not guess the truth and possibly be already on the march to overtake and punish him? Baynes had heard much of his host’s summary method of dealing out punishment to malefactors great and small who transgressed the laws or customs of his savage little world which lay beyond the outer ramparts of what men are pleased to call frontiers. In this savage world where there was no law the Big Bwana was law unto himself and all who dwelt about him. It was even rumored that he had extracted the death penalty from a white man who had maltreated a native girl.
What if the Big Bwana, as the chief called him, had caught “Hanson” in his wrongdoing? Wouldn't he figure out the truth and possibly be already on his way to confront and punish him? Baynes had heard a lot about how his host handled punishment for wrongdoers, big and small, who broke the laws or customs of his harsh little world that lay beyond what people like to call frontiers. In this brutal world where there was no law, the Big Bwana was the law for himself and everyone around him. It was even rumored that he had sentenced a white man to death for abusing a native girl.
Baynes shuddered at the recollection of this piece of gossip as he wondered what his host would exact of the man who had attempted to steal his young, white ward. The thought brought him to his feet.
Baynes shuddered at the memory of this gossip as he wondered what his host would demand of the man who had tried to take his young, white ward. That thought made him get up on his feet.
“Yes,” he said, nervously, “we must get away from here at once. Do you know the trail to the north?”
“Yes,” he said nervously, “we need to get out of here right now. Do you know the path to the north?”
The head-man did, and he lost no time in getting the safari upon the march.
The leader did, and he wasted no time in getting the safari moving.
It was noon when a tired and sweat-covered runner overtook the trudging little column. The man was greeted with shouts of welcome from his fellows, to whom he imparted all that he knew and guessed of the actions of their master, so that the entire safari was aware of matters before Baynes, who marched close to the head of the column, was reached and acquainted with the facts and the imaginings of the black boy whom Malbihn had deserted in the clearing the night before.
It was noon when a exhausted and sweaty runner passed by the slow-moving group. The man was met with cheers from his companions, to whom he shared everything he knew and suspected about their leader's actions, so that the whole safari was informed of the situation before Baynes, who marched near the front of the column, was reached and updated about the details and the speculations of the Black boy whom Malbihn had left behind in the clearing the night before.
When the Hon. Morison had listened to all that the boy had to say and realized that the trader had used him as a tool whereby he himself might get Meriem into his possession, his blood ran hot with rage and he trembled with apprehension for the girl’s safety.
When the Hon. Morison heard everything the boy had to say and understood that the trader had exploited him to get Meriem for himself, he was filled with rage and felt a rush of worry for the girl's safety.
That another contemplated no worse a deed than he had contemplated in no way palliated the hideousness of the other’s offense. At first it did not occur to him that he would have wronged Meriem no less than he believed “Hanson” contemplated wronging her. Now his rage was more the rage of a man beaten at his own game and robbed of the prize that he had thought already his.
That one person's idea of a terrible act was no better than another's did nothing to lessen the awfulness of the other’s wrongdoing. Initially, he didn't realize that he would have hurt Meriem just as much as he thought "Hanson" intended to hurt her. Now his anger felt more like the anger of a man defeated at his own game and cheated out of the prize he believed was already his.
“Do you know where your master has gone?” he asked the black.
“Do you know where your master has gone?” he asked the black.
“Yes, Bwana,” replied the boy. “He has gone to the other camp beside the big afi that flows far toward the setting sun.
“Yes, Bwana,” replied the boy. “He has gone to the other camp by the big afi that flows far toward the setting sun.
“Can you take me to him?” demanded Baynes.
“Can you take me to him?” Baynes asked.
The boy nodded affirmatively. Here he saw a method of revenging himself upon his hated Bwana and at the same time of escaping the wrath of the Big Bwana whom all were positive would first follow after the northerly safari.
The boy nodded in agreement. He saw a way to get back at his despised Bwana while also avoiding the anger of the Big Bwana, whom everyone was sure would come after the northern safari.
“Can you and I, alone, reach his camp?” asked the Hon. Morison.
“Can we get to his camp by ourselves?” asked the Hon. Morison.
“Yes, Bwana,” assured the black.
“Yes, sir,” assured the man.
Baynes turned toward the head-man. He was conversant with “Hanson’s” plans now. He understood why he had wished to move the northern camp as far as possible toward the northern boundary of the Big Bwana’s country—it would give him far more time to make his escape toward the West Coast while the Big Bwana was chasing the northern contingent. Well, he would utilize the man’s plans to his own end. He, too, must keep out of the clutches of his host.
Baynes turned to the leader. He was now familiar with "Hanson's" plans. He understood why Hanson wanted to move the northern camp as far north as possible toward the boundary of the Big Bwana’s territory—it would give him much more time to escape to the West Coast while the Big Bwana was occupied with the northern group. Well, he would use this man's plans for his own benefit. He, too, needed to stay out of his host's grasp.
“You may take the men north as fast as possible,” he said to the head-man. “I shall return and attempt to lead the Big Bwana to the west.”
“You can take the men north as quickly as you can,” he told the leader. “I’ll come back and try to guide the Big Bwana to the west.”
The Negro assented with a grunt. He had no desire to follow this strange white man who was afraid at night; he had less to remain at the tender mercies of the Big Bwana’s lusty warriors, between whom and his people there was long-standing blood feud; and he was more than delighted, into the bargain, for a legitimate excuse for deserting his much hated Swede master. He knew a way to the north and his own country that the white men did not know—a short cut across an arid plateau where lay water holes of which the white hunters and explorers that had passed from time to time the fringe of the dry country had never dreamed. He might even elude the Big Bwana should he follow them, and with this thought uppermost in his mind he gathered the remnants of Malbihn’s safari into a semblance of order and moved off toward the north. And toward the southwest the black boy led the Hon. Morison Baynes into the jungles.
The Black man agreed with a grunt. He had no interest in following this strange white man who was afraid at night; he wanted even less to be at the mercy of the Big Bwana’s rowdy warriors, who had a long-standing blood feud with his people; and he was more than happy to have a legitimate reason to leave his much-hated Swedish master. He knew a route to the north and to his homeland that the white men didn't know—a shortcut across a dry plateau where there were water holes that the white hunters and explorers who occasionally passed through the edge of the dry country had never imagined. He might even evade the Big Bwana if he followed them, and with this thought in mind, he gathered what was left of Malbihn's safari into some order and headed north. Meanwhile, the Black boy led the Hon. Morison Baynes into the jungles to the southwest.
Korak had waited about the camp, watching the Hon. Morison until the safari had started north. Then, assured that the young Englishman was going in the wrong direction to meet Meriem he had abandoned him and returned slowly to the point where he had seen the girl, for whom his heart yearned, in the arms of another.
Korak had lingered around the camp, keeping an eye on the Hon. Morison until the safari headed north. Once he was sure that the young Englishman was going the wrong way to find Meriem, he left him behind and made his way back slowly to the spot where he had seen the girl he longed for in the arms of someone else.
So great had been his happiness at seeing Meriem alive that, for the instant, no thought of jealousy had entered his mind. Later these thoughts had come—dark, bloody thoughts that would have made the flesh of the Hon. Morison creep could he have guessed that they were revolving in the brain of a savage creature creeping stealthily among the branches of the forest giant beneath which he waited the coming of “Hanson” and the girl.
So overwhelming was his happiness at seeing Meriem alive that, for a moment, he didn’t feel any jealousy. But soon, those feelings came—dark, violent thoughts that would have made the Hon. Morison shudder if he had known they were brewing in the mind of a wild creature lurking quietly among the branches of the towering trees beneath which he waited for “Hanson” and the girl.
And with passing of the hours had come subdued reflection in which he had weighed himself against the trimly clad English gentleman and—found that he was wanting. What had he to offer her by comparison with that which the other man might offer? What was his “mess of pottage” to the birthright that the other had preserved? How could he dare go, naked and unkempt, to that fair thing who had once been his jungle-fellow and propose the thing that had been in his mind when first the realization of his love had swept over him? He shuddered as he thought of the irreparable wrong that his love would have done the innocent child but for the chance that had snatched her from him before it was too late. Doubtless she knew now the horror that had been in his mind. Doubtless she hated and loathed him as he hated and loathed himself when he let his mind dwell upon it. He had lost her. No more surely had she been lost when he thought her dead than she was in reality now that he had seen her living—living in the guise of a refinement that had transfigured and sanctified her.
As the hours passed, he found himself in deep reflection, comparing himself to the sharply dressed English gentleman—and realizing he fell short. What could he offer her compared to what that other man could provide? What was his “mess of pottage” worth against the birthright the other had maintained? How could he possibly approach that beautiful person, who had once been his companion in the wild, and propose what had been on his mind since he first recognized his love for her? He felt a shiver at the thought of the irreversible harm his love could have caused the innocent girl if not for the chance that had taken her away before it was too late. She probably understood the terrible thoughts that had crossed his mind. She likely hated and despised him just as he hated and despised himself when he let those thoughts linger. He had lost her. She was as lost now, in reality, despite being alive, as she had been when he thought she was dead—alive in a form of grace that had transformed and uplifted her.
He had loved her before, now he worshipped her. He knew that he might never possess her now, but at least he might see her. From a distance he might look upon her. Perhaps he might serve her; but never must she guess that he had found her or that he lived.
He had loved her before, and now he idolized her. He understood that he might never have her, but at least he could see her. From a distance, he could gaze at her. Maybe he could serve her; but she must never suspect that he had found her or that he was alive.
He wondered if she ever thought of him—if the happy days that they had spent together never recurred to her mind. It seemed unbelievable that such could be the case, and yet, too, it seemed almost equally unbelievable that this beautiful girl was the same disheveled, half naked, little sprite who skipped nimbly among the branches of the trees as they ran and played in the lazy, happy days of the past. It could not be that her memory held more of the past than did her new appearance.
He wondered if she ever thought about him—if the happy days they had spent together ever crossed her mind. It seemed impossible that this wasn’t the case, and yet, it also seemed almost just as unbelievable that this beautiful girl was the same messy, half-dressed little sprite who had nimbly skipped among the branches of the trees as they ran and played during those carefree, happy days of the past. Her memory couldn’t hold more of the past than her new appearance did.
It was a sad Korak who ranged the jungle near the plain’s edge waiting for the coming of his Meriem—the Meriem who never came.
It was a sorrowful Korak who wandered the jungle by the edge of the plain, waiting for his Meriem—the Meriem who never arrived.
But there came another—a tall, broad-shouldered man in khaki at the head of a swarthy crew of ebon warriors. The man’s face was set in hard, stern lines and the marks of sorrow were writ deep about his mouth and eyes—so deep that the set expression of rage upon his features could not obliterate them.
But then another arrived—a tall, broad-shouldered man in khaki leading a dark-skinned group of fierce warriors. The man’s face was etched with hard, stern lines, and the traces of sorrow were deeply imprinted around his mouth and eyes—so deeply that the fixed expression of anger on his face couldn’t erase them.
Korak saw the man pass beneath him where he hid in the great tree that had harbored him before upon the edge of that fateful little clearing. He saw him come and he set rigid and frozen and suffering above him. He saw him search the ground with his keen eyes, and he only sat there watching with eyes that glazed from the intensity of his gaze. He saw him sign to his men that he had come upon that which he sought and he saw him pass out of sight toward the north, and still Korak sat like a graven image, with a heart that bled in dumb misery. An hour later Korak moved slowly away, back into the jungle toward the west. He went listlessly, with bent head and stooped shoulders, like an old man who bore upon his back the weight of a great sorrow.
Korak watched the man walk underneath him, where he was hiding in the big tree that had sheltered him before, on the edge of that fateful little clearing. He saw the man approach and tensed up, rigid and frozen in pain. He watched him scan the ground with sharp eyes while he remained there, staring with eyes that were glazing over from the intensity of his focus. He saw the man signal to his crew that he had found what he was looking for, and then he saw him disappear toward the north. Still, Korak sat there like a statue, his heart heavy with silent anguish. An hour later, Korak moved slowly away, back into the jungle to the west. He walked aimlessly, head down and shoulders slumped, like an old man carrying the burden of deep sorrow on his back.
Baynes, following his black guide, battled his way through the dense underbrush, riding stooped low over his horse’s neck, or often he dismounted where the low branches swept too close to earth to permit him to remain in the saddle. The black was taking him the shortest way, which was no way at all for a horseman, and after the first day’s march the young Englishman was forced to abandon his mount, and follow his nimble guide entirely on foot.
Baynes, following his Black guide, struggled through the thick underbrush, leaning low over his horse's neck, or often getting off when the low branches got too close to the ground for him to stay in the saddle. The guide was taking him the shortest route, which wasn't suitable at all for a horse rider, and after the first day's march, the young Englishman had to leave his horse behind and follow his quick guide entirely on foot.
During the long hours of marching the Hon. Morison had much time to devote to thought, and as he pictured the probable fate of Meriem at the hands of the Swede his rage against the man became the greater. But presently there came to him a realization of the fact that his own base plans had led the girl into this terrible predicament, and that even had she escaped “Hanson” she would have found but little better deserts awaiting her with him.
During the long hours of marching, Hon. Morison had plenty of time to think, and as he imagined what might happen to Meriem at the hands of the Swede, his anger towards the man grew stronger. But soon he realized that his own selfish plans had put the girl in this awful situation, and even if she had escaped "Hanson," she wouldn't have found much better circumstances waiting for her with him.
There came too, the realization that Meriem was infinitely more precious to him than he had imagined. For the first time he commenced to compare her with other women of his acquaintance—women of birth and position—and almost to his surprise—he discovered that the young Arab girl suffered less than they by the comparison. And then from hating “Hanson” he came to look upon himself with hate and loathing—to see himself and his perfidious act in all their contemptible hideousness.
There also came the realization that Meriem was far more valuable to him than he had thought. For the first time, he started to compare her to other women he knew—women of social status and prestige—and to his surprise, he found that the young Arab girl fell short less than they did in the comparison. And then, from hating “Hanson,” he began to feel hate and disgust for himself, to see himself and his treacherous act in all their despicable ugliness.
Thus, in the crucible of shame amidst the white heat of naked truths, the passion that the man had felt for the girl he had considered his social inferior was transmuted into love. And as he staggered on there burned within him beside his newborn love another great passion—the passion of hate urging him on to the consummation of revenge.
Thus, in the intense pressure of shame and the harsh light of bare truths, the passion the man had for the girl he thought was beneath him turned into love. And as he continued on, alongside his newfound love, another powerful feeling burned within him—the desire for revenge, pushing him toward its fulfillment.
A creature of ease and luxury, he had never been subjected to the hardships and tortures which now were his constant companionship, yet, his clothing torn, his flesh scratched and bleeding, he urged the black to greater speed, though with every dozen steps he himself fell from exhaustion.
A being of comfort and luxury, he had never faced the struggles and pain that had now become his constant companions. Still, with his clothes torn and his skin scratched and bleeding, he pushed the horse to go faster, even as he himself stumbled from exhaustion with every dozen steps.
It was revenge which kept him going—that and a feeling that in his suffering he was partially expiating the great wrong he had done the girl he loved—for hope of saving her from the fate into which he had trapped her had never existed. “Too late! Too late!” was the dismal accompaniment of thought to which he marched. “Too late! Too late to save; but not too late to avenge!” That kept him up.
It was revenge that motivated him—that and the belief that by suffering, he was somewhat making up for the terrible wrong he had done to the girl he loved—because he had never really had any hope of saving her from the fate he had trapped her in. “Too late! Too late!” was the gloomy refrain that echoed in his mind as he moved forward. “Too late! Too late to save; but not too late to take revenge!” That’s what kept him going.
Only when it became too dark to see would he permit of a halt. A dozen times in the afternoon he had threatened the black with instant death when the tired guide insisted upon resting. The fellow was terrified. He could not understand the remarkable change that had so suddenly come over the white man who had been afraid in the dark the night before. He would have deserted this terrifying master had he had the opportunity; but Baynes guessed that some such thought might be in the other’s mind, and so gave the fellow none. He kept close to him by day and slept touching him at night in the rude thorn boma they constructed as a slight protection against prowling carnivora.
Only when it got too dark to see would he allow a break. A dozen times in the afternoon, he had threatened the guide with immediate punishment when the exhausted man insisted on stopping. The guy was scared out of his mind. He couldn't grasp the sudden change that had overtaken the white man, who had been afraid of the dark just the night before. He would have run away from this frightening master if he had the chance, but Baynes guessed that such a thought might be in the other’s mind, so he didn’t give him any opportunity. He stayed close to him during the day and slept right next to him at night in the rough thorn boma they built as a little protection against lurking predators.
That the Hon. Morison could sleep at all in the midst of the savage jungle was sufficient indication that he had changed considerably in the past twenty-four hours, and that he could lie close beside a none-too-fragrant black man spoke of possibilities for democracy within him yet all undreamed of.
That the Hon. Morison could sleep at all in the middle of the wild jungle was a clear sign that he had changed a lot in the past twenty-four hours, and the fact that he could lie next to a not-so-fragrant black man hinted at possibilities for democracy within him that he had never imagined before.
Morning found him stiff and lame and sore, but none the less determined to push on in pursuit of “Hanson” as rapidly as possible. With his rifle he brought down a buck at a ford in a small stream shortly after they broke camp, breakfastless. Begrudgingly he permitted a halt while they cooked and ate, and then on again through the wilderness of trees and vines and underbrush.
Morning found him stiff, sore, and limping, but nonetheless determined to continue chasing after “Hanson” as quickly as he could. With his rifle, he took down a buck at a crossing in a small stream shortly after they broke camp, without breakfast. Reluctantly, he allowed them to stop while they cooked and ate, and then they moved on again through the wild trees, vines, and underbrush.
And in the meantime Korak wandered slowly westward, coming upon the trail of Tantor, the elephant, whom he overtook browsing in the deep shade of the jungle. The ape-man, lonely and sorrowing, was glad of the companionship of his huge friend. Affectionately the sinuous trunk encircled him, and he was swung to the mighty back where so often before he had lolled and dreamed the long afternoon away.
And in the meantime, Korak walked slowly westward and found the trail of Tantor, the elephant, whom he caught up with while browsing in the deep shade of the jungle. The ape-man, feeling lonely and sad, was happy to have the company of his large friend. With affection, the flexible trunk wrapped around him, and he was lifted onto the powerful back where he had often lounged and daydreamed the long afternoons away.
Far to the north the Big Bwana and his black warriors clung tenaciously to the trail of the fleeing safari that was luring them further and further from the girl they sought to save, while back at the bungalow the woman who had loved Meriem as though she had been her own waited impatiently and in sorrow for the return of the rescuing party and the girl she was positive her invincible lord and master would bring back with him.
Far to the north, the Big Bwana and his black warriors held tightly to the trail of the escaping safari, which drew them farther away from the girl they were trying to save. Meanwhile, back at the bungalow, the woman who loved Meriem as if she were her own daughter waited anxiously and sadly for the return of the rescue team and the girl she was sure her unbeatable leader would bring back with him.
XXII.
As Meriem struggled with Malbihn, her hands pinioned to her sides by his brawny grip, hope died within her. She did not utter a sound for she knew that there was none to come to her assistance, and, too, the jungle training of her earlier life had taught her the futility of appeals for succor in the savage world of her up-bringing.
As Meriem fought against Malbihn, her arms held tightly against her body by his strong grip, hope faded away. She didn't make a sound because she knew no one was coming to help her, and her experiences growing up in the jungle had shown her how useless it was to call for help in the brutal world she came from.
But as she fought to free herself one hand came in contact with the butt of Malbihn’s revolver where it rested in the holster at his hip. Slowly he was dragging her toward the blankets, and slowly her fingers encircled the coveted prize and drew it from its resting place.
But as she struggled to break free, one of her hands brushed against the grip of Malbihn’s revolver where it sat in the holster at his hip. He was slowly pulling her toward the blankets, and gradually her fingers wrapped around the coveted weapon and lifted it from its place.
Then, as Malbihn stood at the edge of the disordered pile of blankets, Meriem suddenly ceased to draw away from him, and as quickly hurled her weight against him with the result that he was thrown backward, his feet stumbled against the bedding and he was hurled to his back. Instinctively his hands flew out to save himself and at the same instant Meriem leveled the revolver at his breast and pulled the trigger.
Then, as Malbihn stood at the edge of the messy pile of blankets, Meriem suddenly stopped pulling away from him and quickly threw her weight against him, causing him to stumble backward. His feet caught on the bedding, and he fell onto his back. Instinctively, he reached out to catch himself, and at the same moment, Meriem aimed the revolver at his chest and pulled the trigger.
But the hammer fell futilely upon an empty shell, and Malbihn was again upon his feet clutching at her. For a moment she eluded him, and ran toward the entrance to the tent, but at the very doorway his heavy hand fell upon her shoulder and dragged her back. Wheeling upon him with the fury of a wounded lioness Meriem grasped the long revolver by the barrel, swung it high above her head and crashed it down full in Malbihn’s face.
But the hammer hit an empty shell with no effect, and Malbihn was back on his feet, reaching for her. For a moment, she dodged him and ran toward the tent entrance, but at the doorway, his strong hand landed on her shoulder and pulled her back. Spinning around to face him like a furious wounded lioness, Meriem grabbed the long revolver by the barrel, raised it high above her head, and brought it crashing down right into Malbihn's face.
With an oath of pain and rage the man staggered backward, releasing his hold upon her and then sank unconscious to the ground. Without a backward look Meriem turned and fled into the open. Several of the blacks saw her and tried to intercept her flight, but the menace of the empty weapon kept them at a distance. And so she won beyond the encircling boma and disappeared into the jungle to the south.
With a cry of pain and anger, the man staggered back, letting go of her before collapsing unconscious on the ground. Without looking back, Meriem turned and ran into the open. A few of the black men noticed her and attempted to block her escape, but the threat of the unloaded weapon kept them at bay. Thus, she managed to get past the surrounding boma and vanished into the jungle to the south.
Straight into the branches of a tree she went, true to the arboreal instincts of the little mangani she had been, and here she stripped off her riding skirt, her shoes and her stockings, for she knew that she had before her a journey and a flight which would not brook the burden of these garments. Her riding breeches and jacket would have to serve as protection from cold and thorns, nor would they hamper her over much; but a skirt and shoes were impossible among the trees.
Straight into the branches of a tree she climbed, staying true to the natural instincts of the little mangani she once was. Here, she removed her riding skirt, shoes, and stockings, knowing she faced a journey and adventure that couldn’t accommodate the weight of those clothes. Her riding pants and jacket would have to protect her from the cold and thorns, but they wouldn’t hold her back too much; however, a skirt and shoes were impractical among the trees.
She had not gone far before she commenced to realize how slight were her chances for survival without means of defense or a weapon to bring down meat. Why had she not thought to strip the cartridge belt from Malbihn’s waist before she had left his tent! With cartridges for the revolver she might hope to bag small game, and to protect herself from all but the most ferocious of the enemies that would beset her way back to the beloved hearthstone of Bwana and My Dear.
She hadn’t gotten far before she started to realize how slim her chances of survival were without any means of defense or a weapon to hunt for food. Why hadn’t she thought to take the cartridge belt from Malbihn before leaving his tent? With cartridges for the revolver, she might have been able to catch small game and protect herself from all but the fiercest enemies on her way back to the cherished home of Bwana and My Dear.
With the thought came determination to return and obtain the coveted ammunition. She realized that she was taking great chances of recapture; but without means of defense and of obtaining meat she felt that she could never hope to reach safety. And so she turned her face back toward the camp from which she had but just escaped.
With that thought came the resolve to go back and get the much-needed supplies. She understood that she was risking being caught again, but without any way to defend herself or get food, she knew she could never expect to reach safety. So, she turned her face back toward the camp she had only just escaped from.
She thought Malbihn dead, so terrific a blow had she dealt him, and she hoped to find an opportunity after dark to enter the camp and search his tent for the cartridge belt; but scarcely had she found a hiding place in a great tree at the edge of the boma where she could watch without danger of being discovered, when she saw the Swede emerge from his tent, wiping blood from his face, and hurling a volley of oaths and questions at his terrified followers.
She thought Malbihn was dead, given the massive blow she had dealt him, and she hoped to find a chance after dark to sneak into the camp and search his tent for the cartridge belt. But just as she found a hiding spot in a large tree at the edge of the boma where she could watch without risk of being found, she saw the Swede come out of his tent, wiping blood from his face and shouting a stream of curses and questions at his scared followers.
Shortly after the entire camp set forth in search of her and when Meriem was positive that all were gone she descended from her hiding place and ran quickly across the clearing to Malbihn’s tent. A hasty survey of the interior revealed no ammunition; but in one corner was a box in which were packed the Swede’s personal belongings that he had sent along by his headman to this westerly camp.
Shortly after the entire camp left to look for her, and when Meriem was sure that everyone was gone, she climbed down from her hiding spot and quickly crossed the clearing to Malbihn’s tent. A quick check of the inside showed no ammunition; however, in one corner was a box filled with the Swede's personal belongings that he had sent with his headman to this western camp.
Meriem seized the receptacle as the possible container of extra ammunition. Quickly she loosed the cords that held the canvas covering about the box, and a moment later had raised the lid and was rummaging through the heterogeneous accumulation of odds and ends within. There were letters and papers and cuttings from old newspapers, and among other things the photograph of a little girl upon the back of which was pasted a cutting from a Paris daily—a cutting that she could not read, yellowed and dimmed by age and handling—but something about the photograph of the little girl which was also reproduced in the newspaper cutting held her attention. Where had she seen that picture before? And then, quite suddenly, it came to her that this was a picture of herself as she had been years and years before.
Meriem grabbed the container, thinking it might hold extra ammunition. She quickly untied the cords holding the canvas covering the box and moments later lifted the lid, digging through the random collection inside. There were letters, papers, and clippings from old newspapers, and among other items was a photograph of a little girl. On the back, a clipping from a Paris newspaper was pasted—one she couldn't read because it was yellowed and faded from age and handling—but something about the girl's picture, which was also in the newspaper clipping, caught her interest. Where had she seen that photo before? Then, suddenly, it struck her: this was a picture of herself from many, many years ago.
Where had it been taken? How had it come into the possession of this man? Why had it been reproduced in a newspaper? What was the story that the faded type told of it?
Where had it been taken? How did this man get it? Why was it published in a newspaper? What story did the faded type reveal about it?
Meriem was baffled by the puzzle that her search for ammunition had revealed. She stood gazing at the faded photograph for a time and then bethought herself of the ammunition for which she had come. Turning again to the box she rummaged to the bottom and there in a corner she came upon a little box of cartridges. A single glance assured her that they were intended for the weapon she had thrust inside the band of her riding breeches, and slipping them into her pocket she turned once more for an examination of the baffling likeness of herself that she held in her hand.
Meriem was confused by the puzzle that her hunt for ammunition had uncovered. She stood staring at the faded photograph for a moment and then remembered the ammunition she had come for. Turning back to the box, she searched through the bottom and found, tucked away in a corner, a small box of cartridges. A quick glance confirmed that they were meant for the weapon she had tucked into the waistband of her riding breeches, and after slipping them into her pocket, she turned once again to examine the puzzling image of herself that she held in her hand.
As she stood thus in vain endeavor to fathom this inexplicable mystery the sound of voices broke upon her ears. Instantly she was all alert. They were coming closer! A second later she recognized the lurid profanity of the Swede. Malbihn, her persecutor, was returning! Meriem ran quickly to the opening of the tent and looked out. It was too late! She was fairly cornered! The white man and three of his black henchmen were coming straight across the clearing toward the tent. What was she to do? She slipped the photograph into her waist. Quickly she slipped a cartridge into each of the chambers of the revolver. Then she backed toward the end of the tent, keeping the entrance covered by her weapon. The man stopped outside, and Meriem could hear Malbihn profanely issuing instructions. He was a long time about it, and while he talked in his bellowing, brutish voice, the girl sought some avenue of escape. Stooping, she raised the bottom of the canvas and looked beneath and beyond. There was no one in sight upon that side. Throwing herself upon her stomach she wormed beneath the tent wall just as Malbihn, with a final word to his men, entered the tent.
As she stood there, desperately trying to understand this bizarre mystery, she suddenly heard voices. Instantly, she was on high alert. They were getting closer! A moment later, she recognized the harsh curses of the Swede. Malbihn, her tormentor, was back! Meriem quickly ran to the tent opening and looked outside. It was too late! She was completely cornered! The white man and three of his black henchmen were heading straight across the clearing toward the tent. What was she going to do? She tucked the photograph into her waistband. Quickly, she loaded a bullet into each chamber of the revolver. Then she backed toward the end of the tent, keeping the entrance covered with her weapon. The man stopped outside, and Meriem could hear Malbihn loudly giving instructions. He took his time with it, and while he spoke in his booming, brutish voice, the girl looked for a way to escape. She bent down, lifted the bottom of the canvas, and peeked underneath and beyond. There was no one in sight on that side. Throwing herself onto her stomach, she squeezed beneath the tent wall just as Malbihn, with a final command to his men, entered the tent.
Meriem heard him cross the floor, and then she rose and, stooping low, ran to a native hut directly behind. Once inside this she turned and glanced back. There was no one in sight. She had not been seen. And now from Malbihn’s tent she heard a great cursing. The Swede had discovered the rifling of his box. He was shouting to his men, and as she heard them reply Meriem darted from the hut and ran toward the edge of the boma furthest from Malbihn’s tent. Overhanging the boma at this point was a tree that had been too large, in the eyes of the rest-loving blacks, to cut down. So they had terminated the boma just short of it. Meriem was thankful for whatever circumstance had resulted in the leaving of that particular tree where it was, since it gave her the much-needed avenue of escape which she might not otherwise have had.
Meriem heard him walk across the floor, and then she quickly stood up, bent down, and ran to a native hut directly behind her. Once inside, she turned and glanced back. There was no one in sight. She hadn’t been seen. Now, from Malbihn’s tent, she heard him cursing loudly. The Swede had discovered that his box had been messed with. He was shouting to his men, and as she heard their responses, Meriem darted from the hut and ran toward the edge of the boma farthest from Malbihn’s tent. At this point, a tree had grown over the boma, too large for the lazy locals to cut down. So they had built the boma just short of it. Meriem was grateful for whatever circumstance had led to that tree being left where it was, as it provided her with a much-needed escape route that she might not have had otherwise.
From her hiding place she saw Malbihn again enter the jungle, this time leaving a guard of three of his boys in the camp. He went toward the south, and after he had disappeared, Meriem skirted the outside of the enclosure and made her way to the river. Here lay the canoes that had been used in bringing the party from the opposite shore. They were unwieldy things for a lone girl to handle, but there was no other way and she must cross the river.
From her hiding spot, she saw Malbihn enter the jungle again, this time leaving three of his boys to guard the camp. He headed south, and after he disappeared, Meriem walked around the outside of the enclosure and headed to the river. There were the canoes that had been used to bring the group from the other side. They were awkward for a single girl to manage, but there was no other option—she had to cross the river.
The landing place was in full view of the guard at the camp. To risk the crossing under their eyes would have meant undoubted capture. Her only hope lay in waiting until darkness had fallen, unless some fortuitous circumstance should arise before. For an hour she lay watching the guard, one of whom seemed always in a position where he would immediately discover her should she attempt to launch one of the canoes.
The landing spot was clearly visible to the guards at the camp. Trying to cross under their watch would surely lead to capture. Her only hope was to wait until it got dark, unless some lucky opportunity came up beforehand. For an hour, she lay there watching the guard, one of whom always seemed to be in a spot where he would catch her if she tried to launch one of the canoes.
Presently Malbihn appeared, coming out of the jungle, hot and puffing. He ran immediately to the river where the canoes lay and counted them. It was evident that it had suddenly occurred to him that the girl must cross here if she wished to return to her protectors. The expression of relief on his face when he found that none of the canoes was gone was ample evidence of what was passing in his mind. He turned and spoke hurriedly to the head man who had followed him out of the jungle and with whom were several other blacks.
Malbihn suddenly appeared from the jungle, sweaty and out of breath. He quickly ran to the river where the canoes were and counted them. It clearly hit him that the girl would need to cross here if she wanted to go back to her protectors. The look of relief on his face when he saw that none of the canoes were missing clearly showed what he was thinking. He turned and spoke quickly to the head man who had followed him out of the jungle, along with several other men.
Following Malbihn’s instructions they launched all the canoes but one. Malbihn called to the guards in the camp and a moment later the entire party had entered the boats and were paddling up stream.
Following Malbihn’s instructions, they launched all the canoes except one. Malbihn called out to the guards at the camp, and a moment later, the whole group had boarded the boats and were paddling upstream.
Meriem watched them until a bend in the river directly above the camp hid them from her sight. They were gone! She was alone, and they had left a canoe in which lay a paddle! She could scarce believe the good fortune that had come to her. To delay now would be suicidal to her hopes. Quickly she ran from her hiding place and dropped to the ground. A dozen yards lay between her and the canoe.
Meriem watched them until a curve in the river just above the camp blocked her view. They were gone! She was alone, and they had left a canoe with a paddle inside it! She could hardly believe her incredible luck. To hesitate now would be disastrous for her chances. Quickly, she ran from her hiding spot and dropped to the ground. There were about ten yards between her and the canoe.
Up stream, beyond the bend, Malbihn ordered his canoes in to shore. He landed with his head man and crossed the little point slowly in search of a spot where he might watch the canoe he had left at the landing place. He was smiling in anticipation of the almost certain success of his stratagem—sooner or later the girl would come back and attempt to cross the river in one of their canoes. It might be that the idea would not occur to her for some time. They might have to wait a day, or two days; but that she would come if she lived or was not captured by the men he had scouting the jungle for her Malbihn was sure. That she would come so soon, however, he had not guessed, and so when he topped the point and came again within sight of the river he saw that which drew an angry oath from his lips—his quarry already was half way across the river.
Upstream, around the bend, Malbihn signaled for his canoes to head to shore. He got out with his right-hand man and slowly crossed the small point, looking for a place where he could keep an eye on the canoe he had left at the landing. He was smiling, excited about the almost guaranteed success of his plan—sooner or later, the girl would come back and try to cross the river in one of their canoes. It could take her some time to think of the idea. They might have to wait a day or two; but he was sure she would come if she was alive or hadn’t been caught by the men he had sent into the jungle searching for her. However, he hadn’t expected her to come so soon, and as he reached the top of the point and got another look at the river, what he saw made him curse in anger—his target was already halfway across the river.
Turning, he ran rapidly back to his boats, the head man at his heels. Throwing themselves in, Malbihn urged his paddlers to their most powerful efforts. The canoes shot out into the stream and down with the current toward the fleeing quarry. She had almost completed the crossing when they came in sight of her. At the same instant she saw them, and redoubled her efforts to reach the opposite shore before they should overtake her. Two minutes’ start of them was all Meriem cared for. Once in the trees she knew that she could outdistance and elude them. Her hopes were high—they could not overtake her now—she had had too good a start of them.
Turning, he sprinted back to his boats, the leader right behind him. Jumping in, Malbihn urged his paddlers to give it their all. The canoes shot out into the stream and sped down the current toward their fleeing target. She was almost across when they spotted her. The moment she saw them, she pushed herself harder to reach the other shore before they caught up. Meriem only needed a two-minute head start. Once she reached the trees, she knew she could outrun and evade them. Her spirits were high—there was no way they could catch her now—she had too much of a lead.
Malbihn, urging his men onward with a stream of hideous oaths and blows from his fists, realized that the girl was again slipping from his clutches. The leading canoe, in the bow of which he stood, was yet a hundred yards behind the fleeing Meriem when she ran the point of her craft beneath the overhanging trees on the shore of safety.
Malbihn, pushing his men forward with a flurry of awful curses and punches, realized that the girl was slipping away from him again. The leading canoe, where he stood at the front, was still a hundred yards behind the escaping Meriem when she guided her boat under the overhanging trees at the safe shore.
Malbihn screamed to her to halt. He seemed to have gone mad with rage at the realization that he could not overtake her, and then he threw his rifle to his shoulder, aimed carefully at the slim figure scrambling into the trees, and fired.
Malbihn yelled at her to stop. He appeared to have lost his mind with anger at the realization that he couldn't catch up to her, and then he raised his rifle, took aim at the slender figure rushing into the trees, and fired.
Malbihn was an excellent shot. His misses at so short a distance were practically non-existent, nor would he have missed this time but for an accident occurring at the very instant that his finger tightened upon the trigger—an accident to which Meriem owed her life—the providential presence of a water-logged tree trunk, one end of which was embedded in the mud of the river bottom and the other end of which floated just beneath the surface where the prow of Malbihn’s canoe ran upon it as he fired. The slight deviation of the boat’s direction was sufficient to throw the muzzle of the rifle out of aim. The bullet whizzed harmlessly by Meriem’s head and an instant later she had disappeared into the foliage of the tree.
Malbihn was an excellent shot. He rarely missed at such a short distance, and he wouldn't have missed this time if it hadn't been for an accident that happened right when he squeezed the trigger—an accident that saved Meriem’s life. The lucky presence of a waterlogged tree trunk, one end stuck in the mud at the bottom of the river and the other end floating just below the surface, caused the front of Malbihn’s canoe to bump against it as he fired. The slight shift in the boat's direction was enough to misalign the rifle. The bullet zipped harmlessly past Meriem’s head, and a moment later she had vanished into the foliage of the tree.
There was a smile on her lips as she dropped to the ground to cross a little clearing where once had stood a native village surrounded by its fields. The ruined huts still stood in crumbling decay. The rank vegetation of the jungle overgrew the cultivated ground. Small trees already had sprung up in what had been the village street; but desolation and loneliness hung like a pall above the scene. To Meriem, however, it presented but a place denuded of large trees which she must cross quickly to regain the jungle upon the opposite side before Malbihn should have landed.
There was a smile on her lips as she dropped to the ground to cross a small clearing that used to be a native village surrounded by its fields. The ruined huts still stood in crumbling decay. The overgrown jungle had taken over the cultivated land. Small trees had already sprouted in what used to be the village street; but desolation and loneliness hung over the scene like a heavy cloud. For Meriem, though, it was just a spot lacking large trees that she needed to cross quickly to reach the jungle on the other side before Malbihn landed.
The deserted huts were, to her, all the better because they were deserted—she did not see the keen eyes watching her from a dozen points, from tumbling doorways, from behind tottering granaries. In utter unconsciousness of impending danger she started up the village street because it offered the clearest pathway to the jungle.
The empty huts were, to her, even better because they were abandoned—she didn’t notice the sharp eyes observing her from a dozen spots, from crumbling doorways, and from behind shaky granaries. Completely unaware of the lurking danger, she began walking up the village street because it provided the clearest route to the jungle.
A mile away toward the east, fighting his way through the jungle along the trail taken by Malbihn when he had brought Meriem to his camp, a man in torn khaki—filthy, haggard, unkempt—came to a sudden stop as the report of Malbihn’s rifle resounded faintly through the tangled forest. The black man just ahead of him stopped, too.
A mile east, pushing through the jungle along the path Malbihn took when he brought Meriem to his camp, a man in ragged khaki—dirty, worn out, and disheveled—suddenly halted as the sound of Malbihn’s rifle echoed faintly through the dense forest. The Black man just in front of him stopped as well.
“We are almost there, Bwana,” he said. There was awe and respect in his tone and manner.
“We're almost there, boss,” he said. There was wonder and respect in his tone and manner.
The white man nodded and motioned his ebon guide forward once more. It was the Hon. Morison Baynes—the fastidious—the exquisite. His face and hands were scratched and smeared with dried blood from the wounds he had come by in thorn and thicket. His clothes were tatters. But through the blood and the dirt and the rags a new Baynes shone forth—a handsomer Baynes than the dandy and the fop of yore.
The white man nodded and signaled his black guide to move ahead again. It was the Hon. Morison Baynes—the meticulous—the refined. His face and hands were scratched and stained with dried blood from the injuries he had sustained in the thorns and underbrush. His clothes were in tatters. But despite the blood, dirt, and rags, a new Baynes emerged—a more attractive Baynes than the dandy and fop of the past.
In the heart and soul of every son of woman lies the germ of manhood and honor. Remorse for a scurvy act, and an honorable desire to right the wrong he had done the woman he now knew he really loved had excited these germs to rapid growth in Morison Baynes—and the metamorphosis had taken place.
In the heart and soul of every man lies the seed of masculinity and honor. Guilt over a despicable act, combined with a genuine wish to make amends to the woman he now realized he truly loved, had triggered this seed to grow quickly in Morison Baynes—and the transformation had happened.
Onward the two stumbled toward the point from which the single rifle shot had come. The black was unarmed—Baynes, fearing his loyalty had not dared trust him even to carry the rifle which the white man would have been glad to be relieved of many times upon the long march; but now that they were approaching their goal, and knowing as he did that hatred of Malbihn burned hot in the black man’s brain, Baynes handed him the rifle, for he guessed that there would be fighting—he intended that there should, for he had come to avenge. Himself, an excellent revolver shot, would depend upon the smaller weapon at his side.
The two moved forward, stumbling toward the spot where the single rifle shot had come from. The black man was unarmed—Baynes, fearing he couldn't trust him, hadn’t even let him carry the rifle that the white man would have gladly passed off during the long march. But as they got closer to their goal, and knowing the black man's intense hatred for Malbihn, Baynes handed him the rifle, sensing that there would be a fight—he wanted there to be one because he had come for revenge. As an excellent shot with a revolver, he would rely on the smaller weapon at his side.
As the two forged ahead toward their goal they were startled by a volley of shots ahead of them. Then came a few scattering reports, some savage yells, and silence. Baynes was frantic in his endeavors to advance more rapidly, but there the jungle seemed a thousand times more tangled than before. A dozen times he tripped and fell. Twice the black followed a blind trail and they were forced to retrace their steps; but at last they came out into a little clearing near the big afi—a clearing that once held a thriving village, but lay somber and desolate in decay and ruin.
As the two pressed forward toward their goal, they were startled by a series of gunshots ahead. Then came a few random gunfire sounds, some fierce shouts, and then silence. Baynes was desperate to move faster, but the jungle seemed a thousand times more overgrown than before. He tripped and fell a dozen times. Twice, the black man followed a dead-end path, and they had to go back, but finally, they emerged into a small clearing near the big afi—a clearing that once held a bustling village but now lay dark and abandoned in decay and ruin.
In the jungle vegetation that overgrew what had once been the main village street lay the body of a black man, pierced through the heart with a bullet, and still warm. Baynes and his companion looked about in all directions; but no sign of living being could they discover. They stood in silence listening intently.
In the overgrown jungle that had taken over what used to be the main village street, lay the body of a black man, shot through the heart and still warm. Baynes and his companion scanned the area in all directions, but found no signs of life. They stood in silence, listening carefully.
What was that! Voices and the dip of paddles out upon the river?
What was that? Voices and the sound of paddles in the river?
Baynes ran across the dead village toward the fringe of jungle upon the river’s brim. The black was at his side. Together they forced their way through the screening foliage until they could obtain a view of the river, and there, almost to the other shore, they saw Malbihn’s canoes making rapidly for camp. The black recognized his companions immediately.
Baynes ran through the abandoned village toward the edge of the jungle by the riverbank. The Black man was beside him. Together, they pushed through the thick plants until they could see the river, and there, almost on the opposite shore, they spotted Malbihn’s canoes heading quickly for camp. The Black man immediately recognized his friends.
“How can we cross?” asked Baynes.
“How can we get across?” asked Baynes.
The black shook his head. There was no canoe and the crocodiles made it equivalent to suicide to enter the water in an attempt to swim across. Just then the fellow chanced to glance downward. Beneath him, wedged among the branches of a tree, lay the canoe in which Meriem had escaped. The Negro grasped Baynes’ arm and pointed toward his find. The Hon. Morison could scarce repress a shout of exultation. Quickly the two slid down the drooping branches into the boat. The black seized the paddle and Baynes shoved them out from beneath the tree. A second later the canoe shot out upon the bosom of the river and headed toward the opposite shore and the camp of the Swede. Baynes squatted in the bow, straining his eyes after the men pulling the other canoes upon the bank across from him. He saw Malbihn step from the bow of the foremost of the little craft. He saw him turn and glance back across the river. He could see his start of surprise as his eyes fell upon the pursuing canoe, and called the attention of his followers to it.
The black man shook his head. There was no canoe, and the crocodiles made it practically suicidal to try swimming across. Just then, the guy happened to look down. Beneath him, stuck among the branches of a tree, lay the canoe that Meriem had escaped in. The black guy grabbed Baynes’ arm and pointed to his discovery. The Hon. Morison could hardly hold back a shout of joy. Quickly, the two of them slid down the drooping branches into the boat. The black man took the paddle while Baynes pushed them out from underneath the tree. A moment later, the canoe shot out onto the surface of the river, heading toward the opposite shore and the Swedish camp. Baynes crouched in the bow, straining his eyes after the men pulling the other canoes on the bank across from him. He saw Malbihn step from the bow of the nearest little boat. He saw him turn and glance back across the river. He could see his look of surprise as his eyes landed on the pursuing canoe, and he called his followers' attention to it.
Then he stood waiting, for there was but one canoe and two men—little danger to him and his followers in that. Malbihn was puzzled. Who was this white man? He did not recognize him though Baynes’ canoe was now in mid stream and the features of both its occupants plainly discernible to those on shore. One of Malbihn’s blacks it was who first recognized his fellow black in the person of Baynes’ companion. Then Malbihn guessed who the white man must be, though he could scarce believe his own reasoning. It seemed beyond the pale of wildest conjecture to suppose that the Hon. Morison Baynes had followed him through the jungle with but a single companion—and yet it was true. Beneath the dirt and dishevelment he recognized him at last, and in the necessity of admitting that it was he, Malbihn was forced to recognize the incentive that had driven Baynes, the weakling and coward, through the savage jungle upon his trail.
Then he stood waiting, as there was only one canoe and two men—barely a threat to him and his followers. Malbihn was confused. Who was this white man? He didn’t recognize him, even though Baynes’ canoe was now in the middle of the river, and the features of both men were clearly visible to those on shore. One of Malbihn’s men was the first to recognize his fellow black in Baynes’ companion. Then Malbihn realized who the white man must be, though he could hardly believe his own reasoning. It seemed impossible to think that the Hon. Morison Baynes had followed him through the jungle with just one companion—and yet it was true. Beneath the dirt and dishevelment, he finally recognized him, and in having to acknowledge that it was indeed him, Malbihn was compelled to accept the motivation that had pushed Baynes, the weakling and coward, through the savage jungle to pursue him.
The man had come to demand an accounting and to avenge. It seemed incredible, and yet there could be no other explanation. Malbihn shrugged. Well, others had sought Malbihn for similar reasons in the course of a long and checkered career. He fingered his rifle, and waited.
The man had arrived to ask for an explanation and to seek revenge. It seemed unbelievable, but there was no other reason. Malbihn shrugged. Well, others had looked for Malbihn for similar reasons throughout his long and complicated career. He touched his rifle and waited.
Now the canoe was within easy speaking distance of the shore.
Now the canoe was close enough to talk to someone on the shore.
“What do you want?” yelled Malbihn, raising his weapon threateningly.
“What do you want?” shouted Malbihn, raising his weapon menacingly.
The Hon. Morison Baynes leaped to his feet.
The Hon. Morison Baynes jumped to his feet.
“You, damn you!” he shouted, whipping out his revolver and firing almost simultaneously with the Swede.
“You, damn you!” he shouted, pulling out his gun and firing almost at the same time as the Swede.
As the two reports rang out Malbihn dropped his rifle, clutched frantically at his breast, staggered, fell first to his knees and then lunged upon his face. Baynes stiffened. His head flew back spasmodically. For an instant he stood thus, and then crumpled very gently into the bottom of the boat.
As the two reports sounded, Malbihn dropped his rifle, frantically grabbed at his chest, staggered, fell first to his knees, and then collapsed face down. Baynes froze. His head jerked back suddenly. For a moment, he stood there like that, and then he gently crumpled to the bottom of the boat.
The black paddler was at a loss as to what to do. If Malbihn really were dead he could continue on to join his fellows without fear; but should the Swede only be wounded he would be safer upon the far shore. Therefore he hesitated, holding the canoe in mid stream. He had come to have considerable respect for his new master and was not unmoved by his death. As he sat gazing at the crumpled body in the bow of the boat he saw it move. Very feebly the man essayed to turn over. He still lived. The black moved forward and lifted him to a sitting position. He was standing in front of him, his paddle in one hand, asking Baynes where he was hit when there was another shot from shore and the Negro pitched head-long overboard, his paddle still clutched in his dead fingers—shot through the forehead.
The black paddler didn't know what to do. If Malbihn was really dead, he could continue on to join his friends without worry; but if the Swede was just injured, he would be safer on the far shore. So he hesitated, keeping the canoe in mid-stream. He had gained a lot of respect for his new master and felt a sense of loss at the thought of his death. As he sat staring at the crumpled body in the bow of the boat, he saw it move. Very weakly, the man tried to turn over. He was still alive. The black paddler moved forward and propped him up to a sitting position. He stood in front of him, paddle in one hand, asking Baynes where he was hit when another shot rang out from the shore, and the Negro fell headfirst overboard, his paddle still gripped in his lifeless fingers—shot through the forehead.
Baynes turned weakly in the direction of the shore to see Malbihn drawn up upon his elbows levelling his rifle at him. The Englishman slid to the bottom of the canoe as a bullet whizzed above him. Malbihn, sore hit, took longer in aiming, nor was his aim as sure as formerly. With difficulty Baynes turned himself over on his belly and grasping his revolver in his right hand drew himself up until he could look over the edge of the canoe.
Baynes weakly turned toward the shore and saw Malbihn propped up on his elbows, aiming his rifle at him. The Englishman slid down to the bottom of the canoe as a bullet zipped past him. Malbihn, badly injured, took longer to aim and wasn't as accurate as he used to be. Struggling, Baynes rolled onto his stomach and, gripping his revolver in his right hand, pulled himself up enough to peek over the edge of the canoe.
Malbihn saw him instantly and fired; but Baynes did not flinch or duck. With painstaking care he aimed at the target upon the shore from which he now was drifting with the current. His finger closed upon the trigger—there was a flash and a report, and Malbihn’s giant frame jerked to the impact of another bullet.
Malbihn spotted him right away and shot, but Baynes didn’t flinch or duck. He carefully aimed at the target on the shore as he floated downriver with the current. His finger tightened on the trigger—there was a flash and a bang, and Malbihn’s massive body jerked from the force of another bullet.
But he was not yet dead. Again he aimed and fired, the bullet splintering the gunwale of the canoe close by Baynes’ face. Baynes fired again as his canoe drifted further down stream and Malbihn answered from the shore where he lay in a pool of his own blood. And thus, doggedly, the two wounded men continued to carry on their weird duel until the winding African river had carried the Hon. Morison Baynes out of sight around a wooded point.
But he was not dead yet. He aimed and fired again, the bullet splintering the edge of the canoe near Baynes' face. Baynes fired again as his canoe drifted further downstream, and Malbihn responded from the shore where he lay in a pool of his own blood. And so, stubbornly, the two wounded men continued their strange duel until the winding African river carried the Hon. Morison Baynes out of sight around a wooded bend.
XXIII.
Meriem had traversed half the length of the village street when a score of white-robed Negroes and half-castes leaped out upon her from the dark interiors of surrounding huts. She turned to flee, but heavy hands seized her, and when she turned at last to plead with them her eyes fell upon the face of a tall, grim, old man glaring down upon her from beneath the folds of his burnous.
Meriem had walked halfway down the village street when a group of twenty white-robed Black men and mixed-race individuals jumped out at her from the dark interiors of nearby huts. She turned to run, but strong hands grabbed her. When she finally turned to plead with them, her eyes landed on the face of a tall, stern old man glaring down at her from under the folds of his cloak.
At sight of him she staggered back in shocked and terrified surprise. It was The Sheik!
At the sight of him, she stumbled back in shock and fear. It was the Sheik!
Instantly all the old fears and terrors of her childhood returned upon her. She stood trembling before this horrible old man, as a murderer before the judge about to pass sentence of death upon him. She knew that The Sheik recognized her. The years and the changed raiment had not altered her so much but what one who had known her features so well in childhood would know her now.
Instantly, all the old fears and terrors of her childhood came rushing back. She stood trembling before this terrifying old man, like a murderer facing the judge who was about to pass sentence. She knew that The Sheik recognized her. The years and her changed appearance hadn’t changed her enough that someone who had known her so well as a child wouldn't recognize her now.
“So you have come back to your people, eh?” snarled The Sheik. “Come back begging for food and protection, eh?”
“So you've returned to your people, huh?” snarled The Sheik. “Come back asking for food and safety, huh?”
“Let me go,” cried the girl. “I ask nothing of you, but that you let me go back to the Big Bwana.”
“Let me go,” the girl cried. “I’m not asking for anything from you, just that you let me return to the Big Bwana.”
“The Big Bwana?” almost screamed The Sheik, and then followed a stream of profane, Arabic invective against the white man whom all the transgressors of the jungle feared and hated. “You would go back to the Big Bwana, would you? So that is where you have been since you ran away from me, is it? And who comes now across the river after you—the Big Bwana?”
“The Big Bwana?” nearly shouted The Sheik, and then launched into a barrage of curse words in Arabic aimed at the white man whom all the wrongdoers of the jungle feared and despised. “You want to go back to the Big Bwana, huh? So that’s where you’ve been since you left me, right? And who’s coming across the river after you now—the Big Bwana?”
“The Swede whom you once chased away from your country when he and his companion conspired with Nbeeda to steal me from you,” replied Meriem.
“The Swede you once kicked out of your country when he and his friend teamed up with Nbeeda to take me away from you,” replied Meriem.
The Sheik’s eyes blazed, and he called his men to approach the shore and hide among the bushes that they might ambush and annihilate Malbihn and his party; but Malbihn already had landed and crawling through the fringe of jungle was at that very moment looking with wide and incredulous eyes upon the scene being enacted in the street of the deserted village. He recognized The Sheik the moment his eyes fell upon him. There were two men in the world that Malbihn feared as he feared the devil. One was the Big Bwana and the other The Sheik. A single glance he took at that gaunt, familiar figure and then he turned tail and scurried back to his canoe calling his followers after him. And so it happened that the party was well out in the stream before The Sheik reached the shore, and after a volley and a few parting shots that were returned from the canoes the Arab called his men off and securing his prisoner set off toward the South.
The Sheik's eyes burned with anger as he signaled his men to approach the shore and hide among the bushes to ambush and eliminate Malbihn and his group. However, Malbihn had already landed and was crawling through the edge of the jungle, looking with wide, disbelieving eyes at the scene unfolding in the deserted village's street. He recognized The Sheik the moment he laid eyes on him. There were two men in the world that Malbihn feared as much as he feared the devil. One was the Big Bwana, and the other was The Sheik. He quickly glanced at that familiar, gaunt figure and then turned to flee, rushing back to his canoe and calling his followers to follow him. Consequently, the group was far out in the stream by the time The Sheik reached the shore. After a volley of shots, with a few returned from the canoes, the Arab called off his men, secured his prisoner, and headed south.
One of the bullets from Malbihn’s force had struck a black standing in the village street where he had been left with another to guard Meriem, and his companions had left him where he had fallen, after appropriating his apparel and belongings. His was the body that Baynes had discovered when he had entered the village.
One of the bullets from Malbihn’s force had hit a man standing in the village street, where he had been left with another person to guard Meriem. His companions had abandoned him after taking his clothes and belongings. That was the body Baynes found when he entered the village.
The Sheik and his party had been marching southward along the river when one of them, dropping out of line to fetch water, had seen Meriem paddling desperately from the opposite shore. The fellow had called The Sheik’s attention to the strange sight—a white woman alone in Central Africa and the old Arab had hidden his men in the deserted village to capture her when she landed, for thoughts of ransom were always in the mind of The Sheik. More than once before had glittering gold filtered through his fingers from a similar source. It was easy money and The Sheik had none too much easy money since the Big Bwana had so circumscribed the limits of his ancient domain that he dared not even steal ivory from natives within two hundred miles of the Big Bwana’s douar. And when at last the woman had walked into the trap he had set for her and he had recognized her as the same little girl he had brutalized and mal-treated years before his gratification had been huge. Now he lost no time in establishing the old relations of father and daughter that had existed between them in the past. At the first opportunity he struck her a heavy blow across the face. He forced her to walk when he might have dismounted one of his men instead, or had her carried on a horse’s rump. He seemed to revel in the discovery of new methods for torturing or humiliating her, and among all his followers she found no single one to offer her sympathy, or who dared defend her, even had they had the desire to do so.
The Sheik and his group were heading south along the river when one of them stepped out of line to get some water and spotted Meriem paddling frantically from the other side. He pointed out the unusual sight to The Sheik—a white woman alone in Central Africa—and the old Arab hid his men in an abandoned village to capture her when she reached the shore, as thoughts of ransom were always on The Sheik's mind. He had profited from similar situations before, with gold slipping through his fingers. It was easy money, and The Sheik had very little of it since the Big Bwana had restricted the boundaries of his old territory so much that he couldn't even steal ivory from locals within two hundred miles of the Big Bwana's douar. When the woman finally walked into the trap he had set and he recognized her as the same little girl he had abused and mistreated years ago, he felt immense satisfaction. He wasted no time in reinstating the old dynamic of father and daughter that had existed between them. At the first chance, he struck her hard across the face. He made her walk even though he could have had one of his men dismount or carried her on a horse. He seemed to take pleasure in finding new ways to torture or humiliate her, and among all his followers, she found no one to sympathize with her or who would dare defend her, even if they wanted to.
A two days’ march brought them at last to the familiar scenes of her childhood, and the first face upon which she set her eyes as she was driven through the gates into the strong stockade was that of the toothless, hideous Mabunu, her one time nurse. It was as though all the years that had intervened were but a dream. Had it not been for her clothing and the fact that she had grown in stature she might well have believed it so. All was there as she had left it—the new faces which supplanted some of the old were of the same bestial, degraded type. There were a few young Arabs who had joined The Sheik since she had been away. Otherwise all was the same—all but one. Geeka was not there, and she found herself missing Geeka as though the ivory-headed one had been a flesh and blood intimate and friend. She missed her ragged little confidante, into whose deaf ears she had been wont to pour her many miseries and her occasional joys—Geeka, of the splinter limbs and the ratskin torso—Geeka the disreputable—Geeka the beloved.
A two-day march finally brought them back to the familiar places of her childhood, and the first face she saw as she was driven through the gates into the strong stockade was that of the toothless, ugly Mabunu, her former nurse. It felt like all the years that had passed were just a dream. If it weren't for her clothes and the fact that she had grown taller, she might have believed it. Everything was just as she had left it—the new faces replacing some of the old were the same brutal, degraded type. A few young Arabs had joined The Sheik since she left. Otherwise, everything was the same—all except for one thing. Geeka was not there, and she found herself missing Geeka as if the one with the ivory head had been a close friend. She missed her ragged little confidante, the one she used to share all her troubles and occasional joys with—Geeka, with her broken limbs and ratskin torso—Geeka the outcast—Geeka the beloved.
For a time the inhabitants of The Sheik’s village who had not been upon the march with him amused themselves by inspecting the strangely clad white girl, whom some of them had known as a little child. Mabunu pretended great joy at her return, baring her toothless gums in a hideous grimace that was intended to be indicative of rejoicing. But Meriem could but shudder as she recalled the cruelties of this terrible old hag in the years gone by.
For a while, the people of the Sheik’s village who hadn’t traveled with him entertained themselves by looking at the oddly dressed white girl, whom some of them remembered as a little child. Mabunu acted very happy to see her again, showing her toothless gums in a creepy grin that was supposed to show joy. But Meriem could only shudder as she remembered the terrible things this awful old woman had done in the past.
Among the Arabs who had come in her absence was a tall young fellow of twenty—a handsome, sinister looking youth—who stared at her in open admiration until The Sheik came and ordered him away, and Abdul Kamak went, scowling.
Among the Arabs who had come during her absence was a tall young man of twenty—a handsome, yet somewhat menacing youth—who openly stared at her in admiration until The Sheik arrived and ordered him to leave, causing Abdul Kamak to depart with a scowl.
At last, their curiosity satisfied, Meriem was alone. As of old, she was permitted the freedom of the village, for the stockade was high and strong and the only gates were well-guarded by day and by night; but as of old she cared not for the companionship of the cruel Arabs and the degraded blacks who formed the following of The Sheik, and so, as had been her wont in the sad days of her childhood, she slunk down to an unfrequented corner of the enclosure where she had often played at house-keeping with her beloved Geeka beneath the spreading branches of the great tree that had overhung the palisade; but now the tree was gone, and Meriem guessed the reason. It was from this tree that Korak had descended and struck down The Sheik the day that he had rescued her from the life of misery and torture that had been her lot for so long that she could remember no other.
At last, satisfied with their curiosity, Meriem was alone. Like before, she had the freedom to roam the village, as the stockade was tall and sturdy, with well-guarded gates day and night. But, as always, she had no interest in the company of the cruel Arabs and the degraded blacks who followed The Sheik. So, just like in the sad days of her childhood, she slipped away to a quiet corner of the enclosure where she had often played house with her beloved Geeka under the wide branches of the great tree that used to hang over the palisade; but now the tree was gone, and Meriem suspected why. It was from this tree that Korak had climbed down and attacked The Sheik the day he rescued her from the misery and torture that had been her life for as long as she could remember.
There were low bushes growing within the stockade, however, and in the shade of these Meriem sat down to think. A little glow of happiness warmed her heart as she recalled her first meeting with Korak and then the long years that he had cared for and protected her with the solicitude and purity of an elder brother. For months Korak had not so occupied her thoughts as he did today. He seemed closer and dearer now than ever he had before, and she wondered that her heart had drifted so far from loyalty to his memory. And then came the image of the Hon. Morison, the exquisite, and Meriem was troubled. Did she really love the flawless young Englishman? She thought of the glories of London, of which he had told her in such glowing language. She tried to picture herself admired and honored in the midst of the gayest society of the great capital. The pictures she drew were the pictures that the Hon. Morison had drawn for her. They were alluring pictures, but through them all the brawny, half-naked figure of the giant Adonis of the jungle persisted in obtruding itself.
There were small bushes growing inside the stockade, and in the shade of these, Meriem sat down to think. A warm feeling of happiness spread through her heart as she remembered her first meeting with Korak and the many years he had cared for and protected her like an older brother. For months, Korak hadn’t occupied her thoughts as much as he did today. He felt closer and more dear to her than ever before, and she wondered how her heart had strayed so far from being loyal to his memory. Then the image of the Hon. Morison, the charming Englishman, appeared, and Meriem became uneasy. Did she truly love the perfect young man? She thought of the wonders of London, which he had described in such vivid detail. She tried to imagine herself admired and respected in the midst of the liveliest society in the great capital. The visions she created were the ones the Hon. Morison had painted for her. They were enticing images, but through them all, the strong, half-naked figure of the giant Adonis of the jungle kept intruding.
Meriem pressed her hand above her heart as she stifled a sigh, and as she did so she felt the hard outlines of the photograph she had hidden there as she slunk from Malbihn’s tent. Now she drew it forth and commenced to re-examine it more carefully than she had had time to do before. She was sure that the baby face was hers. She studied every detail of the picture. Half hidden in the lace of the dainty dress rested a chain and locket. Meriem puckered her brows. What tantalizing half-memories it awakened! Could this flower of evident civilization be the little Arab Meriem, daughter of The Sheik? It was impossible, and yet that locket? Meriem knew it. She could not refute the conviction of her memory. She had seen that locket before and it had been hers. What strange mystery lay buried in her past?
Meriem pressed her hand over her heart as she held back a sigh, and as she did, she felt the hard shape of the photograph she had tucked there while slipping away from Malbihn’s tent. Now she pulled it out and began to examine it more closely than she had been able to before. She was certain the baby face was hers. She studied every detail of the picture. Hidden in the lace of the pretty dress was a chain and locket. Meriem furrowed her brows. What tantalizing half-memories did it bring back? Could this symbol of obvious civilization really be the little Arab Meriem, daughter of The Sheik? It seemed impossible, and yet that locket? Meriem recognized it. She couldn’t deny the certainty of her memory. She had seen that locket before, and it had been hers. What strange mystery was buried in her past?
As she sat gazing at the picture she suddenly became aware that she was not alone—that someone was standing close behind her—some one who had approached her noiselessly. Guiltily she thrust the picture back into her waist. A hand fell upon her shoulder. She was sure that it was The Sheik and she awaited in dumb terror the blow that she knew would follow.
As she sat staring at the picture, she suddenly realized she wasn’t alone—someone was standing right behind her—someone who had approached silently. Feeling guilty, she shoved the picture back into her waist. A hand landed on her shoulder. She was convinced it was The Sheik, and she braced herself in silent fear for the blow she knew was coming.
No blow came and she looked upward over her shoulder—into the eyes of Abdul Kamak, the young Arab.
No strike occurred, and she glanced back over her shoulder—into the eyes of Abdul Kamak, the young Arab.
“I saw,” he said, “the picture that you have just hidden. It is you when you were a child—a very young child. May I see it again?”
“I saw,” he said, “the picture you just hid. It’s you as a child—a very young child. Can I see it again?”
Meriem drew away from him.
Meriem pulled away from him.
“I will give it back,” he said. “I have heard of you and I know that you have no love for The Sheik, your father. Neither have I. I will not betray you. Let me see the picture.”
“I'll return it,” he said. “I've heard about you and I know you don't care for The Sheik, your father. Neither do I. I won’t betray you. Just show me the picture.”
Friendless among cruel enemies, Meriem clutched at the straw that Abdul Kamak held out to her. Perhaps in him she might find the friend she needed. Anyway he had seen the picture and if he was not a friend he could tell The Sheik about it and it would be taken away from her. So she might as well grant his request and hope that he had spoken fairly, and would deal fairly. She drew the photograph from its hiding place and handed it to him.
Friendless among harsh enemies, Meriem grasped the straw that Abdul Kamak offered her. Maybe she could find the friend she needed in him. After all, he had seen the picture, and if he wasn't a friend, he could tell The Sheik about it, and it would be taken from her. So she might as well agree to his request and hope that he had been honest and would treat her fairly. She pulled the photograph from its hiding spot and gave it to him.
Abdul Kamak examined it carefully, comparing it, feature by feature with the girl sitting on the ground looking up into his face. Slowly he nodded his head.
Abdul Kamak looked it over closely, comparing it detail by detail with the girl sitting on the ground, gazing up at him. Gradually, he nodded his head.
“Yes,” he said, “it is you, but where was it taken? How does it happen that The Sheik’s daughter is clothed in the garments of the unbeliever?”
“Yes,” he said, “it’s you, but where was this taken? How is it that The Sheik’s daughter is wearing the clothes of a nonbeliever?”
“I do not know,” replied Meriem. “I never saw the picture until a couple of days ago, when I found it in the tent of the Swede, Malbihn.”
“I don’t know,” replied Meriem. “I never saw the picture until a few days ago when I found it in the tent of the Swede, Malbihn.”
Abdul Kamak raised his eyebrows. He turned the picture over and as his eyes fell upon the old newspaper cutting they went wide. He could read French, with difficulty, it is true; but he could read it. He had been to Paris. He had spent six months there with a troupe of his desert fellows, upon exhibition, and he had improved his time, learning many of the customs, some of the language, and most of the vices of his conquerors. Now he put his learning to use. Slowly, laboriously he read the yellowed cutting. His eyes were no longer wide. Instead they narrowed to two slits of cunning. When he had done he looked at the girl.
Abdul Kamak raised his eyebrows. He flipped the picture over, and when he saw the old newspaper clipping, his eyes widened. He could read French, albeit with some difficulty; still, he could read it. He had been to Paris. He spent six months there with a group of his fellow desert men for a showcase, and he took the opportunity to learn many of the customs, some of the language, and most of the vices of his conquerors. Now he put his knowledge to work. Slowly and painstakingly, he read the yellowed clipping. His eyes were no longer wide. Instead, they narrowed into two slits of cunning. When he finished, he looked at the girl.
“You have read this?” he asked.
"Have you read this?" he asked.
“It is French,” she replied, “and I do not read French.”
“It’s in French,” she said, “and I don’t read French.”
Abdul Kamak stood long in silence looking at the girl. She was very beautiful. He desired her, as had many other men who had seen her. At last he dropped to one knee beside her.
Abdul Kamak stood for a long time in silence, staring at the girl. She was incredibly beautiful. He wanted her, just like many other men who had seen her. Finally, he sank to one knee beside her.
A wonderful idea had sprung to Abdul Kamak’s mind. It was an idea that might be furthered if the girl were kept in ignorance of the contents of that newspaper cutting. It would certainly be doomed should she learn its contents.
A brilliant idea popped into Abdul Kamak’s head. It was an idea that could be developed if the girl remained unaware of what the newspaper clipping contained. It would definitely be ruined if she found out what it said.
“Meriem,” he whispered, “never until today have my eyes beheld you, yet at once they told my heart that it must ever be your servant. You do not know me, but I ask that you trust me. I can help you. You hate The Sheik—so do I. Let me take you away from him. Come with me, and we will go back to the great desert where my father is a sheik mightier than is yours. Will you come?”
“Meriem,” he whispered, “I’ve never seen you until today, but the moment I did, my heart knew it would always serve you. You don’t know me, but I’m asking you to trust me. I can help you. You hate The Sheik—so do I. Let me take you away from him. Come with me, and we’ll return to the vast desert where my father is a sheik even more powerful than yours. Will you come?”
Meriem sat in silence. She hated to wound the only one who had offered her protection and friendship; but she did not want Abdul Kamak’s love. Deceived by her silence the man seized her and strained her to him; but Meriem struggled to free herself.
Meriem sat quietly. She hated to hurt the only person who had given her protection and friendship, but she didn't want Abdul Kamak's love. Misled by her silence, the man grabbed her and pulled her close, but Meriem fought to break free.
“I do not love you,” she cried. “Oh, please do not make me hate you. You are the only one who has shown kindness toward me, and I want to like you, but I cannot love you.”
“I don’t love you,” she cried. “Please don’t make me hate you. You’re the only one who’s been kind to me, and I want to like you, but I can’t love you.”
Abdul Kamak drew himself to his full height.
Abdul Kamak stood tall.
“You will learn to love me,” he said, “for I shall take you whether you will or no. You hate The Sheik and so you will not tell him, for if you do I will tell him of the picture. I hate The Sheik, and—”
“You’re going to learn to love me,” he said, “because I’m going to take you whether you like it or not. You hate The Sheik, so you won’t tell him, because if you do, I’ll tell him about the picture. I hate The Sheik, and—”
“You hate The Sheik?” came a grim voice from behind them.
“You hate The Sheik?” a harsh voice came from behind them.
Both turned to see The Sheik standing a few paces from them. Abdul still held the picture in his hand. Now he thrust it within his burnous.
Both turned to see The Sheik standing a few steps away from them. Abdul still held the picture in his hand. Now he shoved it inside his cloak.
“Yes,” he said, “I hate the Sheik,” and as he spoke he sprang toward the older man, felled him with a blow and dashed on across the village to the line where his horse was picketed, saddled and ready, for Abdul Kamak had been about to ride forth to hunt when he had seen the stranger girl alone by the bushes.
“Yes,” he said, “I hate the Sheik,” and as he spoke he lunged at the older man, knocked him down with a punch, and dashed across the village to where his horse was tied up, saddled and ready, because Abdul Kamak had been about to head out to hunt when he spotted the stranger girl alone by the bushes.
Leaping into the saddle Abdul Kamak dashed for the village gates. The Sheik, momentarily stunned by the blow that had felled him, now staggered to his feet, shouting lustily to his followers to stop the escaped Arab. A dozen blacks leaped forward to intercept the horseman, only to be ridden down or brushed aside by the muzzle of Abdul Kamak’s long musket, which he lashed from side to side about him as he spurred on toward the gate. But here he must surely be intercepted. Already the two blacks stationed there were pushing the unwieldy portals to. Up flew the barrel of the fugitive’s weapon. With reins flying loose and his horse at a mad gallop the son of the desert fired once—twice; and both the keepers of the gate dropped in their tracks. With a wild whoop of exultation, twirling his musket high above his head and turning in his saddle to laugh back into the faces of his pursuers Abdul Kamak dashed out of the village of The Sheik and was swallowed up by the jungle.
Leaping into the saddle, Abdul Kamak raced toward the village gates. The Sheik, briefly stunned by the blow that had knocked him down, now staggered to his feet, shouting loudly to his followers to stop the escaping Arab. A dozen men charged forward to intercept the horseman, only to be trampled or shoved aside by the barrel of Abdul Kamak’s long musket, which he swung back and forth as he urged his horse toward the gate. But he would surely be stopped here. The two men stationed there were already pushing the heavy gates closed. Up went the barrel of the fugitive’s weapon. With the reins flapping and his horse at a frantic gallop, the son of the desert fired once—twice; and both of the gatekeepers fell in their tracks. With a wild shout of triumph, twirling his musket high above his head and turning in his saddle to laugh back at his pursuers, Abdul Kamak burst out of the village of The Sheik and disappeared into the jungle.
Foaming with rage The Sheik ordered immediate pursuit, and then strode rapidly back to where Meriem sat huddled by the bushes where he had left her.
Foaming with rage, the Sheik ordered an immediate pursuit and then marched quickly back to where Meriem sat huddled by the bushes he had left her in.
“The picture!” he cried. “What picture did the dog speak of? Where is it? Give it to me at once!”
“The picture!” he shouted. “What picture is the dog talking about? Where is it? Give it to me right now!”
“He took it,” replied Meriem, dully.
“He took it,” Meriem replied flatly.
“What was it?” again demanded The Sheik, seizing the girl roughly by the hair and dragging her to her feet, where he shook her venomously. “What was it a picture of?”
“What was it?” The Sheik demanded again, roughly grabbing the girl by her hair and pulling her to her feet, shaking her fiercely. “What was it a picture of?”
“Of me,” said Meriem, “when I was a little girl. I stole it from Malbihn, the Swede—it had printing on the back cut from an old newspaper.”
“Of me,” said Meriem, “when I was a little girl. I took it from Malbihn, the Swede—it had printing on the back cut from an old newspaper.”
The Sheik went white with rage.
The Sheik turned pale with anger.
“What said the printing?” he asked in a voice so low that she but barely caught his words.
“What did the printing say?” he asked in a voice so quiet that she could barely catch his words.
“I do not know. It was in French and I cannot read French.”
“I don’t know. It was in French and I can’t read French.”
The Sheik seemed relieved. He almost smiled, nor did he again strike Meriem before he turned and strode away with the parting admonition that she speak never again to any other than Mabunu and himself. And along the caravan trail galloped Abdul Kamak toward the north.
The Sheik looked relieved. He almost smiled and didn’t hit Meriem again before he turned and walked away, warning her never to speak to anyone other than Mabunu and himself. Meanwhile, Abdul Kamak galloped north along the caravan trail.
As his canoe drifted out of sight and range of the wounded Swede the Hon. Morison sank weakly to its bottom where he lay for long hours in partial stupor.
As his canoe floated out of sight and beyond the range of the injured Swede, the Hon. Morison collapsed weakly to the bottom, where he lay for many hours in a semi-conscious state.
It was night before he fully regained consciousness. And then he lay for a long time looking up at the stars and trying to recollect where he was, what accounted for the gently rocking motion of the thing upon which he lay, and why the position of the stars changed so rapidly and miraculously. For a while he thought he was dreaming, but when he would have moved to shake sleep from him the pain of his wound recalled to him the events that had led up to his present position. Then it was that he realized that he was floating down a great African river in a native canoe—alone, wounded, and lost.
It was night before he fully woke up. He lay there for a long time, staring up at the stars and trying to remember where he was, what caused the gentle rocking of the surface beneath him, and why the stars seemed to shift so quickly and astonishingly. For a moment, he thought he was dreaming, but when he tried to move to shake off the sleep, the pain from his wound reminded him of what had happened to leave him in this situation. That’s when he realized he was floating down a large African river in a native canoe—alone, injured, and lost.
Painfully he dragged himself to a sitting position. He noticed that the wound pained him less than he had imagined it would. He felt of it gingerly—it had ceased to bleed. Possibly it was but a flesh wound after all, and nothing serious. If it totally incapacitated him even for a few days it would mean death, for by that time he would be too weakened by hunger and pain to provide food for himself.
He painfully pulled himself into a sitting position. He realized that the wound hurt him less than he had expected. He touched it carefully—it had stopped bleeding. Maybe it was just a flesh wound after all, nothing serious. If it completely incapacitated him even for a few days, it would mean death, because by then he would be too weak from hunger and pain to take care of himself.
From his own troubles his mind turned to Meriem’s. That she had been with the Swede at the time he had attempted to reach the fellow’s camp he naturally believed; but he wondered what would become of her now. Even if Hanson died of his wounds would Meriem be any better off? She was in the power of equally villainous men—brutal savages of the lowest order. Baynes buried his face in his hands and rocked back and forth as the hideous picture of her fate burned itself into his consciousness. And it was he who had brought this fate upon her! His wicked desire had snatched a pure and innocent girl from the protection of those who loved her to hurl her into the clutches of the bestial Swede and his outcast following! And not until it had become too late had he realized the magnitude of the crime he himself had planned and contemplated. Not until it had become too late had he realized that greater than his desire, greater than his lust, greater than any passion he had ever felt before was the newborn love that burned within his breast for the girl he would have ruined.
From his own troubles, his thoughts shifted to Meriem’s. He naturally assumed she had been with the Swede when he tried to get to the guy’s camp, but he wondered what would happen to her now. Even if Hanson died from his injuries, would Meriem be any better off? She was at the mercy of equally wicked men—brutal savages of the worst kind. Baynes buried his face in his hands and rocked back and forth as the horrifying image of her future burned itself into his mind. And it was he who had brought this fate upon her! His selfish desires had taken a pure and innocent girl away from the care of those who loved her, throwing her into the hands of the savage Swede and his outcast crew! Not until it was too late did he realize the extent of the crime he himself had planned and considered. Not until it was too late did he understand that stronger than his desire, stronger than his lust, greater than any passion he had ever felt before, was the newfound love that burned within him for the girl he was about to ruin.
The Hon. Morison Baynes did not fully realize the change that had taken place within him. Had one suggested that he ever had been aught than the soul of honor and chivalry he would have taken umbrage forthwith. He knew that he had done a vile thing when he had plotted to carry Meriem away to London, yet he excused it on the ground of his great passion for the girl having temporarily warped his moral standards by the intensity of its heat. But, as a matter of fact, a new Baynes had been born. Never again could this man be bent to dishonor by the intensity of a desire. His moral fiber had been strengthened by the mental suffering he had endured. His mind and his soul had been purged by sorrow and remorse.
The Hon. Morison Baynes didn’t fully understand the change that had occurred within him. If someone suggested that he had ever been anything less than the epitome of honor and chivalry, he would have been immediately offended. He knew he had done something terrible when he plotted to take Meriem away to London, but he justified it by claiming that his intense passion for her had temporarily distorted his moral values. However, in reality, a new version of Baynes had emerged. He would never again be swayed to dishonor by the intensity of desire. His moral strength had been reinforced by the emotional pain he experienced. His mind and soul had been cleansed by sorrow and regret.
His one thought now was to atone—win to Meriem’s side and lay down his life, if necessary, in her protection. His eyes sought the length of the canoe in search of the paddle, for a determination had galvanized him to immediate action despite his weakness and his wound. But the paddle was gone. He turned his eyes toward the shore. Dimly through the darkness of a moonless night he saw the awful blackness of the jungle, yet it touched no responsive chord of terror within him now as it had done in the past. He did not even wonder that he was unafraid, for his mind was entirely occupied with thoughts of another’s danger.
His only thought now was to make up for it—get to Meriem’s side and give his life if he had to, to protect her. He glanced along the canoe looking for the paddle because a strong determination pushed him to act immediately despite his weakness and injury. But the paddle was gone. He turned his gaze toward the shore. Faintly through the darkness of a moonless night, he saw the terrifying blackness of the jungle, but it no longer triggered any fear in him like it used to. He didn’t even question why he felt so unafraid; his mind was completely focused on someone else’s danger.
Drawing himself to his knees he leaned over the edge of the canoe and commenced to paddle vigorously with his open palm. Though it tired and hurt him he kept assiduously at his self imposed labor for hours. Little by little the drifting canoe moved nearer and nearer the shore. The Hon. Morison could hear a lion roaring directly opposite him and so close that he felt he must be almost to the shore. He drew his rifle closer to his side; but he did not cease to paddle.
Drawing himself to his knees, he leaned over the edge of the canoe and started paddling vigorously with his open palm. Even though it tired and hurt him, he kept diligently at his self-imposed task for hours. Little by little, the drifting canoe moved closer to the shore. The Hon. Morison could hear a lion roaring directly opposite him and so close that he felt he must be almost to the shore. He pulled his rifle closer to his side, but he didn’t stop paddling.
After what seemed to the tired man an eternity of time he felt the brush of branches against the canoe and heard the swirl of the water about them. A moment later he reached out and clutched a leafy limb. Again the lion roared—very near it seemed now, and Baynes wondered if the brute could have been following along the shore waiting for him to land.
After what felt like an eternity to the weary man, he felt the branches brush against the canoe and heard the water swirling around them. A moment later, he reached out and grabbed a leafy branch. Again, the lion roared—now it sounded very close, and Baynes wondered if the beast had been following him along the shore, waiting for him to land.
He tested the strength of the limb to which he clung. It seemed strong enough to support a dozen men. Then he reached down and lifted his rifle from the bottom of the canoe, slipping the sling over his shoulder. Again he tested the branch, and then reaching upward as far as he could for a safe hold he drew himself painfully and slowly upward until his feet swung clear of the canoe, which, released, floated silently from beneath him to be lost forever in the blackness of the dark shadows down stream.
He tested the strength of the branch he was holding onto. It felt sturdy enough to support a dozen men. Then he bent down and picked up his rifle from the bottom of the canoe, slipping the strap over his shoulder. He tested the branch again, and then reaching as high as he could for a secure grip, he drew himself up slowly and painfully until his feet swung free of the canoe, which, now unanchored, floated quietly away beneath him to be lost forever in the darkness of the shadows downstream.
He had burned his bridges behind him. He must either climb aloft or drop back into the river; but there had been no other way. He struggled to raise one leg over the limb, but found himself scarce equal to the effort, for he was very weak. For a time he hung there feeling his strength ebbing. He knew that he must gain the branch above at once or it would be too late.
He had burned his bridges behind him. He had to either climb up or fall back into the river; but there was no other option. He struggled to lift one leg over the branch but realized he was barely strong enough for the effort, as he felt very weak. For a moment, he hung there, feeling his strength fading. He knew he had to reach the branch above quickly or it would be too late.
Suddenly the lion roared almost in his ear. Baynes glanced up. He saw two spots of flame a short distance from and above him. The lion was standing on the bank of the river glaring at him, and—waiting for him. Well, thought the Hon. Morison, let him wait. Lions can’t climb trees, and if I get into this one I shall be safe enough from him.
Suddenly, the lion roared right next to him. Baynes looked up and saw two fiery spots a little way above him. The lion was on the riverbank, staring him down and—waiting for him. Well, thought the Hon. Morison, let him wait. Lions can’t climb trees, and if I get up into this one, I’ll be safe enough from him.
The young Englishman’s feet hung almost to the surface of the water—closer than he knew, for all was pitch dark below as above him. Presently he heard a slight commotion in the river beneath him and something banged against one of his feet, followed almost instantly by a sound that he felt he could not have mistaken—the click of great jaws snapping together.
The young Englishman's feet dangled just above the water—closer than he realized, as everything was pitch black both below and above him. Soon, he heard a faint disturbance in the river beneath him, and something hit one of his feet, quickly followed by a sound he couldn't misinterpret—the snap of huge jaws closing together.
“By George!” exclaimed the Hon. Morison, aloud. “The beggar nearly got me,” and immediately he struggled again to climb higher and to comparative safety; but with that final effort he knew that it was futile. Hope that had survived persistently until now began to wane. He felt his tired, numbed fingers slipping from their hold—he was dropping back into the river—into the jaws of the frightful death that awaited him there.
“By George!” shouted Hon. Morison. “The beggar almost got me,” and right away he tried again to climb higher and reach some safety; but with that last effort, he knew it was pointless. The hope that had stubbornly held on until now started to fade. He felt his worn-out, numb fingers losing their grip—he was falling back into the river—into the grip of the terrifying death that awaited him there.
And then he heard the leaves above him rustle to the movement of a creature among them. The branch to which he clung bent beneath an added weight—and no light weight, from the way it sagged; but still Baynes clung desperately—he would not give up voluntarily either to the death above or the death below.
And then he heard the leaves above him rustle as a creature moved among them. The branch he was holding onto bent under the extra weight—and it was no small weight, judging by how much it sagged; but still, Baynes held on desperately—he wouldn’t surrender easily to either the death above or the death below.
He felt a soft, warm pad upon the fingers of one of his hands where they circled the branch to which he clung, and then something reached down out of the blackness above and dragged him up among the branches of the tree.
He felt a soft, warm cushion against the fingers of one hand as they wrapped around the branch he was holding onto, and then something reached down from the darkness above and pulled him up into the tree's branches.
XXIV.
Sometimes lolling upon Tantor’s back, sometimes roaming the jungle in solitude, Korak made his way slowly toward the West and South. He made but a few miles a day, for he had a whole lifetime before him and no place in particular to go. Possibly he would have moved more rapidly but for the thought which continually haunted him that each mile he traversed carried him further and further away from Meriem—no longer his Meriem, as of yore, it is true! but still as dear to him as ever.
Sometimes lounging on Tantor’s back, sometimes wandering the jungle alone, Korak slowly made his way toward the West and South. He covered only a few miles each day, as he had a whole lifetime ahead of him and no specific destination. He might have traveled faster if not for the nagging thought that each mile he covered took him further away from Meriem—no longer his Meriem, it's true! but still as dear to him as ever.
Thus he came upon the trail of The Sheik’s band as it traveled down river from the point where The Sheik had captured Meriem to his own stockaded village. Korak pretty well knew who it was that had passed, for there were few in the great jungle with whom he was not familiar, though it had been years since he had come this far north. He had no particular business, however, with the old Sheik and so he did not propose following him—the further from men he could stay the better pleased he would be—he wished that he might never see a human face again. Men always brought him sorrow and misery.
So he came across the trail of The Sheik’s group as they moved downstream from the spot where The Sheik had taken Meriem to his own fortified village. Korak pretty much knew who had passed by, since there were few people in the vast jungle he wasn’t acquainted with, even though it had been years since he ventured this far north. However, he had no real reason to engage with the old Sheik, so he didn’t plan on following him—the farther away from people he could stay, the happier he would be—he wished he could avoid seeing another human face altogether. People always brought him pain and suffering.
The river suggested fishing and so he dawdled upon its shores, catching fish after a fashion of his own devising and eating them raw. When night came he curled up in a great tree beside the stream—the one from which he had been fishing during the afternoon—and was soon asleep. Numa, roaring beneath him, awoke him. He was about to call out in anger to his noisy neighbor when something else caught his attention. He listened. Was there something in the tree beside himself? Yes, he heard the noise of something below him trying to clamber upward. Presently he heard the click of a crocodile’s jaws in the waters beneath, and then, low but distinct: “By George! The beggar nearly got me.” The voice was familiar.
The river looked inviting for fishing, so he lingered on its banks, catching fish in his own unique way and eating them raw. When night fell, he settled down in a large tree by the stream—the same one where he had been fishing earlier—and quickly drifted off to sleep. Numa’s roar below startled him awake. Just as he was about to shout in frustration at his noisy neighbor, something else caught his attention. He listened closely. Was there something in the tree with him? Yes, he heard the sound of something trying to climb up beneath him. Soon, he heard the snap of a crocodile’s jaws in the water below, and then, soft but clear: “By George! The beggar nearly got me.” The voice was familiar.
Korak glanced downward toward the speaker. Outlined against the faint luminosity of the water he saw the figure of a man clinging to a lower branch of the tree. Silently and swiftly the ape-man clambered downward. He felt a hand beneath his foot. He reached down and clutched the figure beneath him and dragged it up among the branches. It struggled weakly and struck at him; but Korak paid no more attention than Tantor to an ant. He lugged his burden to the higher safety and greater comfort of a broad crotch, and there he propped it in a sitting position against the bole of the tree. Numa still was roaring beneath them, doubtless in anger that he had been robbed of his prey. Korak shouted down at him, calling him, in the language of the great apes, “Old green-eyed eater of carrion,” “Brother of Dango,” the hyena, and other choice appellations of jungle opprobrium.
Korak looked down at the speaker. Backlit by the faint glow of the water, he spotted a man hanging onto a lower branch of the tree. Quietly and quickly, the ape-man climbed down. He felt a hand under his foot. He reached down, grabbed the figure below him, and pulled it up into the branches. It weakly struggled and hit at him, but Korak ignored it, just like Tantor would ignore an ant. He carried his load to the higher safety and comfort of a wide fork in the tree and propped it up in a sitting position against the trunk. Numa was still roaring below them, clearly angry that he had lost his meal. Korak yelled down at him, addressing him in the language of the great apes, calling him “Old green-eyed eater of carrion,” “Brother of Dango,” the hyena, and other choice names of jungle insult.
The Hon. Morison Baynes, listening, felt assured that a gorilla had seized upon him. He felt for his revolver, and as he was drawing it stealthily from its holster a voice asked in perfectly good English, “Who are you?”
The Hon. Morison Baynes, listening, felt certain that a gorilla had grabbed him. He reached for his revolver, and as he was quietly pulling it from its holster, a voice asked in perfectly good English, “Who are you?”
Baynes started so that he nearly fell from the branch.
Baynes flinched so hard that he almost fell from the branch.
“My God!” he exclaimed. “Are you a man?”
“My God!” he exclaimed. “Are you a guy?”
“What did you think I was?” asked Korak.
“What did you think I was?” Korak asked.
“A gorilla,” replied Baynes, honestly.
"A gorilla," Baynes replied earnestly.
Korak laughed.
Korak chuckled.
“Who are you?” he repeated.
"Who are you?" he asked again.
“I’m an Englishman by the name of Baynes; but who the devil are you?” asked the Hon. Morison.
“I’m an Englishman named Baynes; but who the hell are you?” asked the Hon. Morison.
“They call me The Killer,” replied Korak, giving the English translation of the name that Akut had given him. And then after a pause during which the Hon. Morison attempted to pierce the darkness and catch a glimpse of the features of the strange being into whose hands he had fallen, “You are the same whom I saw kissing the girl at the edge of the great plain to the East, that time that the lion charged you?”
“They call me The Killer,” Korak replied, giving the English translation of the name Akut had given him. After a pause, during which the Hon. Morison tried to see through the darkness and catch a glimpse of the strange being he had fallen into the hands of, he said, “You’re the same person I saw kissing the girl at the edge of the great plain to the East, the time when the lion charged at you?”
“Yes,” replied Baynes.
“Yes,” Baynes replied.
“What are you doing here?”
“What are you doing here?”
“The girl was stolen—I am trying to rescue her.”
“The girl was kidnapped—I’m trying to save her.”
“Stolen!” The word was shot out like a bullet from a gun. “Who stole her?”
“Stolen!” The word burst out like a bullet from a gun. “Who took her?”
“The Swede trader, Hanson,” replied Baynes.
"The Swedish trader, Hanson," Baynes replied.
“Where is he?”
"Where is he now?"
Baynes related to Korak all that had transpired since he had come upon Hanson’s camp. Before he was done the first gray dawn had relieved the darkness. Korak made the Englishman comfortable in the tree. He filled his canteen from the river and fetched him fruits to eat. Then he bid him good-bye.
Baynes told Korak everything that had happened since he found Hanson’s camp. By the time he finished, the first light of dawn had replaced the darkness. Korak made sure the Englishman was comfortable in the tree. He filled his canteen with water from the river and brought him some fruits to eat. Then he said goodbye.
“I am going to the Swede’s camp,” he announced. “I will bring the girl back to you here.”
“I’m going to the Swede’s camp,” he said. “I’ll bring the girl back to you here.”
“I shall go, too, then,” insisted Baynes. “It is my right and my duty, for she was to have become my wife.”
“I’ll go, too, then,” Baynes insisted. “It’s my right and my duty, since she was supposed to be my wife.”
Korak winced. “You are wounded. You could not make the trip,” he said. “I can go much faster alone.”
Korak winced. “You’re hurt. You can’t make the trip,” he said. “I can go much faster on my own.”
“Go, then,” replied Baynes; “but I shall follow. It is my right and duty.”
“Go ahead,” Baynes replied, “but I’ll be following. It’s my right and responsibility.”
“As you will,” replied Korak, with a shrug. If the man wanted to be killed it was none of his affair. He wanted to kill him himself, but for Meriem’s sake he would not. If she loved him then he must do what he could to preserve him, but he could not prevent his following him, more than to advise him against it, and this he did, earnestly.
“As you wish,” replied Korak, shrugging. If the man wanted to die, it wasn’t his problem. He wanted to kill him himself, but for Meriem’s sake, he wouldn’t. If she loved him, then he had to do what he could to keep him safe, but he couldn’t stop him from following him, except to warn him against it, which he did sincerely.
And so Korak set out rapidly toward the North, and limping slowly and painfully along, soon far to the rear, came the tired and wounded Baynes. Korak had reached the river bank opposite Malbihn’s camp before Baynes had covered two miles. Late in the afternoon the Englishman was still plodding wearily along, forced to stop often for rest when he heard the sound of the galloping feet of a horse behind him. Instinctively he drew into the concealing foliage of the underbrush and a moment later a white-robed Arab dashed by. Baynes did not hail the rider. He had heard of the nature of the Arabs who penetrate thus far to the South, and what he had heard had convinced him that a snake or a panther would as quickly befriend him as one of these villainous renegades from the Northland.
So Korak quickly headed North, while the tired and wounded Baynes limped slowly and painfully behind him. Korak reached the riverbank across from Malbihn’s camp before Baynes had even walked two miles. Late in the afternoon, the Englishman was still trudging along, needing to stop often to rest when he heard the sound of hooves galloping behind him. Instinctively, he moved into the cover of the bushes, and a moment later, a white-robed Arab raced by. Baynes didn’t call out to the rider. He had heard about the types of Arabs who traveled this far South, and what he had learned convinced him that a snake or a panther would be just as likely to help him as one of these treacherous renegades from the North.
When Abdul Kamak had passed out of sight toward the North Baynes resumed his weary march. A half hour later he was again surprised by the unmistakable sound of galloping horses. This time there were many. Once more he sought a hiding place; but it chanced that he was crossing a clearing which offered little opportunity for concealment. He broke into a slow trot—the best that he could do in his weakened condition; but it did not suffice to carry him to safety and before he reached the opposite side of the clearing a band of white-robed horsemen dashed into view behind him.
When Abdul Kamak had disappeared toward the North, Baynes continued his tired march. Half an hour later, he was again startled by the unmistakable sound of galloping horses. This time, there were many. Once more, he looked for a hiding spot, but he happened to be crossing a clearing that offered little chance for concealment. He broke into a slow jog—the best he could manage in his weakened state—but it wasn't enough to get him to safety. Before he could reach the other side of the clearing, a group of white-robed horsemen appeared behind him.
At sight of him they shouted in Arabic, which, of course, he could not understand, and then they closed about him, threatening and angry. Their questions were unintelligible to him, and no more could they interpret his English. At last, evidently out of patience, the leader ordered two of his men to seize him, which they lost no time in doing. They disarmed him and ordered him to climb to the rump of one of the horses, and then the two who had been detailed to guard him turned and rode back toward the South, while the others continued their pursuit of Abdul Kamak.
At the sight of him, they shouted in Arabic, which he obviously couldn’t understand, and then they surrounded him, looking threatening and angry. Their questions were incomprehensible to him, and they couldn’t make sense of his English either. Finally, clearly losing patience, the leader ordered two of his men to grab him, and they wasted no time in doing so. They disarmed him and told him to get on the back of one of the horses, and then the two who were assigned to watch him turned and rode back south, while the others continued chasing Abdul Kamak.
As Korak came out upon the bank of the river across from which he could see the camp of Malbihn he was at a loss as to how he was to cross. He could see men moving about among the huts inside the boma—evidently Hanson was still there. Korak did not know the true identity of Meriem’s abductor.
As Korak stepped onto the riverbank, he spotted Malbihn's camp across the water but felt uncertain about how to get across. He noticed men moving around in the huts inside the boma—clearly, Hanson was still there. Korak had no idea who had really kidnapped Meriem.
How was he to cross. Not even he would dare the perils of the river—almost certain death. For a moment he thought, then wheeled and sped away into the jungle, uttering a peculiar cry, shrill and piercing. Now and again he would halt to listen as though for an answer to his weird call, then on again, deeper and deeper into the wood.
How was he supposed to get across? Not even he would risk the dangers of the river—almost certain death. For a moment he contemplated, then turned around and rushed back into the jungle, letting out a strange, high-pitched cry. Every now and then, he would stop to listen as if hoping for a response to his eerie call, then he would continue on, deeper and deeper into the woods.
At last his listening ears were rewarded by the sound they craved—the trumpeting of a bull elephant, and a few moments later Korak broke through the trees into the presence of Tantor, standing with upraised trunk, waving his great ears.
At last, his eager ears were rewarded with the sound they longed for—the trumpeting of a bull elephant. A few moments later, Korak pushed through the trees and came face to face with Tantor, who was standing with his trunk raised, flapping his large ears.
“Quick, Tantor!” shouted the ape-man, and the beast swung him to his head. “Hurry!” and the mighty pachyderm lumbered off through the jungle, guided by kicking of naked heels against the sides of his head.
“Quick, Tantor!” shouted the ape-man, and the beast lifted him to his head. “Hurry!” and the huge elephant lumbered off through the jungle, guided by the kicks of bare heels against the sides of his head.
Toward the northwest Korak guided his huge mount, until they came out upon the river a mile or more above the Swede’s camp, at a point where Korak knew that there was an elephant ford. Never pausing the ape-man urged the beast into the river, and with trunk held high Tantor forged steadily toward the opposite bank. Once an unwary crocodile attacked him but the sinuous trunk dove beneath the surface and grasping the amphibian about the middle dragged it to light and hurled it a hundred feet down stream. And so, in safety, they made the opposite shore, Korak perched high and dry above the turgid flood.
Toward the northwest, Korak guided his massive mount until they emerged by the river, about a mile or more above the Swede’s camp, at a spot where Korak knew there was an elephant crossing. Without hesitating, the ape-man urged the animal into the water, and with its trunk held high, Tantor steadily made his way to the other bank. Once, an unsuspecting crocodile attacked him, but the flexible trunk dove beneath the surface, grabbed the reptile around the middle, pulled it up, and tossed it a hundred feet downstream. And so, they safely reached the opposite shore, with Korak perched high and dry above the turbulent water.
Then back toward the South Tantor moved, steadily, relentlessly, and with a swinging gait which took no heed of any obstacle other than the larger jungle trees. At times Korak was forced to abandon the broad head and take to the trees above, so close the branches raked the back of the elephant; but at last they came to the edge of the clearing where lay the camp of the renegade Swede, nor even then did they hesitate or halt. The gate lay upon the east side of the camp, facing the river. Tantor and Korak approached from the north. There was no gate there; but what cared Tantor or Korak for gates.
Then Tantor moved back south, steadily and relentlessly, with a swinging gait that ignored all obstacles except for the larger jungle trees. Sometimes, Korak had to give up the broad head and climb into the trees above, as the branches brushed against the elephant's back; but eventually, they reached the edge of the clearing where the renegade Swede's camp was located. Even then, they didn’t hesitate or stop. The gate was on the east side of the camp, facing the river. Tantor and Korak approached from the north. There was no gate in that direction, but Tantor and Korak didn’t care about gates.
At a word from the ape man and raising his tender trunk high above the thorns Tantor breasted the boma, walking through it as though it had not existed. A dozen blacks squatted before their huts looked up at the noise of his approach. With sudden howls of terror and amazement they leaped to their feet and fled for the open gates. Tantor would have pursued. He hated man, and he thought that Korak had come to hunt these; but the ape man held him back, guiding him toward a large, canvas tent that rose in the center of the clearing—there should be the girl and her abductor.
At a word from the ape man, Tantor raised his gentle trunk high above the thorns and walked through the boma as if it wasn't even there. A dozen villagers squatting in front of their huts looked up at the noise he was making. With sudden cries of fear and surprise, they jumped to their feet and ran for the open gates. Tantor would have chased them; he hated humans and thought Korak had come to hunt them down. But the ape man held him back, steering him toward a large canvas tent that stood in the middle of the clearing—where the girl and her kidnapper should be.
Malbihn lay in a hammock beneath canopy before his tent. His wounds were painful and he had lost much blood. He was very weak. He looked up in surprise as he heard the screams of his men and saw them running toward the gate. And then from around the corner of his tent loomed a huge bulk, and Tantor, the great tusker, towered above him. Malbihn’s boy, feeling neither affection nor loyalty for his master, broke and ran at the first glimpse of the beast, and Malbihn was left alone and helpless.
Malbihn lay in a hammock under the canopy in front of his tent. His wounds hurt and he had lost a lot of blood. He felt very weak. He looked up in shock as he heard his men screaming and saw them running toward the gate. Then, from around the corner of his tent, a massive figure appeared, and Tantor, the huge elephant, stood over him. Malbihn’s son, feeling neither love nor loyalty for his master, panicked and ran at the first sight of the beast, leaving Malbihn alone and vulnerable.
The elephant stopped a couple of paces from the wounded man’s hammock. Malbihn cowered, moaning. He was too weak to escape. He could only lie there with staring eyes gazing in horror into the blood rimmed, angry little orbs fixed upon him, and await his death.
The elephant halted a few steps away from the wounded man's hammock. Malbihn cringed, moaning. He was too weak to run away. He could only lie there, his wide eyes filled with terror as he looked into the bloodshot, furious little eyes locked on him, and wait for his death.
Then, to his astonishment, a man slid to the ground from the elephant’s back. Almost at once Malbihn recognized the strange figure as that of the creature who consorted with apes and baboons—the white warrior of the jungle who had freed the king baboon and led the whole angry horde of hairy devils upon him and Jenssen. Malbihn cowered still lower.
Then, to his shock, a man dropped to the ground from the elephant’s back. Almost immediately, Malbihn recognized the unusual figure as the one who hung out with apes and baboons—the white warrior of the jungle who had rescued the king baboon and led the furious group of hairy creatures towards him and Jenssen. Malbihn shrank back even further.
“Where is the girl?” demanded Korak, in English.
“Where is the girl?” Korak asked, in English.
“What girl?” asked Malbihn. “There is no girl here—only the women of my boys. Is it one of them you want?”
“What girl?” Malbihn asked. “There’s no girl here—only the women of my guys. Do you want one of them?”
“The white girl,” replied Korak. “Do not lie to me—you lured her from her friends. You have her. Where is she?”
“The white girl,” Korak replied. “Don’t lie to me—you brought her away from her friends. You have her. Where is she?”
“It was not I,” cried Malbihn. “It was an Englishman who hired me to steal her. He wished to take her to London with him. She was willing to go. His name is Baynes. Go to him, if you want to know where the girl is.”
“It wasn't me,” shouted Malbihn. “It was an Englishman who hired me to take her. He wanted to bring her to London with him. She was open to it. His name is Baynes. Go to him if you want to find out where the girl is.”
“I have just come from him,” said Korak. “He sent me to you. The girl is not with him. Now stop your lying and tell me the truth. Where is she?” Korak took a threatening step toward the Swede.
“I just came from him,” said Korak. “He sent me to you. The girl isn’t with him. Now stop lying and tell me the truth. Where is she?” Korak took a menacing step toward the Swede.
Malbihn shrank from the anger in the other’s face.
Malbihn recoiled at the anger in the other person's face.
“I will tell you,” he cried. “Do not harm me and I will tell you all that I know. I had the girl here; but it was Baynes who persuaded her to leave her friends—he had promised to marry her. He does not know who she is; but I do, and I know that there is a great reward for whoever takes her back to her people. It was the only reward I wanted. But she escaped and crossed the river in one of my canoes. I followed her, but The Sheik was there, God knows how, and he captured her and attacked me and drove me back. Then came Baynes, angry because he had lost the girl, and shot me. If you want her, go to The Sheik and ask him for her—she has passed as his daughter since childhood.”
“I’ll tell you,” he yelled. “Don’t hurt me and I’ll share everything I know. I had the girl here; but it was Baynes who convinced her to leave her friends—he promised to marry her. He doesn’t know who she is, but I do, and I know there’s a big reward for anyone who brings her back to her people. That was the only reward I wanted. But she got away and crossed the river in one of my canoes. I went after her, but The Sheik was there, God knows how, and he captured her and attacked me, forcing me to retreat. Then Baynes showed up, mad because he lost the girl, and shot me. If you want her, go to The Sheik and ask him for her—she’s been living as his daughter since childhood.”
“She is not The Sheik’s daughter?” asked Korak.
“She isn’t The Sheik’s daughter?” asked Korak.
“She is not,” replied Malbihn.
"She's not," replied Malbihn.
“Who is she then?” asked Korak.
“Who is she then?” Korak asked.
Here Malbihn saw his chance. Possibly he could make use of his knowledge after all—it might even buy back his life for him. He was not so credulous as to believe that this savage ape-man would have any compunctions about slaying him.
Here Malbihn saw his opportunity. Maybe he could actually use his knowledge after all—it might even save his life. He wasn’t naive enough to think that this brutal ape-man would hesitate to kill him.
“When you find her I will tell you,” he said, “if you will promise to spare my life and divide the reward with me. If you kill me you will never know, for only The Sheik knows and he will never tell. The girl herself is ignorant of her origin.”
“When you find her, I’ll tell you,” he said, “if you promise to let me live and share the reward with me. If you kill me, you’ll never find out, because only The Sheik knows, and he’ll never reveal it. The girl herself doesn’t even know where she comes from.”
“If you have told me the truth I will spare you,” said Korak. “I shall go now to The Sheik’s village and if the girl is not there I shall return and slay you. As for the other information you have, if the girl wants it when we have found her we will find a way to purchase it from you.”
“If you told me the truth, I'll let you go,” said Korak. “I'm heading to The Sheik's village now, and if the girl isn't there, I'll come back and kill you. As for the other information you have, if the girl wants it once we find her, we'll figure out how to buy it from you.”
The look in the Killer’s eyes and his emphasis of the word “purchase” were none too reassuring to Malbihn. Evidently, unless he found means to escape, this devil would have both his secret and his life before he was done with him. He wished he would be gone and take his evil-eyed companion away with him. The swaying bulk towering high above him, and the ugly little eyes of the elephant watching his every move made Malbihn nervous.
The look in the Killer’s eyes and the way he stressed the word “purchase” were not comforting to Malbihn at all. Clearly, unless he figured out how to escape, this monster would have both his secret and his life before it was over. He wished he could leave and take his sinister companion with him. The swaying mass looming over him and the ugly little eyes of the elephant tracking his every move made Malbihn anxious.
Korak stepped into the Swede’s tent to assure himself that Meriem was not hid there. As he disappeared from view Tantor, his eyes still fixed upon Malbihn, took a step nearer the man. An elephant’s eyesight is none too good; but the great tusker evidently had harbored suspicions of this yellow-bearded white man from the first. Now he advanced his snake-like trunk toward the Swede, who shrank still deeper into his hammock.
Korak walked into the Swede’s tent to make sure that Meriem wasn't hiding there. As he went out of sight, Tantor, still focused on Malbihn, stepped closer to the man. Elephants don't have great vision, but this massive tusker clearly had doubts about this yellow-bearded white guy from the start. Now he extended his long trunk toward the Swede, who recoiled even further into his hammock.
The sensitive member felt and smelled back and forth along the body of the terrified Malbihn. Tantor uttered a low, rumbling sound. His little eyes blazed. At last he had recognized the creature who had killed his mate long years before. Tantor, the elephant, never forgets and never forgives. Malbihn saw in the demoniacal visage above him the murderous purpose of the beast. He shrieked aloud to Korak. “Help! Help! The devil is going to kill me!”
The sensitive member felt and smelled back and forth along the body of the terrified Malbihn. Tantor let out a low, rumbling sound. His small eyes blazed. Finally, he had recognized the creature that had killed his mate many years ago. Tantor, the elephant, never forgets and never forgives. Malbihn saw the murderous intent in the demonic face above him. He screamed to Korak, “Help! Help! The devil is going to kill me!”
Korak ran from the tent just in time to see the enraged elephant’s trunk encircle the beast’s victim, and then hammock, canopy and man were swung high over Tantor’s head. Korak leaped before the animal, commanding him to put down his prey unharmed; but as well might he have ordered the eternal river to reverse its course. Tantor wheeled around like a cat, hurled Malbihn to the earth and kneeled upon him with the quickness of a cat. Then he gored the prostrate thing through and through with his mighty tusks, trumpeting and roaring in his rage, and at last, convinced that no slightest spark of life remained in the crushed and lacerated flesh, he lifted the shapeless clay that had been Sven Malbihn far aloft and hurled the bloody mass, still entangled in canopy and hammock, over the boma and out into the jungle.
Korak dashed out of the tent just in time to see the furious elephant's trunk wrap around its victim, swinging the tent, the canopy, and the man high above Tantor’s head. Korak jumped in front of the beast, demanding it release its prey unharmed; but that was as futile as asking a river to flow backward. Tantor spun around like a cat, slammed Malbihn to the ground, and pinned him down with feline speed. Then he pierced the helpless body with his powerful tusks, trumpeting and roaring in anger, and finally, convinced that no trace of life remained in the battered and torn flesh, he lifted the mangled remains that had been Sven Malbihn high into the air and tossed the bloody mass, still caught in the tent and hammock, over the boma and into the jungle.
Korak stood looking sorrowfully on at the tragedy he gladly would have averted. He had no love for the Swede, in fact only hatred; but he would have preserved the man for the sake of the secret he possessed. Now that secret was gone forever unless The Sheik could be made to divulge it; but in that possibility Korak placed little faith.
Korak stood there, sorrowfully watching the tragedy he would have gladly prevented. He had no affection for the Swede; in fact, he only felt hatred. But he would have saved the man for the sake of the secret he held. Now, that secret was lost forever unless The Sheik could be made to reveal it, but Korak had little faith in that possibility.
The ape-man, as unafraid of the mighty Tantor as though he had not just witnessed his shocking murder of a human being, signalled the beast to approach and lift him to its head, and Tantor came as he was bid, docile as a kitten, and hoisted The Killer tenderly aloft.
The ape-man, completely unafraid of the powerful Tantor despite just seeing him kill a human, signaled for the beast to come over and pick him up. Tantor approached obediently, as gentle as a kitten, and lifted The Killer carefully into the air.
From the safety of their hiding places in the jungle Malbihn’s boys had witnessed the killing of their master, and now, with wide, frightened eyes, they saw the strange white warrior, mounted upon the head of his ferocious charger, disappear into the jungle at the point from which he had emerged upon their terrified vision.
From the safety of their hiding spots in the jungle, Malbihn’s boys had watched their master get killed, and now, with wide, scared eyes, they saw the strange white warrior, riding his fierce horse, vanish into the jungle from where he had appeared in their terrified sight.
XXV.
The Sheik glowered at the prisoner which his two men brought back to him from the North. He had sent the party after Abdul Kamak, and he was wroth that instead of his erstwhile lieutenant they had sent back a wounded and useless Englishman. Why had they not dispatched him where they had found him? He was some penniless beggar of a trader who had wandered from his own district and became lost. He was worthless. The Sheik scowled terribly upon him.
The Sheik glared at the prisoner his two men brought back from the North. He had sent them after Abdul Kamak and was furious that instead of his former lieutenant, they returned with a wounded and useless Englishman. Why hadn’t they just left him where they found him? He was just a broke trader who wandered away from his own area and got lost. He was worthless. The Sheik glared at him menacingly.
“Who are you?” he asked in French.
“Who are you?” he asked in French.
“I am the Hon. Morison Baynes of London,” replied his prisoner.
“I’m the Hon. Morison Baynes from London,” replied his prisoner.
The title sounded promising, and at once the wily old robber had visions of ransom. His intentions, if not his attitude toward the prisoner underwent a change—he would investigate further.
The title sounded promising, and right away the clever old robber had thoughts of ransom. His intentions, if not his attitude towards the prisoner, changed—he decided to look into it further.
“What were you doing poaching in my country?” growled he.
“What were you doing hunting illegally in my country?” he growled.
“I was not aware that you owned Africa,” replied the Hon. Morison. “I was searching for a young woman who had been abducted from the home of a friend. The abductor wounded me and I drifted down river in a canoe—I was on my way back to his camp when your men seized me.”
“I didn’t know you owned Africa,” replied the Hon. Morison. “I was looking for a young woman who had been kidnapped from a friend’s house. The kidnapper hurt me, and I floated downriver in a canoe—I was on my way back to his camp when your men caught me.”
“A young woman?” asked The Sheik. “Is that she?” and he pointed to his left over toward a clump of bushes near the stockade.
“A young woman?” asked The Sheik. “Is that her?” and he pointed to his left toward a cluster of bushes near the stockade.
Baynes looked in the direction indicated and his eyes went wide, for there, sitting cross-legged upon the ground, her back toward them, was Meriem.
Baynes looked in the direction pointed out and his eyes widened, because there, sitting cross-legged on the ground with her back to them, was Meriem.
“Meriem!” he shouted, starting toward her; but one of his guards grasped his arm and jerked him back. The girl leaped to her feet and turned toward him as she heard her name.
“Meriem!” he shouted, moving towards her; but one of his guards grabbed his arm and pulled him back. The girl jumped to her feet and faced him as she heard her name.
“Morison!” she cried.
“Morison!” she shouted.
“Be still, and stay where you are,” snapped The Sheik, and then to Baynes. “So you are the dog of a Christian who stole my daughter from me?”
“Be quiet, and stay put,” snapped The Sheik, then turned to Baynes. “So you’re the Christian dog who stole my daughter from me?”
“Your daughter?” ejaculated Baynes. “She is your daughter?”
“Your daughter?” Baynes exclaimed. “She’s your daughter?”
“She is my daughter,” growled the Arab, “and she is not for any unbeliever. You have earned death, Englishman, but if you can pay for your life I will give it to you.”
“She is my daughter,” the Arab growled, “and she is not for any unbeliever. You deserve death, Englishman, but if you can pay for your life, I will spare you.”
Baynes’ eyes were still wide at the unexpected sight of Meriem here in the camp of the Arab when he had thought her in Hanson’s power. What had happened? How had she escaped the Swede? Had the Arab taken her by force from him, or had she escaped and come voluntarily back to the protection of the man who called her “daughter”? He would have given much for a word with her. If she was safe here he might only harm her by antagonizing the Arab in an attempt to take her away and return her to her English friends. No longer did the Hon. Morison harbor thoughts of luring the girl to London.
Baynes' eyes were still wide at the surprising sight of Meriem here in the Arab's camp when he thought she was under Hanson’s control. What had happened? How had she escaped the Swede? Had the Arab taken her by force, or had she managed to break free and come back willingly to the man who called her “daughter”? He would have given a lot for a chance to talk to her. If she was safe here, he might just put her in danger by upsetting the Arab in an attempt to take her away and return her to her English friends. The Hon. Morison no longer entertained thoughts of luring the girl to London.
“Well?” asked The Sheik.
"Well?" asked the Sheik.
“Oh,” exclaimed Baynes; “I beg your pardon—I was thinking of something else. Why yes, of course, glad to pay, I’m sure. How much do you think I’m worth?”
“Oh,” Baynes said, “I’m sorry—I was lost in thought. Yes, of course, I’m happy to pay, I’m sure. How much do you think I’m worth?”
The Sheik named a sum that was rather less exorbitant than the Hon. Morison had anticipated. The latter nodded his head in token of his entire willingness to pay. He would have promised a sum far beyond his resources just as readily, for he had no intention of paying anything—his one reason for seeming to comply with The Sheik’s demands was that the wait for the coming of the ransom money would give him the time and the opportunity to free Meriem if he found that she wished to be freed. The Arab’s statement that he was her father naturally raised the question in the Hon. Morison’s mind as to precisely what the girl’s attitude toward escape might be. It seemed, of course, preposterous that this fair and beautiful young woman should prefer to remain in the filthy douar of an illiterate old Arab rather than return to the comforts, luxuries, and congenial associations of the hospitable African bungalow from which the Hon. Morison had tricked her. The man flushed at the thought of his duplicity which these recollections aroused—thoughts which were interrupted by The Sheik, who instructed the Hon. Morison to write a letter to the British consul at Algiers, dictating the exact phraseology of it with a fluency that indicated to his captive that this was not the first time the old rascal had had occasion to negotiate with English relatives for the ransom of a kinsman. Baynes demurred when he saw that the letter was addressed to the consul at Algiers, saying that it would require the better part of a year to get the money back to him; but The Sheik would not listen to Baynes’ plan to send a messenger directly to the nearest coast town, and from there communicate with the nearest cable station, sending the Hon. Morison’s request for funds straight to his own solicitors. No, The Sheik was cautious and wary. He knew his own plan had worked well in the past. In the other were too many untried elements. He was in no hurry for the money—he could wait a year, or two years if necessary; but it should not require over six months. He turned to one of the Arabs who had been standing behind him and gave the fellow instructions in relation to the prisoner.
The Sheik named an amount that was less outrageous than what Hon. Morison had expected. The latter nodded in agreement, fully willing to pay. He would have promised a far higher amount with the same ease, as he had no intention of actually paying anything—his only reason for appearing to comply with The Sheik’s demands was that the wait for the ransom money would give him the time and opportunity to free Meriem if she wanted to be freed. The Arab’s claim that he was her father naturally raised the question in Hon. Morison’s mind about what the girl's feelings toward escape might be. It seemed completely absurd that this lovely young woman would choose to stay in the dirty douar of an uneducated old Arab instead of returning to the comforts, luxuries, and familiar surroundings of the welcoming African bungalow from which Hon. Morison had deceived her. The man felt embarrassed by the thoughts of his betrayal that these memories stirred up—his reflections were interrupted by The Sheik, who instructed Hon. Morison to write a letter to the British consul in Algiers, dictating the exact wording with an ease that suggested to his captive that this wasn't the first time the old trickster had negotiated with English relatives for a ransom. Baynes hesitated when he saw that the letter was addressed to the consul in Algiers, saying it would take almost a year to get the money back to him; but The Sheik dismissed Baynes’ suggestion to send a messenger directly to the nearest coastal town and then communicate with the nearest cable station to send Hon. Morison’s request for funds straight to his own lawyers. No, The Sheik was cautious and wary. He knew his own approach had worked well in the past. There were too many untested elements in Baynes' plan. He wasn't in a hurry for the money—he could wait a year, or even two years if needed; but it shouldn't take more than six months. He turned to one of the Arabs standing behind him and gave him instructions regarding the prisoner.
Baynes could not understand the words, spoken in Arabic, but the jerk of the thumb toward him showed that he was the subject of conversation. The Arab addressed by The Sheik bowed to his master and beckoned Baynes to follow him. The Englishman looked toward The Sheik for confirmation. The latter nodded impatiently, and the Hon. Morison rose and followed his guide toward a native hut which lay close beside one of the outside goatskin tents. In the dark, stifling interior his guard led him, then stepped to the doorway and called to a couple of black boys squatting before their own huts. They came promptly and in accordance with the Arab’s instructions bound Baynes’ wrists and ankles securely. The Englishman objected strenuously; but as neither the blacks nor the Arab could understand a word he said his pleas were wasted. Having bound him they left the hut. The Hon. Morison lay for a long time contemplating the frightful future which awaited him during the long months which must intervene before his friends learned of his predicament and could get succor to him. Now he hoped that they would send the ransom—he would gladly pay all that he was worth to be out of this hole. At first it had been his intention to cable his solicitors to send no money but to communicate with the British West African authorities and have an expedition sent to his aid.
Baynes couldn’t understand the words spoken in Arabic, but the gesture of the thumb pointed at him made it clear he was the topic of discussion. The Arab addressed by The Sheik bowed to his master and motioned for Baynes to follow him. The Englishman glanced at The Sheik for confirmation. The latter nodded impatiently, and Hon. Morison got up and followed his guide toward a native hut that was close to one of the outside goatskin tents. Inside the dark, stifling hut, his guard led him, then stepped to the doorway and called to a couple of black boys sitting in front of their own huts. They came quickly and, following the Arab’s instructions, tied Baynes’ wrists and ankles securely. The Englishman protested strongly, but since neither the boys nor the Arab could understand him, his pleas fell on deaf ears. After binding him, they left the hut. Hon. Morison lay there for a long time, thinking about the terrible future that awaited him during the long months until his friends would find out about his situation and could come to rescue him. He hoped they would send the ransom—he would willingly pay all he had to escape this place. At first, he had planned to cable his lawyers to send no money but to get in touch with the British West African authorities and ask for an expedition to come to his aid.
His patrician nose wrinkled in disgust as his nostrils were assailed by the awful stench of the hut. The nasty grasses upon which he lay exuded the effluvium of sweaty bodies, of decayed animal matter and of offal. But worse was yet to come. He had lain in the uncomfortable position in which they had thrown him but for a few minutes when he became distinctly conscious of an acute itching sensation upon his hands, his neck and scalp. He wriggled to a sitting posture horrified and disgusted. The itching rapidly extended to other parts of his body—it was torture, and his hands were bound securely at his back!
His aristocratic nose crinkled in disgust as the awful smell of the hut hit him. The filthy grasses he was lying on reeked of sweaty bodies, rotting animal remains, and garbage. But worse was yet to come. He had only been in the uncomfortable position they had thrown him into for a few minutes when he became painfully aware of a sharp itching sensation on his hands, neck, and scalp. He squirmed into a sitting position, horrified and disgusted. The itching quickly spread to other parts of his body—it was torture, and his hands were tightly bound behind his back!
He tugged and pulled at his bonds until he was exhausted; but not entirely without hope, for he was sure that he was working enough slack out of the knot to eventually permit of his withdrawing one of his hands. Night came. They brought him neither food nor drink. He wondered if they expected him to live on nothing for a year. The bites of the vermin grew less annoying though not less numerous. The Hon. Morison saw a ray of hope in this indication of future immunity through inoculation. He still worked weakly at his bonds, and then the rats came. If the vermin were disgusting the rats were terrifying. They scurried over his body, squealing and fighting. Finally one commenced to chew at one of his ears. With an oath, the Hon. Morison struggled to a sitting posture. The rats retreated. He worked his legs beneath him and came to his knees, and then, by superhuman effort, rose to his feet. There he stood, reeling drunkenly, dripping with cold sweat.
He tugged and pulled at his restraints until he was worn out; but he still had some hope, convinced he was loosening the knot enough to eventually free one of his hands. Night fell. They didn’t bring him any food or drink. He wondered if they thought he could survive on nothing for a year. The bites from the bugs became less bothersome, though they were still plentiful. The Hon. Morison saw a glimmer of hope in this sign of possible immunity through inoculation. He continued to weakly struggle with his bindings, and then the rats arrived. If the bugs were gross, the rats were horrifying. They darted across his body, squealing and fighting. Finally, one started gnawing on one of his ears. Cursing, the Hon. Morison managed to sit up. The rats backed off. He got his legs under him and went to his knees, and then, with immense effort, stood up. There he was, swaying unsteadily, drenched in cold sweat.
“God!” he muttered, “what have I done to deserve—” He paused. What had he done? He thought of the girl in another tent in that accursed village. He was getting his deserts. He set his jaws firmly with the realization. He would never complain again! At that moment he became aware of voices raised angrily in the goatskin tent close beside the hut in which he lay. One of them was a woman’s. Could it be Meriem’s? The language was probably Arabic—he could not understand a word of it; but the tones were hers.
“God!” he muttered, “what have I done to deserve—” He paused. What had he done? He thought of the girl in another tent in that cursed village. He was getting what he deserved. He clenched his jaw firmly with that realization. He would never complain again! At that moment, he became aware of voices raised angrily in the goatskin tent close to the hut where he lay. One of them was a woman’s. Could it be Meriem’s? The language was probably Arabic—he couldn’t understand a word of it; but the tones were hers.
He tried to think of some way of attracting her attention to his near presence. If she could remove his bonds they might escape together—if she wished to escape. That thought bothered him. He was not sure of her status in the village. If she were the petted child of the powerful Sheik then she would probably not care to escape. He must know, definitely.
He thought about how to get her to notice him nearby. If she could free him from his restraints, they could escape together—if she wanted to. That idea troubled him. He wasn't sure about her position in the village. If she were the beloved daughter of the powerful Sheik, she probably wouldn't want to escape. He needed to know for sure.
At the bungalow he had often heard Meriem sing God Save the King, as My Dear accompanied her on the piano. Raising his voice he now hummed the tune. Immediately he heard Meriem’s voice from the tent. She spoke rapidly.
At the bungalow, he had often heard Meriem sing "God Save the King" while My Dear played along on the piano. Raising his voice, he started to hum the tune. Right away, he heard Meriem’s voice coming from the tent. She spoke quickly.
“Good bye, Morison,” she cried. “If God is good I shall be dead before morning, for if I still live I shall be worse than dead after tonight.”
“Goodbye, Morison,” she cried. “If God is good, I hope to be dead by morning, because if I’m still alive after tonight, I’ll feel worse than dead.”
Then he heard an angry exclamation in a man’s voice, followed by the sounds of a scuffle. Baynes went white with horror. He struggled frantically again with his bonds. They were giving. A moment later one hand was free. It was but the work of an instant then to loose the other. Stooping, he untied the rope from his ankles, then he straightened and started for the hut doorway bent on reaching Meriem’s side. As he stepped out into the night the figure of a huge black rose and barred his progress.
Then he heard a man shout angrily, followed by the sounds of a fight. Baynes went pale with fear. He struggled desperately with his restraints. They were loosening. A moment later, one of his hands was free. It only took an instant to free the other hand. Stooping down, he untied the rope from his ankles, then stood up and headed for the hut doorway, determined to reach Meriem. As he stepped out into the night, the figure of a huge black shape rose up and blocked his way.
When speed was required of him Korak depended upon no other muscles than his own, and so it was that the moment Tantor had landed him safely upon the same side of the river as lay the village of The Sheik, the ape-man deserted his bulky comrade and took to the trees in a rapid race toward the south and the spot where the Swede had told him Meriem might be. It was dark when he came to the palisade, strengthened considerably since the day that he had rescued Meriem from her pitiful life within its cruel confines. No longer did the giant tree spread its branches above the wooden rampart; but ordinary man-made defenses were scarce considered obstacles by Korak. Loosening the rope at his waist he tossed the noose over one of the sharpened posts that composed the palisade. A moment later his eyes were above the level of the obstacle taking in all within their range beyond. There was no one in sight close by, and Korak drew himself to the top and dropped lightly to the ground within the enclosure.
When he needed speed, Korak relied only on his own muscles. So, the moment Tantor had safely landed him on the same side of the river as the village of The Sheik, the ape-man left his bulky friend and raced through the trees toward the south, heading to the spot where the Swede had told him Meriem might be. It was dark when he reached the palisade, which had been significantly reinforced since the day he rescued Meriem from her miserable life inside its cruel walls. The giant tree no longer spread its branches over the wooden barrier, but Korak saw the ordinary man-made defenses as hardly any challenge. He loosened the rope at his waist and tossed the noose over one of the sharpened posts of the palisade. Moments later, he was peering over the obstacle, taking in everything he could see beyond. There was no one nearby, and Korak pulled himself up to the top and dropped lightly to the ground inside the enclosure.
Then he commenced his stealthy search of the village. First toward the Arab tents he made his way, sniffing and listening. He passed behind them searching for some sign of Meriem. Not even the wild Arab curs heard his passage, so silently he went—a shadow passing through shadows. The odor of tobacco told him that the Arabs were smoking before their tents. The sound of laughter fell upon his ears, and then from the opposite side of the village came the notes of a once familiar tune: God Save the King. Korak halted in perplexity. Who might it be—the tones were those of a man. He recalled the young Englishman he had left on the river trail and who had disappeared before he returned. A moment later there came to him a woman’s voice in reply—it was Meriem’s, and The Killer, quickened into action, slunk rapidly in the direction of these two voices.
Then he started his quiet search of the village. First, he headed toward the Arab tents, sniffing and listening. He sneaked behind them, looking for any sign of Meriem. Not even the wild Arab dogs noticed him as he moved—he was like a shadow slipping through shadows. The smell of tobacco indicated that the Arabs were smoking outside their tents. He heard laughter, and then from the other side of the village came the notes of a once familiar tune: God Save the King. Korak paused, confused. Who could it be—the sound belonged to a man. He remembered the young Englishman he had seen on the river trail who had vanished before he returned. A moment later, he heard a woman’s voice in response—it was Meriem’s. The Killer, energized by this, quickly crept toward the two voices.
The evening meal over Meriem had gone to her pallet in the women’s quarters of The Sheik’s tent, a little corner screened off in the rear by a couple of priceless Persian rugs to form a partition. In these quarters she had dwelt with Mabunu alone, for The Sheik had no wives. Nor were conditions altered now after the years of her absence—she and Mabunu were alone in the women’s quarters.
The dinner finished, Meriem had gone to her mat in the women’s area of The Sheik’s tent, a small corner separated in the back by a couple of valuable Persian rugs creating a partition. In this area, she had lived with Mabunu only, since The Sheik had no wives. The situation hadn’t changed after all the years of her absence—she and Mabunu were still alone in the women’s quarters.
Presently The Sheik came and parted the rugs. He glared through the dim light of the interior.
Presently, the Sheik arrived and moved the rugs aside. He glared through the dim light of the room.
“Meriem!” he called. “Come hither.”
“Meriem!” he called. “Come here.”
The girl arose and came into the front of the tent. There the light of a fire illuminated the interior. She saw Ali ben Kadin, The Sheik’s half brother, squatted upon a rug, smoking. The Sheik was standing. The Sheik and Ali ben Kadin had had the same father, but Ali ben Kadin’s mother had been a slave—a West Coast Negress. Ali ben Kadin was old and hideous and almost black. His nose and part of one cheek were eaten away by disease. He looked up and grinned as Meriem entered.
The girl got up and walked to the front of the tent. There, the light from the fire lit up the inside. She saw Ali ben Kadin, the Sheik’s half-brother, sitting on a rug and smoking. The Sheik was standing. The Sheik and Ali ben Kadin shared the same father, but Ali ben Kadin’s mother had been a slave—a woman from the West Coast of Africa. Ali ben Kadin was old and looked terrible, with dark skin. A disease had taken away part of his nose and one cheek. He looked up and grinned as Meriem came in.
The Sheik jerked his thumb toward Ali ben Kadin and addressed Meriem.
The Sheik pointed his thumb at Ali ben Kadin and spoke to Meriem.
“I am getting old,” he said, “I shall not live much longer. Therefore I have given you to Ali ben Kadin, my brother.”
“I’m getting old,” he said, “I won’t live much longer. So, I’ve given you to Ali ben Kadin, my brother.”
That was all. Ali ben Kadin rose and came toward her. Meriem shrank back, horrified. The man seized her wrist.
That was it. Ali ben Kadin stood up and walked towards her. Meriem stepped back, terrified. The man grabbed her wrist.
“Come!” he commanded, and dragged her from The Sheik’s tent and to his own.
“Come!” he ordered, pulling her out of The Sheik’s tent and into his own.
After they had gone The Sheik chuckled. “When I send her north in a few months,” he soliloquized, “they will know the reward for slaying the son of the sister of Amor ben Khatour.”
After they left, the Sheik laughed to himself. “When I send her north in a few months,” he mused, “they will understand the consequences of killing the son of the sister of Amor ben Khatour.”
And in Ali ben Kadin’s tent Meriem pleaded and threatened, but all to no avail. The hideous old halfcaste spoke soft words at first, but when Meriem loosed upon him the vials of her horror and loathing he became enraged, and rushing upon her seized her in his arms. Twice she tore away from him, and in one of the intervals during which she managed to elude him she heard Baynes’ voice humming the tune that she knew was meant for her ears. At her reply Ali ben Kadin rushed upon her once again. This time he dragged her back into the rear apartment of his tent where three Negresses looked up in stolid indifference to the tragedy being enacted before them.
And in Ali ben Kadin’s tent, Meriem pleaded and threatened, but it was all pointless. The ugly old halfcaste spoke softly at first, but when Meriem unleashed her feelings of horror and disgust, he became furious and rushed at her, grabbing her in his arms. Twice she broke free from him, and during one of the moments she managed to escape, she heard Baynes’ voice humming the tune that she recognized was meant for her. At her response, Ali ben Kadin rushed at her again. This time, he pulled her back into the inner part of his tent, where three Black women looked up with blank indifference at the drama unfolding before them.
As the Hon. Morison saw his way blocked by the huge frame of the giant black his disappointment and rage filled him with a bestial fury that transformed him into a savage beast. With an oath he leaped upon the man before him, the momentum of his body hurling the black to the ground. There they fought, the black to draw his knife, the white to choke the life from the black.
As the Hon. Morison found his path blocked by the massive figure of the giant black man, disappointment and anger surged within him, turning him into a wild animal. With a curse, he jumped onto the man in front of him, using his weight to throw the black man to the ground. There they struggled, the black man trying to pull out his knife, while the white man attempted to choke the life out of him.
Baynes’ fingers shut off the cry for help that the other would have been glad to voice; but presently the Negro succeeded in drawing his weapon and an instant later Baynes felt the sharp steel in his shoulder. Again and again the weapon fell. The white man removed one hand from its choking grip upon the black throat. He felt around upon the ground beside him searching for some missile, and at last his fingers touched a stone and closed upon it. Raising it above his antagonist’s head the Hon. Morison drove home a terrific blow. Instantly the black relaxed—stunned. Twice more Baynes struck him. Then he leaped to his feet and ran for the goat skin tent from which he had heard the voice of Meriem in distress.
Baynes’ fingers silenced the cry for help that the other man would have been eager to make; but soon, the Black man managed to draw his weapon, and a moment later, Baynes felt the sharp steel pierce his shoulder. The weapon struck again and again. The white man released one hand from its choking grip on the Black man's throat. He felt around on the ground beside him, searching for something to use as a weapon, and finally, his fingers brushed against a stone and grasped it. Lifting it above his opponent’s head, the Hon. Morison delivered a powerful blow. Instantly, the Black man relaxed—stunned. Baynes struck him two more times. Then he jumped to his feet and ran toward the goat skin tent from which he had heard Meriem's voice in distress.
But before him was another. Naked but for his leopard skin and his loin cloth, Korak, The Killer, slunk into the shadows at the back of Ali ben Kadin’s tent. The half-caste had just dragged Meriem into the rear chamber as Korak’s sharp knife slit a six foot opening in the tent wall, and Korak, tall and mighty, sprang through upon the astonished visions of the inmates.
But in front of him stood another. Bare except for his leopard skin and loincloth, Korak, The Killer, crept into the shadows at the back of Ali ben Kadin’s tent. The half-caste had just pulled Meriem into the back room as Korak’s sharp knife cut a six-foot opening in the tent wall, and Korak, tall and powerful, sprang through to the shocked faces of those inside.
Meriem saw and recognized him the instant that he entered the apartment. Her heart leaped in pride and joy at the sight of the noble figure for which it had hungered for so long.
Meriem saw and recognized him the moment he entered the apartment. Her heart raced with pride and joy at the sight of the noble figure she had longed for so long.
“Korak!” she cried.
"Korak!" she shouted.
“Meriem!” He uttered the single word as he hurled himself upon the astonished Ali ben Kadin. The three Negresses leaped from their sleeping mats, screaming. Meriem tried to prevent them from escaping; but before she could succeed the terrified blacks had darted through the hole in the tent wall made by Korak’s knife, and were gone screaming through the village.
“Meriem!” He shouted as he lunged at the stunned Ali ben Kadin. The three Black women jumped up from their sleeping mats, screaming. Meriem tried to stop them from running away, but before she could succeed, the frightened women had rushed through the hole in the tent wall created by Korak’s knife and were gone, screaming through the village.
The Killer’s fingers closed once upon the throat of the hideous Ali. Once his knife plunged into the putrid heart—and Ali ben Kadin lay dead upon the floor of his tent. Korak turned toward Meriem and at the same moment a bloody and disheveled apparition leaped into the apartment.
The killer's fingers gripped the throat of the grotesque Ali. Once his knife stabbed into the rotten heart—and Ali ben Kadin lay lifeless on the floor of his tent. Korak turned to Meriem, and at that moment, a bloody and disheveled figure jumped into the room.
“Morison!” cried the girl.
“Morison!” shouted the girl.
Korak turned and looked at the new comer. He had been about to take Meriem in his arms, forgetful of all that might have transpired since last he had seen her. Then the coming of the young Englishman recalled the scene he had witnessed in the little clearing, and a wave of misery swept over the ape man.
Korak turned and looked at the newcomer. He had been about to take Meriem in his arms, forgetting everything that might have happened since the last time he saw her. Then the arrival of the young Englishman reminded him of the scene he had witnessed in the little clearing, and a wave of misery washed over the ape man.
Already from without came the sounds of the alarm that the three Negresses had started. Men were running toward the tent of Ali ben Kadin. There was no time to be lost.
Already from outside came the sounds of the alarm that the three Black women had started. Men were running toward Ali ben Kadin's tent. There was no time to waste.
“Quick!” cried Korak, turning toward Baynes, who had scarce yet realized whether he was facing a friend or foe. “Take her to the palisade, following the rear of the tents. Here is my rope. With it you can scale the wall and make your escape.”
“Quick!” shouted Korak, turning to Baynes, who had barely figured out whether he was dealing with a friend or an enemy. “Get her to the palisade, going behind the tents. Here’s my rope. You can use it to climb the wall and get away.”
“But you, Korak?” cried Meriem.
“But you, Korak?” shouted Meriem.
“I will remain,” replied the ape-man. “I have business with The Sheik.”
“I'll stay,” replied the ape-man. “I have something to discuss with The Sheik.”
Meriem would have demurred, but The Killer seized them both by the shoulders and hustled them through the slit wall and out into the shadows beyond.
Meriem would have hesitated, but The Killer grabbed them both by the shoulders and pushed them through the gap in the wall and out into the shadows beyond.
“Now run for it,” he admonished, and turned to meet and hold those who were pouring into the tent from the front.
“Now go for it,” he urged, and turned to confront and engage those who were coming into the tent from the front.
The ape-man fought well—fought as he had never fought before; but the odds were too great for victory, though he won that which he most craved—time for the Englishman to escape with Meriem. Then he was overwhelmed by numbers, and a few minutes later, bound and guarded, he was carried to The Sheik’s tent.
The ape-man fought fiercely—fought like he never had before; but the odds were too stacked against him for victory, even though he achieved what he desired most—time for the Englishman to escape with Meriem. Then, he was overwhelmed by sheer numbers, and a few minutes later, bound and guarded, he was taken to The Sheik’s tent.
The old men eyed him in silence for a long time. He was trying to fix in his own mind some form of torture that would gratify his rage and hatred toward this creature who twice had been the means of his losing possession of Meriem. The killing of Ali ben Kadin caused him little anger—always had he hated the hideous son of his father’s hideous slave. The blow that this naked white warrior had once struck him added fuel to his rage. He could think of nothing adequate to the creature’s offense.
The old men watched him in silence for a long time. He was trying to come up with some way to punish this creature who had caused him to lose Meriem twice, a punishment that would satisfy his anger and hatred. The death of Ali ben Kadin didn’t bother him much—he had always hated the ugly son of his father’s disgusting slave. The hit that this bare white warrior had once given him only made him angrier. He couldn't think of anything that would be enough for the creature's wrongdoing.
And as he sat there looking upon Korak the silence was broken by the trumpeting of an elephant in the jungle beyond the palisade. A half smile touched Korak’s lips. He turned his head a trifle in the direction from which the sound had come and then there broke from his lips, a low, weird call. One of the blacks guarding him struck him across the mouth with the haft of his spear; but none there knew the significance of his cry.
And as he sat there looking at Korak, the silence was interrupted by the trumpeting of an elephant in the jungle beyond the fence. A faint smile appeared on Korak’s lips. He turned his head slightly toward the direction of the sound and then let out a low, strange call. One of the guards struck him across the mouth with the handle of his spear, but none of them understood the meaning of his cry.
In the jungle Tantor cocked his ears as the sound of Korak’s voice fell upon them. He approached the palisade and lifting his trunk above it, sniffed. Then he placed his head against the wooden logs and pushed; but the palisade was strong and only gave a little to the pressure.
In the jungle, Tantor perked up his ears when he heard Korak's voice. He went over to the palisade and lifted his trunk above it to sniff around. Then he pressed his head against the wooden logs and tried to push, but the palisade was strong and only budged a little.
In The Sheik’s tent The Sheik rose at last, and, pointing toward the bound captive, turned to one of his lieutenants.
In the Sheik's tent, the Sheik finally stood up and, pointing at the tied-up captive, turned to one of his lieutenants.
“Burn him,” he commanded. “At once. The stake is set.”
“Burn him,” he ordered. “Right now. The stake is ready.”
The guard pushed Korak from The Sheik’s presence. They dragged him to the open space in the center of the village, where a high stake was set in the ground. It had not been intended for burnings, but offered a convenient place to tie up refractory slaves that they might be beaten—ofttimes until death relieved their agonies.
The guard shoved Korak away from The Sheik. They pulled him to the open area in the middle of the village, where a tall stake was planted in the ground. It wasn’t meant for executions, but it was a handy spot to tie up defiant slaves so they could be beaten—often until death freed them from their suffering.
To this stake they bound Korak. Then they brought brush and piled about him, and The Sheik came and stood by that he might watch the agonies of his victim. But Korak did not wince even after they had fetched a brand and the flames had shot up among the dry tinder.
To this stake they tied Korak. Then they brought some brush and piled it around him, and The Sheik came and stood by to watch the suffering of his victim. But Korak didn’t flinch, even after they brought a brand and the flames shot up among the dry tinder.
Once, then, he raised his voice in the low call that he had given in The Sheik’s tent, and now, from beyond the palisade, came again the trumpeting of an elephant.
Once again, he raised his voice in the low call he had used in The Sheik’s tent, and this time, from beyond the palisade, the trumpeting of an elephant echoed back.
Old Tantor had been pushing at the palisade in vain. The sound of Korak’s voice calling him, and the scent of man, his enemy, filled the great beast with rage and resentment against the dumb barrier that held him back. He wheeled and shuffled back a dozen paces, then he turned, lifted his trunk and gave voice to a mighty roaring, trumpet-call of anger, lowered his head and charged like a huge battering ram of flesh and bone and muscle straight for the mighty barrier.
Old Tantor had been pushing against the fence without success. The sound of Korak’s voice calling him and the smell of man, his enemy, filled the huge beast with rage and frustration towards the stupid barrier that held him back. He turned and shuffled back a few steps, then he turned, lifted his trunk, and let out a powerful roar, a trumpet of anger, lowered his head, and charged like a huge battering ram of flesh and bone straight for the massive barrier.
The palisade sagged and splintered to the impact, and through the breach rushed the infuriated bull. Korak heard the sounds that the others heard, and he interpreted them as the others did not. The flames were creeping closer to him when one of the blacks, hearing a noise behind him turned to see the enormous bulk of Tantor lumbering toward them. The man screamed and fled, and then the bull elephant was among them tossing Negroes and Arabs to right and left as he tore through the flames he feared to the side of the comrade he loved.
The fence sagged and splintered from the impact, and through the gap charged the furious bull. Korak heard the sounds that everyone else did, but he understood them in a way they didn’t. The flames were getting closer when one of the men, hearing a noise behind him, turned to see the massive figure of Tantor making its way toward them. The man screamed and ran, and then the bull elephant was in their midst, throwing both Blacks and Arabs aside as he charged through the flames he dreaded to reach the side of his beloved comrade.
The Sheik, calling orders to his followers, ran to his tent to get his rifle. Tantor wrapped his trunk about the body of Korak and the stake to which it was bound, and tore it from the ground. The flames were searing his sensitive hide—sensitive for all its thickness—so that in his frenzy to both rescue his friend and escape the hated fire he had all but crushed the life from the ape-man.
The Sheik, shouting orders to his followers, dashed to his tent to grab his rifle. Tantor wrapped his trunk around Korak's body and the stake it was tied to, ripping it from the ground. The flames were burning his sensitive skin—sensitive despite its thickness—so in his desperation to save his friend and flee the dreaded fire, he nearly squeezed the life out of the ape-man.
Lifting his burden high above his head the giant beast wheeled and raced for the breach that he had just made in the palisade. The Sheik, rifle in hand, rushed from his tent directly into the path of the maddened brute. He raised his weapon and fired once, the bullet missed its mark, and Tantor was upon him, crushing him beneath those gigantic feet as he raced over him as you and I might crush out the life of an ant that chanced to be in our pathway.
Lifting his load high above his head, the giant beast turned and sprinted toward the gap he had just created in the fence. The Sheik, rifle in hand, ran from his tent straight into the path of the crazed creature. He lifted his weapon and fired once, but the bullet missed its target, and Tantor was on him, trampling him under his massive feet as easily as you and I might squash an ant that happened to be in our way.
And then, bearing his burden carefully, Tantor, the elephant, entered the blackness of the jungle.
And then, carefully carrying his load, Tantor, the elephant, stepped into the darkness of the jungle.
XXVI.
Meriem, dazed by the unexpected sight of Korak whom she had long given up as dead, permitted herself to be led away by Baynes. Among the tents he guided her safely to the palisade, and there, following Korak’s instructions, the Englishman pitched a noose over the top of one of the upright logs that formed the barrier. With difficulty he reached the top and then lowered his hand to assist Meriem to his side.
Meriem, stunned by the surprising appearance of Korak, someone she had long thought was dead, allowed Baynes to lead her away. He carefully guided her through the tents to the palisade, and there, following Korak’s directions, the Englishman threw a noose over the top of one of the upright logs that made up the barrier. After a struggle, he reached the top and then extended his hand to help Meriem join him.
“Come!” he whispered. “We must hurry.” And then, as though she had awakened from a sleep, Meriem came to herself. Back there, fighting her enemies, alone, was Korak—her Korak. Her place was by his side, fighting with him and for him. She glanced up at Baynes.
“Come!” he whispered. “We need to hurry.” And then, as if she had woken up from a dream, Meriem came to her senses. Back there, fighting his enemies alone, was Korak—her Korak. She needed to be by his side, fighting with him and for him. She looked up at Baynes.
“Go!” she called. “Make your way back to Bwana and bring help. My place is here. You can do no good remaining. Get away while you can and bring the Big Bwana back with you.”
“Go!” she called. “Make your way back to Bwana and get help. I need to stay here. You won’t be able to help by staying. Leave while you can and bring Big Bwana back with you.”
Silently the Hon. Morison Baynes slid to the ground inside the palisade to Meriem’s side.
Silently, the Hon. Morison Baynes dropped to the ground inside the palisade, next to Meriem.
“It was only for you that I left him,” he said, nodding toward the tents they had just left. “I knew that he could hold them longer than I and give you a chance to escape that I might not be able to have given you. It was I though who should have remained. I heard you call him Korak and so I know now who he is. He befriended you. I would have wronged you. No—don’t interrupt. I’m going to tell you the truth now and let you know just what a beast I have been. I planned to take you to London, as you know; but I did not plan to marry you. Yes, shrink from me—I deserve it. I deserve your contempt and loathing; but I didn’t know then what love was. Since I have learned that I have learned something else—what a cad and what a coward I have been all my life. I looked down upon those whom I considered my social inferiors. I did not think you good enough to bear my name. Since Hanson tricked me and took you for himself I have been through hell; but it has made a man of me, though too late. Now I can come to you with an offer of honest love, which will realize the honor of having such as you share my name with me.”
“It was only for you that I left him,” he said, pointing toward the tents they had just left. “I knew he could keep them busy longer than I could and give you a chance to escape that I might not have been able to offer you. I should have been the one to stay. I heard you call him Korak, so now I know who he is. He became your friend. I would have wronged you. No—don’t interrupt. I’m going to tell you the truth now and let you know just what a jerk I’ve been. I planned to take you to London, as you know, but I didn’t plan to marry you. Yes, back away from me—I deserve it. I deserve your contempt and disgust; but I didn’t know back then what love really was. Since I learned that, I’ve also realized how much of a scoundrel and coward I’ve been my entire life. I looked down on those I thought were beneath me. I didn’t think you were good enough to carry my name. Since Hanson tricked me and took you for himself, I’ve been through hell; but it has shaped me into a man, even if it’s too late. Now I can come to you with a genuine offer of love that honors having someone like you share my name with me.”
For a moment Meriem was silent, buried in thought. Her first question seemed irrelevant.
For a moment, Meriem was quiet, lost in thought. Her first question felt unrelated.
“How did you happen to be in this village?” she asked.
“How did you end up in this village?” she asked.
He told her all that had transpired since the black had told him of Hanson’s duplicity.
He filled her in on everything that had happened since the black guy warned him about Hanson’s betrayal.
“You say that you are a coward,” she said, “and yet you have done all this to save me? The courage that it must have taken to tell me the things that you told me but a moment since, while courage of a different sort, proves that you are no moral coward, and the other proves that you are not a physical coward. I could not love a coward.”
“You say you’re a coward,” she said, “and yet you’ve done all this to save me? The bravery it must have taken to say the things you just told me shows that you’re not a moral coward, and the other side shows you’re not a physical coward either. I couldn’t love a coward.”
“You mean that you love me?” he gasped in astonishment, taking a step toward her as though to gather her into his arms; but she placed her hand against him and pushed him gently away, as much as to say, not yet. What she did mean she scarcely knew. She thought that she loved him, of that there can be no question; nor did she think that love for this young Englishman was disloyalty to Korak, for her love for Korak was undiminished—the love of a sister for an indulgent brother. As they stood there for the moment of their conversation the sounds of tumult in the village subsided.
"You mean you love me?" he gasped in shock, stepping toward her as if he wanted to pull her into his arms; but she held her hand up against him and gently pushed him away, as if to say, not yet. What she really meant, she barely understood. She believed that she loved him, of that there was no doubt; and she didn’t think that her feelings for this young Englishman betrayed Korak, because her love for Korak was still strong—the love of a sister for a caring brother. As they stood there during their conversation, the chaos in the village faded away.
“They have killed him,” whispered Meriem.
“They have killed him,” Meriem whispered.
The statement brought Baynes to a realization of the cause of their return.
The statement made Baynes realize why they had come back.
“Wait here,” he said. “I will go and see. If he is dead we can do him no good. If he lives I will do my best to free him.”
“Wait here,” he said. “I’ll go and check. If he’s dead, we can’t help him. If he’s alive, I’ll do my best to save him.”
“We will go together,” replied Meriem. “Come!” And she led the way back toward the tent in which they last had seen Korak. As they went they were often forced to throw themselves to the ground in the shadow of a tent or hut, for people were passing hurriedly to and fro now—the whole village was aroused and moving about. The return to the tent of Ali ben Kadin took much longer than had their swift flight to the palisade. Cautiously they crept to the slit that Korak’s knife had made in the rear wall. Meriem peered within—the rear apartment was empty. She crawled through the aperture, Baynes at her heels, and then silently crossed the space to the rugs that partitioned the tent into two rooms. Parting the hangings Meriem looked into the front room. It, too, was deserted. She crossed to the door of the tent and looked out. Then she gave a little gasp of horror. Baynes at her shoulder looked past her to the sight that had startled her, and he, too, exclaimed; but his was an oath of anger.
"We'll go together," Meriem said. "Come on!" She led the way back to the tent where they had last seen Korak. As they moved, they often had to drop to the ground in the shadows of a tent or hut because people were rushing around—the whole village was awake and active. The return to Ali ben Kadin's tent took much longer than their quick escape to the palisade. They cautiously approached the slit that Korak's knife had made in the back wall. Meriem peeked inside—the back room was empty. She crawled through the opening, followed closely by Baynes, and then quietly crossed to the rugs that divided the tent into two rooms. Parting the drapes, Meriem looked into the front room. It was also empty. She moved to the tent door and glanced outside. Then she gasped in horror. Baynes, standing right behind her, looked past her at what had startled her, and he swore in anger.
A hundred feet away they saw Korak bound to a stake—the brush piled about him already alight. The Englishman pushed Meriem to one side and started to run for the doomed man. What he could do in the face of scores of hostile blacks and Arabs he did not stop to consider. At the same instant Tantor broke through the palisade and charged the group. In the face of the maddened beast the crowd turned and fled, carrying Baynes backward with them. In a moment it was all over, and the elephant had disappeared with his prize; but pandemonium reigned throughout the village. Men, women and children ran helter skelter for safety. Curs fled, yelping. The horses and camels and donkeys, terrorized by the trumpeting of the pachyderm, kicked and pulled at their tethers. A dozen or more broke loose, and it was the galloping of these past him that brought a sudden idea into Baynes’ head. He turned to search for Meriem only to find her at his elbow.
A hundred feet away, they saw Korak tied to a stake, with the brush already burning around him. The Englishman shoved Meriem aside and started running toward the doomed man. He didn’t stop to think about what he could do against the many hostile blacks and Arabs. At the same moment, Tantor broke through the palisade and charged at the group. Faced with the enraged beast, the crowd turned and ran, dragging Baynes along with them. In an instant, it was all over, and the elephant had vanished with his prize, but chaos erupted throughout the village. Men, women, and children ran frantically for safety. Dogs fled, barking. The horses, camels, and donkeys, terrified by the sound of the elephant, kicked and pulled at their tethers. A dozen or more broke free, and it was the sight of these galloping past him that sparked a sudden idea in Baynes’ mind. He turned to look for Meriem, only to find her right next to him.
“The horses!” he cried. “If we can get a couple of them!”
“The horses!” he shouted. “If we can get a couple of them!”
Filled with the idea Meriem led him to the far end of the village.
Filled with the thought, Meriem guided him to the edge of the village.
“Loosen two of them,” she said, “and lead them back into the shadows behind those huts. I know where there are saddles. I will bring them and the bridles,” and before he could stop her she was gone.
“Loosen two of them,” she said, “and take them back into the shadows behind those huts. I know where the saddles are. I’ll grab them and the bridles,” and before he could stop her, she was gone.
Baynes quickly untied two of the restive animals and led them to the point designated by Meriem. Here he waited impatiently for what seemed an hour; but was, in reality, but a few minutes. Then he saw the girl approaching beneath the burden of two saddles. Quickly they placed these upon the horses. They could see by the light of the torture fire that still burned that the blacks and Arabs were recovering from their panic. Men were running about gathering in the loose stock, and two or three were already leading their captives back to the end of the village where Meriem and Baynes were busy with the trappings of their mounts.
Baynes quickly untied two of the restless animals and led them to the spot Meriem had pointed out. He waited there impatiently for what felt like an hour, but was really just a few minutes. Then he saw the girl coming toward him with two saddles. They hurriedly placed these on the horses. By the light of the still-burning torture fire, they could see that the blacks and Arabs were starting to calm down. Men were running around, rounding up the loose livestock, and a couple of them were already leading their captives back toward the end of the village where Meriem and Baynes were focused on preparing their mounts.
Now the girl flung herself into the saddle.
Now the girl jumped into the saddle.
“Hurry!” she whispered. “We shall have to run for it. Ride through the gap that Tantor made,” and as she saw Baynes swing his leg over the back of his horse, she shook the reins free over her mount’s neck. With a lunge, the nervous beast leaped forward. The shortest path led straight through the center of the village, and this Meriem took. Baynes was close behind her, their horses running at full speed.
“Hurry!” she whispered. “We need to run for it. Ride through the gap that Tantor made,” and as she saw Baynes swing his leg over his horse, she loosened the reins over her mount’s neck. With a surge, the anxious horse jumped forward. The quickest route went straight through the middle of the village, and that’s the way Meriem chose. Baynes was right behind her, their horses racing at full speed.
So sudden and impetuous was their dash for escape that it carried them half-way across the village before the surprised inhabitants were aware of what was happening. Then an Arab recognized them, and, with a cry of alarm, raised his rifle and fired. The shot was a signal for a volley, and amid the rattle of musketry Meriem and Baynes leaped their flying mounts through the breach in the palisade and were gone up the well-worn trail toward the north.
So sudden and reckless was their rush to escape that it took them halfway across the village before the shocked residents realized what was happening. Then an Arab recognized them and, with a shout of alarm, raised his rifle and shot. The gunfire triggered a barrage of shots, and amid the noise of gunfire, Meriem and Baynes urged their fleeing mounts through the gap in the palisade and took off up the well-trodden path to the north.
And Korak?
And what about Korak?
Tantor carried him deep into the jungle, nor paused until no sound from the distant village reached his keen ears. Then he laid his burden gently down. Korak struggled to free himself from his bonds, but even his great strength was unable to cope with the many strands of hard-knotted cord that bound him. While he lay there, working and resting by turns, the elephant stood guard above him, nor was there jungle enemy with the hardihood to tempt the sudden death that lay in that mighty bulk.
Tantor carried him far into the jungle and didn’t stop until he could no longer hear anything from the distant village. Then he gently set him down. Korak fought to break free from his ties, but even his immense strength couldn’t handle the numerous tightly knotted cords that held him. As he lay there, alternating between struggling and resting, the elephant stood watch over him, and no jungle creature dared to challenge the sudden death that lurked in that massive presence.
Dawn came, and still Korak was no nearer freedom than before. He commenced to believe that he should die there of thirst and starvation with plenty all about him, for he knew that Tantor could not unloose the knots that held him.
Dawn arrived, and still Korak was no closer to freedom than before. He started to believe that he would die there from thirst and starvation, despite having plenty around him, because he knew that Tantor couldn't untie the knots that bound him.
And while he struggled through the night with his bonds, Baynes and Meriem were riding rapidly northward along the river. The girl had assured Baynes that Korak was safe in the jungle with Tantor. It had not occurred to her that the ape-man might not be able to burst his bonds. Baynes had been wounded by a shot from the rifle of one of the Arabs, and the girl wanted to get him back to Bwana’s home, where he could be properly cared for.
And while he fought against his restraints all night, Baynes and Meriem were hastily riding north along the river. The girl had promised Baynes that Korak was safe in the jungle with Tantor. She hadn't considered that the ape-man might not be able to break free from his bindings. Baynes had been shot by one of the Arabs, and the girl wanted to get him back to Bwana’s home for proper treatment.
“Then,” she said, “I shall get Bwana to come with me and search for Korak. He must come and live with us.”
“Then,” she said, “I’ll get Bwana to come with me and look for Korak. He has to come and live with us.”
All night they rode, and the day was still young when they came suddenly upon a party hurrying southward. It was Bwana himself and his sleek, black warriors. At sight of Baynes the big Englishman’s brows contracted in a scowl; but he waited to hear Meriem’s story before giving vent to the long anger in his breast. When she had finished he seemed to have forgotten Baynes. His thoughts were occupied with another subject.
All night they rode, and it was still early in the day when they unexpectedly came across a group rushing south. It was Bwana himself and his sleek, black warriors. When he saw Baynes, the big Englishman frowned; but he held back his anger to hear Meriem’s story first. Once she finished, it seemed he had forgotten about Baynes. His mind was focused on something else entirely.
“You say that you found Korak?” he asked. “You really saw him?”
“You say you found Korak?” he asked. “You really saw him?”
“Yes,” replied Meriem; “as plainly as I see you, and I want you to come with me, Bwana, and help me find him again.”
“Yes,” replied Meriem; “just as clearly as I see you, and I need you to come with me, Bwana, and help me find him again.”
“Did you see him?” He turned toward the Hon. Morison.
“Did you see him?” He turned to the Hon. Morison.
“Yes, sir,” replied Baynes; “very plainly.”
“Yes, sir,” Baynes replied; “very clearly.”
“What sort of appearing man is he?” continued Bwana. “About how old, should you say?”
“What kind of man is he?” Bwana asked. “How old do you think he is?”
“I should say he was an Englishman, about my own age,” replied Baynes; “though he might be older. He is remarkably muscled, and exceedingly tanned.”
“I should say he was an Englishman, about my own age,” replied Baynes; “though he might be older. He is really muscular and very tanned.”
“His eyes and hair, did you notice them?” Bwana spoke rapidly, almost excitedly. It was Meriem who answered him.
“Did you see his eyes and hair?” Bwana spoke quickly, almost with excitement. It was Meriem who replied to him.
“Korak’s hair is black and his eyes are gray,” she said.
“Korak has black hair and gray eyes,” she said.
Bwana turned to his headman.
Bwana turned to his leader.
“Take Miss Meriem and Mr. Baynes home,” he said. “I am going into the jungle.”
“Take Miss Meriem and Mr. Baynes home,” he said. “I’m heading into the jungle.”
“Let me go with you, Bwana,” cried Meriem. “You are going to search for Korak. Let me go, too.”
“Let me come with you, Bwana,” Meriem shouted. “You’re going to look for Korak. Let me come along, too.”
Bwana turned sadly but firmly upon the girl.
Bwana turned around sadly but resolutely to face the girl.
“Your place,” he said, “is beside the man you love.”
“Your place,” he said, “is next to the man you love.”
Then he motioned to his head-man to take his horse and commence the return journey to the farm. Meriem slowly mounted the tired Arab that had brought her from the village of The Sheik. A litter was rigged for the now feverish Baynes, and the little cavalcade was soon slowly winding off along the river trail.
Then he signaled to his foreman to take his horse and start the trip back to the farm. Meriem slowly got on the exhausted Arab that had brought her from the village of The Sheik. A stretcher was set up for the now feverish Baynes, and soon the small group was slowly making its way along the river trail.
Bwana stood watching them until they were out of sight. Not once had Meriem turned her eyes backward. She rode with bowed head and drooping shoulders. Bwana sighed. He loved the little Arab girl as he might have loved an own daughter. He realized that Baynes had redeemed himself, and so he could interpose no objections now if Meriem really loved the man; but, somehow, some way, Bwana could not convince himself that the Hon. Morison was worthy of his little Meriem. Slowly he turned toward a nearby tree. Leaping upward he caught a lower branch and drew himself up among the branches. His movements were cat-like and agile. High into the trees he made his way and there commenced to divest himself of his clothing. From the game bag slung across one shoulder he drew a long strip of doe-skin, a neatly coiled rope, and a wicked looking knife. The doe-skin, he fashioned into a loin cloth, the rope he looped over one shoulder, and the knife he thrust into the belt formed by his gee string.
Bwana watched them until they were out of sight. Meriem never looked back. She rode with her head down and her shoulders slumped. Bwana sighed. He cared for the little Arab girl as if she were his own daughter. He realized that Baynes had redeemed himself, so he had no objections now if Meriem truly loved the man; however, somehow, he couldn’t convince himself that the Hon. Morison deserved his little Meriem. Slowly, he turned towards a nearby tree. He leaped up, grabbed a low branch, and pulled himself up into the branches. His movements were graceful and agile. He climbed higher into the trees and began to strip off his clothes. From the game bag slung over one shoulder, he pulled out a long strip of doe-skin, a neatly coiled rope, and a sharp-looking knife. He fashioned the doe-skin into a loincloth, draped the rope over one shoulder, and tucked the knife into the belt made from his gee string.
When he stood erect, his head thrown back and his great chest expanded a grim smile touched his lips for a moment. His nostrils dilated as he sniffed the jungle odors. His gray eyes narrowed. He crouched and leaped to a lower limb and was away through the trees toward the southeast, bearing away from the river. He moved swiftly, stopping only occasionally to raise his voice in a weird and piercing scream, and to listen for a moment after for a reply.
When he stood tall, his head thrown back and his broad chest puffed out, a grim smile appeared on his lips for a moment. His nostrils flared as he inhaled the scents of the jungle. His gray eyes narrowed. He crouched down and jumped to a lower branch, then moved through the trees toward the southeast, away from the river. He moved quickly, stopping only now and then to let out a strange, piercing scream and to listen for a moment in response.
He had traveled thus for several hours when, ahead of him and a little to his left, he heard, far off in the jungle, a faint response—the cry of a bull ape answering his cry. His nerves tingled and his eyes lighted as the sound fell upon his ears. Again he voiced his hideous call, and sped forward in the new direction.
He had been traveling like this for several hours when, ahead of him and a little to his left, he heard a faint response from deep in the jungle—the cry of a bull ape replying to his call. His nerves tingled and his eyes lit up as the sound reached him. He let out his harsh call again and rushed toward the new direction.
Korak, finally becoming convinced that he must die if he remained where he was, waiting for the succor that could not come, spoke to Tantor in the strange tongue that the great beast understood. He commanded the elephant to lift him and carry him toward the northeast. There, recently, Korak had seen both white men and black. If he could come upon one of the latter it would be a simple matter to command Tantor to capture the fellow, and then Korak could get him to release him from the stake. It was worth trying at least—better than lying there in the jungle until he died. As Tantor bore him along through the forest Korak called aloud now and then in the hope of attracting Akut’s band of anthropoids, whose wanderings often brought them into their neighborhood. Akut, he thought, might possibly be able to negotiate the knots—he had done so upon that other occasion when the Russian had bound Korak years before; and Akut, to the south of him, heard his calls faintly, and came. There was another who heard them, too.
Korak, realizing that he would die if he stayed where he was, waiting for help that wouldn’t come, spoke to Tantor in the unique language that the great beast understood. He instructed the elephant to lift him and take him toward the northeast. Recently, Korak had spotted both white men and black in that direction. If he could find one of the latter, he could easily instruct Tantor to capture him, allowing Korak to get free from his bindings. It was worth a shot—better than just lying in the jungle until he died. As Tantor carried him through the forest, Korak called out now and then, hoping to attract Akut’s group of apes, who often wandered into the area. Korak thought Akut might be able to help untie the knots—he had done it before when the Russian had tied Korak up years ago; and Akut, who was to the south, heard his calls faintly and came. There was someone else who heard them, too.
After Bwana had left his party, sending them back toward the farm, Meriem had ridden for a short distance with bowed head. What thoughts passed through that active brain who may say? Presently she seemed to come to a decision. She called the headman to her side.
After Bwana had sent his group back to the farm, Meriem rode a short way with her head down. Who can say what thoughts were racing through her mind? Eventually, she appeared to make up her mind. She called the headman over to her.
“I am going back with Bwana,” she announced.
“I’m going back with Bwana,” she said.
The black shook his head. “No!” he announced. “Bwana says I take you home. So I take you home.”
The man shook his head. “No!” he said. “The boss says I have to take you home. So I’m taking you home.”
“You refuse to let me go?” asked the girl.
“You're not going to let me leave?” asked the girl.
The black nodded, and fell to the rear where he might better watch her. Meriem half smiled. Presently her horse passed beneath a low-hanging branch, and the black headman found himself gazing at the girl’s empty saddle. He ran forward to the tree into which she had disappeared. He could see nothing of her. He called; but there was no response, unless it might have been a low, taunting laugh far to the right. He sent his men into the jungle to search for her; but they came back empty handed. After a while he resumed his march toward the farm, for Baynes, by this time, was delirious with fever.
The black man nodded and moved to the back so he could keep an eye on her. Meriem half-smiled. Soon, her horse passed under a low branch, and the black leader found himself staring at the girl’s empty saddle. He ran to the tree where she had vanished. He couldn’t see her at all. He called out, but there was no answer, except for a faint, mocking laugh in the distance to the right. He sent his men into the jungle to look for her, but they returned empty-handed. After a while, he continued his march toward the farm, as Baynes was now delirious with fever.
Meriem raced straight back toward the point she imagined Tantor would make for—a point where she knew the elephants often gathered deep in the forest due east of The Sheik’s village. She moved silently and swiftly. From her mind she had expunged all thoughts other than that she must reach Korak and bring him back with her. It was her place to do that. Then, too, had come the tantalizing fear that all might not be well with him. She upbraided herself for not thinking of that before—of letting her desire to get the wounded Morison back to the bungalow blind her to the possibilities of Korak’s need for her. She had been traveling rapidly for several hours without rest when she heard ahead of her the familiar cry of a great ape calling to his kind.
Meriem sprinted back toward the spot she thought Tantor would head for—a place where she knew the elephants often gathered deep in the forest to the east of The Sheik’s village. She moved quietly and quickly. She pushed all thoughts from her mind except for the need to reach Korak and bring him back with her. It was her responsibility to do that. Then came the nagging worry that something might be wrong with him. She scolded herself for not considering that earlier—letting her eagerness to get the injured Morison back to the bungalow blind her to the possibility that Korak needed her. She had been moving fast for several hours without a break when she heard the familiar call of a great ape ahead of her, calling out to its kind.
She did not reply, only increased her speed until she almost flew. Now there came to her sensitive nostrils the scent of Tantor and she knew that she was on the right trail and close to him she sought. She did not call out because she wished to surprise him, and presently she did, breaking into sight of them as the great elephant shuffled ahead balancing the man and the heavy stake upon his head, holding them there with his upcurled trunk.
She didn't respond, just picked up her pace until she was almost flying. Then she caught the scent of Tantor, and she knew she was on the right track and close to the one she was looking for. She didn't shout out because she wanted to surprise him, and soon she did, bursting into view as the massive elephant moved forward, balancing the man and the heavy stake on his head, holding them there with his curled trunk.
“Korak!” cried Meriem from the foliage above him.
“Korak!” Meriem shouted from the leaves above him.
Instantly the bull swung about, lowered his burden to the ground and, trumpeting savagely, prepared to defend his comrade. The ape-man, recognizing the girl’s voice, felt a sudden lump in his throat.
Instantly, the bull turned around, dropped his burden to the ground, and, trumpeting fiercely, got ready to defend his friend. The ape-man, hearing the girl's voice, felt a sudden lump in his throat.
“Meriem!” he called back to her.
“Meriem!” he called out to her.
Happily the girl clambered to the ground and ran forward to release Korak; but Tantor lowered his head ominously and trumpeted a warning.
Happily, the girl climbed down to the ground and ran forward to free Korak; but Tantor lowered his head ominously and trumpeted a warning.
“Go back! Go back!” cried Korak. “He will kill you.”
“Go back! Go back!” shouted Korak. “He'll kill you.”
Meriem paused. “Tantor!” she called to the huge brute. “Don’t you remember me? I am little Meriem. I used to ride on your broad back;” but the bull only rumbled in his throat and shook his tusks in angry defiance. Then Korak tried to placate him. Tried to order him away, that the girl might approach and release him; but Tantor would not go. He saw in every human being other than Korak an enemy. He thought the girl bent upon harming his friend and he would take no chances. For an hour the girl and the man tried to find some means whereby they might circumvent the beast’s ill directed guardianship, but all to no avail; Tantor stood his ground in grim determination to let no one approach Korak.
Meriem paused. “Tantor!” she called to the massive creature. “Don’t you remember me? I’m little Meriem. I used to ride on your broad back;” but the bull only rumbled in his throat and shook his tusks in angry defiance. Then Korak tried to calm him down. He tried to get him to move away so the girl could come closer and free him; but Tantor wouldn’t budge. He saw every human except Korak as a threat. He thought the girl was out to harm his friend, and he wasn’t taking any chances. For an hour, the girl and the man tried to figure out a way to get around the beast's misguided protection, but it was useless; Tantor stood his ground, determined not to let anyone get near Korak.
Presently the man hit upon a scheme. “Pretend to go away,” he called to the girl. “Keep down wind from us so that Tantor won’t get your scent, then follow us. After a while I’ll have him put me down, and find some pretext for sending him away. While he is gone you can slip up and cut my bonds—have you a knife?”
Right now, the man came up with a plan. “Pretend to leave,” he called to the girl. “Stay downwind from us so Tantor won’t catch your scent, then follow us. After a while, I’ll have him set me down and find a reason to send him away. While he’s gone, you can sneak up and cut my bonds—do you have a knife?”
“Yes, I have a knife,” she replied. “I’ll go now—I think we may be able to fool him; but don’t be too sure—Tantor invented cunning.”
“Yes, I have a knife,” she replied. “I’ll go now—I think we can trick him; but don't get too confident—Tantor was the master of cunning.”
Korak smiled, for he knew that the girl was right. Presently she had disappeared. The elephant listened, and raised his trunk to catch her scent. Korak commanded him to raise him to his head once more and proceed upon their way. After a moment’s hesitation he did as he was bid. It was then that Korak heard the distant call of an ape.
Korak smiled because he knew the girl was right. She had vanished. The elephant listened and lifted his trunk to catch her scent. Korak instructed him to lift his trunk again and continue on their way. After a brief hesitation, the elephant complied. It was then that Korak heard the distant call of an ape.
“Akut!” he thought. “Good! Tantor knew Akut well. He would let him approach.” Raising his voice Korak replied to the call of the ape; but he let Tantor move off with him through the jungle; it would do no harm to try the other plan. They had come to a clearing and plainly Korak smelled water. Here was a good place and a good excuse. He ordered Tantor to lay him down, and go and fetch him water in his trunk. The big beast deposited him upon the grass in the center of the clearing, then he stood with cocked ears and attentive trunk, searching for the slightest indication of danger—there seemed to be none and he moved away in the direction of the little brook that Korak knew was some two or three hundred yards away. The ape-man could scarce help smiling as he thought how cleverly he had tricked his friend; but well as he knew Tantor he little guessed the guile of his cunning brain. The animal ambled off across the clearing and disappeared in the jungle beyond in the direction of the stream; but scarce had his great bulk been screened by the dense foliage than he wheeled about and came cautiously back to the edge of the clearing where he could see without being seen. Tantor, by nature, is suspicious. Now he still feared the return of the she Tarmangani who had attempted to attack his Korak. He would just stand there for a moment and assure himself that all was well before he continued on toward the water. Ah! It was well that he did! There she was now dropping from the branches of a tree across the clearing and running swiftly toward the ape-man. Tantor waited. He would let her reach Korak before he charged—that would ensure that she had no chance of escape. His little eyes blazed savagely. His tail was elevated stiffly. He could scarce restrain a desire to trumpet forth his rage to the world. Meriem was almost at Korak’s side when Tantor saw the long knife in her hand, and then he broke forth from the jungle, bellowing horribly, and charged down upon the frail girl.
“Akut!” he thought. “Great! Tantor knew Akut well. He would let him come closer.” Raising his voice, Korak responded to the call of the ape; but he allowed Tantor to walk off with him through the jungle; it wouldn’t hurt to try another plan. They arrived at a clearing, and it was clear that Korak could smell water. This was a good spot and a good excuse. He instructed Tantor to lay him down and go fetch him water in his trunk. The huge beast placed him on the grass in the center of the clearing, then stood with perked ears and an attentive trunk, looking for any sign of danger—there seemed to be none, and he moved toward the little brook that Korak knew was a couple of hundred yards away. The ape-man could hardly help smiling as he realized how cleverly he had outsmarted his friend; but as well as he knew Tantor, he had no idea of the cunning tricks in his brain. The animal ambled across the clearing and vanished into the jungle on the way to the stream; but hardly had his massive form disappeared behind the thick foliage than he turned around and cautiously returned to the edge of the clearing where he could see without being seen. Tantor, by nature, was suspicious. Now he still worried about the return of the she Tarmangani who had tried to attack his Korak. He would just stand there for a moment and make sure everything was okay before continuing on to the water. Ah! It was a good thing he did! There she was now, dropping from the branches of a tree across the clearing and sprinting quickly toward the ape-man. Tantor waited. He would let her reach Korak before he charged—that way, she would have no chance to escape. His small eyes blazed with fury. His tail was held high and stiff. He could hardly contain the urge to trumpet his rage to the world. Meriem was almost at Korak’s side when Tantor saw the long knife in her hand, and then he burst forth from the jungle, bellowing frighteningly, and charged down toward the vulnerable girl.
XXVII.
Korak screamed commands to his huge protector, in an effort to halt him; but all to no avail. Meriem raced toward the bordering trees with all the speed that lay in her swift, little feet; but Tantor, for all his huge bulk, drove down upon her with the rapidity of an express train.
Korak shouted orders to his massive protector, trying to stop him; but it was useless. Meriem sprinted toward the trees as fast as her small feet could carry her; but Tantor, despite his enormous size, barreled down on her like a speeding train.
Korak lay where he could see the whole frightful tragedy. The cold sweat broke out upon his body. His heart seemed to have stopped its beating. Meriem might reach the trees before Tantor overtook her, but even her agility would not carry her beyond the reach of that relentless trunk—she would be dragged down and tossed. Korak could picture the whole frightful scene. Then Tantor would follow her up, goring the frail, little body with his relentless tusks, or trampling it into an unrecognizable mass beneath his ponderous feet.
Korak lay where he could see the entire horrifying scene. Cold sweat broke out on his body. His heart felt like it had stopped beating. Meriem might reach the trees before Tantor caught up to her, but even her agility wouldn’t be enough to escape that relentless trunk—she would be dragged down and tossed. Korak could visualize the whole terrifying scenario. Then Tantor would come after her, stabbing the fragile little body with his unforgiving tusks or crushing it into an unrecognizable mess beneath his heavy feet.
He was almost upon her now. Korak wanted to close his eyes, but could not. His throat was dry and parched. Never in all his savage existence had he suffered such blighting terror—never before had he known what terror meant. A dozen more strides and the brute would seize her. What was that? Korak’s eyes started from their sockets. A strange figure had leaped from the tree the shade of which Meriem already had reached—leaped beyond the girl straight into the path of the charging elephant. It was a naked white giant. Across his shoulder a coil of rope was looped. In the band of his gee string was a hunting knife. Otherwise he was unarmed. With naked hands he faced the maddening Tantor. A sharp command broke from the stranger’s lips—the great beast halted in his tracks—and Meriem swung herself upward into the tree to safety. Korak breathed a sigh of relief not unmixed with wonder. He fastened his eyes upon the face of Meriem’s deliverer and as recognition slowly filtered into his understanding they went wide in incredulity and surprise.
He was almost on her now. Korak wanted to shut his eyes, but he couldn’t. His throat was dry and parched. Never in all his wild life had he experienced such overwhelming terror—never before had he truly understood what fear meant. Just a few more steps and the beast would grab her. What was that? Korak’s eyes nearly popped out of his head. A strange figure had jumped down from the tree that Meriem had already reached—jumped right in front of the charging elephant. It was a naked white giant. A coil of rope was slung over his shoulder. He had a hunting knife tucked in his waistband. Other than that, he was unarmed. He faced the furious Tantor with his bare hands. A sharp command burst from the stranger’s lips—the massive beast stopped in its tracks—and Meriem quickly swung herself up into the tree to safety. Korak let out a sigh of relief mixed with amazement. He focused on the face of Meriem’s savior, and as the realization slowly dawned on him, his eyes widened in disbelief and surprise.
Tantor, still rumbling angrily, stood swaying to and fro close before the giant white man. Then the latter stepped straight beneath the upraised trunk and spoke a low word of command. The great beast ceased his muttering. The savage light died from his eyes, and as the stranger stepped forward toward Korak, Tantor trailed docilely at his heels.
Tantor, still growling angrily, stood swaying back and forth right in front of the giant white man. Then the man stepped directly under the raised trunk and spoke a quiet command. The massive beast stopped growling. The wild look faded from his eyes, and as the stranger moved toward Korak, Tantor followed obediently behind him.
Meriem was watching, too, and wondering. Suddenly the man turned toward her as though recollecting her presence after a moment of forgetfulness. “Come! Meriem,” he called, and then she recognized him with a startled: “Bwana!” Quickly the girl dropped from the tree and ran to his side. Tantor cocked a questioning eye at the white giant, but receiving a warning word let Meriem approach. Together the two walked to where Korak lay, his eyes wide with wonder and filled with a pathetic appeal for forgiveness, and, mayhap, a glad thankfulness for the miracle that had brought these two of all others to his side.
Meriem was watching and wondering, too. Suddenly, the man turned towards her as if he had just remembered she was there. “Come! Meriem,” he called, and then she recognized him and gasped, “Bwana!” Quickly, the girl climbed down from the tree and ran to his side. Tantor gave a curious look at the white giant, but after receiving a warning, he allowed Meriem to approach. Together, they walked over to where Korak was lying, his eyes wide with amazement and a desperate plea for forgiveness, and perhaps, a gratefulness for the miracle that had brought these two, of all people, to his side.
“Jack!” cried the white giant, kneeling at the ape-man’s side.
“Jack!” shouted the huge man, kneeling beside the ape-man.
“Father!” came chokingly from The Killer’s lips. “Thank God that it was you. No one else in all the jungle could have stopped Tantor.”
“Father!” came out hoarsely from The Killer’s lips. “Thank God it was you. No one else in the entire jungle could have stopped Tantor.”
Quickly the man cut the bonds that held Korak, and as the youth leaped to his feet and threw his arms about his father, the older man turned toward Meriem.
Quickly, the man cut the ropes that bound Korak, and as the young man jumped to his feet and wrapped his arms around his father, the older man turned toward Meriem.
“I thought,” he said, sternly, “that I told you to return to the farm.”
“I thought,” he said firmly, “that I told you to go back to the farm.”
Korak was looking at them wonderingly. In his heart was a great yearning to take the girl in his arms; but in time he remembered the other—the dapper young English gentleman—and that he was but a savage, uncouth ape-man.
Korak was looking at them in awe. Deep down, he really wanted to take the girl in his arms; but eventually, he remembered the other—a suave young English gentleman—and that he was just a wild, awkward ape-man.
Meriem looked up pleadingly into Bwana’s eyes.
Meriem looked up at Bwana with a pleading expression in her eyes.
“You told me,” she said, in a very small voice, “that my place was beside the man I loved,” and she turned her eyes toward Korak all filled with the wonderful light that no other man had yet seen in them, and that none other ever would.
“You told me,” she said, in a very quiet voice, “that my place was beside the man I loved,” and she turned her eyes toward Korak, filled with a wonderful light that no other man had ever seen in them, and that no one else ever would.
The Killer started toward her with outstretched arms; but suddenly he fell upon one knee before her, instead, and lifting her hand to his lips kissed it more reverently than he could have kissed the hand of his country’s queen.
The Killer approached her with his arms wide open; but then he dropped to one knee in front of her and, taking her hand, kissed it with more reverence than he could have shown to the hand of his country’s queen.
A rumble from Tantor brought the three, all jungle bred, to instant alertness. Tantor was looking toward the trees behind them, and as their eyes followed his gaze the head and shoulders of a great ape appeared amidst the foliage. For a moment the creature eyed them, and then from its throat rose a loud scream of recognition and of joy, and a moment later the beast had leaped to the ground, followed by a score of bulls like himself, and was waddling toward them, shouting in the primordial tongue of the anthropoid:
A rumble from Tantor made the three, all raised in the jungle, snap to attention. Tantor was looking at the trees behind them, and as they followed his gaze, the head and shoulders of a massive ape came into view through the leaves. For a moment, the creature stared at them, and then a loud scream of recognition and joy erupted from its throat. Moments later, the creature jumped down, followed by a dozen bulls like it, and started waddling toward them, shouting in the ancient language of the anthropoid:
“Tarzan has returned! Tarzan, Lord of the Jungle!”
“Tarzan is back! Tarzan, King of the Jungle!”
It was Akut, and instantly he commenced leaping and bounding about the trio, uttering hideous shrieks and mouthings that to any other human beings might have indicated the most ferocious rage; but these three knew that the king of the apes was doing homage to a king greater than himself. In his wake leaped his shaggy bulls, vying with one another as to which could spring the highest and which utter the most uncanny sounds.
It was Akut, and right away he started jumping and bounding around the three of them, letting out terrible shrieks and making gestures that would suggest pure rage to anyone else. But these three understood that the king of the apes was paying tribute to a king greater than himself. Following him were his shaggy bulls, competing with each other to see who could jump the highest and make the strangest sounds.
Korak laid his hand affectionately upon his father’s shoulder.
Korak placed his hand warmly on his father's shoulder.
“There is but one Tarzan,” he said. “There can never be another.”
“There is only one Tarzan,” he said. “There will never be another.”
Two days later the three dropped from the trees on the edge of the plain across which they could see the smoke rising from the bungalow and the cook house chimneys. Tarzan of the Apes had regained his civilized clothing from the tree where he had hidden it, and as Korak refused to enter the presence of his mother in the savage half-raiment that he had worn so long and as Meriem would not leave him, for fear, as she explained, that he would change his mind and run off into the jungle again, the father went on ahead to the bungalow for horses and clothes.
Two days later, the three dropped down from the trees at the edge of the plain, where they could see smoke rising from the bungalow and the cookhouse chimneys. Tarzan of the Apes had retrieved his civilized clothes from the tree where he had hidden them. Since Korak refused to see his mother in the ragged outfit he had worn for so long, and Meriem wouldn’t leave him because she was afraid he might change his mind and run back into the jungle, their father went ahead to the bungalow for horses and clothes.
My Dear met him at the gate, her eyes filled with questioning and sorrow, for she saw that Meriem was not with him.
My Dear met him at the gate, her eyes filled with questions and sadness, because she noticed that Meriem wasn't with him.
“Where is she?” she asked, her voice trembling. “Muviri told me that she disobeyed your instructions and ran off into the jungle after you had left them. Oh, John, I cannot bear to lose her, too!” And Lady Greystoke broke down and wept, as she pillowed her head upon the broad breast where so often before she had found comfort in the great tragedies of her life.
“Where is she?” she asked, her voice shaking. “Muviri said she ignored your instructions and ran off into the jungle after you left them. Oh, John, I can’t stand the thought of losing her too!” And Lady Greystoke broke down and cried, resting her head on the broad chest where she had often found comfort in the great tragedies of her life.
Lord Greystoke raised her head and looked down into her eyes, his own smiling and filled with the light of happiness.
Lord Greystoke lifted her chin and gazed into her eyes, his own smiling and shining with joy.
“What is it, John?” she cried. “You have good news—do not keep me waiting for it.”
“What is it, John?” she exclaimed. “You have good news—don’t keep me in suspense.”
“I want to be quite sure that you can stand hearing the best news that ever came to either of us,” he said.
“I want to make sure you can handle hearing the best news that ever came to either of us,” he said.
“Joy never kills,” she cried. “You have found—her?” She could not bring herself to hope for the impossible.
“Joy never kills,” she exclaimed. “Have you found her?” She couldn't allow herself to hope for the impossible.
“Yes, Jane,” he said, and his voice was husky with emotion; “I have found her, and—HIM!”
“Yes, Jane,” he said, his voice thick with emotion; “I found her, and—HIM!”
“Where is he? Where are they?” she demanded.
“Where is he? Where are they?” she asked.
“Out there at the edge of the jungle. He wouldn’t come to you in his savage leopard skin and his nakedness—he sent me to fetch him civilized clothing.”
“Out there at the edge of the jungle. He wouldn’t come to you in his wild leopard skin and nakedness—he sent me to get him some civilized clothes.”
She clapped her hands in ecstasy, and turned to run toward the bungalow. “Wait!” she cried over her shoulder. “I have all his little suits—I have saved them all. I will bring one to you.”
She clapped her hands in excitement and turned to run toward the bungalow. “Wait!” she shouted over her shoulder. “I have all his little outfits—I’ve saved them all. I’ll bring one to you.”
Tarzan laughed and called to her to stop.
Tarzan laughed and told her to stop.
“The only clothing on the place that will fit him,” he said, “is mine—if it isn’t too small for him—your little boy has grown, Jane.”
“The only clothes here that will fit him,” he said, “are mine—if they aren’t too small for him—your little boy has grown, Jane.”
She laughed, too; she felt like laughing at everything, or at nothing. The world was all love and happiness and joy once more—the world that had been shrouded in the gloom of her great sorrow for so many years. So great was her joy that for the moment she forgot the sad message that awaited Meriem. She called to Tarzan after he had ridden away to prepare her for it, but he did not hear and rode on without knowing himself what the event was to which his wife referred.
She laughed, too; she felt like laughing at everything, or at nothing. The world was full of love, happiness, and joy again—the world that had been covered in the darkness of her deep sorrow for so long. Her joy was so overwhelming that for a moment she forgot the sad news that awaited Meriem. She called out to Tarzan after he had ridden off to get ready for it, but he didn’t hear and continued on, unaware of what his wife was talking about.
And so, an hour later, Korak, The Killer, rode home to his mother—the mother whose image had never faded in his boyish heart—and found in her arms and her eyes the love and forgiveness that he plead for.
And so, an hour later, Korak, The Killer, rode home to his mother—the mother whose image had never faded in his heart—and found in her arms and her eyes the love and forgiveness that he asked for.
And then the mother turned toward Meriem, an expression of pitying sorrow erasing the happiness from her eyes.
And then the mother turned to Meriem, a look of pity replacing the happiness in her eyes.
“My little girl,” she said, “in the midst of our happiness a great sorrow awaits you—Mr. Baynes did not survive his wound.”
“My little girl,” she said, “in the middle of our happiness, a great sorrow is waiting for you—Mr. Baynes didn’t survive his wound.”
The expression of sorrow in Meriem’s eyes expressed only what she sincerely felt; but it was not the sorrow of a woman bereft of her best beloved.
The sadness in Meriem’s eyes reflected how she truly felt; but it wasn’t the sadness of a woman who had lost her greatest love.
“I am sorry,” she said, quite simply. “He would have done me a great wrong; but he amply atoned before he died. Once I thought that I loved him. At first it was only fascination for a type that was new to me—then it was respect for a brave man who had the moral courage to admit a sin and the physical courage to face death to right the wrong he had committed. But it was not love. I did not know what love was until I knew that Korak lived,” and she turned toward The Killer with a smile.
“I’m sorry,” she said simply. “He would have wronged me greatly; but he made up for it before he died. There was a time I thought I loved him. At first, it was just fascination for someone who was different from anyone I knew—then it grew into respect for a brave man who had the guts to admit he was wrong and the courage to face death to fix the mistakes he made. But it wasn’t love. I didn’t understand what love was until I found out that Korak was alive,” and she turned to The Killer with a smile.
Lady Greystoke looked quickly up into the eyes of her son—the son who one day would be Lord Greystoke. No thought of the difference in the stations of the girl and her boy entered her mind. To her Meriem was fit for a king. She only wanted to know that Jack loved the little Arab waif. The look in his eyes answered the question in her heart, and she threw her arms about them both and kissed them each a dozen times.
Lady Greystoke glanced quickly into her son's eyes—the son who would one day be Lord Greystoke. She didn't consider the difference in their social standings; to her, Meriem was worthy of a king. All she cared about was knowing that Jack loved the little Arab orphan. The expression in his eyes confirmed what she felt in her heart, and she wrapped her arms around both of them, kissing each of them a dozen times.
“Now,” she cried, “I shall really have a daughter!”
“Now,” she exclaimed, “I’m finally going to have a daughter!”
It was several weary marches to the nearest mission; but they only waited at the farm a few days for rest and preparation for the great event before setting out upon the journey, and after the marriage ceremony had been performed they kept on to the coast to take passage for England. Those days were the most wonderful of Meriem’s life. She had not dreamed even vaguely of the marvels that civilization held in store for her. The great ocean and the commodious steamship filled her with awe. The noise, and bustle and confusion of the English railway station frightened her.
It took several exhausting marches to reach the nearest mission, but they only stayed at the farm for a few days to rest and prepare for the big event before starting the journey. After the wedding ceremony, they continued on to the coast to catch a passage to England. Those days were the most amazing of Meriem’s life. She had never even imagined the wonders that civilization had waiting for her. The vast ocean and the comfortable steamship left her in awe. The noise, hustle, and chaos of the English train station scared her.
“If there was a good-sized tree at hand,” she confided to Korak, “I know that I should run to the very top of it in terror of my life.”
“If there was a decent-sized tree nearby,” she told Korak, “I would run straight to the top of it, terrified for my life.”
“And make faces and throw twigs at the engine?” he laughed back.
"And make faces and toss sticks at the engine?" he laughed in response.
“Poor old Numa,” sighed the girl. “What will he do without us?”
“Poor Numa,” the girl sighed. “What will he do without us?”
“Oh, there are others to tease him, my little Mangani,” assured Korak.
“Oh, there are others to tease him, my little Mangani,” Korak reassured.
The Greystoke town house quite took Meriem’s breath away; but when strangers were about none might guess that she had not been to the manner born.
The Greystoke townhouse completely stunned Meriem; but when strangers were around, no one could tell that she hadn't been raised in that style.
They had been home but a week when Lord Greystoke received a message from his friend of many years, D’Arnot.
They had only been home for a week when Lord Greystoke got a message from his longtime friend, D’Arnot.
It was in the form of a letter of introduction brought by one General Armand Jacot. Lord Greystoke recalled the name, as who familiar with modern French history would not, for Jacot was in reality the Prince de Cadrenet—that intense republican who refused to use, even by courtesy, a title that had belonged to his family for four hundred years.
It came as a letter of introduction from General Armand Jacot. Lord Greystoke remembered the name, as anyone familiar with modern French history would, because Jacot was actually the Prince de Cadrenet—that passionate republican who even refused to use, out of courtesy, a title that had been held by his family for four hundred years.
“There is no place for princes in a republic,” he was wont to say.
“There’s no room for princes in a republic,” he used to say.
Lord Greystoke received the hawk-nosed, gray mustached soldier in his library, and after a dozen words the two men had formed a mutual esteem that was to endure through life.
Lord Greystoke welcomed the hawk-nosed, gray-mustached soldier into his library, and after just a few words, the two men established a mutual respect that would last a lifetime.
“I have come to you,” explained General Jacot, “because our dear Admiral tells me that there is no one in all the world who is more intimately acquainted with Central Africa than you.
"I've come to you," General Jacot said, "because our dear Admiral tells me that there's no one in the whole world who knows Central Africa better than you."
“Let me tell you my story from the beginning. Many years ago my little daughter was stolen, presumably by Arabs, while I was serving with the Foreign Legion in Algeria. We did all that love and money and even government resources could do to discover her; but all to no avail. Her picture was published in the leading papers of every large city in the world, yet never did we find a man or woman who ever had seen her since the day she mysteriously disappeared.
“Let me share my story from the start. Many years ago, my young daughter was taken, likely by Arabs, while I was serving with the Foreign Legion in Algeria. We used all the love, money, and even government resources we could muster to find her; but none of it worked. Her picture was printed in the major newspapers of every big city around the globe, yet we never found a single person who had seen her since the day she vanished without a trace.”
“A week since there came to me in Paris a swarthy Arab, who called himself Abdul Kamak. He said that he had found my daughter and could lead me to her. I took him at once to Admiral d’Arnot, whom I knew had traveled some in Central Africa. The man’s story led the Admiral to believe that the place where the white girl the Arab supposed to be my daughter was held in captivity was not far from your African estates, and he advised that I come at once and call upon you—that you would know if such a girl were in your neighborhood.”
"A week ago, a dark-skinned Arab came to me in Paris, introducing himself as Abdul Kamak. He claimed he had found my daughter and could take me to her. I immediately took him to Admiral d’Arnot, who I knew had traveled in Central Africa. The man's story convinced the Admiral that the location where the white girl the Arab believed to be my daughter was being held captive wasn't far from your African estates. He suggested that I come right away and talk to you since you would know if such a girl was in your area."
“What proof did the Arab bring that she was your daughter?” asked Lord Greystoke.
“What proof did the Arab provide that she was your daughter?” Lord Greystoke asked.
“None,” replied the other. “That is why we thought best to consult you before organizing an expedition. The fellow had only an old photograph of her on the back of which was pasted a newspaper cutting describing her and offering a reward. We feared that having found this somewhere it had aroused his cupidity and led him to believe that in some way he could obtain the reward, possibly by foisting upon us a white girl on the chance that so many years had elapsed that we would not be able to recognize an imposter as such.”
“None,” replied the other. “That’s why we thought it was best to consult you before organizing an expedition. The guy only had an old photograph of her, and on the back, there was a newspaper clipping describing her and offering a reward. We were worried that finding this somewhere had piqued his greed and led him to believe he could somehow get the reward, possibly by passing off a white girl on the chance that so many years had gone by that we wouldn’t be able to recognize an imposter.”
“Have you the photograph with you?” asked Lord Greystoke.
“Do you have the photograph with you?” asked Lord Greystoke.
The General drew an envelope from his pocket, took a yellowed photograph from it and handed it to the Englishman.
The General pulled an envelope from his pocket, took out a faded photograph, and gave it to the Englishman.
Tears dimmed the old warrior’s eyes as they fell again upon the pictured features of his lost daughter.
Tears blurred the old warrior's eyes as they fell once more on the image of his lost daughter.
Lord Greystoke examined the photograph for a moment. A queer expression entered his eyes. He touched a bell at his elbow, and an instant later a footman entered.
Lord Greystoke looked at the photograph for a moment. A strange look came into his eyes. He pressed a bell at his side, and a moment later a footman walked in.
“Ask my son’s wife if she will be so good as to come to the library,” he directed.
“Please ask my son's wife if she could come to the library,” he instructed.
The two men sat in silence. General Jacot was too well bred to show in any way the chagrin and disappointment he felt in the summary manner in which Lord Greystoke had dismissed the subject of his call. As soon as the young lady had come and he had been presented he would make his departure. A moment later Meriem entered.
The two men sat in silence. General Jacot was too well-mannered to demonstrate the frustration and disappointment he felt at the abrupt way Lord Greystoke had brushed off the reason for his visit. As soon as the young lady arrived and he was introduced, he would take his leave. A moment later, Meriem walked in.
Lord Greystoke and General Jacot rose and faced her. The Englishman spoke no word of introduction—he wanted to mark the effect of the first sight of the girl’s face on the Frenchman, for he had a theory—a heaven-born theory that had leaped into his mind the moment his eyes had rested on the baby face of Jeanne Jacot.
Lord Greystoke and General Jacot stood up and faced her. The Englishman didn’t say a word of introduction—he wanted to see the impact of the first glance at the girl’s face on the Frenchman, because he had a theory—a brilliant theory that had struck him the moment he saw Jeanne Jacot’s baby face.
General Jacot took one look at Meriem, then he turned toward Lord Greystoke.
General Jacot glanced at Meriem, then turned to Lord Greystoke.
“How long have you known it?” he asked, a trifle accusingly.
“How long have you known it?” he asked, slightly accusatory.
“Since you showed me that photograph a moment ago,” replied the Englishman.
“Since you just showed me that photo a moment ago,” replied the Englishman.
“It is she,” said Jacot, shaking with suppressed emotion; “but she does not recognize me—of course she could not.” Then he turned to Meriem. “My child,” he said, “I am your—”
“It’s her,” said Jacot, trembling with held-back emotion; “but she doesn’t recognize me—of course, she wouldn’t.” Then he turned to Meriem. “My child,” he said, “I am your—”
But she interrupted him with a quick, glad cry, as she ran toward him with outstretched arms.
But she cut him off with a quick, joyful shout as she ran toward him with her arms wide open.
“I know you! I know you!” she cried. “Oh, now I remember,” and the old man folded her in his arms.
“I know you! I know you!” she exclaimed. “Oh, now I remember,” and the old man hugged her tightly.
Jack Clayton and his mother were summoned, and when the story had been told them they were only glad that little Meriem had found a father and a mother.
Jack Clayton and his mom were called in, and after they heard the story, they were just happy that little Meriem had found a dad and a mom.
“And really you didn’t marry an Arab waif after all,” said Meriem. “Isn’t it fine!”
“And you didn’t end up marrying an Arab waif after all,” said Meriem. “Isn’t that great!”
“You are fine,” replied The Killer. “I married my little Meriem, and I don’t care, for my part, whether she is an Arab, or just a little Tarmangani.”
“You're good,” The Killer replied. “I married my little Meriem, and I don't mind at all whether she's Arab or just a little Tarmangani.”
“She is neither, my son,” said General Armand Jacot. “She is a princess in her own right.”
“She is neither, my son,” said General Armand Jacot. “She is a princess in her own right.”
Download ePUB
If you like this ebook, consider a donation!